MRS. LINCOLN'S BOSTON COOK BOOK. MRS. LINCOLN'S BOSTON COOK BOOK. WHAT TO DO AND WHAT NOT TO DO IN COOKING. BY MRS. MARY J. LINCOLN, FIRST PRINCIPAL OF THE BOSTON COOKING SCHOOL, AND CULINARY EDITOR OF "THE AMERICAN KITCHEN MAGAZINE." AUTHOR OF '' CARVING AND SERVING," " BOSTON SCHOOL KITCHEN TEXT-BOOK," "TWENTY LESSONS IN COOKERY," "THE PEERLESS COOK BOOK," AND " A COOK BOOK FOR A MONTH AT A TIME." Kcftfee* Ztoftfon. CONTAINING OVER 2 JO ADDITIONAL RECIPES. BOSTON: LITTLE, BROWN, AND COMPANY. 1903. " Not to know at large of things remote From use, obscure and subtle, but to know That which before us lies in daily life, Is the prime wisdom." MILTON. " To know what you do know, and not to know what you do not know, is true knowledge." CONFUCIUS. PREFACE TO THE REVISED EDITION WHEN the "Boston Cook Book" was first published, cooking schools were in their infancy, and some sugges- tions as to their management were included in its pages. But now, after sixteen years' dissemination of these sug- gestions, it seems no longer advisable to include them in a cook book. Therefore, in making this first revision of my book I have utilized the pages previously devoted to this subject and to the general index, which is superfluous, as the alphabetical index is so comprehensive, also the blank spaces at the end of some chapters, for about three hundred additional recipes, and this without increasing the size or the price. The subject of each section forms the heading of the page. Since granulated gelatine and baking powder are now so universally used, the proportions of each are given where needed. Recipes for many new food products are inserted, and many minor changes made in the text. This revised edition is not the new book which has been in preparation for some time. Unavoidable delays in the completion of the latter and the large demand for extra copies from many persons who have worn out their first viii Preface to the Revised Edition. books have led me to make this revision of the " Boston Cook Book " now. The new book will contain many features not practicable here, and is designed not to supplant but to supplement my first book. MARY J. LINCOLN. BOSTON, MASS., October, 1900. PREFACE TO FIRST EDITION. To compile a book which shall be not only a collection of receipts, given briefly for the experienced housekeeper, and with sufficient clearness for the beginner, but which shall also embody enough of physiology, and of the chem- istry and philosoph}' of food, to make every principle in- telligible to a child and interesting to the mature mind ; which shall serve equally well for the cook in the kitchen, the pupil in the school-room, and the teacher in the normal c } ass ? i s a difficult task. Yet the need of a book of moderate cost, containing in a reasonably small compass all this and much more, has been seriously felt by all who are engaged in teaching cookery. Moreover, there is a special reason for the publication of this work. It is undertaken at the urgent request of the pupils of the Boston Cooking School, who have desired that the receipts and lessons given during the last four years in that institution should be arranged in a permanent form. To one who from childhood has been trained in all de- tails of housework, learning by observation or by actual experience much that it is impossible to receive from books, the amount of ignorance shown by many women is surprising. That a person of ordinary intelligence pre- siding over her household can be satisfied with only a vague conception of the common domestic methods, or that any true woman can see anything degrading in any labor necessary for the highest physical condition of her x Preface. family, would be incredible if the truth of it were not daily manifest. Happily, popular opinion now decides that no young lady's education is complete without a course of training in one or more branches of domestic work. And those who are not so fortunate as to have the best of all train- ing that of actual work under a wise and competent mother gladly resort to the cooking- schools for in- struction. In compiling these receipts for use in a school and in the family, several things were demanded. In a school of pupils from every class and station in life, a great variety of receipts is desirable. They must be clear, but concise, for those who are already well grounded in first principles. They must be explained, illustrated, and reiterated for the inexperienced and the careless. They must have a word of caution for those who seem always to have the knack of doing the wrong thing. They must include the most healthful foods for those who have been made ill by improper food; the cheapest as well as the most nutritious, for the laboring class ; the richest and most elaborately prepared, for those who can afford them physically as well as pecuniarily. These receipts are not a mere compilation. A large portion have accumulated during a long period of house- keeping ; and many have been received from friends who are practical housekeepers. Others have been taken from standard authorities on cooking; and all have been fre- quently and thoroughly tested by pupils under the eye of the author. As far as possible, acknowledgment has been made for the receipts received. Where changes and im- provements have been made, or where there were many authorities for the same formula, no credit has been given. Some cook-books presuppose the presence of an as- sistant ; but as three fourths of the women in this country Preface. xi do their own work, these receipts are arranged so as to require the attention of but one person. It is proverbial that young housekeepers are often greatly perplexed in attempting to provide little enough for only two. For their benefit many of our receipts are prepared on a scale of smaller measurements. The materials to be used are given in the order in which the\ r are to be put together. They are arranged in col- umns, where the eye may catch them readily, or in italics where economy of space seemed desirable. Every caution or suggestion has been given at the re- quest of some pupil who failed to find in other boobs just what she needed ; or because, in the experience of teach- ing, it has been shown that, unless forewarned, pupils inevitably make certain mistakes. Many subjects which in other books are omitted or given briefly, will be found to have received here an extensive treatment, because they have seemed of paramount importance. All the chemical and physiological knowledge that is necessary for a clear understanding of the laws of health, so far as they are involved in the science of cookery, is given in this book. Nine tenths of the women who go through a scientific course in seminaries never put any of the knowledge gained into practical use. By the time they have occasion to use such knowledge in their own homes, the Chemistoy and Physiology have been relegated to the attic, where they help mice to material for their nests, but help no woman to apply the principles of science upon which the health and welfare of her house- hold largely depend. The statement will appear incredible to most people, and yet it is true, that many women do not know what the simplest things in our daily food are ; cannot tell when water boils, or the difference between lamb and veal, lard and drippings. They cannot give the names of kitchen xii Preface. utensils ; do not know anything about a stove, or how to pare a potato. This will explain what might otherwise seem an unnecessary minuteness of detail. The expe- rience of such ignorance also suggested the sub-title of the " Boston Cook Book," " What to do and what not to do in Cooking," just how to hold your bowl and spoon, to use your hands, to regulate your stove, to wash you* dishes ; and just how not to fall into the errors into which so many have stumbled before you. But, more than all, it is attempted to give a reason for every step taken, and a clear answer to any questions that are likely to arise in the experience of either housekeeper or cook. A WORD of grateful acknowledgment is due the manj friends who have aided in this work. First, to my mother I owe much for her excellent judg- ment in training me as a child to a love for all house- hold work. Although it was often hard to ' ' help mother " when other children were at play, the knowledge thus gained has proved invaluable. Every year's experience in teaching has made me prize more and more this earlj training. Also, I am deeply indebted to Miss M. S. DEVEREU* for the illustrations of this book. In all my work I have been greatly aided by her suggestions and generous sympathy. And, lastly, I would not forget my obligations to a large circle of personal friends. Especially would I remember the one who, twenty years ago, aided me in making my first loaf of bread, and the many among my pupils who, out of their varied experience, have contributed much that has proved helpful. MARY J. LINCOLN. WOLLASTON, MASS., 1884. BOOKS OF REFERENCE. AMONG the many valuable authorities on subjects connected with food, the following have been consulted in preparing this work. The Cook Books are named, not according to their merit, but in the order in which the author has had personal knowledge of them : Youmans's Handbook of Household Science. Johnston's Chemistry of Common Life. Wells's Science of Common Things. Lewes's Physiology of Common Life. Gray's How Plants Grow. Dal ton's Physiology. Webster's Dictionary. Food. By A. H. Church. Food for the Invalid. Family Receipt Books without number; and Cook Books by Mrs. Henderson, Marion Harland, Mrs. Cornelius," Mrs. Beecher, Warne, Francatelli, Soyer, Mrs. Whitney, Miss Parloa, Mrs. Campbell, Miss Corson, Mrs. Beeton, and Mrs. Ewing. CONTENTS. PAOl INTRODUCTION 1 BREAD AND BREAD MAKING 36 RECEIPTS FOR YEAST AND BREAD 62 RAISED BISCUIT, ROLLS, ETC 68 STALE BREAD, TOAST, ETC 75 SODA BISCUIT, MUFFINS, GEMS, ETC 80 WAFFLES AND GRIDDLE-CAKES 97 FRIED MUFFINS, FRITTERS, DOUGHNUTS, ETC 102 OATMEAL AND OTHER GRAINS 108 BEVERAGES Ill SOUP AND STOCK 119 SOUP WITHOUT STOCK 146 FISH 159 SHELL FISH 175 MEAT AND FISH SAUCES 187 EGGS . 197 MEAT 210 BEEF 214 MUTTON AND LAMB 232 VEAL 239 PORK 245 POULTRY AND GAME 251 ENTREES AND MEAT RECHAUFFE 265 SUNDRIES 282 xvi Contents. VEGETABLES 289 RICE AND MACARONI 306 SALADS 309 PASTRY AND PIES 316 PUDDING SAUCES 328 HOT PUDDINGS 331 CUSTARDS, JELLIES, AND CREAMS 341 ICE-CREAM AND SHERBET 361 CAKE 369 FRUIT . . ; 391 COOKING FOR INVALIDS 407 MISCELLANEOUS HINTS 435 THE DINING-ROOM 439 THE CARE OF KITCHEN UTENSILS 443 AN OUTLINE OF STUDY FOR TEACHERS 449 ADDITIONAL RECIPES 483 EXPLANATION OF TERMS USED IN COOKERY 561 ALPHABETICAL INDEX '. . . , ... 567 LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. PAOB FIG. 1. Grain of Wheat . 37 44 2. Grain of Wheat with Bran removed , . . . 38 44 3. Grain of Wheat magnified . 38 44 4. Yeast Plant 46 44 5. Cruller 105 44 6. Cruller after Folding 105 ^ 4 7. Baked Fish 164 44 8. Small Fish served whole 166 44 9. Scalloped Lobster 183 44 10. Omelet 201 44 11. Orange Omelet 202 44 12. Eggs and Minced Meat 205 <'' 13. Stuffed Eggs 206 4 14. EggsklaCreme 208 4 '- 15. Diagram of Ox 212 " 16. Hind Quarter of Beef 212 " 17. Aitch Bone 214 4 ' 18. Round 215 44 19. Back of Rump 216 " 20. First Cut of Sirloin 216 44 21. Sirloin Roast 217 44 22. Tip of Sirloin 218 44 23. First Cut of Rib 219 44 24. Chuck Rib 219 44 25. Fillet of Beef 222 44 26. Mutton Duck 235 44 27. Paper Ruffle 236 44 28. Chop 237 44 29. Chop in Paper 237 xvrii List of Illustrations. PAGE FIG. 30. Calf's Heart 241 44 31. Sweetbreads and Bacon 243 * 32. Sweetbreads on Macaroni 244 " 33. Pigeons and Spinach on Toast 264 " 34. Boned Turkey, browned 265 " 35. Boned Chicken, larded and baked 266 " 36. Chicken in Jelly 267 " 37. Meat Porcupine - 272 " 38. Croquettes 279 11 39. Stuffed Potatoes . . . . 296 44 40. Chicken Salad 314 " 41. Lobster Salad 315 44 42. Bow-Knots 321 44 43. Cheese Straws 322 44 44. Apple SnowbaUs 335 44 45. Orange Charlotte 348 44 46. Orange Baskets 351 " 47. Mould of Bavarian Cream 357 44 48. Royal Diplomatic Pudding 358 " 49. Strawberry Charlotte . . 360 " 50. Cookies. ... 3H6 LECTURES and PRACTICAL TALKS ON COOKERY (WITH DEMONSTRATION IF DESIRED) By MRS. LINCOLN SUBJECTS ART AND SCIENCE, VERSUS DRUDGERY AND LUCK IDEAL HOUSEKEEPING DOMESTIC SCIENCE ECONOMIC BUYING RECIPROCAL DUTIES OF HOSTESS AND GUEST LUNCHEON AND DINNER GIVING FURNISHING A HOME GLIMPSES OF FOREIGN HOUSEKEEPING PRACTICAL TALKS ON THE KITCHEN PRACTICAL TALKS ON ALL FORMS OF COOKING Schools, Societies, and Women's Clubs desiring one or more lectures may secure Mrs. Lincoln's services by applying to her personally or by letter. For Terms, Address MRS. MARY J. LINCOLN 204 Huntington Avenue, Boston, Mass. COOK BOOKS BY MRS. MARY J. LINCOLN, Formerly MARY J. BAILEY, of the class of 1864. Wheaton Seminary, Norton, Mass., BOSTON COOK BOOK. Illustrated, I2mo. Price, $2.00. It is the trimmest, best arranged, best ilhistrated, most intelligible manual of cookery as a high art, and as an economic art, that has appeared. Independent. CARVING AND SERVING. Square I2mo. Price, 60 cents. We have in this dainty little book, told clearly and even entertainingly, and yet without a wasted word, practical and minute directions how to put meat on the table, how to cut it up, and how to distribute it, with special directions about each particular dish ; also how to help to vegetables, soups, and articles of des- sert ; and suggestions about utensils, etc. It is highly to be recommended. Rev. F. N. Zabriskie, D.D. THE BOSTON SCHOOL KITCHEN TEXT BOOK. I2mo. Price, $1.00. Lessons in Cooking for the use of Teachers and Classes in Public and Industrial Schools. You have made our whole country your debtor by the composition of a book so much needed, and so simple, sensible, and thorough. It will greatly aid in making instruction in the theory and practice of cookery a part of our school courses. George C. Chase , Professor of English Literature, Bates C allege ^ Leiviston, Maine. THE PEERLESS COOK BOOK. Containing four hundred Receipts. 1 5 cents. For sale at all bookstores, or mailed, postpaid, on receipt of price, by the author, Mrs. Mary J. Lincoln, 204 Huntington Ave- nue, or by the publishers. TWENTY LESSONS IN COOKERY. Compiled from the "Boston School Kitchen Text Book," and printed on tinted cards. The set includes about one hundred and fifty cooking receipts and one card of rules for general housework. They are used in the industrial and public school cooking classes in Boston, New Haven, Brooklyn, Pittsburg, Milwaukee, and other cities. Price per set. 40 cents. Special reduction to schools or parties purchasing over fifty sets. To be obtained only of Little, Brown, and Company, or of Mrs. Lincoln, 204 Huntington Avenue. FROZEN DAINTIES. To be obtained of the White Mountain Freezer Co., Nashua N. H. " A Cook Booh for a month at a time." To ~be obtained by sending a two-cent stamp to MRS. LINCOLN'S BAKING POWDER CO. 21 Commerce Street, Boston. Send for descriptive catalogue, (mailed free). LITTLE, BROWN, & CO., Boston. THE BOSTON COOK BOOK. COOKERY COOKERY is the art of preparing food for the nourish- ment of the human body. When given its proper impor- tance in the consideration of health and comfort, it must be based upon scientific principles of hygiene and what the French call the minor moralities of the household. All civilized nations cook their food, to improve its taste and digestibility. The degree of civilization is often measured by the cuisine. Cooking (from the Latin coquo, to boil, bake, heat, dry, scorch, or ripen) is usually done by the direct application of heat. Fruits and some vegetables which are eaten in a natural state have really been cooked or ripened by the heat of the sun. Milk and eggs, which are types of per- fect food, would be useless as food unless they came from the warm living animal. Fish, flesh, and fruits which have been dried in the sun or smoked, and are often eaten without any further preparation, have undergone a certain process of natural cooking. Heat seems to create new flavors, and to change the odor, taste, and digestibility of nearly all articles of food. It swells and bursts the starch cells in flour, rice, and potatoes; hardens the albumen in eggs, fish, and meat; softens the fibrous substances in tough meats, hard vege- tables and fruits. It develops new flavors in tea, cofiee t roasted meat, crusts of bread, baked beans, etc. I The Boston Cook Book. Gold is also an important matter to be regarded in the preparation of food. Sweet dishes and certain flavors, like honey, ices, and custards ; the water, wine, or milk we drink ; our butter, fruits, and salads, are all more pala- table when cold. Water, or some other liquid, in connection with heat is necessary in many forms of cookery. Grains, peas, beans, dried fruits which have parted with nearly all their moisture in the ripening or diying process necessary for their preser- vation, need a large portion of water in cooking, to soften and swell the cellulose, gluten, and starch before they can be masticated and digested. In some vegetables and fruits water draws out certain undesirable flavors ; it softens and dissolves the gelatinous portions of meat, and makes palatable and nourishing many substances which would be rendered unwholesome by a dry heat. Air, or the free action of ox3 7 gen, upon our food while cooking develops certain flavors not otherwise to be ob- tained. Meat roasted or broiled has a much finer flavor than when boiled, baked, or fried. Toasted bread, thin corn cake baked before the fire, roasted apples, and many articles cooked in the open air, show the benefit of this free combined action of heat and air. Drying in the sun was one of the earliest modes of cookery. Then came roasting before an open fire, or broiling over the coals, and baking in the hot ashes. This last was the primitive oven. As the art of making cooking-utensils developed, stewing, boiling, and frying were adopted. Then, to economize heat, portable ovens were invented ; these were originally a covered dish set over or near the fire, having sometimes a double cover filled with coals. Afterwards, stoves which kept the fire and heat in a limited space were introduced ; and im- provements have been made in them so extensively that we now have them with conveniences for doing ever} 7 form of cooking with wood, coal, oil, or gas. Some one gives this distinction between man and other animals : " Man is an animal that builds a fire and uses it Fire. 3 to cook his food." It is quite important then, as a step- ping-stone to cooking, to learn the properties and manage- ment of a fire. Fire. Fire is heat and light produced by the combustion of Inflammable substances. Combustion is a chemical opera- tion carried on in the air, or the chemical union of the oxj-gen of the air with some combustible body, like hy- drogen gas or the solid carbon, and is attended with the evolution of heat and light The heat and the light come from the sun. With every particle of vegetable matter that is formed by the combined action of the sun and the carbonic acid gas in the air, a portion of the sun's heat and light is absorbed and held fast in it. And whenever this vegetable matter is decomposed, as in burning wood, coal, or oil, which are only definite forms of vegetable mat- ter, this heat and light are given out. The amount of each depends upon the mode of burning. Air is composed mainly of two elementar} 7 gases, ox\ T gen and nitrogen (one part oxygen and four parts nitrogen), with a small amount of watery vapor and carbonic acid gas. Pure oxygen is a gas vhich has a wonderful attraction for, and power of combination with, every other element. If it were everywhere present in a perfectly pure state, it would consume or burn up eveiythiug ; but it is diluted or mixed (not combined) with nitrogen, another gas which is incombustible, and which lessens the combustibility of everything with which it comes in contact. Owing to this dilution, the oxygen will not unite with the carbon and hydrogen with which it is everywhere surrounded, and produce rapid combustion, except at a high temperature. The temperature at which this union takes place is called the burning-point, and this varies in different substances. Thus combustion is within the power and control of man ; and some extra means are usually employed to increase the temperature to the burning-point, friction, or per- cussion, or the use of some more highly inflammable The Boston Cook Book. substances, like sulphur and phosphorus. This produces heat sufficient to complete the chemical union, or, in com- mon phrase, " kindles the fire." The heat generated for all household purposes is produced by the chemical action of the oxygen of the air upon the hy- drogen and carbon which are found in the various kinds ot wood and coal. The oxygen first combines with the car- bon and decomposes it, producing carbonic acid gas, which escapes into the air, from which it is absorbed by plants, or by human lungs when there is no proper ventilation. The oxygen also combines with the hydrogen gas in the fuel, and this produces the flame ; the larger the amount of hydrogen in the fuel, the greater the amount of flame. Some of the products of combustion are not entirely con- sumed, and pass off as smoke ; some are incombustible, and remain as ashes. The intensity of a fire and the amount of heat which it produces are always in proportion to the amount of oxygen with which it is supplied. There should be just air enough for perfect combustion. An excess of air projected upon a fire conveys away the heat, cools the fuel, and checks the combustion. The supply of air should be controlled by confining it in a limited space. Fires are usually kindled at the bottom of a flue or chim- ney. The heated air, being lighter, rises ; the colder, den- ser air rushes in to take its place, becomes heated, and ascends. Thus a continuous current is established, and a constant supply of fresh air secured. The chimney serves to carry off the smoke and poisonous products of combus- tion ; the heavier, incombustible products settle in the form of ashes. The force of this current of air drawing through the chimney (a matter of great importance) is called the draught. It varies with the temperature and amount of air in the room, and the length and width of the chimney. Fuel. The materials generally used as fuel are wood, charcoal, coal, kerosene oil, and gas. Fuel. 5 Soft woods, such as pine or birch, kindle quickl}-, produce intense heat, and are best for a quick, blazing fire. Hardwoods, like oak, ash, and hickor}*, burn more slowly, but produce harder coals, which retain the heat longer, and are better where long-continued heat is required. Charcoal, which is coal made by charring or burning wood with only a limited supply of air, burns easily and produces greater heat in proportion to its weight than any other fuel. It should never be burned in a close room. Anthracite coal is a kind of mineral charcoal derived from ancient vegetation buried in the earth, and so thoroughly pressed that nothing is left but pure carbon, a little sul- phur, and the incombustible ash. It kindles slowly, yields an intense, stead}* heat, and burns for a longer time with- out replenishing than the hardest wood. Coke,. often used in cities, is the residue of coal from which illuminating gas has been manufactured. The heat is intense, but transient. Stoves for burning kerosene oil and gas have recently been introduced, and are now so nearly perfect that the care of a fire for cooking purposes is trifling. Gas can only be used in certain localities. The cheapest fuel is the best kerosene oil. There need be no waste, no superfluous heat, no vitiated air, if the fire be extinguished immediately after the work is done, and if the stove be kept perfectly clean, so as to secure a free burning and perfect combustion. With two good stoves having all the latest and best improvements, a large amoun* of work can be easily and satisfactoril} 7 accomplished. The Making and Care of a Coal Fire. If you intend to buy a new stove or range, get one sim- ple in construction, that you may quickly learn all its parts and their uses ; plain in finish, that yon may easily keep it clean ; and perfectly fitted part to part, with doors and dampers shutting absolutely close, so that you ma}* con- trol the fire and heat. This latter point is of essential The Boston Cook Book. importance in regulating the oven and in preventing a waste of fuel. Become thoroughly acquainted with whatever stove you may have. If necessary, take it apart ; learn how to clean it in the inside, to regulate the dampers for all the variations of wind, temperature, and fuel; and then learr how to make and keep a fire. All stoves have a fire-box, with more or less space under* neath for ashes ; a slide damper under the fire, letting in the air ; an outlet for the smoke ; and a damper which reg- ulates the supply of hot air, sending it around and under- neath the oven, or letting it escape into the chimney. Remove the covers and brush the soot from the top of the oven into the fire-box ; then clean out the grate ; and if the stove have conveniences for so doing, sift the ashes in the stove and save all the old coal and cinders. ^ Put in shavings or loose rolls of paper, then fine pine kindlings, arranged crosswise, and a layer of hard wood, leaving plenty of air space between the pieces. Be sure the wood comes out to each end of the fire-box. Put on the covers ; and if the stove need cleaning, moisten some pulverized stove polish with water, and rub the stove with a paint brush dipped in the polish. When all blackened, rub with a dry polishing-brush until nearly dry. Open the direct draught and oven damper, and light the paper, as a slight heat facilitates the process of polishing. When the wood is thoroughly kindled, fill the fire-box with coal even with the top of the oven. Brush up the hearth and floor, empty the teakettle, and fill it with fresh water. Watch the fire, and push the coal down as the wood burns away, and add enough more coal to keep it even with the top of the fire bricks. When the blue flame becomes white, close the oven damper ; and when the coal is burning freely, but not red, shut the direct draught. It seems impossible for some persons to understand that a coal fire is at its height as soon as well kindled, and needs only air enough to keep it burning. When it becomes bright red all through, it has parted with most of its heat, and begins to die out. Tons The Oven. of coal are wasted in many kitchens, and ranges are need- lessly burned out, b}* filling the fire-box till the coal touches the covers, and leaving the draughts open till the coal is red. Nearly ah 1 stoves and portable ranges have the oven at one side of and a little below the fire. In brick-set ranges the ovens are sometimes over the fire. A stove has a door on each side of the oven, with the fire-box in front. A portable range has only one oven-door, and the fire-box at the end. In ranges where the oven is over the fire, the articles to be baked are placed on a grate near the middle, as the bottom of the oven is usually very hot. In stoves or portable ranges anything which has to rise in the oven, like bread, pastry, cake, etc., is placed on the bottom of the oven, and, if the heat be too great, a small rack or grate may be placed under it. Large pieces of meat are placed on a rack in a pan ; while small cuts of meat, birds, etc., which are to.be baked quickly, and any dishes which are to be merely browned, like scalloped dishes, must be placed on the grate near the top. Cultivate the habit of opening and shutting the oven-door quickly but gently. Learn the hottest and coolest places in the oven. Look at things as they are baking, and turn and watch till you are sure they can be left alone. If anything bake unevenly or too fast, put a screen between it and the heat, a pan on the grate above or underneath, or a frame of stiff paper made larger than the pan, that it may not touch the dough. When the regulating dampers are closed and the oven is still too hot, lift a cover on the top partly off, although in a stove in which the parts are perfectly adjusted this will never be necessary. When the oven is not hot enough, open the direct draught, and rake out the ashes from the grate. Keep the grate cleaned out and the fire burning freely, when a very hot oven is needed. At other times keep the draughts shut and do not waste the coal. To keep a brisk fire for several hours or ah 1 day, it is better to add a sprinkling of coal often, rather than to let it burn nearly out, and then, by adding a larger quantity, The Boston Cook Book. check the fire and retard the work. In using the top of the stove remember the hottest place is over the fire and toward the middle, not on the front of the stove. When you have once watched the flame in its passage over the top, down the back, and under the oven, then across, out and up on the opposite side and out into the chimney, you will understand where the greatest heat must be. Boiling. The term i ' boiling " is often used erroneously in cook- ery. The expressions " the teakettle boils," " the rice is boiling," "boiled beef," etc., are all good illustrations of the rhetorical figure metonymy, but they are practically incorrect. In all cases it is only the water or liquid which boils. No solid can boil until first changed to a liquid. Solids become liquid at the melting-point. Liquids take the form of steam or vapor at the boiling-point. Boiling is the conversion of a liquid into steam by the application of heat sufficient to cause ebullition, or agitation of its sur- face. Boiling, therefore, as applied to the cooking of solids, is heating or cooking in a boiling liquid. It is one of the most generally used, and abused, forms of cooking. Boiling water, which is really cooked water, is the liquid usually employed. Water, as it is heated from below, ex- pands into vapor. The air of the water and the steam shoot up in the form of bubbles ; as they come in contact with the cold water near the surface, the bubbles collapse, the steam is condensed and descends with the cold water, making a double set of currents, which causes quite a com- motion among the particles. As the whole body of water becomes hotter, these bubbles of steam rise higher and higher before collapsing, and occasion the sound which we call the " singing of the kettle." When the water is sufficiently heated, they rise and break at the surface, causing more or less agitation, according to the rapidity with which they are formed. Water is scalding hot at 150, or when the hand cannot be borne in it. Water Boiling Water. rimmers when the bubbles all collapse beneath the surface, and the steam is condensed to water again, or at 185. Water boils when the bubbles rise to the surface, and the steam is thrown off, as at 212. When this boiling-point is reached, the heat escapes with the steam ; and all the fire in the world cannot make the water an}' hotter, so long as the steam escapes. If the fire be very fierce, so that these bubbles are formed and expelled rapidly, and the water boils over, the water is no hotter ; it only evaporates or boils away faster, and can onty be made hotter by confin- ing the steam, which in ordinary kettles is impossible, owing to the enormous expansive force of the steam. With a few exceptions it is a waste of fuel, time, and ma- terial to keep the water boiling at such a galloping rate that the cover has to be lifted to prevent boiling over. A kettle should never be quite full, as the water ex- pands in heating, and, in boiling over, makes needless work and injures the stove. Water will boil more quickly in a kettle with a rough surface than in one with a smooth surface, as the water adheres to a smooth surface with greater force, and this force or attraction must be over- come before boiling takes place. Small, clean gravel is sometimes kept in a smooth kettle to facilitate the boiling. Water boils at a higher temperature when there is sugar, or salt, or anything in it to increase its density. It takes longer for it to boil ; but it is hotter, when that point is reached. No one who has been burned by boiling syrup ever doubted this fact. Fresh water boils at 212 ; salt water, at 224. If we put salt with the water in the lower part of a double boiler, a greater degree of heat is obtained by which to cook the articles in the top. Water boils at a lower temperature, that is, more quickly, when the pressure of the air upon the water is diminished. Before a rain the pressure of the air is lessened, because the air when filled with vapor is lighter. Observing house- keepers have often noticed how quickly things burn at such a time, and foretell a rain by the rapidity with which watet evaporates. ro The Boston Cook Book. The pressure of~the air is less the higher we ascend above the level of the sea, since we leave much of the air below us. Cooking in boiling water requires a much longer time in mountainous regions ; for the water boils so quickly that it holds less heat than in lower altitudes, where it is subject to greater pressure. Water, in boiling, loses the air or gases which give it a fresh taste and spark- ling appearance. It becomes flat and tasteless. If there be any impurity in water, boiling or cooking will destroy it. Then, by cooling, and exposing to pure air again, it becomes aerated and palatable. But water for cooking, unless there are impurities to be removed, should be used when freshly boiled. This is especially important in mak- ing tea and coffee. Soft water should be used in boiling where the object is to soften the texture, and extract the soluble parts, as in soups, broths, tea, and coffee. Hard water, or soft water salted, is better where we wish to preserve the articles whole, and retain the soluble and flavoring principles, as in most green vegetables. Beans or dried peas, which contain casein or vegetable albumen in large proportion, should be cooked in soft water, as the lime in hard water hardens the casein, and prevents the vegetables from becoming soft. In cooking meat, fish, and vegetables in water, we should remember these two facts : Cold water draws out the albuminous juices, softens the fibres and gelatinous portions of meat, and holds them in solution. It draws out starch, but does not unite with it. Hoiling water hardens and toughens albumen and fibrine, bursts the starch grains, and is absorbed by the swelling starch. Meat is cooked in water for three distinct purposes : First. To keep the nutriment within the meat, as in what is usually called boiled meat. To do this, we leave the meat whole, that only a little surface may be exposed. Plunge it into boiling salted water, and keep it there for five or ten minutes; this hardens the albumen over the entire surface, and makes a coating through which the juices Boiling Meat, etc. II cannot escape. Then move the kettle where the water will simmer slowly. See that the cover fits tightly, to keep in the steam. The water should be salted to raise the boiling-point, and increase the density of the water, and thus prevent the escape of the juices. A small amount of the albumen in the outer surface will be dissolved and rise as scum. This should be removed, or it will settle on the meat and render it uninviting in appearance. If the meat be put in the kettle with the bones uppermost, then the scum will not settle on the meat. In turning the meat do not pierce into it to let the juices escape. It will take a longer time to cook in this way, but the fibrine will be softened, and the meat made more tender and of better flavor, than when kept boiling furiously. Second. Meats are cooked in water to have the nutri- ment wholly in the liquid, as in soups and meat teas. Cut the meat in small pieces ; soak in cold water, the longer the better ; heat gradually, and keep hot, but not boiling, until all the goodness is extracted. Third. Meats are cooked in water to have the nutri- ment partly in the liquid and partly in the meat, as in stews, fricassees, etc. Put the meat in cold water, let the water boil quickly, then skim, and keep at the simmering-point. The cold water will draw out enough of the juices to enrich the liquid ; then, as it reaches the boiling-point, the meat hardens, and retains the remainder. Fish is usually cooked in boiling water for the purpose of keeping the juices in the fish. As the flesh of fish breaks easily, the water should never be allowed to boil rapidly. Salmon, mackerel, or any very oily fish, should be put into cold water, and brought almost to the boiling- point quickly, as they have a very strong, rich flavor. A little of this flavor can be lost without injury to the fish. Vegetables, which are mostly starch and water, should be put into boiling water and boiled rapidly, that the small portions of albumen which they contain may be hardened on the surface ; then, if the starch grains are burst quickly, they will absorb the albuminous juices within. 12 The Bosion Cook Book. Milk boils at 196. Being thicker than water, less of the steam escapes, and the whole liquid becomes hot sooner than water. The bubbles rise rapidly, and, owing to their tenacit} 7 , do not burst at the surface, but climb over one another till they run over the edge of the pan. Milk, grains, custards, and any substances which, from their glutinous nature, would be liable to adhere to the kettle, are much more easily and safely cooked in a double boiler, or in a pail within a kettle of water. This is one form of steaming, or cooking over boiling water. In steam- ing, the water should not stop boiling until the articles are cooked. This is a convenient form of cooking many arti- cles which it is troublesome to cook with a dry heat, and } r et do not need the solvent powers of water. Watery vegetables are rendered drier by steaming ; and tough pieces of meat which cannot be roasted, are first made tender by steaming, and then browned in the oven. Some- times meat is steamed in its own juices alone ; this is called smothering, or pot-roasting. Stewing is another form of boiling or cooking in a small qnantity of water, at a moderate heat, and for a long time. The word means a slow, moist, gentle heat. It is an eco- nomical mode of cooking, except where a fire has to be kept for this purpose alone. The long-continued action of a gentle heat softens the fibres ; and the coarsest and cheapest kinds of meat, cooked in this way, with vegeta- bles, may be made tender and nutritious. By judicious use of seasoning material, remnants can be made into savory and nourishing dishes. Whether we call it simply a stew, or ragout, haricot, or salmi, the principle is the same, that o f slow, steady simmering, rather than fierce boiling. Fricasseeing (meaning "to fry") is a form of stewing. The term is usually applied to chicken, veal, or some small game, which is cut into pieces, and fried either before or after stewing, and served with a rich white or brown sauce, and without vegetables. Any meat that is quite juicy and not very tough may be first browned on the out- side to keep in the juices, and improve the flavor. Coarse, Braising, Baking. 13 tough pieces should not be browned, but dipped in vinegar to soften the fibre ; and pieces containing much gristle should be put into cold water. Braising is a form of stewing done usually in a braising- pan or kettle which has coals in the cover. Any granite or iron pan with a close cover to keep in the steam will answer the purpose. When placed in the oven, where it is surrounded by a slow, uniform heat, it needs very little attention. It is one of the most economical and satisfac- tory ways of cooking large pieces of tough, lean meat, pigeons, liver, fowls, heart, etc. Stock, vegetables, and bacon may be used, if a rich liquor be required ; but water, herbs, and simple seasoning make it very palatable. Baking is hardening or cooking in a dr} r heat, as in a close oven. Nearly all flour mixtures bread, pastry, and some forms of pudding are more wholesome baked than when cooked in any other way. Many forms of baking are really stewing ; but the closely confined heat of the oven gives an entirely different flavor from that obtained b}^ stewing over the fire. This is seen in the difference between stewed and baked apple-sauce, beans, etc. Meat and fish, if baked in the right way, lose less in weight than when boiled or roasted. To bake them prop- erly, the juices must be kept within the meat. An intense heat at first is necessary to harden the albumen ; then re- duce the heat, that the outside may not become too hard, and baste frequently to prevent drying. No water should be put in the pan at first, as it will then be impossible to have a greater heat than that of boiling water (212) , while for baking meat 280, or more, is required. Put one or two tablespoonfuls of beef drippings, or some of the fat from the meat, in the pan, to use in basting, as the fat can be made much hotter than water. If the joint be very large, or the meat need thorough cooking, like poultry, veal, or pork, water can be added to check the heat as soon as the outside is cooked sufficiently to keep in the juices. This will keep the meat moist. Small cuts, and meats to be eaten rare, are better baked without water. 14 The Boston Cook Book. Many persons accustomed to meat roasted before the open fire object to the flavor of baked meat. If the oven be very hot at first, and opened every five minutes just long enough for the basting, which is an essential part of the cooking process, the smoky odor escapes. If there be no damper to check the heat underneath the oven, put the grate or another pan under the dripping-pan, as no heat is required under the meat. This will prevent the fat in the pan from burning and smoking the meat. Place the meat with the skin side down at first ; then, if the juices begin to flow, the skin keeps them in ; and, when turned, it brings the side which is to be up in serving next the hottest part of the oven, for the final browning. Ah 1 baked meat or fish should be salted and floured all over. Salt draws out the juices ; but the flour unites with them, making a paste which soon hardens, and keeps them within. Baste often, and dredge with salt and flour after basting. If there be no shelf attached to the stove near the oven, keep a box or frame of wood just the height of the oven, near by, and pushed up close to it ; it will be found very convenient to pull the pan out upon it when basting or turning the meat. Frying. Frying is cooking in hot fat, not boiling fat, as it is so often called, for fat can be made much hotter than the temperature required for cooking, which is 385 ; the ttm- perature for boiling fat is from 565 to 600. Frying, when properly done, is immersion in smoking-hot fat. The fat should be deep enough to entirely cover the articles to be cooked ; and as it may be used many times, it is not so extravagant as some suppose to use such a quantify. The prime secret of nice frying is to have the fat hot enough to harden instantly the albumen on the outer surface, and thus prevent the fat from soaking into the inside of what- ever is to be fried. As a much higher temperature is required than that for boiling or baking, the articles are Frying. 1 5 very quickly cooked ; and they have a flavor quite unlike that given by any other form of cooking. All articles to be fried should be thoroughly dried and slightly warmed. If very moist, or very cold, or too many articles be fried at a time, the fat becomes chilled, and the grease soaks into them. Then, as the moisture heats and boils, it causes such a commotion that the fat and water boil over, and there is great danger from the fat- taking fire and spreading to your clothing, to say nothing of the trouble of cleaning the stove and floor. For this reason be careful not to let a drop of water, or of con- densed steam from another kettle., fall into the hot fat. Meat, fish, oysters, croquettes, etc., should be dried, and rolled in fine bread-crumbs, to absorb any moisture ; then rolled in beaten egg, and in fine crumbs again. The hot fat hardens the albumen of the egg instantly ; and that, with the crumbs, makes a fat-proof crust. Fish balls, fritters, and fried muffin mixtures contain egg and albumen sufficient to keep them from soaking fat, if the fat be only hot enough. A Scotch bowl, or deep iron or granite kettle, and a wire basket small enough to fit down into the kettle, are best to use in frying. The Test for Hot Fat. When the fat .begin? to smoke put in a bit of bread ; if it brown quickty, or while you can count sixty as the clock ticks, it is hot enough for fried potatoes, doughnuts, etc. When hot enough to brown the bread while you count forty, it will do for fish balls, croquettes, etc. When read}- to fry, plunge the basket into the hot fat to grease it, and then place in it the croquettes, or what- ever you may be frying, so that they will not touch each other. Hold the handle of the basket with a long fork, and plunge it quickly into the fat, but do not drop the handle, because if the fat begin to boil up, you can then raise the basket quickly, and wait till the ebullition has subsided before plunging it in again ; and thus avoid the danger of burning from the overflowing fat. The fat cools rapidly, when many articles are fried at once, and 16 The Boston Cook Book. should be reheated to the test point before frying any more. Time. Any cooked mixture, such as fish balls and cro- quettes, or very small fish, oysters, scallops, etc., will be fried brown in one minute. Thicker fish, chops, and frit- ters require longer cooking ; and, after plunging them into the hot fat, the kettle should be set back from the fire to prevent them from becoming too brown before they are sufficiently cooked. While frying, be careful not to spill any fat on the stove. Keep a tin plate in your left hand, and hold it under the basket, or ladle, as you take things from the fat. Draining. Thorough draining is another secret of nice frying, and you cannot find a much hotter place than right over the hot fat ; so hold your basket of fried food over the hot fat, and shake slightly, till all dripping has stopped. Then place the fried articles on soft or unglazed paper, to absorb the fat, and keep them hot till ready to serve. Never pile fried articles one on another. Fat for Frying. Lard, a mixture of half suet and half lard, drippings, or oil, may be used for frying. Suet and drippings are cheap-- est, and are preferred by many. Suet used alone cools very quickly and leaves a tallowy taste. Drippings should be carefully clarified (see page 18) and freed from water, or the articles cooked will soak fat. Lard, with a small proportion of suet or drippings, is more generally satisfac- tory. There is often a very disagreeable odor to new lard, and more or less water in it, as is shown by the froth and ebullition as soon as it becomes hot. Before it is used for any purpose it should be clarified with slices of raw potato and heated until it becomes still. Olive oil is the purest fat for frying, but it is too expensive for general use. Cotton- ' seed oil has been recently introduced for cooking purposes, and is an excellent fat for frying, though many dislike its peculiar odor It may be heated much hotter than lard* Sauteing. 1 7 without burning, and, when properly used, imparts no flavor to the food. When the fat becomes too brown lor potatoes or doughnuts, use it for croquettes, etc., and then use it for nothing except fish balls and fish. When it be- comes very brown, put it with the soap-grease. If you wish to fry several kinds at the same time, begin with potatoes, following with doughnuts or flour mixtures, and crumbed articles last ; otherwise the crumbs will fall off, and adhere to whatever is put in subsequently. After every frying, strain the fat through a fine wire strainer or fine strainer cloth into a tin pail, not pouring it, but dip- ping it from the kettle with a small long-handled dipper. Let it cool slightly before straining, as, if very hot, it will melt the strainer. Sprinkle coffee on the stove, while fry- ing, to disguise the odor. Sauteing. The ordinary way of frying in a shallow pan with only a little fat, first on one side and then on the other, which the French call sauteing, answers very well for some purposes, omelets, fried cakes, and many things browned in butter ; but nearly everything that requires any more fat than just enough to keep it from sticking, is much better immersed in hot fat. Fish balls, chops, and O} T sters are more quickly cooked, and absorb less fat, when fried by immersion than when sauted. Some people are extremely unwilling to make the change, and persist in going on in the old way of cooking in a little, half-hot fat which spatters over stove and floor, soaks into the fish or meat, and is often served as the only gravy. Upon such, dyspepsia is a fell avenger. These directions for frying are given thus* minutely not from any desire to recommend this method of cooking ; but, if people will fry their food, they should do it in the only correct way. With the exception of salt-fish balls and small, dry, white fish, there is nothing fried, even in 9 1 8 The Boston Cook Booh. the right way, that would not be equally good, and much more conducive to health, were it cooked otherwise. Sar- atoga potatoes, or chips as they are called, are really chips, for persons with weak digestion. Oysters, chops, fritters, and the materials in croquettes, muffins, and doughnuts may be cooked in many better ways. Frying answers very well for open-air cooking, on the seashore or in camp, where appetite and digestion are strengthened. But in most modern houses, where the odors from the kitchen penetrate the remotest nook and corner, there are many serious objections, apart from the indigestibility of the food thus prepared. The acrid odors given off during the heating of fat are very irritating to the mucous membrane of the nose and throat, and they are equally so to a sensitive stomach. Some persons who can usually digest fried food cannot do so when the stomach has been irritated by the odor in frying. If all those who are so fond of croquettes, fritters, etc., were obliged to inhale the smoking fat, these dishes would seldom appear on the table. To clarify Fat. Any uncooked fat, such as suet, the fat from chickens, and all superfluous beef fat, should be saved and clarified, or made pure and clear. Cut the fat into small pieces, cover with cold water, and cook over a slow fire until the fat has melted, and the water nearly all evaporated. Then strain and press all the fat from the scraps. When cool, remove the cake of hard fat, or, if soft, draw it to one side and let the water underneath run off. You may put with the new fat any fat from soup stock, corned beef, drippings from roast beef, veal, fresh pork, or chicken ; in fact, any- thing except the fat from mutton, turkey, and smoked meat. If there be any sediment adhering to the fat, add a little very cold water, and, after stirring well, pour the water off, or skim the fat from the water. Place the fat in a pan over the fire, and, when melted, add one small raw potato, cut into thin slices. Let it stand on the top Egg and Bread Crumbing. 19 of the stove or in the oven till the fat has stopped bub- bling, is still, and the scraps are brown and crisp and rise to the top. Strain through a fine strainer, and keep in a cool place. Fat thus cleared will keep sweet for weeks, if melted occasionally, which should always be done when any new fat is added. Boiling the fat causes the water in it to evaporate, and the organic matters or impurities to be decomposed, and deposited as sediment ; the potato, owing to its porosity and power of absorption (being mostly starch and car- bon), absorbs any odors or gases, collects the sediment, and thus cleanses the fat, very much as charcoal purifies water. Clarified fat (or dripping, as it is usually termed) answers for many purposes in cooking, frying, saut6- ing, basting roast meat, greasing pans ; and as shorten- ing for bread, plain pastry, and gingerbread. Egg and Bread Crumbing. Hints on saving bread crusts and stale pieces, for egg and bread crumbing, are given on page 75. The crumbs should be sifted through a fine sieve. For fish or meat mix a little salt, pepper, and chopped parsley with them. Beat the eggs slightly with a fork in a shallow dish. Add one tablespoonful of water or two table spoonfuls of milk for each egg. Add a little sugar if they are to be used for sweet dishes, and salt and pepper for all others.' Sprinkle the crumbs on a board, and roll the chop, fish, or cro- quettes first in the crumbs ; shake off all that do not adhere. Cover all the articles with the crumbs and let them stand till dry, then dip into the beaten egg, and be careful to have ever}* part covered. Drain from the egg, and roll again in the crumbs. Croquettes or any soft mixture should be held on a broad knife while being placed in the egg. Then dip the egg over them, and slip the knife again lengthwise under the croquette, drain, and put it carefully into the crumbs. Scallops and very small O}'sters can be more easily crumbed by placing them with the crumbs in a 2O The Boston Cook Book. sheet of paper, and tossing or turning till all are crumbed . Remember the order : crumbs first, then egg, then crumbs again. Roasting. Roasting (meaning " to heat violently " ) is cooking be- fore tin open fire ; it implies the action of a much greater degree of heat than that empktyed in any of the previously specified methods of cooking. The heat of an open fire is about 1,000. In the days of open fireplaces this was the general way of cooking large pieces of meat ; but now it is adopted only in large establishments, or by those who can afford the additional expense of a tin kitchen, and a range con- structed especially for roasting. Baking, or roasting in a very hot oven, being a cheaper and more convenient way, is more generally used. Ovens in stoves and ranges are now well ventilated ; and meat when properly cooked in a very hot oven, and basted often, is nearly equal in flavor to that roasted before an open fire. The fire for roasting should be clear and bright, and of sufficient body to last, with only a slight sprinkling of coal, through the time for roasting. The meat is placed on a spit, and hung in the jack in a tin kitchen, and made to revolve slowly before the fire by winding a spring in the jack, or by turning the spit at regular intervals. The meat should be rubbed with salt and flour, and placed on the spit, very near the fire at first, to harden the albumen ; then removed a little dis- tance to prevent the meat from burning, before the inside is cooked. Place two or three spoonfuls of dripping in the pan to use in basting the meat ; baste often, and dredge two or three times with flour. When the joint is very large, place a buttered paper over it. As the juices of meat are composed largely of water, the water will be evaporated as soon as it reaches the boiling-point, or 212. When meat is placed in a moder- ate oven, the heat is not sufficient to harden the albumen Broiling. 2 1 on the outer surface ; the watery juices evaporate, the steam escapes, and the meat becomes dry and tasteless. But when meat is exposed to the intense heat of an open fire, or a very hot oven, the albumen hardens ; and if basted frequently with hot fat, the meat is completely en- veloped in a varnish of hot melted fat, which assists in communicating the heat to the inside, and checks the evaporation of the juices ; this prevents the escape of the steam, so that the inside of properly roasted meat is really cooked in the steam of its own juices. The evapo ration of juices is proportionate to the amount of surface exposed. A small joint has a larger surface in proportion to its weight than a large joint weighing double or treble the amount ; therefore the smaller the joint to be roasted, the higher the temperature to which its surface should be ex- posed, that the evaporation may be more quickly arrested. For very thin pieces of meat, which have a still larger surface in proportion to the weight, such as steaks and chops, a greater heat is required. This is accomplished by broiling, which should be done near the burning- point, the highest degree of heat employed in any form of cooking. Broiling. Broiling (meaning " to burn" ) is cooking directly over the hot coals. The degree of heat is so intense that the articles to be cooked would be very quickly burned, were they allowed to remain for any length of time over the fire. The secret of nice broiling is frequent turning. The fire should be bright red, and nearly to the top of the fire-box, so that the broiler may almost touch the fire. There should be no flame, as the flame from coal is due to the combustion of tany vapors, and will cause a deposit of coal tar on the meat, giving it a smoky, nauseating flavor. When the fat from the chop or steak drips on the coals and blazes, it deposits a film of mutton or beef fat all over the meat, which has a very different flavor from that of the coal flame. When the steak has much fat, remove 22 The Boston Cook Book. part of it. A little fat will improve the flavor, baste the meat, and keep it from becoming too dry. The oven damper should alwa} T s be opened while broiling, that the smoke of the dripping fat may be carried into the chimney. There is nothing better for broiling than a double wire broiler. It is well to have several sizes. Grease it well with a bit of the fat from the meat, or with salt-pork rind. Place the thickest part of whatever is to be broiled next the middle of the broiler. Do not salt the meat, as salt draws out the juice. Have the platter heating, and every- thing else ready, that you may not leave the broiling for an instant. Hold the broiler firmty, with a coarse towel wrapped around 3 r our hand to protect it from the heat. Place it as near the fire as possible, to sear the outside instantly ; count ten, then sear the other side. The heat hardens the outside, and starts the flow of the juices. They cannot escape through the hardened outer surface ; but if the meat were cooked wholly on one side before turning, they would soon come to the top, and then, in turning the meat, the juices would drip into the fire. But if the meat be turned before the juices reach the top, the other surface is hardened, and they cannot escape, but flow to the centre, and are there retained. As the juices are converted into steam by the heat, they swell and give the meat a puffy appearance. If the broiling be carried on too long, these juices gradually ooze between the fibres to the surface, and are evaporated ; and the meat becomes dry, leathery, and indigestible. Meat should be broiled only long enough to loosen all the fibres, and start the flow of the juices. The meat will spring up instantly when pressed with the knife ; and when it ceases to do this, the juices have begun to evaporate, and the meat shrinks. A little experience will enable one to decide just when to remove the meat. Do not cut into it, as this lets out the juices. It should be pink and juicy, not raw and purple, nor brown and dry. Turn over as often as you can count ten, and cook four minutes, if 'Broiling. 23 one inch thick; six, if one inch and a half thick. The smaller and thinner the article, the hotter should be the fire ; the larger the article, the more temperate the fire, or the greater the distance from the fire. Fish should be floured to keep the skin from sticking. A large baking-pan to keep in the heat should be laid over the fish if thick, or it may be first partly cooked in the oven. Chickens, to be thoroughly broiled but not burned or dried, require about twenty minutes. A safe way is to wrap them in buttered glazed paper ; cook the inner side first, and after the first searing keep them farther from the fire, or cook them first in the oven. Chops, bacon, birds, and dry fish are also improved by broiling in the buttered paper. Take a large sheet of white letter paper, or two small sheets. Rub them well with softened butter. This keeps out the air. Season the chop or fish with salt and pepper, place it near the centre of the paper, and fold the edges of the paper over several times and pinch them together close to the meat. The paper will char a long time before blazing, if care be taken not to break through the paper and thus let in the air and let out all the fat. The meat will be basted with its own fat and juices. A longer time will be required for the broiling ; but when the paper is well browned, the chop will be done. It will be found juicy and delicious, free from any smoky flavor. Pan-broiling is broiling in a hissing hot spider or frying- pan. Heat the pan to a blue heat. Rub it with a bit of the beef fat, just enough to keep the meat from sticking, but do not leave any fat in the pan. Sear the meat quickly on one side, then turn without cutting into the meat, and brown the other side before any juice escapes into the pan. Cook about four minutes, turning twice, and serve very hot with salt and butter. If the pan be hot enough and no fat used, this is not frying, it is broiling on hot iron; and the flavor is almost equal to broiling over the coals. The Boston Cook Book. Time Tables for Cooking. Baking Bread, Cake, and Puddings. Loaf bread . . . . 40 to 60 m. Rolls, biscuit . . . 10 to 20 " Graham gems ... 30 " Gingerbread ... 20 to 30 " Sponge cake . . . 45 to 60 " Plain " .... 30 to 40 " Fruit "..;... 2 to 3 hrs. Cookies . . . . . 10 to 15 m. Bread pudding . . 1 hr. Rice and Tapioca . 1 " Indian pudding . . 2 to 3 " Plum " . . 2 to 3 " Custards 15 to 20 m. Steamed brown-bread 3 hrs. Steamed puddings . 1 to 3 " Pie-crust about 30 in. Potatoes 30 to 45 " Baked beans ... 6 to 8 hrs. Braised meat ... 3 to 4 " Scalloped dishes . . 15 to 20 m. Frying. Croquettes, Fish Balls 1 m. Doughnuts, Fritters . 3 to 5 m. Bacon, Small Fish, Potatoes 2 to 5m. Breaded Chops and Fish 5 to 8 m. Baking Meats. Beef, sirloin, rare, per Ib. 8 to 10 m. Beef, sirloin well done, per Ib 12 to 15 " Beef, rolled rib or rump, per Ib. ..... 12 to 15 " Beef, long or short fillet 20 to 30 " Mutton, rare, per Ib. . 10 Mutton, well done, per Ib. 15 Lamb, " " " 15 Veal " " " 20 Pork " " " 30 Turkey, 10 Ibs. wt. . 3 hrs. Chickens, 3 to 4 Ibs. wt. 1 to l " Goose, 8 Ibs. ... 2 " Tame duck .... 40 to 60 in. Game " .... 30 to 40 m. Grouse 30 " Pigeons 30 " Small birds .... 15 to 20 " Venison, per Ib. . . 15 " Fish, 6 to 8 Ibs.; long, thin fish .... 1 hr. Fish, 4 to 6 Ibs. ; thick halibut .... 1 " Fish, small . . . . 20 to 30 m. Boiling. Water, Iqt.overgas, covered 5 m. Water, Iqt. over gas,ur.covered 4 " Coffee 3 to 5 " Tea, steep without boiling 5 " Corn meal .... 3 hrs. Homipy, fine ... 1 hr. Oatmeal, coarse, steamed 3 hrs. Oatmeal, rolled . . 30 m. Rice, steamed . . . 45 to 60 m. Rice, boiled . . . . 15 to 20 m. Wheat Granules . . 20 to 30m. Eggs, soft boiled . . 3 to 6 m. Eggs, hard boiled . . 15 to 20 m. Eggs, coddled ... 6 to 8 " Fish, long, whole, per Ib. 6 to 10 " Fish, cubical, per Ib. . 15 " Clams, Oysters ... 3 to 5 " Beef,cornedandalamode 3 to 5 hrs. Soup Stock .... 3 to 6 " Veal, Mutton ... 2 to 3 hrs. Tongue 3 to 4 hrs Potted Pigeons ... 2 " Ham 5 " Sweetbreads . . . 20 to 30 in. Sweet Corn .... 5 to 8 " Asparagus, Tomatoes, Peas 15 to 20 " Macaroni, Potatoes, Spinach . . . . 20 to 30 " Squash, Celery, Cauliflower . . . 20 to 30 " Sprouts, Greens . . 20 to 30 " Cabbage, Beets, young 30 to 45 " Parsnips, Turnips . . 30 to 45 " Carrots. Onions, Salsify 30 to 60 " Beans, String and She'll 1 to 2 hrs. Brown I'read . . . Puddings, 1 qt., steamed 3 " Puddings, small . . 1 hr. Free/ing Ice Cream 30 m. Larding. 2$ Broiling. Steak, one inch thick - . 4m. Steak, one and a half inch thick Small, thin fi>h - 5 to 8 " Thick tish 12 to 15 " Chops, broiled in paper 8 to 10 " Chickens 20 " Liver, Tripe, Bacon 3 to 8 " Larding. Many kinds of meat which are very lean and clry are improved by the addition of some kind of fat. The tender- loin or fillet of beef, the thick part of the leg of veal, grouse, and liver, are often prepared in this way. Larding is drawing small strips of fat salt pork or bacon through the surface of the meat ; daubing is forcing strips of pork through the entire thickness of the meat. Take a piece of fat salt pork two inches wide and four inches long. Shave off the rind the long way of the pork ; then cut two or three slices about a quarter of an inch thick, the same way as the rind ; cut onl}" to the membrane which lies about an inch below the rind, as this is the firmest part of the pork ; then cut each slice across the width, into strips one quarter of an inch thick. This will make the lardoons one quarter of an inch wide and thick and two inches long. Insert one end of the lardoon into the end of the larding- needle, then with the point of the needle take up a stitch half an inch deep and one inch wide in the surface of the meat. Draw the needle through, and help the pork to go through by pushing until partly through, then hold the end of the pork and draw the needle out, leaving the pork in the meat, with the ends projecting at equal lengths. Take up more stitches one inch apart in parallel or alternate rows, until the whole surface is covered. DauUng is applied to a broad, thick piece of beef or veal. Cut the pork in strips one third of an inch wide and thick, and as long as the meat is thick. Punch a hole clear through the meat with a steel, and then insert the 26 The Boston Cook Book. lardoon with a large larding-needle or with the fingers. The salt and fat from the lardoons penetrate the inside of the meat, and by many are considered an improvement. Those who object to the pork will find that beef may be seasoned as well by covering the surface with nice beef suet, salted ; or the pork may be laid on the meat and removed after cooking. The process is not difficult, re- quiring no more skill than any other kind of sewing. Boning. Any one who can use a sharp knife, and scrape meat or fish from a bone, without cutting her own flesh, can bone anything, from the smallest bird, chop, or fish, to a leg or forequarter of lamb, or a turkey. A small knife with a sharp, short, pointed blade, is all that is required. It is well to begin on a small scale b} T removing the bone from a chop or steak. The aim is to remove the flesh from the bone without cutting into the flesh, or destroying its shape more than is necessa^. To Bone a Chop or Steak. Begin at the bone end, scrape the meat away, leaving the bone clean and the flesh un- broken. If there be a piece of tenderloin under the bone, remove it, and put it up close to the meat, which was above the bone in the original form. Directions for boning fish are given on page 161. To Bone a Leg of Mutton. Cut it off at the first joint, insert the knife near the joint, and loosen the flesh from the bone, leaving all the gristle and tendons on the bone. Then begin at the tail end, and scrape the fat away from the backbone, then follow the bone (you can easily tell by the feeling, if you cannot see it) until you come to the joint ; leave all the gristle and cords on the bone, and con- tinue scraping off the flesh till the whole bone is out. One could easily cut through from the outside to the bone and remove it in that way ; but the flesh would - have to be sewed together, and much of the juice would escape, After removing the bone, stuff the cavity left by the bone, Boning. 27 and sew the skin together at the smaller end. Then bring the edges together at the upper end, crowding all the flesh inside, and sew the skin together tightly. This gives a rectangular form of solid meat and stuffing. When salted and floured and exposed to a hot oven, the juices are kept inside ; the meat is more conveniently served, and, when cold, does not become dry and hard. Any other pieces of meat are boned in a similar manner. To Bone a Bird, Fowl, or Turkey. In this case the flesh is to be kept in the skin in order to preserve the shape. The skin should be firm and unbroken, and the bird should not be drawn. Remove the head and pin- feathers, singe and wipe carefully. Remove the tendons from the legs, and loosen the skin round the end of the drumstick. Make an incision through the skin from the neck to the middle of the back, or near the junction of the side bone. Scrape the flesh with the skin away from the backbone until you feel the end of the shoulder-blade ; loosen the flesh from this, and then follow the bone to the wing joint, and down to the middle joint in the wing. The skin lies very near the bone underneath the joint, and care must be taken to avoid cutting through the skin at these places. Leave the first bone in the wing to aid in keeping the shape ; it may be removed before serving. In small birds there is so little meat on the wings, that it is just as well to cut them off at the middle joint. Re- move the bone from the other wing in the same way, then follow the collar bone from the wing down to the breast- bone, loosening the crop from the flesh. In removing the flesh from the breastbone, be careful not to cut through the skin on the ridge. The flesh may be pushed away with the fingers, and the fillets or pieces that are detached from the other flesh can be laid aside, and put in place afterwards. When the breastbone is bare, separate the flesh from the ribs, and be careful not to break through the membrane into the inside. Remove the flesh round the second joint, then the drumsticks, turning the flesh wrong side out as in pulling a glove from the finger 28 The Boston Cook Book. Repeat this process on the other side. Then scrape down to the end of the backbone, and cut through the bone, leaving a part of it in the tail. Separate the membrane under the body without breaking. Thus you have the flesh in the skin, and the skeleton left entire with the con- tents undisturbed in the inside. Lay the stuffing in, filling out the legs and wings, then sew the skin along the back, and skewer or tie into the original shape. An easier way of boning a fowl where it is to be rolled like a galantine, is to cut off the wings at the second joint, break the drumstick half-way from the joint, cut the skin down the entire length of the back, remove the flesh from the wing and second joint, turning the skin and flesh off like a glove ; then do the same on the other wing and leg, leaving the breast till the last. The wings and legs are turned inside, the stuffing is laid in the flesh, and the whole rolled over and over, and sewed on the edge of the skin and at the ends of the roll. Measuring. It has been said that " good cooks never measure any- thing." They do. They measure by judgment and ex- perience ; and until you have a large share of both these essential qualities, use your spoon and cup or scales. Measures, in preference to weights, are used in nearly all these receipts, as they are more convenient for the ma- jority of housekeepers. When measured and estimated by the Table of Weights and Measures on page 30, the cu}; and spoon may be used as accurately as the scales. Flour, meal, sugar, salt, spices, and soda should al- ways be sifted before measuring. Any other materials that have been packed, like mustard and baking powder, if not sifted, should be stirred, and broken up lightly. One tablespoonful of solid mustard taken carelessly frorn the box has been found equal to three tablespoonfuls measured after sifting. The saltspoons, teaspoons, and tablespoons used in these receipts are the silver spoons now in general use. Iron Measuring. 29 mixing-spoons vary much in size, but there is a size which holds exactly the same as a silver tablespoon. Be carefnl to use this size in measuring. The cup is the common kitchen cup holding half a pint Those with handles are more convenient To measure a rounded teaspoonful of dry material, dip into the sifted material, and take up a heaping spoonful, shake it slightly until it is just rounded over, ov convex in tb same proportion as the spoon is concave. A level zspoonful means the spoon filled lightly, and levelled off with a knife. One half teatpoonjul is most accurately measured by dividing through the middle lengthwise. When divided across the width the tip is smaller than the lower half. A heaping teaspoonful is all the spoon will hold of any lightly sifted material. A teaspoonful of liquid is the spoon full to the brim. TaUespoonfuls are measured in the same way. A cupful of dry material should be filled and heaped lightly (not shaken down) , then levelled off even with the top. A small scoop should be kept in the flour or sugar to use in filling the cup. A heaping cupful is all the cup will hold. A cupful of liquid is not what you can carry without spilling, but what the cup will hold without running over ; full to the brim. Place your cup in a saucer, while filling it, or in the bowl in which the liquid is to be poured. Half a cupful is not half the distance from the bottom to the rim. Most cups are smaller at the bottom, for which allowance must be made. Take two cups of the same size and shape, fill one with water, then poor the water without spilling into the other cup until it stands at the same level in both cups. This gives you the half-cupful exactly, which in the cups used here is two thirds of the height, or within an inch of the top. The quarter and three-quarter measures may be found in the same way. A scant cupful is within a quarter of an inch of the top. "Butter the size of an egg" is a very common expression. This equals about one quarter of a cupful, or two ounces, or one heaping tablespoonful, either of which is more easily 3O The Boston Cook Book. written than the first expression. Place an egg in one tablespoon, then pack butter in another till it fills the spoon in the same proportion as the egg, and you will easily carry it in mind. Have your materials measured or at hand, and all uten- sils ready before beginning the mixing, or putting the ingredients together. Keep a bucket or pan full of flour, freshly sifted each day, and ready for use. Measure flour first, and put it in a bowl or pan together with salt, soda, cream of tartar, and spice ; measure butter and put it in the mixing-bowl ; then measure the sugar, and, in scraping out the sugar, take the butter which has adhered to the cup. Break your eggs on the edge of the cup ; if the white be clear, the egg is good. Put the yolks in one bowl and the whites in another ; measure the milk or liquid, and, after using the beaten 3 7 olk, clean out the bowl with the milk. Or, measure all the dry ingredients, break and sep- arate the eggs, measure the milk, add it to the beaten yolks, and measure the melted butter last. In either way you can make one cup do for all without washing. "Two eggs beaten separately " means that the yolks and whites are to be beaten separately, not each whole egg beaten separately. A tablespoonful of melted butter is measured after melt- ing. A tablespoonful of butter melted is measured before melting. To economize space, in many of the receipts the abbre- viations are written : one cup for one cupful, tablesp. for tablespoonful, teasp. for teaspoonful, and saltsp. for salt- spoonful. All these measures mean a full measure, unless scant or heaping measures are specified. Table of Weights and Measures. 4 saltspoonfuls of liquid = 1 teaspoonful. 4 teaspoonfuls of liquid 1 tablespoonful. 3 teaspoonfuls of dry material = 1 tablespoonful. 4 tablespoonfuls of liquid = 1 wineglass, or gill, or i cup 2 gills = 1 cup, or pint. Table of Proportions. 16 tablespoonfuls of liquid 12 tablespoonf uls of dry material 8 heaping tablespoonf uls of dry material 4 cups of liquid 4 cups of flour 2 cups of solid butter \ cup of butter 2 cups of granulated sugar 2 cups of powdered sugar 3 cups of meal 1 pint of milk or water 1 pint of chopped meat packed solidly 9 large eggs, 10 medium eggs 1 round tablespoonful of butter 1 heaping tablespoonful of butter Butter the size of an egg 1 heaping tablespoonful of sugar 2 round tablespoonfuls of flour 2 round tablespoonfuls of coffee 2 round tablespoonfuls of powd sugar 1 tablespoonful of liquid 1 bottle S. M. wine 1 bottle brandy 1 small bottle Foss' extract 1 small bottle Foss' extract 1 flask of olive oil = 1 cup. = 1 cup. = 1 cup. = 1 quart = 1 pound, or 1 quart = 1 pound. = 4 pound. ~ 1 pound. = 1 pound. = 1 pound. 1 pound, rr 1 pound- = 1 pound. = 1 ounce. 2 ounces, or J cup = 2 ounces, or J cup = 1 ounce. = 1 ounce. = 1 ounce. = 1 ounce. i ounce. = 3 cups, or 48 tablespoonfuls. = li cups, or 24 tablespoonfuls. = cup scant, or 3 tablespoonfuls = 12 teaspoonfuls. = 1 cups, or 20 tablespoonfuls. Table of Proportions. 1 scant measure of liquid to 3 full measures of flour, for bread. 1 scant measure of liquid to 2 full measures of flour, for muffins. 1 scant measure of liquid to 1 full measure of flour, for batters, i cup of yeast, or of compressed yeastcake, to one pint of liquid. 1 level teasp. of soda and 2 full tesisp. of cream tartar to 1 quart of flour. 8 level, or 2 heaped teaspoons of baking-powder to 1 quart of flour. 1 teaspoonful of soda to 1 pint of sour milk. 1 teaspoonful of soda to 1 cup of molasses. 1 saltspoonful of salt to 1 quart of milk for custards. 1 teaspoonful of extract to 1 quart of custard. 1 saltspoonful of salt to 1 loaf of sponge cake. 1 teaspoonful of extract to 1 loaf of plain cake. 1 saltspoonful of spice to 1 loaf of plain cake. 1 teaspoonful of salt to 1 quart of soup stock or 2 quarts of flour. 1 saltspoonful of white pepper to 1 quart of soup stock. 1 teaspoonful of mixed herbs to 1 quart of soup stock. 1 tablespoonful of each chopped vegetable to 1 quart of soup stock. A speck of cayenne pepper is what you can take up on the point of a pen- knife or on a quarter-inch square surface. A pinch of salt or spice is about a saltspoonful. A pinch of hops is of a cup. In these recipes, flour, sugar, and butter are measured by the rounded table- spoon. Salt, pepper, spice, soda, and baking-powder are measured by the level tea- spoon. 32 The Boston Coek Book. The proportions of seasoning given in these receipts are not sufficient for those who like highly seasoned food. It is easier to add more, than to remove an}' if too highly seasoned. Mixed Spice for Rich Cakes and Plum Puddings. i teaspoonful each of cloves and allspice. 1 teaspoonful each of mace and grated nutmeg 3 teaspoonfuls of cinnamon. Spice Salt for Soups and Stuffings. 4 ounces of salt. 2 ounces of celery salt. 1 ounce each of white pepper and ground thyme, 1 ounce each of marjoram and summer savory - i ounce of sage. 1 saltspoonful of cayenne pepper. i teaspoonful each of cloves, allspice, and mace. Mix, sift, and keep closely covered. Mixed Whole Herbs, for Soups and Braised Meats. 1 bunch each of whole thyme and marjoram. 1 bunch each of summer savory and sage, i pound of bay leaves. Crush and break the leaves, blossoms, and stalks, and mix thoroughly. Mixing. Next to care in measuring comes the manner of mixing. The most accurate measurement of the best materials is often rendered useless by a neglect to put them together properly, and the blame is usually charged to the oven or the receipt. There are three distinct ways of mixing: Stirring, Beating, and Gutting or Folding. Stirring. Let the bowl of the spoon rest slightly on the bottom of the mixing-bowl ; then move round and round in widening circles, without lifting the spoon out of Mixing. 33 the mixture, except to scrape the sides of the bowl occa- sionally. Stir slowly at first, to avoid spattering ; add the liquid gradually, and be sure the bowl of the spoon (not the edge nor the tip merely) touches the bottom and sides of the bowl. This is mashing as well as stirring, and the mixture soon becomes a paste. When perfectly smooth and free from lumps, add more liquid till you have the' desired consistency. We stir flour and water together for a thickening, or butter and flour and milk for a sauce. We stir when we rub butter to a cream, or when we make a batter or semi-dough. When we make a stiff dough we stir at first, and then turn the whole mass over, bringing the knife or spoon round the bowl and cutting up through the dough. Beating. Tip the bowl slightly, and hold the spoon so that the edge scrapes the bowl, and bring it up through the mixture and over with a long quick stroke to the opposite side; under, and up through again, lifting the spoon out of the mass and cutting clear through, scrap- ing from the bottom at every stroke. Keep the bowl of the spoon and the sides of the mixing-bowl well scraped out, that all the material may be equally beaten. We stir simply to blend two or more materials ; we beat to add all the air possible to the mixture. We beat eggs or batter or soft dough. The albumen of the eggs and the gluten of the flour, owing to their viscidity or glutinous properties, catch the air and hold it in the form of cells, something as we make soap bubbles by blowing air into soapy water. The faster we beat, and the more we bring the material up from the bowl into the air, the more bubbles we have ; but one stirring motion will de- stroy them. Yolks of eggs should be beaten nearly as much as the whites, or till they are light or lemon-colored, and thicken perceptibly. The whites should be beaten till they are stiff and dry, or fly off in flakes, or can be turned upside down without spilling. When the two are to be put together, alwa}'s plan to turn the whites into the yolks, as there is less waste than when the yolks are turned into 3 34 The Boston Cook Book. the whites. Let the whites stand a minute, then run a palette knife round the edge close to the bowl ; they will slip out easily, and leave the bowl almost clean. For beating eggs, for nearty all purposes the Dover egg-beater is the best. There should be two sizes, the larger one for the whites of eggs. Hold the beater lightly in the left hand, and move it round through the egg while turning the handle. For frosting, and snow pudding, and all beat- ing of soft dough, use a perforated wooden spoon. Bowls with slightly flaring sides, and not too deep to be clasped from bottom to rim in the left hand, are most convenient. If tipped slightly toward the right, the beating is done more effectually. Cutting, or Folding, or Lifting. Omelets, sponge cake, whipped cream, etc., should have the beaten white cut or folded in carefully to avoid breaking the air bubbles. Turn the mixture over with the spoon, cut through, lift up, and fold the materials together, lifting the part from below, up and over, and mixing very gently until just blended. Do not stir round and round, nor beat quickly. All mixtures which are raised with eggs alone, should have the yolks and whites of the eggs thoroughly and separately beaten ; any very thin batter, like pop-overs, pancakes, or gems made without eggs, should be beaten vigorously just before baking. And many persons are most successful when all the beating of the eggs is done in the batter. Graham or whole-wheat flour is better than white flour for gems that are made without eggs, because it contains more gluten. Shall we stir only one way? No; stir any way you please, so long as you blend or mix the materials. But after beating in air bubbles, don't break them by stirring, unless you wish to keep up the game of cross purposes indefinitely. Always let the last motion, before turning into the pans, be one of quick, vigorous beating, except in those receipts where folding instead of beating is indicated. Cost of Food Material. Table of Average Cost of Material used in Cooking. 1 cup of flour or meal . . . 30.01 1 " sugar ... .03 1 " butter 1J to .20 .03 1 cup of molasses .... .05 1 " milk .02 1 tablespoonful of wine . . .02 1 " " brandy . .04 1 teaspoonful of vanilla . . .02 1 " " spice . . . .02 1 " " soda, and 2 teaspoonfuls of cream-tartar .02 1 tablespoonful of butter . . .03 Butter size of an egg . . . .05 1 tablespoonful of olive oil . .02 2 tablespoonfuls of coffee . . .05 2 teaspoonfuls of tea . . . .01 1 quart of milkman's cream . .25 " Deerfoot cream .60 box of gelatine . . .16 .02 .03 pound of raisins . . . 18 currants . . . .10 citron . . . .18 crackers . . .10 tapioca . . . .07 .09 macaroni . . . .18 1 pound of spaghetti " cornstarch 1 can of tomatoes salmon . . lobster . . $0.16 .10 .15 .18 .15 devilled ham and tongue .30 1 tumbler of jelly 1 jar of marmalade 1 pound of tea . . .35 . . .25 75 coffee . ... -38 chocolate ... .40 nutmeg .... .32 mace .60 cloves, cassia . . .15 ginger 10 mustard 12 herbs, ground . . .10 Package of whole herbs . . 8 1 pound of cheese .... .18 Parmesan cheese . .50 1 peck of potatoes 25 apples 50 1 quart of onions .... .10 1 carrot 02 1 turnip 05 1 bunch of celery 20 1 handful of parsley . . . .05 1 bunch of watercresses . . .05 1 head of lettuce 10 These prices are for the best materials, and are esti- mated for the season, from October to June, when butter and eggs are higher than during the summer, and for Boston markets, which vary greatly from the prices in other parts of the United States. 36 The Boston Cook Book. BREAD AND BREAD MAKING. Importance of Bread. Bread is one of the earliest, the most generally used, and the most important forms of food adopted by mankind. Nothing in the whole range of domestic life more affects the health and happiness of the family than the quality of its daily bread. With good bread, the plainest meal is a feast in itself ; without it, the most elaborately prepared and elegantly served menu is unsatisfactor} 7 . Bread-making is at once the easiest and the most difficult branch of culinary science, easy, if only sufficient inter- est be taken to master a few elementary principles and to follow them alwa} 7 s, using the judgment of the best authorities, until experience furnishes a sufficient guide ; difficult, if there be any neglect to use proper care and materials. It should be regarded as one of the highest accomplishments ; and if one tenth part of the interest, time, and thought which are devoted to cake and pastry and fancy cooking were spent upon this most important article of food, the presence of good bread upon our tables would be invariably secured. Origin and Meaning of "Bread" Bread is made from a variety of substances, roots, fruits, and the bark of trees ; but more generally from certain grains. The word bread is derived from the verb to bray, or pound, expressive of the old method of preparing the grain. Bread is therefore made of something brayed, as brayed wheat or brayed corn. But these brayed or ground materials are not prop- erly bread until they are mixed or moistened with water. Then the brayed grain becomes dough, from a word mean- ing to wet, or moisten. In primitive times this wetted meal or dough was baked at once in hot ashes, and made Wheat. 37 a firm, compact bread, exceedingly hard of digestion. Accidentally some one discovered that by letting the dough stand till it had fermented, and then mixing it with new dough, it raised, or lifted, the whole mass, and made it lighter and more porous. Thus we have our word loaf, from lifan, to raise, or lift up. The old dough or leaven, as it is called lifts up the dough. The raised m^_s is held in place 03- the heat in baking, and becomes the loaf of raised bread. Bread made from Wheat. Bread is made principally from wheat flour. Rye and corn meal are sometimes used, but better results are obtained when there is a mixture of wheat with one or more of these grains. Rye used alone makes a close, moist, sticky bread ; while corn meal alone makes too dry and crumbly a loaf. Wheat is an annual grass of unknown origin, cultivated more extensively jn the Northern hemisphere. There are over one hundred and fifty varieties of wheat. They are classified as red or white, in reference to the color of the grains; as winter or summer, winter wheat being sown in the autumn, and summer wheat in the spring; as soft or hard, soft wheat being tender and floiuy or starchy, and hard wheat being tough, firm, and containing hiore gluten. Chemical Composition of Wheat. Wheat is the only grain which contains gluten in the proper proportion and of the desired qualit}' essential to the making of light, spongy bread. It contains all the elements necessaiy for the growth of the bod}' ; but, to meet all the requirements of nutrition, the whole of the "rain, with the exception of Fio. 1 Grain of wheat, showing outer the Ollter husk, Should be coat of silex and woody fibre. used. Wheat has several layers of bran coats, the outer one of which is almost Wholly pure silica and is perfectly indigestible. Underneath this The Boston Cook Book. FIG. JL Grain of wheat with bran coat removed. husk lie the inner bran coats, containing gluten, a dark sub- stance which is the nitrogenous or flesh-forming element, the phosphates and other min- eral matters which help to make up the bony parts of the bod}*, and the oil which gives the characteristic odor to wheat grains. The cen- tre, or heart, of the grain consists of cells filled with starch, a fine, white, mealy powder, which has little value as food except as a heat producer. There is also a small amount of gluten dif- fused among the starch cells. For convenience, these dif- ferent parts of the wheat will be designated as bran, or the outer husk ; gluten, or the inner bran coats ; and starch, or the heart of the wheat. The proportion and quality of the gluten and starch in different kinds of wheat vary according to the climate and soil in which thev are erown Thev arp iney a .e grown. nej are also affected by the method of grinding the grain. Wheat grown in Southern or warm climates, and in the intense, though short, summer of our own Northwest, contains more nitrogen than that grown in cold, damp climates. It loses more water by evaporation, and consequently the seed is smaller and harder. In some varieties of wheat the outer husk is thin and smooth, and peels off readily under the stones. In others, it is thick and rough, and adheres closely to the kernel. In some, it is light-colored or brittle ; in others, dark-colored or tough. The husk} 7 portion of wheat is about fourteen or sixteen per cent of the whole weight. The gluten of wheat is a gray, tough, elastic substance, consisting chiefly of vegetable fibrine. It can be examinee! FlG ' 3< Graln of ig the bran . B the gluten . c the gtarch Flour. 39 easily by making a dough of flour and water, and working it on a sieve under a stream of water. The water will carry the starch, sugar, gum, and mineral matters into the pan below, leaving a lump of gluten on the sieve. It closely resembles a piece of animal skin, and, when dried, has a glue-like appearance ; hence its name, gluten. The proportion of gluten varies from eleven to fifteen per cent. This tough, elastic quality of the gluten determines the quality of the flour. The more gluten and the tougher or stronger it is, the better the flour. The gluten of good flour will swell to four or five times its original bulk ; while that of poor flour does not swell, but becomes watery and sticky, and sometimes gives off a disagreeable odor, owing to the deterioration of the fatty or oily element. Preparing the Flour. St. Louis Process. There are several methods of con- verting wheat into flour. One is by grinding between two horizontal stones, the upper one revolving, and the lower one stationary. The surface of the stones presents an infinite number of minute cutting edges. The upper stone is convex, the lower one concave ; but instead of fitting perfectly, the}' approach closer together from the centre outward, so that, as the grain is poured into an opening in the upper stone, it is at first rather coarsely crushed, and then cut finer and finer, as it is carried to the circumfer- ence by the centrifugal force. As the grain leaves the stones, the outer husk has been least affected ; the tough, coherent gluten is divided minutely, while the brittle starch, which forms two thirds of the grain, is completely crushed. The miller then divides these products, by sifting or bolt- ing, into fine flour, coarse flour, and bran. The Iran should be discarded as utterly useless for human food ; but it is often mixed with an inferior quality of fine flour, and sold as Graham flour. It was at one time considered valuable as a food for those suffering from constipation, chiefly on account of its coarseness ; but 4O The Boston Cook Book. science has shown us recently that minute points of glass (and bran is nothing else) are not Nature's best agents in removing effete matters from the system. All of the so- called Graham flour made by this process should be sifted before using. The coarse flour will vary in quality, according as it has more or less of the outer bran mixed with it. In the soft wheats the husk peels off readily under the stones, and is easily separated by bolting ; and as these soft varieties contain the smallest proportion of gluten, they yield a coarse flour, containing only an average amount of gluten, and the whitest fine-flour. But in the hard, flinty wheats, this outer husk clings so closely that much of it is ground up finely with the flour, giving it a dark color. This flour, as it contains a large proportion of gluten, would be more nutritious were it not that much of the gluten adheres to the hulls, and is lost by sifting them out, and much of the fine, flinty bran is retained in the flour, which makes it irritating and indigestible. The quality of the fine flour depends upon the quality of the wheat, in the first place ; also upon the number of sift- ings, being richer in gluten the less it is sifted ; and upon the way in which it is stored. The process of grinding with the stones heats the flour ; and as it is often thrust upon the market without being properly cooled and dried, it spoils very rapidly. Flour made by this process of grinding is called the St. Louis, or old-process flour. When made of the very best quality of grain and carefully pre- pared, it makes a sweet, nutritious bread, and is excellent in cake and pastiy. It is often designated pastry flour. Haxall Process. Another method of making flour is by the new, or Haxall process, so called from the name of the inventor. By this process the outer husk is first re- moved, or decorticated; then the cleaned grain is cut by a system of knives, which reduces it to a fine powder with- out the injurious effects of heating. This flour has a slightly granular consistency, owing to the presence of minute" particles of hard, flinty gluten. It is usually made Flour. 41 from the best quality of wheat, and keeps well. It is con- sidered by many as the best flour for bread, as it makes a whiter, nicer-looking loaf. Haxall flour swells more than that made by the old process, as it contains more of the gluten ; the same measure making a greater quantity of bread than the St. Louis flour. It is, therefore, cheaper in the end, though costing more per barrel. By repeated siftings, this flour loses its gluten, as does that made by the St. Louis process, and consequently is then inferior as a food. But we can supply by other flours and other food what this flour lacks in nutritious qualities ; and until the popular taste is educated to demand the amount of nutri- ment contained in bread rather than the whiteness of it, as a test of its quality, it is well to make our fine, white bread from this, which is the best flour, and have it as nearly perfect as possible. There have been many variations of the Haxall process, and all are included under the term new-process flour \ Minnesota. The Minnesota, or patent-process, flour is now considered one of the best grades. The Washburn, Pillsbury, and many other mills located in Minneapolis are the largest flour-mills in the world, and produce an excel- lent quality of flour, in which a large proportion of the gluten is retained. This Minnesota flour is made from carefully selected wheat grown in the Red River region, the best wheat-growing section in America. The first step in the process is the breaking off of the germinal point of each grain by what are called ending stones. Then it is sent through corrugated iron rollers, having shallow grooves cut spirally upon them, with rounded ridges between, and the opposing rollers grooved in an opposite direction. The grains are crushed (not ground) ; the starchy parts, or middlings, being quite finely powdered and easily separa- ted from the bran or tailings. After this separation the middlings are passed through ten bolting-cloths, and then through other and finer corrugated machines, and made into the various grades of fine, superfine, and/an^ flours. 42 The Boston Cook Book. Health-Food Flour. A still better method of convert- ing wheat into flour, and one which is indorsed By leading scientists and physicians, has been recently introduced by the Health Food Company of New York. Only the choicest kinds of wheat are used. The outer husk is first removed by moistening the grain, and subjecting it to a gentle rub- bing by what is termed the "attrition process." This softens the woody fibre of the outer bran, which is easily removed by sifting, but does not affect the hard gluten coats. The grains are dried, then pulverized into various grades by a compressed cold-air blast, which dashes the grains into atoms with tremendous force. This is called whole-wheat flour, the name indicating that the whole of the gluten, or nutritive part of the flour, is retained. It is not sifted like other flours, but pulverized into all the varieties of crushed wheat, coarse granulated and fine granulated wheat; each variety, even the finest flour, containing all that is valuable as food. Bread made with this flour has been found, after repeated trial, to be sweet and agreeable to the taste, light and spongy in texture, with none of the objec- tionable features of Graham bread, and answering fully all the demands of perfect nutrition. Cheap inferior Graham flour, made of poor flour mixed with bran, is worse than no food at all. Any flour con- taining much of the indigestible bran causes irritation of the digestive organs ; all the food is hurried through the alimentaty canal before digestion is complete or all the nutriment can be absorbed, and thus is neither economical nor healthful. Fine flour containing the most gluten is the most nutritious, because it is all digested, and the loss of albuminous material can be supplied from other sources. The Arlington, the Franklin, and some other brands of whole-wheat flour, are highly indorsed by those familiar with them. The Tests of Good Flour. The first requisite in making good bread is to use good flour. Good flour should not be pure white in color, but Tests of Flour. 43 of a creamy, yellowish-white shade. If it feel damp, clammy, or sticky, and gradually form into lumps or cakes, it is not the best. Good flour holds together in a mass, when squeezed b}^ the hand, and retains the impres- sion of the fingers, and even the marks of the skin, much longer than poor flour; when made into a dough, it is elastic, easy to be kneaded, will stay in a round puffy shape, and will take up a large amount of water : while poor flour will be sticky, flatten, or spread itself over the board, and will never seem to be stiff enough to be handled, no matter how much flour is used. Haxall flour has a fine granular consistency, and runs easily through the sieve or the fingers like fine meal ; while good St. Louis flour feels soft and oily. It is extravagant to buy poor or even doubtful flour. But, should it have every appearance of being good flour, and yet not make good bread, do not condemn the flour without a fair trial ; and be sure the fault is nowhere else. Every experienced cook has her own tests for flour, and some of them are amusing, if not reliable. The best way is to buy a small quantity at first, and make it into dough ; then, if satisfactory, purchase whatever amount is re- quired, and buy this same brand as long as it proves of uniform qualit}\ The names given to flour are not a sure criterion of the quality. The flour may come from the same growth of wheat, and be ground in the same manner and at the same mill, and yet the miller or the wholesale dealers will brand it differently. And the same brand will vary in quality from year to year. Some of the varieties sold in Boston, and known to be good by personal trial, are Pillsbury's, Washburn & Crosby's, Swan's Down, Taylor's Best, Brown's Best, Marguerite, etc. ; the same flour may be known in other cities under different names. There are others equally good, and every year some new brand is announced. It is estimated that one barrel of flour will last one person one year ; which gives a rule of proportion by which to buy. Most good housekeepers agree that flour is not improved by long keeping, though 44 The Boston Cook Book. flour dealers think differently. Flour should be kept in a cool, dry place, as the least dampness causes it to absorb moisture ; the gluten loses its tenacity, becomes sticky, and the bread made from it is coarser and less light. For small families it is better to buy whole-wheat flour by the bag or half-barrel ; Haxall, for bread, by the bar- rel ; and the best St. Louis flour for cake and pastry, by the bag, as a much smaller proportion is needed (or should be) for these indigestibles, than for the " staff of life." Bread, Fermented and Unfermented. Now, having discussed the subject of the flour, the next step in order is the different ways of making it into bread. These may all be included under two divisions, those made by fermentation, and those without fermentation. Fermentation, what is it ? Fermentation is that change in organic substances by which their sugar, starch, gluten, etc., are decomposed or recombined into new compounds. This change may be spontaneous under favorable condi- tions of air, moisture, and warmth ; or it may be hastened by the presence of a ferment. A ferment is some albu- minous substance in a state of decomposition, and, when introduced into any other albuminous substance, in how- ever minute a quantity, causes a change which pervades the whole mass. These fermenting substances are in great variety, and the germs of some of them are always present in the air. There are different kinds of fermentation. The lactic fermentation is the change in milk when it sours. The casein, or albuminous part of the milk, by exposure to the air and warmth, begins to decompose, becomes a ferment, and changes the sugar of the milk into an acid called lactic acid. This reacts upon the remainder of the milk, as any acid would, and causes it to coagulate or harden, and gives it a sour taste. The alcoholic fermentation is that which is produced in substances rich in sugar or starch, as the fruits and grains from which wines and beer are made. Some of these fer- Fermentation. 45 mcnt germs are present in the juice of guapes ; and under the influence of air, moisture, and warmth, they seize upon the sugar already present in the natural fruit juices, and any that may be added, and convert it into carbonic acid gas and alcohol. In the grains, a portion of the gluten ferments and changes the starch into sugar, and then the sugar into carbonic acid and alcohol. In con- verting the starch into sugar there is no change evident to the eye ; but as soon as the sugar is decomposed into alco- hol and carbonic acid gas, large bubbles of gas appear, which swell the whole mass. Acetic fermentation is caused by allowing alcoholic fer- mentation to go on beyond a certain limit, or in a tem- perature above 90. A familiar illustration of this is the change of wine or cider into vinegar. Now, bread-dough contains gluten, sugar, and starch ; and if the dough be kept warm for a certain time, lactic fermentation will be developed spontaneously, and the bread made from such dough will be sour and heavy. Alco- holic fermentation can also be spontaneously produced in dough, by making first a batter (as the semi-fluid state is more favorable to rapid chemical change), and subject- ing it to a temperature of 110 for five or six hours ; then, adding more flour, allowing it to rise again, and then baking it. Bread made in this way is called salt or milk- rising's bread. But it does not keep well, and is not gen- erally liked. It is not always convenient to wait for dough to be raised in this manner, so we hasten the process by the addition of some active ferment. Leaven, or a piece of old dough, left to sour, and then mixed with the new dough was formerly used ; this produced lactic as well as alcoholic fermentation, and though the bread was light and spong}' in texture, it had an unpleasant sour taste. But since the chemistry of yeast fermentation has been under- stood, yeast has come to be considered the best ferment for producing alcoholic fermentation in bread rapidly, and with no objectionable result. 46 The Boston Cook Book. Yeast, what is it? Yeast is a plant or germ of the fungus tribe. Under the microscope it is found to consist of numberless minute rounded or oval bodies which are true vegetable cells. Yeast is therefore one of the simplest and smallest of vegetable organisms. Each little cell consists of an en- *. Yeast Plant veloping skin or mem- brane, containing a liquid or sap. They grow or expand from the minutest micro- scopic points, and seem to bud off from each other and multiply into many millions to the cubic inch. These cells are easily propagated in any medium where they find congenial food, particularly in the juice of grapes. If grape-juice be filtered and left to stand in a warm place two or three hours, it becomes first cloudy, then thick, and gives off bubbles of gas, showing there has been some change in its composition. In a short time a grayish- yellow froth, or layer of yeast cells, collects on the surface. " Whether the germs or spores of the yeast plant exist already in the juices of the living grape, or whether thev are always floating in the air, and cling to the exterior of the fruit, and only become mixed with the juice in the wine- press, is not known ; " neither is it known just how they decompose the sugar of the grape. But it is enough for our purpose to know that they grow in the juice and ex- pand there, and that an active ferment may be dissolved out of these yeast cells, sufficient to cause alcoholic fermentation. The natural development of yeast through the agency of plants is too slow and inconvenient a process to rely upon ; therefore we manufacture it from various substances rich in starch and sugar. Brewer's yeast is made from malt, or sprouting grain, usually barley ; home-made yeast, from flour and potatoes. Yeast Bread the Result of Chemical Changes. Bread properly made with yeast undergoes certain chemical changes which render it lighter, more porous, more pleas* Yeast. 47 ant to the taste, and more healthful, because more easily digested, and more convenient for general use. It is gen- erally recommended by scientific and medical men as the best form of bread. Wheat contains a larger percentage of starch than of any- thing else. We learn, in the chapter on Digestion, that starch as such is not absorbed into the human system. It must first be transformed into sugar. All starch that is not changed into sugar by the process of cooking or before our food is eaten, is so changed b}- the ptyalin, or ferment of the saliva, and the ferment of the pancreatic fluid. Any process which produces this change for us makes our food more digestible. " Powdered alum will dissolve ia water sooner than a crystal of alum." Any fluid will penetrate more easily through a sponge than through putty, and the salivary and gastric fluids are no exception to this rule. Wheat starch in its natural state is close and compact ; and bread made simply with flour and water, and baked at once, will be close, dry, and difficult to masticate and digest. Good bread should be sufficiently soft to be easily crushed in the mouth, and of such a light, spongy texture that all the starch cells may be ruptured, and the greatest possible amount of surface be presented to the action of the diges- tive fluids. To obtain these qualities in bread, we try to expand the dough as much as possible without destroying its natural sweetness. Owing to the peculiar elasticity and tenacity of the wheat gluten, this is very easily accom- plished by alcoholic fermentation. The flour is moistened with some warm liquid, yeast and salt are added, and it is then exposed for some hours to a temperature of about 70. The yeast changes some of the starch of the flour into sugar, and the sugar into alcohol and carbonic acid gas. This gas, being lighter than the dough, rises, and, in its efforts to escape, expands the elastic, glutinous dough into ,a mass two or three times its original bulk. The toughness or elasticity of the gluten prevents the gas from escaping ; and when this expansion has reached the desired limit, that is, before the alcoholic fermentation has changed 48 The Boston Cook Boofa to the acetic and soured the dough, or the tough, glutinous walls of the air cells are broken, we check the forma- tion of gas, and kill the ferment by baking the dough in a hot oven. The alcohol escapes into the oven ; some of the starch is changed into gum, and forms the crust ; and the rapid decomposition, produced by the intense heat, causes the crust to assume a brown color. Unfermented Bread. This is made without yeast ; but the principle is the same as in fermented bread, namely, the liberation of gas within the dough. The gas escapes quickly, and all such bread must be baked as soon as possible after mixing. There are no chemical changes in the starch or sugar ; the elastic, glutinous dough is simply expanded by the gas. The starch cells are ruptured b} r the intense heat in baking ; but if the gas bubbles burst before the heat has fixed the gluten wall, the bread will be heavy. This gas is produced in the bread dough in various ways : 1st. By the gas in very cold water, and the air obtained by vig- orous beating ; 2d. By the introduction of water under pressure, highly charged with gas. The first method is only suitable for mixtures which are to be baked quickly in a very hot oven, and eaten immediately, like gems, puffs, etc. The latter method produces what is known as aerated bread, making a light, sweet, spongy loaf; but it is not practicable for home use. 3d. The usual method is by some gas-generating compound, as the union of an acid and an alkali ; usually soda, with either sour milk, cream of tartar, or muriatic acid. This is a convenient form adopted by many people who think it hard work to make yeast bread. When the chemicals used are pure, and in such a proportion that they neutralize each other, and leave only Rochelle salt as a residue, this bread, if used only occasionally, is harmless. But Rochelle salt is a medicine, not a nutritive food ; and "those who are well do not need the disturbing influence of a medicine in .their daity bread," and those who are ill do not often need this particular form of medicine. Through ignorance or care- lessness this bread is often made so that there is an excess The Best Kinds of Yeast. 49 of alkali or a residue of alum ; and then, if used habitually, it is injurious, and to some extent poisonous. It is con- venient to know how to make it well in an emergency, and it helps make variety. It is best, when freshly baked, in the form of small biscuit rather than in loaves, and is not as indigestible, when eaten hot, as hot yeast bread. But for a bread for general use, for bread that will keep well, for bread that will leave a sweet, clean taste in the* mouth, for bread that will yield the most in bulk from a given amount of flour, for bread for promoting health, there is nothing equal to perfect, home-made yeast bread. It is not so difficult a task to make perfect bread as most young housekeepers imagine, or old housekeepers assert. It is not impossible for a young girl to succeed as well in her first attempt in this art as the mature housekeeper who counts her loaves by the thousand, provided she learns the best way of making it, and uses a reasonable amount of common-sense. The Best Kinds of Yeast. Who made the first yeast ? and how does a j r oung house* keeper start her own, when away from stores or friends, where she can neither buy nor borrow V are questions often asked. Simply make a thin batter with flour and water, and let it stand in a warm place till it ferments, and is full of bubbles. A pint of this ferment is equal to one cup of old yeast in starting the new. There are three kinds of yeast in general use, the dry, the compressed, and the liquid, each of which has its peculiar merits. Dry yeast cakes are inexpensive, always ready to use, and generally liked by those who care more for economy of time and trouble than for the quality of their bread. Compressed yeast cakes, like " Fleischmann's " are ex- cellent, when perfectly fresh; the best form of yeast where bread is made in large quantities. But for a small family, where only a quarter of a cake is used perhaps twice a 4 5O The Boston Cook Book. week, or for. those living at a distance from the stores, they are not so convenient or cheap as good home-made yeast. They have almost entirely taken the place of baker's yeast. As to which is best of the many varieties of home-made yeast, who shall decide when housekeepers disagree? Every good cook thinks her way the best. They are all good that make good bread ; the only special advantage of one over another being the greater ease in making or the length of time it will keep good. People who are inclined to shirk think it a deal of trouble to make yeast of any kind ; but there are none so independent as those who make their own yeast. The simplest form of liquid yeast is made with flour, salt, and boiling hop water. To this many add potatoes and a little sugar, and some add ginger. Chemists say that the potato is the best form of starch for the growth of yeast. Potato yeast rises more rapidly, and keeps longer without souring, than flour yeast; bread made from it is sweet, light, and does not dry quickly. As to the comparative merits of grated raw potato or boiled potato, those who have used them both ways with equally good results think the grated potato has the advantage of being made in much less time. The really essential points are that the water shall be boiling, so that all the cells of the flour or potato may be ruptured. The salt and sugar assist in the fermentation, and the hops and ginger serve to prevent the yeast from souring by checking the fermentation before all the sugar is converted into alcohol ; they also give it an agreeably pungent taste, if not used in too large quantities. Old potatoes are better than new for 3 r east, because they con- tain more sugar. Porcelain or granite kettles for boiling the hops and potatoes, and earthen bowls and wooden spoons for mixing, are best, as iron and tin cause the yeast to turn dark-colored. The yeast for starting must be fresh and lively, and never addecl till the boiling mixture has become lukewarm, Making Dough. ${ or the plant will be killed. It must be kept warm, and stirred several times while rising, and the next day put away in well-scalded glass jars. Keep it in a cool place ; freezing or intense heat will kill the yeast plant. Reserve a portion for the next rising in a small jar by itself, as opening the jar often causes the yeast to lose its strength. Always shake or stir well before using. Yeast is good when it is foamy or full of beads, has a brisk, pungent odor, and a good deal of snap or vim ; it is poor when it has an acid odor* and looks watery or has a thin film over the top. Making the Dough. Flour is moistened, or made into dough, with water or with milk. This softens the gluten and starch, dissolves the sugar, and cements all the particles together. Those who prefer water claim that water bread is cheaper, has more of the natural sweet taste of the wheat, and will keep longer ; while those in favor of using milk are equally sure that milk bread is more nutritious, more tender, more agreeable to the taste and the eye, more easily made, and with proper care will keep sweet and moist longer. Proportion. The proportion of liquid and flour varies both with the flour and the liquid. Bread made of St. Louis flour, or mixed with water, takes more flour to make the same amount, than when made of Haxall flour, or mixed with milk. The general rule is one scant measure of liquid, including the yeast, to three full measures of flour. Water bread will need about one cupful more ; and milk bread, or whole-wheat bread, from one half to one cupful less of flour. Dough which is to be kneaded, or rolled and cut into special shapes, should be stiffer than that which is not kneaded, or is to be made into loaves ; but in all cases it should be mixed just as soft as can be handled easily without sticking, and just as little extra flour as possible should be used. If the dough be too stiff, make several deep incisions, and work in a little more liquid. The proportion of yeast is half a cupful of fresh horn*- 52 The Boston Cook Book. made yeast to a pint of liquid: a little less in warm weather ; or when mixed at night, when the dough has a longer time to rise; or when made with a "sponge," or with whole-wheat flour, as the extra amount of gluten in this flour causes it to ferment more rapidly. A larger amount of }~east can be used when it is necessary to make bread in a limited time ; but great care must be taken not to allow the dough to rise beyond the desired doubling in bulk. With compressed yeast, dissolve one fourth of a cake in half a cupful of lukewarm water, and use as home-made yeast. It will dissolve in one tablespoonful of water; but it is important to have the half-cupful, that the proportion of liquid may be the same. Manner of Mixing. Many people prefer to measure the flour, and add enough of the liquid to make it the desired consistency. The better way is to measure the liquid, and add floui 1 ) using more or less according to the quality of the flour, as the measure of the liquid determines the size of the loaf. All the flour may be added at first, and the dough raised in a mass ; or a drop batter may be made with about half the flour, and when this has well risen, the re- mainder of the flour may be added, and the whole allowed to rise again. The latter method is preferable when it is inconvenient to knead at the first mixing, as is often the case in the evening, or when there is any doubt about the quality of the yeast, as, if the yeast will not raise three cups of flour, it certainly will not raise six. This method is advisable, also, when it is necessary to hasten the pro- cess of bread-making. Dough made by ' ' setting a sponge," as this way is called, requires less yeast, the fer- mentation being more rapid in a batter than in a stiff dough ; and this fermented batter acts like a double portion of 3'east on the fresh flour, raising it very quickly. It is the best way of making bread with milk in the summer, as it may be mixed early in the morning and baked by noon ; an.d as it may be easily watched, it need not become sour. The question of mixing at night or in the morning is one which every housekeeper can best answer for herself. 53 Many old receipts ivtul, ' Make a hole in the flour, add the j'east, and then pour in the liquid." If the yeast be added to the milk or water, and well mixed with it, and the flour then stirred thoroughly into this liquid mixture, the 3*east will be more eventy distributed through the dough, and less kneading will be .required than when made by the old method. The other ingredients added to the dough are salt and sugar, in the proportion of one even teaspoonful of salt and one even tablespoonful of sugar to three pints of flour, using a little less salt if butter is added, and a little more with compressed yeast, as that is not as salt as home-made yeast, and doubling the amount of sugar when using whole- wheat flour. Sugar in Bread. Many object to the use of sugar in bread. Flour in its natural state contains sugar ; this sugar is changed in fermentation. Just enough sugar to restore the natural sweetness, but not enough to give a really sweet taste, is necessar3 r in fermented bread. Potatoes. Potatoes are sometimes added to bread dough. Where the flour is of an inferior quality, the bread is very much improved by their use ; but with good flour they are unnecessary, and the use of them increases the labor of making bread. Shortening. Whether bread shall be " shortened or not shortened," is another question on which there is great diversity of opinion. Those who disapprove of fat of any kind in bread claim that we eat fat enough in other forms of food, and also that the same crisp tenderness of tex- ture may be produced b}^ skilful kneading. Bread made with new or unskimmed milk, and kneaded well, requires no other shortening ; but water bread, when shortened, is made more tender, and therefore is more easily pene- trated by the digestive fluids. The latest decision of the best physicians is that fat is absolute!} 1 necessary as an element of food, and it is often given as a remedj 7 for some diseases. The proportion which one person would receive from one tablespoonful of butter, or drippings, or 54 The Boston Cook Book. lard, in two loaves of bread would not harm the most deli cate stomach. Butter tastes best ; drippings are cheap- est. Lard has for its chief merit that of making whiter bread than either of the others. The shortening ma}- be rubbed into the flour, or, better still, melted in the warm liquid. Too much shortening clogs the glutinous cell- walls, and therefore checks the rising. Rolls, rusks, and buns, which are usually shortened more than loaf bread, should have the butter added at the last kneading. The bread should be mixed in a deep stone-china or granite bowl ; wooden bowls are difficult to keep sweet and clean. Brown earthenware is awkward in shape and clumsy to handle, while tinware, being a better conductor than china, lets the heat within the mass escape, and the tin rubs off from the constant friction. Use a wooden spoon, or a wooden-handled iron spoon, or a broad-bladed knife. Kneading the Dough. Kneading is the process of press- ing or working the dough in such a manner that the flour and water may be thoroughly mixed, and the yeast be so eventy distributed that the fermentation may be equal through the whole mass. It may be done by cutting or chopping, either with the hand or machinery ; but there is nothing that gives the fine, even grain to bread so well as hand-kneading ; and no surer test of the proper consist- ency of dough than that given by the sense of touch. There are some kinds of milk bread and rolls which are very good without it ; but water bread should always be kneaded. It is often done in the mixing-bowl, by draw- ing the dough over from the side and pressing it down in the centre, turning the bowl with the other hand ; but it is more effectually accomplished on a bread-board. In Spain the bakers knead the bread with such force that the palms of the hands and the second joints of the fingers are covered with corns ; but strength and force are not so essential to good kneading as a peculiar and dexterous handling of the dough. The most approved process is the following : Kneading. 5 5 Sprinkle the board with flour, and leave a little in the corner to lay your hands upon. Scrape the dough from the bowl, and toss it over with the knife that it may be well floured. Flour the hands ; then, with the finger- tips, draw the dough farthest from you up and over to- ward the centre, letting the ball of the hand meet the dough, and then press down firmly, giving the dough some- what of a rolling motion, that it may not stick to the board. Repeat this motion until the dough is in a long narrow shape, then turn it at right angles, and draw up, fold, and press down again ; and continue this process until the dough is smooth, elastic, fine, and even-grained. Dust the board and the palms of the hands with flour often, but onl}' slightly. Should the dough stick, lift it quickly, and alwa}~s scrape off what has adhered to the board before dusting again, that the board may be kept smooth. But do not let it stick ; keep it in constant motion. Do not knead hard enough to break into the dough, nor let the finger-tips pierce the smooth crust that soon forms under proper kneading. Use the fingers merely in drawing the dough over, and keep them up and out of it when press- ing with the ball of the hand. Use both hands in the same manner, or draw up and press with the right, and turn the ball of dough with the left, that all parts may receive an equal pressure. When enough of this smooth, soft texture has been formed all through the dough, it can be worked for some time without even a dusting of flour. After a little experience, if care be taken in the beginning, and only a little flour added at each dusting, when the dough is sufficiently kneaded, the hands, the apron, and the board will be clean, and the dough of an even, elastic consistency, springing up instantly as you toss or pound or punch into it. The habit of mixing with the hands, and rubbing off little wads of dough from the fingers into the whole mass, should be avoided, especially toward the last of the process. There is no mechanical operation in cooking more fascinating than the deft, quick touches a natural kneader gives to a mass of dough. Young ladies 56 The Boston Cook Book. with pretty bands can display them there quite as well as with embroidery, etc. ; but the rings and bracelets should be left in the jewel-case. The stitches in tight dress sleeves are not ' ' warranted not to break " during this pro- cess. Perfect freedom for the muscles of the arms and chest is absolutely essential to the making and kneading of bread. Temperature and Time for the Raising of Bread. In winter the water or milk used in mixing should be luke- warm ; and if the flour be kept in a very cold place, warm it before using. In summer the water need not be warmed, neither should it be ice-water; the milk should be scalded (not boiled), and cooled. After the bread is kneaded sufficiently it must be made into a smooth round ball, with no dry flour left on the surface, and put back in the mixing-bowl to rise. If you have learned the knack of scraping a bowl thoroughly, it need not be washed ; otherwise it is well to wash and grease the bowl, that the dough may come out more easily after it has risen. Notice how it fills the bowl, and let it rise until it has a little more than doubled in size. Cover it, not with a cloth alone, as that serves merely to keep out the dust, but with several thicknesses of cloth, and a tightly fitting tin cover. It is important that the air be excluded, as it causes a hard crust to form, which will be difficult to mix thoroughly in the dough at the next kneading, and will also leave dark spots or streaks in the bread. The dough should rise in a temperature of about 75. Avoid a draught of cold air, or sudden alternations of ex- treme heat and cold. If it be placed on a mantel or near a stove, it must be turned frequently. When necessary to hasten the rising, place the bowl in a pan of warm (not hot) water, and keep the water at the same temperature until it begins to rise. After fermentation has been well established the temperature can be lowered without harm, provided it does not fall below 45. In winter, bread should be mixed early in the evening ; and if the kitchen become very cold before morning, keep the dough in a Bread Raisin* /. 57 warmer room ; it will be risen by six or seven in the morn- ing. In summer, mix it later at night, leave it in a cool place, and the next morning attend to it earl}' ; if possible, by five o'clock. In very hot weather mix early in the morning, and bake by noon. It should never be allowed to rise to the point of " caving in," or settling, or running over the bowl. Even if it does not become sour, it loses the natural sweet flavor of the wheat, and is tasteless and insipid. It should rise in a light, puffy, well-rounded mass ; and if it half filled the bowl at first, it will be ready, when risen nearly to the top of the bowl, " to cut down," as most cooks express it. This is done by cutting it away from the sides of the bowl, and working it over into the centre with the knife. This releases some of the gas, checks the fermentation, and reduces the bulk somewhat. It will rise again very quickly, and the cutting-down pro- cess can be repeated several times, and the bread will be the better for it, provided the rising does not go too far at any time. It takes but a moment, and should always be done when the dough is risen sufficiently, if 3*011 are not ready to shape it at once into loaves. If you do not wish to bake the bread for several hours, it can be kneaded again and put in the ice-chest or cellar. When the dough rises too long, and has soured, it will have a strong, tin- gling acid odor as you cut into it, and it will pull away from the bowl in long threads, having a watery appear- ance, quite unlike the proper spongy consistency and pun- gent alcoholic odor when it is just right. The practice of using soda to sweeten it, when in this state, cannot be too severely condemned. Chemists say that light sour bread is not unhealthful, although unpalatable to most Americans. Bread in that condition is eaten largel} 7 by the Germans. Sour bread sweetened by soda is unhealthful, as it is very rarely that the alkali is wholly neutralized by the acetic acid. Those who boast of never having sour bread be- cause the}' always keep a bottle of soda dissolved and ready for instant use, should, instead, blush at the fact of such careless housewifely. With proper care, bread, even 58 The Boston Cook Book. when made with milk, need never sour. But should the accident ever occur, it is better to eat the bread, or dry it for crumbs, or throw it away even, than to use the soda. This practice is so abominable that here it will receive neither aid nor encouragement. Shaping into Loaves or Biscuit. At least an hour be- fore the time for baking, scrape the dough from the bowl, and turn it out upon the board, which should be dusted with flour ; knead it slightly, and divide into the proper proportion for loaves. The measures given in the following receipts fill two brickloaf pans, which are eight inches long by four inches broad and five inches deep, with nearly straight sides. This shape gives small uniform slices. Small round pans were formerly considered best for baking both bread and cake ; and there is some truth in the reason given , namety, that the cells which are formed by the gas are circular in form, and are much more uniform in a round than in an oblong loaf, in which the corner cells are easily flat- tened or compressed, forming heavy streaks around the edges. But many people dislike the shape of the slices in a round loaf, and oblong pans have been more generally adopted. . They should be greased with lard or drippings. It is better to divide the dough into four equal parts and put two in each pan, for several reasons : a small round loaf is more easily shaped, and can be broken, if wanted, while fresh, better than a long loaf; two small loaves rise and fill the pan more evenly than one long loaf ; and unless great care be taken in shaping to have the one loaf of uniform thickness, it will rise more in the middle and give uneven slices. Many make a deep cut through the middle to prevent this ; but that spoils the smooth round effect which adds so much to the looks of the crust. Use the merest dusting of flour in shaping, and knead just enough to work out the large bubbles of gas by fold- ing the mass over into the middle, then letting it spring open. Pat, coax, and work it with the hand and fingers Loaves 59 until there are no wrinkles, and the loaves are smooth. Greasing the hands slightly with butter helps. All the flour added at this kneading rises but once, and too much will make the loaf burst out unevenly at the sides. Some careless kneaders merely fold it over, and if it look smooth on the top they think that enough ; but their loaf will sometimes have a seam or crack through it, which will cause the slices to fall apart easily. The loaves should come nearly half-way up the pan ; and the same rule follows as for the first rising, namely, let it come to the top, or till the bulk is doubled. Cover with cloth and tin cover, or a large tin pan. The time for rising varies with the lightness of the dough and the temperature of the room. It is impossible to give a definite rule ; but should it rise too far #nd stick to the cloth, or look "tum- bled in," cut it down, knead, and let it rise again. Never bake it in the above state, as it will be coarse-grained, if not hollow. It is better to bake it a little too soon than to let it rise too long. Rolls and small biscuit should rise in the pans longer and be baked in a hotter oven than the loaf, because the loaf rises in the oven until the heat has penetrated to the centre ; while in the rolls the air cells are very quickly fixed by the intense heat needed to perfect the crust, and fer- mentation is almost immediately checked. This is con- trary to the usual practice ; but it is the correct way. Man}* people prepare biscuit for breakfast by letting them rise ten or fifteen minutes in a very hot place while the oven is heating. They are often only half baked, and then eaten smoking hot ; and those who have never had an} T - thing else think them just right. The evil effects of this practice have been the occasion for much of the outcry against hot, or even fresh, biscuit. Such are entirely dif- ferent from the dry, light, delicious biscuit which have had a natural, not a forced, rising, are of the proper texture, have been baked quickly, and allowed to stand at least half an hour before being eaten. The moral of the above is, never try to have raised biscuit for breakfast without 60 The Boston Cook Book. rising at least three hours before breakfast- time, unless you wish your family to become slaves to indigestion. The Temperature for Baking. The object of baking bread is to kill the ferment, rupture the starch grains, fix the air cells, and form a nicely flavored crust. Bread could be baked by steam, as the air cells become fixed at 212, and the temperature of the inside of the loaf, owing to the moisture, never rises above that point ; but, to give the delicious flavor of the browned crust, a much higher temperature is needed. The oven should be hot enough to brown a teaspoonful of flour in one minute for rolls, and in jive minutes for loaves. This is a good rule for those who do not use a thermometer, or cannot judge of the heat by their hands. The heat should be greater at the bottom than at the top of the oveiij and of sufficient strength to last through the time of baking (which is about an hour) without replenishing the fire. Divide the time into thirds ; the first fifteen or twenty minutes the heat should increase, remain steady during the next, and decrease toward the last. The dough should rise, and, after fifteen minutes, begin to brown slightty. If the oven be too hot. and the loaf brown too fastj a hard crust will be formed before the heat reaches the centre, and, pressing down on the air cells, make a heavy streak ; or, if removed from the oven too soon, it will be raw and doughy inside. If the heat be not sufficient to form the crust in fifteen minutes, the dough will go on rising until it becomes sour and pasty, and the air cells will run together, making a hole in the middle. The baking of bread is something that will not take care of itself. The old notion that you must not look at anything in the oven is erroneous ; and until you have learned by experience just how to regulate the fire and oveti, and the many tests by which every good cook determines when bread is done, look at it often, and bake according to the clock from fifty to sixty min- utes. Better bake ten minutes too long, putting a paper over the top to prevent a burned crust, than not long enough. Bake it brown, not black, nor pale whity-brown, Care of Bread. 6 1 but brown all over. Rolls are often brushed with milk just before and after baking, to give them a richer brown color. Rubbing over with soft butter while still hot makes a crisp, delicioui crust. When well baked, if tapped with the lin- gers, a hollow, empty sound will be emitted ; the crust feels firm, and, if broken apart, the inside rebounds in- stantly on any slight pressure. The Care of Bread after Baling. Remove the loaves immediately from the pans, and place them where the air can circulate freely round them and thus carry off the gas which has been formed, but is no longer needed. A bread or cake cooler, made of fine wire, set in a narrow frame thirty inches long by twelve or fifteen broad, is a very use- ful article, as it will hold several loaves. An old wire window-screen, too small for modern windows, with cleats on the ends, to keep it two or three inches from the table, answers the purpose admirably. Many use a wire sieve ; but that is small, and leaves the marks of the larger cross wires on the loaf. Never leave the bread in the pan, or on a pine table, to sweat and absorb the odor of the wood. If 3'ou like crusts that are crisp, do not cover the loaves ; but to give the soft, tender, wafer-like consistency which many prefer, wrap them, while still hot, in several thick- nesses of bread cloth. When cold, put them into a stone jar or tin box ; remove the cloth, as that absorbs the mois^ ture, and gives the bread an unpleasant taste and odor. Keep the jar well covered and carefully cleansed from crumbs and stale pieces. Scald and dry it thoroughly every two or three days. A yard and a half square of coarse table linen makes the best bread cloth. Keep a good supply ; keep them sweet and clean, and use them for no other purpose. Fine white bread should be partaken of in moderation. Although the "staff of life," it is not necessaty to eat bread with every kind of diet. It is most useful when taken with articles containing a large proportion of noiur ishment in a small bulk, as it then gives the stomach the proper degree of expansion. 62 The Boston Cook Book. Raw Potato Yeast. ^ cup flour. I 3 raw potatoes. % cup sugar. 1 to 2 quarts boiling water. 1 tablespoonful salt. | 1 cup yeast. First, see that you have at least three quarts of water boiling rapidly. Pare the potatoes, and keep them cov- ered with cold water. Mix the flour, sugar, and salt in a large bowl, and grate the potatoes as quickly as possible, not stopping to grate every scrap ; mix them at once with the flour, using a wooden or silver spoon, that the mixture may not be dark-colored. Pour the boiling water directly from the teakettle over the grater, and rinse off the potato into the bowl, using perhaps a pint of water at first. Mix the water thoroughly with the potato and flour ; then add, slowly, enough more boiling water to make it the consist- ency of thin starch. The amount of water will depend upon the quality of the flour and potatoes. If it does not thicken, pour the mixture into a double boiler or granite pan, and let it come to the boiling-point, stirring well to keep it from sticking. Strain through a squash strainer and let it cool. When lukewarm (clear through the mixture, not merely on the top) , add the yeast. Cover slightly, and keep in a warm (not hot) place, until light and covered with white foam. After it begins to rise, beat it well sev- eral times, as this makes it stronger. At night, or when well risen, put it into wide-mouthed earthen or glass jars. The next morning cover tightly, and keep it in a cool place. Reserve one cupful or more in a small glass jar, and do not open it until ready for the next yeast-making. Always shake yeast well before using ; take your cup to the jar instead of taking the jar to the hot kitchen ; when empty, scald the jar and the cover thoroughly. This is the quickest and easiest way of making yeast, fifteen min- utes being ample time for the first part of the process. It is whiter and looks more inviting than that made with hops. It keeps well two weeks, and makes delicious bread. This receipt can be varied by using boiling hop-water. Potato Yeast. Steep one fourth cup of loose hops five minutes in three pints of water, in a granite or porcelain kettle, and strain it into the potato and flour. Or the flour may be omitted, using more potato or less water. Many think it an improvement to mix one even teaspoonful of sifted ginger with the flour, sugar, and salt. The hops and ginger will make the yeast dark-colored, but it will not be perceptible in the bread. Boiled Potato Yeast. (Mrs. Towne's Matilda.) Three large*, old potatoes, pared, soaked, and boiled until broken in small pieces ; half a cup of loose hops boiled in one quart of water. Drain and mash the potatoes ; add the hop water and enough more hot water to make two quarts. Strain, rubbing all the potato through, and put it on to boil. When boiling, add three fourths of a cup of flour, which has been wet to a smooth paste in cold water, and three quarters of a cup of sugar. Boil five minutes, stirring well ; let it cool ; add three fourths of a cup of yeast ; and , when well risen, add one fourth of a cup of salt. Keep in a covered stone jar in a cool cellar. Bread made with this yeast will not sour even in the hottest weather. Hop Yeast. Steep half a cup of loose hops in one quart of boiling water, in a granite kettle, five minutes. Mix one cup of flour, one fourth of a cup of sugar, and one tablespoonful of salt. Strain the hop liquor, and pour it boiling into the flour mixture. Boil one minute, or till thick. When cooled, add one cup of yeast. Water Bread. 2 quarts sifted (new-process) flour. 1 teaspoonful salt. 1 tablespoonful sugar. 1 tablespoonful butter, or drip- % cup liquid yeast, or, % cake compressed yeast, dis- solved in % cup water. 1 pint lukewarm water. pings, or lard. Sift the flour, and fill the measure lightly, not heaping, nor shaken down. Turn it into a large bowl holding about 66 The Boston Cook Book. flour, and beat well. Let it rise over night, or, if mixed in the morning, about three hours. Then add from two to three cups of flour, or enough to knead it, and knead half an hour. Let it rise in the bowl, and again after being shaped into loaves or rolls, and bake as usual. Whole-wheat or rye bread or gems can be made from this sponge the same as in the preceding rule. Whole- Wheat or Graham Bread. 6 or 6 cups fine granulated wheat flour, or 2 cups white flour, and 3 or 3j^ cups sifted Graham flour. 1 pint milk, scalded and cooled. 2 tablespoonf uls sugar. 1 teaspoonf ul salt. % cup yeast. In the morning mix, in the order given, into a dough, a little softer than for white bread ; let it rise till light, stir it down, pour it into well-greased pans, or, if stiff enough, shape it into loaves ; let it rise again, and bake a little longer and in a less hot oven than white bread. Graham or whole-wheat flour rises more rapidly than white flour, as it contains more gluten. It is liable to become sour if mixed over night, and then the cooks resort to the soda. For the true remedy use less yeast, and use sugar instead of molasses, or mix in the morning. Always sift the flour, notwithstanding all cook-books say to the contrary. Use a coarse sieve or squash strainer. Sift once, and, if you observe the character of the refuse, you will be glad to do so always. Bake part of this as biscuit or rolls. When made with ordinary Graham flour, the bread is much lighter if at least one third white flour be used. Squash Bread. 1 tablespoonful butter. )^ cup yeast. Flour enough to knead it. 1 cup squash, stewed and sifted. 2 tablespoonfuls sugar. \% cups scalded milk. 1 teaspoonful salt. Mix the sugar and salt with the squash, add the butter melted in the hot milk, and when cool add the yeast and Bread. 67 flour. Knead fifteen minutes. Let it rise till light. Knead and shape into loaves or biscuit. When well risen, bake Eye Bread. Make by rule given for Milk Bread, No. 3, adding rye tour or rye meal to the white-flour sponge. Eaised Brown Bread. (Mrs. H. B. 1 pint yellow corn meal. % cup yeast. % cup molasses. % teaspoonf ul salt 1 saltspoonful soda, 1 pint rye meal. Pat the corn meal in the mixing-bowl, and scald it with boiling water, just enough to wet it ; let it stand ten min- utes, then add cold water enough to make a soft batter. When lukewarm, add the yeast, molasses, soda, salt, and r}~e meal. Beat it well, and let it rise over night, or until it cracks open. Stir it down ; put it in a buttered and floured tin to rise again ; sprinkle flour over the top. Bake in a moderate oven two hours. Brown bread made by this rule was first tested by the writer thirty years ago, when it was a wonder and delight to watch it as it was put on a wooden shovel and placed .n the great brick oven. It has been made in the same house regularly every week since then, and proves just as good now as it was in the olden time. Thirded Bread. l cnp white flour (St. Louis). I cup rye flour, or sifted rye meal. 1 cup yellow corn meal. 1 teaspoonful salt. 3 tablespoonf uls sugar. % cup yeast. Mix with milk (scalded and cooled) till thick enough to be shaped. Let It rise until it cracks open. Put into a tmckloaf pan, and when well risen bake it one hour. 66 The Boston Cook Book. flour, and beat well. Let it rise over night, or, if mixed in the morning, about three hours. Then add from two to three cups of flour, or enough to knead it, and knead half an hour. Let it rise in the bowl, and again after being shaped into loaves or rolls, and bake as usual. Whole-wheat or rye bread or gems can be made from this sponge the same as in the preceding rule. Whole- Wheat or Graham Bread. 1 pint milk, scalded and cooled. 2 tablespoonf uls sugar. 1 teaspoonful salt. % cup yeast. 5 or 6 cups fine granulated wheat flour, or 2 cups white flour, and 3 or 3)^ cups sifted Graham flour. In the morning mix, in the order given, into a dough, a little softer than for white bread ; let it rise till light, stir it down, pour it into well-greased pans, or, if stiff enough, shape it into loaves ; let it rise again, and bake a little longer and in a less hot oven than white bread. Graham or whole-wheat flour rises more rapidly than white flour, as it contains more gluten. It is liable to become sour if mixed over night, and then the cooks resort to the soda. For the true remedy use less yeast, and use sugar instead of molasses, or mix in the morning. Always sift the flour, notwithstanding all cook-books say to the contrary. Use a coarse sieve or squash strainer. Sift once, and, if you observe the character of the refuse, you will be glad to do so always. Bake part of this as biscuit or rolls. When made with ordinary Graham flour, the bread is much lighter if at least one third white flour be used. Squash Bread. 1 cup squash, stewed and sifted. 2 tablespoonfuls sugar. 1% cups scalded milk. 1 tablespoon ful butter. % cup yeast. Flour enough to knead it. 1 teaspoonful salt. Mix the sugar and salt with the squash, add the butter melted in the hot milk, and when cool add the yeast and Bread. 67 flour. Knead fifteen minutes. Let it rise till light. Kneacf and shape into loaves or biscuit. When well risen, bake Eye Bread. Make by rule given for Milk Bread, No. 8, adding rye lour or rye meal to the white-flour sponge. Raised Brown Bread. (Mrs. H. B. 1 pint yellow corn meal. % cup yeast. 3^2 cup molasses. % teaspoonf ul salt 1 saltspoonful soda. 1 pint rye meal. Pnt the corn meal in the mixing-bowl, and scald it with boiling water, just enough to wet it ; let it stand ten min- utes, then add cold water enough to make a soft batter. When lukewarm, add the yeast, molasses, soda, salt, and rye meal. Beat it well, and let it rise over night, or until it cracks open. Stir it down ; put it in a buttered and floured tin to rise again ; sprinkle flour over the top. Bake in a moderate oven two hours. Brown bread made by this rule was first tested by the writer thirty years ago, when it was a wonder and delight to watch it as it was put on a wooden shovel and placed .n the great brick oven. It has been made in the same house regularly every week since then, and proves just as good now as it was in the olden time. Thirded Bread. l cup white flour (St. Louis). 1 cup rye flour, or sifted rye meal. 1 cup yellow corn meal. 1 teaspoonful salt. 3 tablespoonf uls sugar. % cup yeast. Mix with milk (scalded and cooled) till thick enough to be shaped. Let it rise until it cracks open. Put into a wriddoaf pan, and when well risen bake it one hour- 68 The Boston Cook Book. Sour Milk Brown Bread, No. 1. (Mrs. Wm. B. Johnson.) 1 pint corn meal. 1 pint Graham flour. 1 teaspoonf ul soda. 1 teaspoonful salt. 1 pint sour milk. 1 cup molasses. Mix the meal with flour. Mash the soda and salt before measuring; sift and mix thoroughly with the flour; add the sour milk and molasses, and beat well. If not moist enough to pour, add a little warm water. Pour it into a well-greased mould or pail, filling it only two thirds full. Cover it with a tight cover, also greased. Steam three hours in a steamer, or set the pail in a kettle of boiling water. Keep the water boiling ; and as it boils away, re- plenish with boiling water to keep it at the same level. Remove the cover, and place the mould in the oven fifteen minutes to dry the crust. Sour Milk Brown Bread, No. 2. 1 cup white corn meal. 1 cup rye flour. 1 cup Graham flour 1 teaspoonful salt. 1 full teaspoonful soda. % cup molasses. 1 pint sour milk. Mix in the order given, sifting the soda, and adding more milk or water if not thin enough to pour. Steam three hours. One cup of raisins stoned and halved may be added to this, or any of the receipts for brown bread. Raised Biscuit and Rolls. The name " biscuit" is from the French, and means " twice baked." It was originally applied to a kind of hard, thin bread, made in that manner to deprive it of all moist- ure and insure its remaining in good condition for a long time. It was something like our crackers and ship bread But in America it means any kind of bread made into small, round cakes and intended to be eaten hot or fresh. Raised biscuit may be made from any of the doughs mad6 Rolls. 69 by the receipts for bread ; the proportions are enough for one pan of bread, and one pan of biscuit containing twelve or sixteen according to the size. They should always be made small, and shaped with the fingers, not cut with a cutter. Divide the portion of dough reserved for biscuit into halves, then into quarters, and each quarter into thirds or quarters. To shape a biscuit, take one of these quarters in the left hand and rest it lightly on the board. With the right thumb and forefinger draw a point of the dough up and over to the centre, and hold it down with the left thumb. Give the dough a slight turn toward the left, and repeat the drawing up and folding over until you have been all round the ball. You may roll them in the hands until all these foldings have disappeared and they are smooth and round, and call them simply biscuit; or you may make the folds as distinct as possible, and place them at once in the pan. The folds will spread apart in rising, and when baked they can be peeled off in layers. They are then honored with the name of Imperial Rolls. Put the biscuit in a shallow round pan, fitting them closely, that they may rise up, round and puffy, instead of spread- ing. When very light, bake in a very hot oven fifteen or twenty minutes. Keep them wrapped in a bread cloth for at least half an hour before serving. The receipts for Milk Bread are especially nice for biscuit Bolls. Rolls are made by rolling the raised dough into small forms, with the hands or with a rolling-pin, and afterward cutting and folding into the desired shape ; the shape and manner of manipulation giving the distinctive names. The dough for rolls should be very light, and when wanted un- usually nice, more shortening should be worked into it after the second kneading. The rule for Water Bread made with a sponge is good for plain rolls ; Milk Bread made with a sponge is the same as Parker House Rolls, which have been generally adopted by housekeepers as the stand* The Boston Cook Book. ard. The following are some of the best varieties and shapes : For Finger Rolls, make a dough by the rule for Milk Bread, No. 2, and when risen and ready to shape, divide the half reserved for rolls into twelve pieces. Make each piece into a smooth ball as if for biscuit, then roll it be- tween the palms, or with the palm of one hand on the board, into a long roll about the size of the second finger. Roll with buttered hands or with as little flour as possible. Place them close together in a long, shallow pan. Let them rise to the top of the pan, and bake in a very hot oven for ten or fifteen minutes. To make a Cleft Roll, make the dough into smooth balls, then with a floured knife-handle press through the centre but not quite through on the ends. Or make them round, and place them some distance apart on the pan, and when ready to bake, make a deep cut through the middle. Make another cut at right angles with the first and you have a Gross Roll. Parker House Rolls are made after the receipt for Milk Bread with sponge, and when well risen and ready to shape, roll the dough on the board as you would pastry, and, if wanted richer, spread a generous tablespoonful of soft- ened butter all over it. Fold the dough, and roll out again until nearly half an inch thick. Lift the rolled dough from the board and let it shrink back all it will, and be sure it is of uniform thickness before cutting, or the rolls will lose their shape. Cut with a round or oval cutter ; press the thumb across the middle and fold over like a turnover, letting the edges come together. As they rise they will open a little, and, if folded only half-way over, the}' are liable to open too far. Spread a bit of soft butter the size of a pea on the edge before folding it, if you like the crusty inside which that gives. Or roll the dough thinner, and put two rounds together with a thin spread- ing of butter between ; these are called Twin Rolls. To make Pocket-book or Letter Rolls, roll the dough in a rectangular shape one fourth of an inch thick, and cut it in Sticks. 7 1 strips four inches wide and as long as the dough will allow. Spread with soft butter ; fold one end of the strip over about an inch and a half, and then over again. Cut off even with the folding, and then fold another, and so on. Or out the dough into strips two inches wide by seven long, and spread each strip with butter, and fold one third over and then again like a letter. Or roll the dough out one fourth of an inch thick, then roll up and cut pieces one inch wide from the end of the roll, turn them over on the side, and place close together in a pan to rise. To make a Braid, cut the rolled dough in strips one inch wide by six inches long, and pinch three strips together at the end, then form into a braid. Or roll little balls of dough into long pieces the same as for sticks, and then braid them. To make Crescents, or Vienna Rolls, roll the dough until only an eighth of an inch thick ; cut into pieces five inches square and then into triangles. Hold the apex of the triangle in the right hand, roll the edge next the left hand over and over towards the right, stretch the point and bring it over and under the roll ; bend the ends of the roll around like a horseshoe, being careful to keep in the folding. Any dough that is quite stiff may be shaped with the hands into small, oval rolls with quite tapering ends, and baked far enough apart to allow each roll to have a crust all over. These are called French Rolls. An^y of these rolls may be rubbed with a cloth dipped in melted butter ; or, better still, twist a piece of butter in a clean cloth and rub it over them just as they are taken from the oven. Sticks. 1 cup milk, scalded. ^ cup butter. 1 tablespoonful sugar. ^ teaspoonf ul salt. ^ cake compressed yeast, or 3 tablespoonf uls liquid yeast. White of 1 egg. About 4 cups flour. Melt the butter, sugar, and salt in the hot milk ; when lukewarm, add the yeast (if compressed, dissolve in three 72 The Boston Cook Book. tablespoonfuls of warm milk or water), then the beaten white and flour. Knead until smooth and fine-grained. Let it rise over night or till light. Shape into small balls ; then roll into sticks a foot long. Let them rise slowly and bake in a moderate oven, that they may be dried through before browning. When shaped into large plain rolls, they are called White Mountain Rolls. Rolls designed for breakfast or dinner are better not to be sweetened enough to taste sweet ; but for tea or lunch more sugar may be added. This brings us to another vari- ety of rolls which are made richer by the addition of but- ter, sugar, eggs, and fruit, including Swedish Rolls, Rusks, and Sunns. Swedish Rolls. 1 pint milk, scalded. % cup butter. ^ cup sugar. Whites of 2 eggs. % cup yeast. 7 or 8 cups flour. 1 scant teaspoonful salt. Melt the butter, and dissolve the sugar and salt in the hot milk ; when lukewarm, add the yeast and beaten whites. Mix in flour to make a sponge or drop batter. In the morning add the remainder of the flour, and knead twenty minutes. Let it rise till noon or till light ; then knead again slightly, and roll out into a large, rectangular piece, half an inch thick. Have the edges as straight as possi- ble. Spread all over with a thin layer of soft butter, and a sprinkling of sugar, cinnamon, grated lemon rind, and currants. Roll up like a jelly roll, cut off slices an inch wide, lay them with the cut side down on well-greased pane, and when well risen bake in a hot oven fifteen or twenty minutes. When done, glaze them with sugar dis- solved in milk, and dry them a few minutes in the oven, or rub them with soft butter. If mixed in the morning, make a sponge with the scalded milk cooled, the eggs, salt, sugar, and part of the flour. Place the bowl in a pan of warm water for three or four hours ; then add the butter and the remainder of the flour. Knead, and after it is well risen roll out as above. Rusk. 73 Rusk, No. 1. 1 cup milk, scalded and cooled. ^ cup yeast. 1 tablespoonful sugar. 2 cups flour. % teaspoonful salt. Mix in a sponge at night or very early in the morning. When well risen, add flour enough to make a stiff dough. Knead and let it rise again, then add one fourth of a cup of butter, rubbed to a cream, half a cup of sugar, and one egg, beaten with butter and sugar. Let it rise in the bowl till light. Shape into small round biscuit ; put them close together in a shallow cake pan, that they may rise very high. When ready to bake, rub the tops with sugar dis- solved in milk, sprinkle with dry sugar, and bake in a moderate oven. Rusk, No. 2. Make a dough at night by the rule for Milk Bread, No. 1. In the morning make half the dough into a loaf for bread. Put with the remainder half a cup of butter, creamed, with one cup of sugar and one egg, well beaten ; mix and beat well ; add half a cup of four, or enough to shape it easily. Let it rise in the bowl, shape into small rounds or into long narrow rolls, and when very light, glaze them and bake as in the preceding rule. Rusk, No. 3. (Miss Yandex.} 1 pint milk, scalded. Y z cup butter and lard, mixed. % cup sugar. 1 cup potato yeast 3 eggs. Flour as required. Mix early in the morning, in the order given, adding flour enough to make a thin batter. Let it rise till full of bubbles, then add flour enough to knead it. When well risen, shape into rounds, or roll out and cut them. Let them rise in the pans till very light ; then bake in a hot oven about half an hour. 74 The Boston Cook Book. Dried Rusks are made after either of these receipts, and when riseli are rolled thin, cut into rounds, and put two together into the pan. When baked, the}' are pulled apart and left in a very moderate oven to dry. Or they are cut in slices when cold, and dried until crisp and brown. They are delicious soaked in milk and eaten with butter, or used the same as bread in puddings, or soaked in a custard and sauted. Bunns. Make a sponge over night with 1 cup milk, scalded. 1 tablespoonf ul sugar and 1 egg beaten together. 1 saltspoonful salt. ^ cup yeast. 2 cups flour. Beat it well and in the morning add flour to made a stiff dough. Knead fifteen minutes. Let it rise until light, then add one fourth of a cup of butter, softened, half a cup of currants, and one saltspoonful of cinnamon or nutmeg. Let it rise in the bowl till light. Shape into small round cakes, put them close together, and when well risen bake in a moderate oven. Glaze them with sugar and milk, or with white of egg beaten stiff with sugar. Make a deep cut like a cross just before they are put into the oven, and you have Hot Gross Bunns. Many prefer a bit of citron put into the middle of each bunn. These are better when freshly baked. It is therefore well to make only a small quantity. They may be made from risen milk-bread dough in the same manner as Rusk, No. 2, by using the spices and the fruit and a smaller quantity of sugar. This receipt for bunns makes excellent raised doughnuts by omitting the currants and rolling half an inch thick and cutting with a doughnut cutter. Raised Bread Cake, or Loaf Cake. This is similar to rusks and bunns, only richer ; and as it improves by keeping, it is well to make a large quantity. Stale Bread. 75 At night mix one pint of milk, scalded and cooled, one teaspoonful of salt, half a cup of yeast, Jive or six cups of flour, enough to make a soft dough. In the morning pre- pare one cup of butter, creamed ; add two cups of In-own sugar, one tablespoonful of mixed spices, cinnamon, nut- meg, and allspice, and four eggs, } r olks and whites beaten separately. Add this mixture to the beaten dough, and beat well. Add two cups of stoned and chopped raisins, or one cup of raisins, one cup of currants and half a cup of sliced citron. Flour the fruit. Let it rise in the bowl till light. Stir it down, and pour into two deep cake tins, making them two thirds full. Let it stand in a warm place fifteen or twenty minutes, then bake one hour or longer in a moderate oven. Uses for Stale Bread. Ah 1 bread crumbs left on the plates or bread board or In the bread jar, any broken pieces not suitable for toast, and any crusts or trimmings of toast should be carefully collected in a pan by themselves, and dried (not browned) in the hot closet or in a moderate oven, then pounded in a mortar or rolled on an old bread board, sifted through a coarse sieve, and put away in a diy place. These will be useful in covering anything which is to be dipped in egg and crumbs and then fried. Bread crumbs brown better than cracker crumbs, and are much cheaper, being made from material which is usually thrown away. These are dried bread crumbs, and are not to be used for bread pud- ding or scalloped dishes, as they will absorb a great deal of moisture. They will keep indefinitely in a dry place Stale bread crumbs, which are not dried in the oven, but are made from odds and ends of stale bread, crumbled finely or grated on a coarse grater, are better for meat or fish stuffing, bread puddings, bread sauce, bread griddle-cakes, scalloped fish, etc. The} r should be used at once, as they soon become must}'. Any whole slices of stale bread be steamed or used for toast. 76 The Boston Cook Book. Stale Bread Steamed. Have a large covered steamer fitting tightly over a ket- tle of boiling water. One with holes all over the bottom is best, as the steam condenses and runs down the sides and through the holes ; while in those with holes only in the middle it forms little pools of water round the edge, which make the bread soggy. Do not put in the bread until everything else is ready, as it takes only a few min- utes for it to become heated through. Arrange it all in the middle of the steamer, tilted against a small cup or dish so that the steam may pass between the slices. Do not let any of it touch the sides of the steamer, or it will become water-soaked. When ready to remove it, lift the cover quickly, turning it over instantly, that no water may drip on the bread. Spread each slice with butter as you take it out, and arrange them on a hot platter. Cover with a napkin and serve immediately. Stale biscuit may be made much nicer than new in this way. These direc- tions may seem needlessly minute ; but it is just these little things that make the difference between light, deli- cate, hot steamed bread, and the heavy, water-soaked stuff that is often served. Egg Toast, or Bread Sauted. 1 egg. 1 cup milk. 1 saltspoonful salt. 4 to 6 slices stale bread. Beat the egg lightly with a fork in a shallow pudding- dish ; add salt and milk. Soak the bread in this until soft. Turn the slices by putting those underneath on the top, and dip the custard over them, being careful not to break them. Have a griddle hot and well buttered. Brown them on one side ; then put a piece of butter on the top of each slice, and turn and brown on the other side. To be eaten hot with butter, also with sugar and cinnamon if liked. This is one of the nicest ways of freshening stale bread, and is especially convenient when the fire is not in Toast 77 order for toasting. It is called French, Spanish, German, and Nun's Toast ; but Egg Toast seems to best indicate the character of the dish. When fried in deep fat, it may be used as a pudding by serving with a sweet sauce, and is then called Italian Fritters. Brown Bread Brewis. Break one pint of dry brown bread and half a cup of stale white bread into inch pieces. Put a tablespoonful of butter in a large frying-pan, and when it is melted, but not brown, add the bread and cover with one pint or more of milk. Let it simmer, stirring occasionally to keep it from stick- ing, until the bread is soft and the milk absorbed. Salt to taste. Brown Bread Brewis, No. 2. Mix the same proportion of bread with one fourth of a cup of butter in a double boiler ; add milk to cover, and cook over hot water without stirring until the bread has absorbed all the milk. If the bread be very dry, more milk will be needed. Toast. Bread is toasted, or dried and browned, before the fire to extract the moisture and make it more palatable and digestible. If the slices be cut thick and carelessly ex- posed to a blazing fire, the outside is blackened and made into charcoal before the heat can reach the inside ; the moisture is only heated, not evaporated, making the inside doughy or clammy, and when spread with butter, which cannot penetrate the charcoal, but floats on the sur- face in the form of oil, it forms one of the most indigestible compounds. The correct way is to have the bread stale, and cut into thin, uniform slices about one quarter of an inch thick. The fire should be clear, red (not blazing) coals. The crusts may be removed or not according to your taste, or the purpose for which the toast is intended. If you require only one or two slices, a toasting-fork will 78 The Boston Cook Book. answer ; but if a larger quantity be needed, there is nothing better than a double broiler with wires about a third of an inch apart. Place the slices evenly on one side of the broiler, being careful not to put in more than can be equally exposed to the fire ; close the broiler and hold it firmly, that the slices may not slip ; move it gently over the fire for one or two minutes ; then turn it over, that all the moisture may be drawn out ; hold it nearer to the coals, and color it a delicate golden-brown. Serve at once in a toast rack or piled lightly, that it may not lose its crisp- ness. Butter before serving, or send it dry to the table. Bread properly dried and toasted is changed from the nature of dough, which always has a tendency to sour on the stomach, into pure wheat farina. It is not so scorched as to turn the butter into oil, but absorbs the butter ; and butter and farina, being easily separated, are quickly acted upon by the gastric fluid. Many persons prefer toast that is soft inside, but it should never be served to sick people in that manner. It is better to have it dry, and then mois- tened with milk or water, than to have it doughy. If the bread be freshly baked and } T OU must make toast, dry the slices in a warm oven before toasting. Alwa} T s toast over the coals, or in the oven. If toasted over a hot stove, the crumbs fall through and burn, giving it a scorched and smoky flavor. Milk Toast. 1 pint milk, scalded. 1 te>blespoonf ul cornstarch. 1 large tablespoonf ul butter. 3^ teaspoonful salt. 6 slices dry toast. Scald the milk ; put the butter in a granite saucepan ; when melted, add the dry cornstarch ; when well mixed, add one third of the milk. Let it boil, and stir constantly till it is a smooth paste ; add the remainder of the milk gradually, stirring well ; then add the salt. Put the toast in a hot deep dish ; pour the thickened milk between each slice and over the whole. Keep the dish over hot water until ready to serve. If liked very soft, the slices may be Entire Wheat Bread. 79 first dipped in hot salted water, or in the hot milk before it is thickened. Cream Toast. Cream toast may be made in the same way, using a scant tallespoonful of butter, and cream instead of milk, or by thickening the boiling cream with one tallespoonful of comstarch wet in a little cold milk or water ; then salt to taste, and boil eight or ten minutes. Water Toast. Have a shallow pan with one quart of boiling water and a teaspoonful of salt. Dip each slice of dry toast quickly in the water, then pile on a hot platter. Spread evenly with butter and serve very hot. Do not let them soak an instant in the water. Toast for Garnishing. For poached eggs, cut the bread into rounds with a large cake-cutter before toasting. For small birds or as- paragus, remove the crusts and cut into oblong pieces. For minces and fricassees, cut into small squares or dia- monds. For a border, cut, after toasting, into inch and a half squares, and then into halves diagonally, making tn- angles ; or cut into long pointed triangles. Entire Wheat Bread, Made Quickly. Put one teaspoon of butter and half a teaspoon each of sugar and salt in one cup of scalded milk. When cool, add half a cake of compressed yeast dissolved in one third of a cup of lukewarm water. Stir in fine whole-wheat flour till stiff enough to keep in shape after you stop stirring. Mix it well, but do not knead it. Let it rise to double its bulk, then knead it just enough to shape it into a long thin roll. When light and double, bake in a hot oven about thirty minutes. Mix in the morning and it will be baked before dinner. 80 The Boston Cook Book. SODA BISCUIT, MUFFINS, GEMS, ETC. IN making biscuit, etc., our grandmothers used saleratus, an alkali prepared by exposing pearlash, i. e., purified potash, to carbonic acid gas. Potash is a fixed alkali made from wood ashes. Now soda bicarbonate, made from common salt, is generally used. Crude soda is known as sal-soda or soda-saleratus ; when refined, it is carbonate and bicarbonate of soda. But the purest soda obtained to-day is that made from Kryolith, a mineral found only in Greenland. It is called Natrona Bicarbonate of Soda, and is an ingredient of the purest baking-powders. Pure, strong alkalies are powerful corrosive poisons, eating the coats of the stomach perhaps quicker than any other poisonous agent. This caustic or burning property is somewhat weakened by the carbonic acid united with them, and is therefore less in bicarbonate of soda than in the potash compounds. The latter are now seldom used. Alkalies when properly combined with acids lose this poi- sonous property ; the carbonic acid gas is liberated, and the compound formed by this union is called a neutral salt, being neither acid nor alkaline. When not properly com- bined, if the acid be stronger than the alkali, the salt is acid ; and if the alkali be in excess, the salt is alkaline and still poisonous. Soda has a great affinity for water; and when wet, a combination takes place which allows some of the carbonic acid gas to escape. This may easily be seen by the effer- vescence which occurs when soda is dissolved in hot water. This, the old way of using soda, was theoretically wrong, as much of the gas was lost ; yet practically good results were obtained, because the saleratus formerly used was much stronger than the bicarbonate of soda of to-day, and could well be weakened. Soda and Cream of Tartar. 8 1 Soda alone, when mixed with wet dough, will give off gas enough to raise the dough ; but it leaves a strong alkaline taste and a greenish yellow color, and, being poisonous, must be neutralized by an acid, or else its use is not ad- missible. The best acid for this purpose is one which does not liberate the gas instantly on contact with the soda, before the heat can fix the air cells, and also the one which leaves no unwholesome residue. Muriatic Acid, which is sometimes used, would be the best, as it leaves only common salt as a residue ; but the gas is liberated instantly, and only a skilled hand can mix the bread and place it in the oven without losing much of the gas. Cream of Tartar, which is fcartaric acid combined with potash, and is obtained from the crystals or argols which collect in wine casks, is preferred by chemists. Being only slightly soluble in cold water, it unites with soda only when heated, and the gas is not all liberated until the mixture is in the oven. The residue from the union is Rochelle salt, which is not injurious taken occasionally in small quantities. The objections to cream of tartar are these : being very expensive (the price varjing with the grape crop), it is often adulterated with cornstarch, flour, or other substances ; and the careless cook guesses at the proportions of soda needed instead of measuring accu- rately. The only safe way to use these chemicals is to purchase cream of tartar of a reliable grocer, and to measure carefully one level teaspoonful of soda to two slightly rounded teaspoonfuls of cream of tartar for one quart of flour. It takes a trifle more than twice the quantity of cream of tartar to make the reaction complete. The soda must be finely pulverized before measuring; rub it on the board with a knife, measure, and then sift through the finest wire strainer into the flour. Sifting with the flour through an ordinary flour sieve is not enough. Cream of tartar does not become lumpy like soda ; but it is better to sift it, and salt also, into the flour, and then sift all together two or three tunes. 6 82 The Boston Cook Book. Baking- Powders. The most reliable and convenient quick leavening agent is a pure cream of tartar baking- powder. If pure, it will contain only soda bicarbonate and cream of tartar mixed by weight in the correct pro- portion, and combined with the least possible amount of cornstarch or flour necessary for its perfect keeping. Any amount of starch above this is an adulteration as truly as if some harmful substance were used. Baking- powders having their formula printed on the label of their tins, may be relied upon. Biscuits made without eggs require two level teaspoons of baking-powder for each cup of flour. Muffins and rich cakes with eggs, from one and one-half to one level teaspoon for each cup of flour or meal. Soda is also neutralized by sour milk or lactic acid. This is economical, particularly for those who have plenty of pure milk. But milk in winter grows bitter before it sours ; and the degree of acidity varies so much that the result is often failure. Sour milk is best when it sours quickly, and is thick and smooth, not separated. One even teaspoonful of soda to one pint of nicely thickened or loppered milk is the proportion. When the milk tastes or smells sour, but is not thick, use it as sweet milk in gingerbread or brown bread, where you have molasses to complete the acidity. Add a very little more soda if the receipt call for sweet milk, or a little less if for sour milk. Nearly all kinds of soda biscuit, muffins, gems, etc., should have the dry ingredients mixed in one bowl, and the liquids, such as milk, eggs, melted butter, etc., in another ; and when ready to bake, stir the two quickly and thoroughly together, and bake immediately in a very hot oven. Molasses gives another acid which is combined with soda, to raise and lighten dough. Directions for its use are given under rules for brown bread and molasses gingerbread. Baking-Powder. 83 Soda and Cream of Tartar Biscuit. 1 quart sifted flour. 1 even teaspoonf ul salt. 1 even teaspoonful soda, meas- full teaspoonfuls cream of tartar. 1 large tablespoonf ul butter. ured after pulverizing. Milk to make a very soft dough : new-process flour will take a pint or more ; St. Louis flour, less. Mix in the order given, sifting the soda, salt, and cream of tartar into the flour. Then sift all together twice. Rub in the butter with the tips of the fingers, until there are no large lumps. Mix in the milk gradually, using a broad knife and wetting only a small part of the flour with each addition of the milk. When just stiff enough to be handled (not kneaded) , cut it through with the knife until barely mixed ; it should look spongy in the cuts and seem full of air. Turn it out on a well-floured board ; toss with the knife till well floured ; touch it with the hands as little as possible ; pat it with the rolling-pin, which must be lifted quickly that it may not stick ; and when the dough is about half an inch thick, cut it into rounds and bake at once. To make Twin Biscuit, roll the dough out less than half an inch thick, cut into rounds, spread with softened but- ter, and put two together, and bake ten or fifteen minutes. Baking-Powder Biscuit. These are made in the same way as the preceding, using three rounding teaspoonfuls or eight level of baking-powder in place of soda and cream of tartar. Sour Milk Biscuit. These should be made the same as cream of tartar bis- cuit, using one pint of thick sour milk instead of sweet milk, and omitting the cream of tartar. Observe the same directions as to lightness and dexterity in mixing, and vary the amount of milk according to the flour. 8 4 The Boston Cook Book. Whole- Wheat or Rye Biscuit (with Soda). 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar. 1 1 tablespoonful sugar. 1 teaspoonful melted butter. 1 cup whole-wheat or rye flour. 1 cup white flour. % teaspoonfnl salt. ^ teaspoonful soda. Milk enough to make a drop batter (about one cup). If sour milk be used, omit the cream of tartar. Mix in the order given, and bake in hot gem pans twenty or thirty minutes. Cream Biscuit. When using sweet cream, make the same as cream of tartar biscuit ; and when using sour cream, the same as sour-milk biscuit, omitting the butter in either case. An}' of these mixtures may be baked in gem or muffin pans by using more milk, and making the dough soft enough to drop from the spoon. Short Cakes, No. 1. 1 pint sifted flour. 3*2 teaspoonful salt, scant. % teaspoonful soda, measured after pulverizing. 1 full teaspoonful cream of tartar (omit if sour milk be used). ^ cup butter. 1 cup sweet or sour milk, or cold water. Mix the salt, soda, and cream of tartar with the flour, and sift two or three times. Rub in the butter until fine like meal, or if liked very short and crisp, melt the butter and add it hot with the milk. Add the liquid gradual!} 7 , mixing and cutting with a knife, and use just enough to make it of a light spongy consistency. Scrape out the dough upon a well-floured board ; toss it with the knife until floured ; pat into a flat cake, and roll gently, till half an inch thick ; cut with a small round cutter, and bake on the griddle or in the oven. If you use a griddle, grease it well with salt pork or butter, and cook the cakes slowly ; watch and turn them, that all may be browned alike. 1 4 level teaspoons baking-powder may be used instead of soda and cream of tartar. Shortcakes. 85 When they are well puffed up, put a bit of butter on the top of each, and turn over, or move them to one side and grease again with the pork, and turn over upon the freshly greased place. When browned on the other side and done, of which you can judge by the firmness of texture or by pulling one partly open, serve immediately. Tear them open, as cutting with a knife makes them heavy and indigestible. If to be baked in the oven, put them quite close together in a shallow pan, and bake ten or fifteen minutes. Short Cakes, No. 2. Make by rule No. 1, and divide into two parts ; pat and roll each part into a large, round cake the size of a pie plate, and bake either in a spider or in the oven. These short cakes may be eaten hot with butter if for a simple breakfast or tea cake, or buttered and spread with sweet- ened fruit for dessert. Strawberry Short Cake, No. 1. Make a crust by rule for Dutch Apple Cake, on page 86 ; bake it on round tins ; split, butter, and spread with sweet- ened berries and cream. Strawberry Short Cake, No. 2. Make by rule No. 1 for Short Cake, and bake on a grid- dle in small rounds. Tear open, and spread each half with softened butter. Put half of the cakes on a hot plate. Mash a pint of strawberries* sweeten to taste, put a large spoonful on each cake ; then put another layer of cakes, and whole berries, well sugared. Serve with cream. . Peach Short Cake. Make by either of the receipts for Strawberry Short Cake, and spread with sliced and sweetened peaches. Apricots may be used in the same way ; and cream may be added if preferred. 86 The Boston Cook Book. Orange Short Cake. The same as Strawberry, using oranges. Peel and di- vide the oranges, remove the seeds and thick inner skin, and cut each section into three or four pieces. Sweeten to taste. Whole- Wheat or Rye Short Cakes. 1 cup white flour. 1 cup whole-wheat or rye flour. 4 level teasp. baking-powder. % teaspoonful salt. 1 tablespoonful sugar. 1 cup of sweet milk, the amount varying with the flour. 1 tablespoonful melted butter. Mix in the order given, making the dough stiff enough to be rolled. Cut into rounds and bake on a griddle ; tear open and serve with cream and salt. Or roll very thin, cut and bake in the oven, split and pour cream thickened as for toast over them. Dutch Apple Cake. (Mrs. A. A. Lincoln.) I pint flour. % teaspoonful salt. ^ teaspoonful soda, sifted into the flour. 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar. 1 % cup butter. 1 egg. 1 scant cup milk. 4 sour apples. 2 tablespoonfuls sugar. Mix the dry ingredients in the order given ; rub in the butter ; beat the egg and mix it with the milk ; then stir this into the dry mixture. The dough should be soft enough to spread half an inch" thick on a shallow baking- pan. Core, pare, and cut four or five apples into eighths ; lay them in parallel rows on top of the dough, the sharp edge down, and press enough to make the edge penetrate slightly. Sprinkle the sugar on the apple. Bake in a hot oven twenty or thirty minutes. To be eaten hot with but- ter as a tea cake, or with lemon sauce as a pudding. 1 3 level teaspoons baking-powder may be used instead of soda and cream of tartar. Berry Cakes. 87 Apple or Huckleberry Cakes. 1 pint sifted flour. % teaspoonf ul salt. 3 level teasp. baking-powder. % cup butter. ^ cup sugar. 1 egg, yolk and white beaten sep- arately. 1 cup milk. 1 heaping cup huckleberries or thinly sliced apples. Mix the flour, salt, and baking-powder, and sift two or three times. Have the berries picked over, washed, dried, and sprinkled with flour. Rub the butter to a cream, add the sugar, and beat again. Add the yolk well beaten, and then the milk. Stir this into the flour and beat thor- oughly ; add the white beaten stiff, and, lastly, the berries, being careful not to break them. Bake in a shallow pan or in muffin pans about half an hour. These may be made with sour milk, omitting the baking- powder, and using half a teaspoonful of soda ; or leave out half a cup of flour, and substitute for it half a cup of fine white corn meal. Huckleberry Cake, No. 2. (Mrs. A. A. Lincoln.) 1 pint flour. J^ teaspoonful salt. 4 level teaspoons baking-powder. % cup sugar. 2 tablespoons butter. Milk or water enough to moisten. 1 cup berries, washed, dried, and floured. Mix salt, baking-powder, and sugar with the flour. Rub in the butter, and moisten with milk or water to make a dough stiff enough to keep in shape when dropped from a spoon. Add the berries, which should be well floured to keep them from settling. Drop by the large spoonfuls on a well-buttered shallow pan. Bake twenty minutes. Raised Flour Muffins or Sally Lunns (with Yeast). 1 cup milk, scalded and cooled. i<2 teaspoonful salt, scant. 1 teaspoonful sugar. ^ cup yeast. 1 egg, yolk and white beaten sep- arately. Flour enough to make a drop batter. If intended for tea, add two table spoonfuls of sugar, and mix late in the forenoon. They will rise in five or six 88 The Boston Cook Book. hours ;" then add one large tablespoonful of butter melted. When well mixed, fill muffin pans two thirds full. Let them rise fifteen or twenty minutes, and bake in a hot oven. Or they may be baked in muffin rings on a griddle, in which case it is better to add the melted butter at the first mixing. When ready to bake, have the griddle and rings well greased ; contrive to take up a spoonful of the dough without stirring enough to let out the air, and fill each ring ; cook until brown and well risen, then turn ring and muffin together, and brown the other side. Pull them apart, never cut them. This same mixture, when risen and baked in a buttered pudding-dish in which it is to be served, is the old-fashioned Sally Lunn. Cut with the point of a warm knife. If intended for breakfast, make a batter with the milk, yeast, flour, and sugar, mix late in the evening and keep in a cool place. In the morning add the egg, melted butter, and salt, and bake as usual. Muffins or Sally Lunns, No. 2 (made quickly). pint flour. 3 level teaspoons baking-powder. %, teaspoon salt, scant. 2 eggs, beaten separately. up milk. % cup butter, melted. Mix flour, baking-powder, and salt. Beat the yolks, and add the milk and melted butter. Put the two mixtures together quickly ; add the whites last. Fill muffin pans two thirds full, and bake fifteen minutes in a very hot oven. This makes eight muffins. If for tea, add two tablespoonfuls of sugar to the flour. Use a scant cup of milk and one fourth of a cup of butter if you prefer. Oatmeal Biscuit. (Miss Barnes.) 3 cups boiling water. 1 scant teaspoonful salt. 1 cup oatmeal. Pour the water on the oatmeal ; add the salt, and cook three hours in a double boiler. While still warm, add one large tablespoonful of butter, and half a cup of sugar. Muffins. When cool, add half a cup of yeast, and flour to make a stiff dough. Let it rise over night. In the morning bake in gem pans twenty minutes or till brown. Tea Cakes, % teaspoonful alt. 1 egg- 1 cup milk. 1 tablesDoonful butter, melted. 2)^ cups St. Louis flour. % teaspoonful soda and 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar, or 4 level teaspoons baking powder. % cup sugar. Mix in the order given, and bake in gem pans or cup.. Add one cup of berries, and it makes a delicious berry cake. Cream Muffins. 1 pint flour. 3^ teaspoonful salt. )^ teaspoonful soda and 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar, or 3 level teaspoons baking-powder. Bake in muffin pans, and serve very hot. Yolks of 2 eggs, beaten lightly. % cup cream or enough to make a drop batter. Whites of 2 eggs beaten stiff. Tea Cake (Loaf). 1 pint flour. )^ teaspoonful soda and 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar, or 3 level teaspoons baking-powder. */ teaspoonful salt. 3 eggs, yolks beaten and mixed with Bake in a brickloaf pan, in a hot oven, hot as a tea cake. 3 tablespoonfuls sugar. 1 cup milk (mixed with the yolks and sugar). 2 tablespoonfuls melted butter. Whites of the eggs added last. To be eaten Granulated Wheat Muffins. 1 tablespoonful sugar. \%_ cups granulated wheat (Health Food or Arlington). )^> teaspoonful salt. 2 level teaspoons baking-powder. Mix in the order given, and bake in hissing hot gem pans twenty minutes. 1 scant cup milk, water. - 90 The Boston Cook Book. Rye Muffins. (Miss Parloa.) 1 cup rye flour, or sifted rye meal. 3^ cup sugar. teaspoonf ui salt. 1 cup white flour. legg. 1 cup milk. 3 level teasp. baking-powder. Mix rye, sugar, salt, flour, and baking-powder thor- oughly. Beat the egg ; add the milk, and stir quickly into the dry mixture. Bake in hot gem or muffin pans twenty- five minutes. Corn Muffins. (From an unknown Friend.) \ 1 cup common corn meal. 2 tablespoonfuls sugar. 1 even tablespoonf ul butter. 5 cups boiling water. 1 scant teaspoonful salt. Mix at night the meal, sugar, and salt in the top of the double boiler ; add the butter and boiling water, stir until smooth, and cook an hour. Turn into a mixing-bowl, and pour over it one fourth of a cup of water to prevent a crust from forming. In the morning beat it up soft and smooth. Mix one cup and a half of fine yellow corn flour, one cup and a half of white flour, two even tea- spoonfuls of baking-powder, and stir them into the cooked meal. Add one egg, well beaten. Drop the mixture into round iron gem pans, and bake in a hot oven. To make corn and rye muffins, add, in the morning, 1 cup yellow corn flour. I 1 cup common flour. 1 cup rye flour. Or make corn and whole-wheat muffins by adding li| cups yellow corn flour. K CU P common flour. 1 cup whole-wheat flour, Frank- lin or Arlington. These are delicious. This rale makes fifteen muffins. If fewer be desired, half of the cooked corn-meal mixture may be used, and the remainder reserved for another baking. But in this case do not forget to halve the Corn Cakes. 91 dry mixture added in the morning, and to use one small egg- Apple Johnny Cake (without Eggs). (Mrs. Webb.) 1 pint white meal. 2 tablespoon! uls sugar. 5^> teaspoonfnl salt. > teaspoonful soda and 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar, or 4 level teasp. baking-powder. Milk enough to mix quite soft. 3 apples, pared and sliced. Mix in the order given. Bake in a shallow cake pan thirty minutes. Corn Cake (thin). 1 cup yellow corn meal. % cup sugar. }^ teaspoonful salt. 1 cup flour. 3 level teasp. baking-powder. J egg. 1 cup milk. 1 tablespoonful melted butter. Mix in the order given, and bake in two Washington pie tins, spreading the mixture thick enough to half fill the pan. Sponge Corn Cake (Sour Milk). 1 cup flour. Yolks of 2 eggs. ^2 cup corn meal, teaspoonful salt, teaspoonful soda, cup sugar. White of 1 egg. 1 tablespoonful butter, melted- 1 cup sour milk. Bake in a shallow round pan or in abrickloaf pan. Use the other white of egg for clearing the coffee. Sponge Corn Cake (Sweet Milk). 1 cup meal. % cup flour. % teaspoonful salt. % teaspoonful soda. 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar. 1 tablespoonful melted butter 1 tablespoonful sugar. Yolks of 2 eggs. White of 1 egg. \% cup milk. 1 Bake in brickloaf bread pan about half an hour. 1 3 level teaspoons baking-powder may be used instead of soda and cream of tartar. 92 The Boston Cook Book. Spider Corn Cake (Sour Milk). (Miss Parloa.) % cup corn meal. Flour to fill the cup. 1 tablespoonf ul sugar. % teaspoonful salt. % teaspoonful soda, scant. legg. 1 cup sweet milk. % cup sour milk. 1 tablespoonful butter. Mix the meal, flour, sugar, salt, and soda. Beat the egg : add half of the sweet milk, and all the sour milk. Stir this into the dry mixture. Melt the butter in a hot spider, or shallow round pan, and pour the mixture into it. Pour the other half cup of sweet milk over the top, but do not stir it in. Bake twenty minutes in a hot oven. Corn and Rice Muffins. 1 pint white corn meal. 1 teaspoonful salt. 1 tablespoonful flour. 1 cup cold boiled rice. 1 pint sour milk. 1 egg. 1 tablespoonful melted butter, or drippings. 1 teaspoonful soda, scant. Bake in muffin pans about twenty minutes. Hominy and Corn Meal Cakes. (Mrs. S. S. Ropes.) \ I Mix two tablespoonfuls of fine, uncooked hominy, half a teaspoonful of salt, one tablespoonful of butter, half a cup of boiling water. Place this over the teakettle, or on the back of the stove until the hominy absorbs all the water. Pour one cup of boiling milk on one scant cup of corn meal; add two tablespoonfuls of sugar and the hominy. When cooled, add two eggs, yolks and whites beaten sep- arately, and one heaping teaspoonful of baking-powder, Bake in hot, buttered gem pans twenty minutes. Maryland Corn Cakes (without Soda). (Mrs. Upham.) Mix one cup of fine white sifted meal, one even table' spoonful of butter, one teaspoonful of sugar, one saltspoonftd Corn Cakes. 93 of salt. Add one scant cup of boiling milk. When cooled, add one egg, yolk and white beaten separately. Bake in stone cups about thirty minutes. Dodgers, Dabs, or Corn Meal Puffs (without Soda). (Miss Alice Walcott.) Two cups of fine white corn meal, scalded with boiling water so that the meal is all wet but not soft ; add one teaspoonful of butter, one teaspoonful of sugar, half a tea- spoonful of salt, two or three tablespoonfuls of milk; when cold, add two eggs, yolks and whites beaten separate!}'. The batter should drop easily from the spoon, not be thin enough to pour, nor stiff enough to be scraped out. Have your pans greased and hissing hot, and the oven as hot as possible. Bake until brown and puffy. Indian Bannock (without Soda). (4. W.) ^. 1 cup corn meal. 1 teaspoonful salt. 1 teaspoonful sugar. 1 pint boiling milk. When cool, add two eggs, beaten separately. Bake In a 'shallow .earthen dish in a very hot oven, and serve in the dish, like a pudding. Hoe Cake (without Soda). 1 cup white corn meal, teaspoonful salt. Boiling milk or water enough to scald it. 1 teaspoonful sugar (if you like). Make it thick enough not to spread when put on the griddle. Grease the griddle with salt pork, drop the mix- ture on with a large spoon. Pat the cakes out till about half an inch thick ; cook them slowly, and when browned put a bit of butter on the top of each cake and turn over. They cannot cook too long, provided they do not burn. Sometimes the dough is put on in one large cake, and as soon as browned underneath is turned over upon a freshty greased place ; the thin, crisp crust is peeled off with a knife, laid on a hot plate, and spread with butter, and 94 The Boston Cook Book. when another brown crust has formed, the cake is turned again, the crust is removed and buttered, and so on until the cake is all browned. These crisp, buttered crusts are served piled together and cut in sections. Rice Crusts. (Miss Ward.) ; Cook one cup of cold boiled rice in the double boiler in milk enough to make a thin mixture, and until the rice is very soft. Add one tablespoonful of sugar, a little salt, one egg, and flour enough to make it hold together. Spread on the pan, having the mixture one third of an inch thick. Bake in a hot oven. Split and eat with syrup. Rice or Hominy Drop Cakes. N One cup of boiled hominy or rice, and one egg. If the hominy be cold, heat in a farina kettle with one tablespoon- ful of water, and stir till it is softened. Beat yolk and white separately ; add one saltspoonful of salt. Drop in tablespoonfuls on a well-buttered pan, and bake brown in a hot oven. Breakfast Puffs, or Pop-overs. 1 cup flour. 1 saltspoonful salt. 1 egg, yolk and white beaten sep- arately. 1 1 cup milk. Mix the salt with the flour ; add part of the milk slowly, until a smooth paste is formed ; add the remainder of the milk with the beaten yolk, and lastly the white beaten to a stiff froth. Cook in hot buttered gem pans or earthen cups in a quick oven half an hour, or until the pufls are brown and well popped over. Rye Gems, or Shells (without Soda). % cup rye meal. ^ cup flour. 1 saltspoonful salt. 2 eggs. 1 tablespoonful sugar. 1 cup milk. Mix the meal, flour, and salt. Beat the yolks ; add the sugar and milk. Stir this into the dry mixture ; add the 1 The egg may be beaten but slightly, without separating, and then beaten well in the batter. Graham Gems. 95 whites, beaten stiff. Bake in iron gem pans, or stone cops, thirty to forty minutes. One cup of mixed rye meal, white com meal, and whole-wheat flowr, in about equal pro- portions, may be used in the same way. This receipt makes six gems. Whole-Wheat or Graham Gems, or Puns. (A. W.) 2 cops of whole-wheat tar. 2 eggs, heaten separate!/. } tea*poonf ul salt. 1 cup milk. 1 tabJespoonful sugar. 1 cup water. Mix floor, salt, and sugar. Add the milk to the beaten yolks, then the water, and stir this into the dry mixture. Add the whites, beaten stiff, and bake in hissing hot gem pans thirty minutes. Whole-Wheat Crisps (specially good for Children). < 1 cup rich cream, sweet or sour. I 2 cups fine granulated wheat flour, % cup sugar. or enough to make a stiff dougb. Knead fifteen minutes, or tin stiff enough to roll out thin as a wafer. Cut with a biscuit cutter, and bake on un- gn amd tins in a very hot oven. The sugar will sweeten the sour cream sufficiently. Fine Granulated Wheat Gems (no Yeast, Soda, nor Eggs). 1 cup water. 1 1 saltspoonful salt. 1 cup milk. | 2> cups fine granulated wheat. Stir Hie floor slowly into the liquid, until yon have a drop batter. Then beat as rapidly and as long as your arm wffl aUow. Have the iron gem pans hissing hot. and well buttered. 111 quickly, giving the batter a brisk beating several times during the filling, and bake at once in a very hot 96 The Boston Cook Book. Maryland, or Beaten Biscuit. (Mrs. Towne.) 1 quart flour. I % teaspoonful salt. % cup lard. | 1 cup cold water. Rub the lard and salt into the flour, and mix with cold water to a very stiff dough. Knead ten minutes, or until well mixed ; then beat hard with a biscuit beater or heavy rolling-pin, turning the mass over and over until it begins to blister and looks light and puffy, or " till, pulling off a piece quickly, it will give a sharp, snapping sound." When in this condition, pull off a small piece suddenly, form it into a round biscuit, then pinch off a bit from the top. Turn over and press with the thumb, leaving a hollow in the centre. Put the biscuit some distance apart in the pan. Prick with a fork. Bake twenty minutes in a quick oven. They should be light, of a fine, even grain, and crack at the edges like our crackers. In Maryland no young lady's education was formerly considered finished until she had learned the art of making beaten biscuit. Graham Wafers. 1 pint white flour. 1 pint Graham flour. % cup butter. 1 saltspoonful salt. Cold water enough to make a stiff dough. y z cup sugar. Roll out very thin, cut in squares, and bake quickly,, Wafer Biscuit (for Invalids). White of 1 egg. 1 pint flour. 1 tablespoonful butter. 1 saltspoonful salt. Warm new milk enough to make a stiff dough. Mix salt with the flour ; rub in the butter ; add the beaten white of egg, and milk enough to make a stiff dough. Beat half an hour with a rolling-pin, without ceasing. Break off a little piece of dough at a time, and roll it out as thin as paper. Cut into large rounds. Prick with a small wooden skewer, and bake quickly without burning. Pancakes. 97 Gluten Wafers. Half a cup of sweet cream and one saltspoonful of salt. Stir in gluten enough to make a stiff dough. Knead and roll out very thin. Cut into rounds, and bake a delicate brown on an ungreased tin. Gluten is a preparation of -jrheat flour without the starch. Waffles, Griddle-Cakes, Pancakes, etc. The names pancakes, fritters, flap-jacks, slap-jacks, batter-cakes, griddle-cakes, slappers, etc., are applied in- discriminately in different localities. Pancakes were formerly a kind of muffin mixture, made a little stiffer than a drop batter, but not stiff enough to roll out, and were dropped from a spoon into hot fat, and fried like doughnuts. But, recently, the name has been applied to a very thin batter made usually without soda, cooked one cake at a time on a small well-buttered frying- pan, and turned like a griddle- cake ; then buttered, and rolled over and over, or spread with sugar and jell}', and then rolled. In u ye olden time" good cooks were sup- posed to have the knack of tossing the pan so skilfully that the cake would turn over itself ; but this is now one of the lost arts. For convenience and clearness, the following names will be used in this work : Griddle- Cakes : any kind of small, thin batter-cakea cooked on a griddle. Pancakes : larger, thin batter-cakes, made without soda, and cooked in a small frying-pan. French or Rolled Pancakes : the same as the preceding, buttered, sweetened, and rolled. Fried Drop Cakes or Fried Muffins : any muffin mixture, dropped from a spoon into deep hot fat. Fritters: a thinner mixture made without soda, either plain or with meat, fish, or fruit, and cooked by dropping into deep hot fat. 7 98 The Boston Cook Book. Waffles and Griddle-Cakes. A waffle iron is made of two corrugated iron griddles fitted and fastened together at one side with a hinge, and revolving in an iron frame, which is to be placed over the fire. It may be either circular or oblong. Each griddle is divided into compartments, which are usually grooved into diamonds, hearts, rounds, etc. The iron should be placed over the fire, heated on each side, and greased thoroughly, as it is very hard to clean if the cakes stick. Put a piece of salt pork on a fork, or put a small piece of butter in a clean cloth, and rub all over both griddles. The heat will melt the butter and let just enough of it go through the cloth. This is better than to put it on with a knife. Close the griddles and turn them ; this causes the fat to run evenly over them. Open, and pour the waffle mixture into the centre of the half over the fire, or put a spoonful in each compartment, filling them about two thirds full. Cover, and cook one minute on one side, then turn and cook a little longer on the other. Any kind of griddle-cake mixture, with the addition of the melted butter to make them crisp, may be cooked on a waffle-iron, if one cares to take the extra trouble. Waffles. 1 pint flour. 2 level teasp. baking-powder. % teaspoonful salt. 3 eggs. 13^ cups milk. 1 tablespoonf ul butter, melted. Mix in the order given ; add the beaten yolks of the eggs with the milk, then the melted butter, and the whites last. Serve with butter, or sjTup, or caramel sauce. Lemon Syrup (served with Waffles). 1 cup sugar. 1 teaspoonful butter. % cup water. 1 tablespoonful lemon juice. Boil the sugar with the water until it thickens slightly. Griddle- Calces. Add the butter and lemon juice. Serve as soon as the butter is melted. Raised Waffles. Mix at night one pint of milk, one third of a cup of yeast, and one pint of flour. In the morning add half a teaspoon- fid of salt, two eggs, yolks and whites beaten separately, and one tablespoonful of melted butter. Use only one egg, make the batter a trifle thinner, and fry on the griddle, and you have Flannel Cakes. Either of these receipts may be varied by using half or one third fine white corn meal or Graham flour with the white flour. If intended for tea, mix in the forenoon. To Cook Griddle-Cakes. A soapstone griddle, which needs no greasing, is the best ; but of whatever material, let it be large enough to hold seven cakes. Let it heat while you are making the cakes. If an iron griddle be used, put a piece of salt pork two inches square on a fork ; and when the griddle is hot enough for the fat to sizzle, rub it all over with the pork. Just grease it ; do not leave little pools of fat on the edge to burn, and smoke the cakes. Take up a tablespoonful of the mixture, and pour it from the end of the spoon. The mixture should hiss or sizzle as it touches the griddle. Put one in the centre and six around the outside. By the time you have the seventh cake on, the first one will be full of bubbles and ready to turn ; and when the seventh is turned, the first will have stopped puffing and be done. Wipe the griddle with a dry cloth, and grease again after each baking. Turn your griddle often, bringing each edge of it in turn over the hottest part of the stove, that the cakes may cook evenly. Always mix waffles or griddle-cakes in a bowl with a lip, and beat up the mixture well between each baking. ioo The Boston Cook Book. Griddle-Cakes. 1 pint flour. } teaspoonf ul salt. 1 scant pint sour milk or cream. 2 eggs, well beaten. 1 teaspoonf ul soda. Crush, measure, and sift the soda and salt into the flour. Mix thoroughly. Add the milk, and beat well ; then add the beaten yolks, and lastly, the whites, beaten stiff. Bake on a hot, well-greased griddle ; turn when full of bubbles, and bake on the other side till they stop puffing. Use one half or one third fine corn meal or Gra- ham flour, to make a variety. To make Huckleberry Griddle- Cakes, add one pint of berries, picked over and rolled in flour. Some persons prefer to mix the sour milk with the flour, and let the mixture stand over night. In the morn- ing add the salt, soda, and eggs. Sour milk is the best for griddle-cakes, and when thick- ened just right, the cakes are very good without the eggs. Race or Hominy Griddle-Cakes (no Soda). 1 cup sweet milk. 1 cup warm boiled rice, or fine hominy. % teaspoonful salt. 2 eggs, yolks and whites beaten separately. 1 tablespoonful melted butter. Flour enough to make a thin batter. Bake either as griddle-cakes or waffles. Bread Griddle-Cakes. 1 pint stale (not dried) bread- 1 1 pint milk, scalded, crumbs. | 1 tablespoonful butter. Pour the hot milk over the crumbs, add the butter, and soak over night or till the crumbs are softened. Then rub through a squash strainer ; add 2 eggs, yolks and whites beaten I % teaspoonful salt. separately. 2 level teasp. baking-powder. 1 cup flour. I Cold milk to thin it if needed. Bake slowly : spread with butter and sugar, and serve hot. Buckwheat Cakes. IOI Raised Graham Griddle- Cakes. Mix one pint of milk, scalded and cooled, one cup of whole-wheat flour, one cup of white flour, one fourth of a cup of liquid yeast. Let it rise over night. In the morning add half a teaspoonful of salt, one tablespoonful of mo- lasses, one saltspoonful of soda. If too thick, add a little warm water. These are more wholesome than buckwheat cakes. Buckwheat Cakes. Pour one pint of boiling water on half a cup of fine corn meal; add half a teaspoonful of salt. Mix well, and when lukewarm add half a cup of white flour, one cup of buckwheat flour, one fourth of a cup of yeast. Beat vigorously. Let it rise over night. In the morning stir down, and beat again. When risen and ready to bake, add one saltspoonful of soda, sifted through a fine strainer. Beat again, and fry in large cakes. Buckwheat cakes, even if not sour, usually require the addition of soda just before baking, to make them light and tender. But when in their best estate, they are far from perfect food. They should be eaten only in very cold weather, and but seldom even then. They are better and brown better when made with boiling milk instead of water. Corn Meal Slappers, or Griddle-Cakes (no Soda). 1 pint corn-meal. 1 teaspoonful butter. 1 saltspoonful salt. 1 teaspoonful sugar. Pour into this mixture boiling milk or water enough to wet the meal. When cool, add two eggs, well beaten, and cold milk enough to make a very thin batter. Pease Griddle-Cakes. Take green pease which have been boiled, but are too hard to eat as a vegetable. Drain very dry, then mash, IO2 -The Boston Cook Book. and rub the pulp through the squash strainer. Or boil one cup of split pease till very tender, letting the water boil away. Drain, mash, and rub through a squash strainer, and use the same as the squash in squash griddle- cakes. Squash Griddle-Cakes. 1 cup boiling milk. 1 cup sifted squash. 1 tablespoonful butter. 1 tablespoonful sugar. % teaspoonf ul salt. 1 egg. 3 level teasp. baking-powder. 1 cup flour. Pour the boiling milk into the squash ; add the butter, sugar, and salt. When cool, add the egg, well beaten, then the baking-powder, mixed and sifted with the flour. If too thin, use more flour ; and if too thick, add a little milk. The dry mealy squash is the best. French Pancakes (no Soda). (Miss Parloa.) V * 3 eggs. 1 cup milk. % teaspoonful salt. 1 teaspoonful sugar. % cup flour. % tablespoonful salad oil. Beat the yolks and whites separately. Add the milk, salt, and sugar to the } 7 olks. Pour one third of this mix- ture on the flour, and stir to a smooth paste. Add the remainder of the milk, and beat well ; then add the oil. Heat and butter a small frying-pan, and pour into it enough of the mixture to cover the pan ; when brown, turn and brown the other side. Spread with butter and sugar or jelly ;. roll up, and sprinkle with powdered sugar. Fried Drop Cakes. The fat for fried cakes should be clean, new fat, half lard and half clarified beef drippings. By new fat is meant fat that has not been used for meat or fish, or be- come browned by previous frying. The same fat may be used several times by clarifying with several thin slices of raw potato, and straining through a fine strainer after each frying. "\Vhen it becomes too brown for any Fried, Muffins. 103 flour mixtures, it will answer for croquettes or fish balls. It should be very hot, and still, not bubbling; but not as hot as for mixtures which have been previously cooked. The surest way is to fry a bit of the mixture. It should rise at once to the surface, with much spluttering of the fat, swell, and begin to brown on the under side. Drop cakes will usually turn over themselves, but doughnuts and fritters should be turned. They should be cooked an even golden brown, and the fat be kept at the right tem- perature by moving the kettle farther from or nearer to the fire. Try them with a fork, and if it come out clean, they are done. Drain each cake over the hot fat, and when they cease to drip, put them in a squash strainer placed in a pan on the back of the stove, or drain on soft brown paper. Change the first cooked to another pan when the next are ready to be taken out. If the fat be not hot enough, or if there be too much soda, doughnuts will absorb the fat. The alkali in them unites with the grease, as it does in making soap. The eggs will prevent the cakes from soaking in the fat, and it is healthful and more economical to use them. Fried Flour Muffins. (Miss I. A . Maynard.) 1 egg. % cup sugar, cup milk. 1 saltspoonful salt. Flour enough to make a stiff batter. 3 level teasp. baking-powder. Mix salt and baking-powder with two cups of flour. Beat the egg very light ; add the sugar, and beat again. Add the milk, then the flour, with enough more, if needed, to make a stiff batter. Drop from a spoon into hot fat. Fried Corn Meal Cakes. (Miss Ward.) One pint of milk, poured boiling hot upon one cup of corn meal; add one heaping tablespoonful of sugar, and half a teaspoonful of salt. Let it stand all night, or till well swollen ; then add two eggs and half a cup of flour. Fry in hot lard. IO4 Tfie Boston Cook Book, Fried Rye Muffins. % cup rye meal. % cup flour. ^ teaspoonful soda and 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar, or 1 tablespoon ful sugar. 1 saltspoouful salt. 1 egg. y% cup milk. 3 level teasp. baking-powder. Mix in the order given, and drop from a small table- spoon into hot fat. Cook until the muffins will not stick when tried with a fork. Fried Rye Muffins (Sour Milk). 1 pint sour milk. )^ cup of molasses. 1 saltspoonful salt. 1 saltspoonful cinnamon. 1 teaspoonful soda. 2 eggs. Rye flour to make a stiff drop batter. Fry as in the preceding rule. Sour Milk Doughnuts. (Mrs. Henderson.) Two eggs, beaten light, one cup of sugar, three even table- spoonfuls of melted butter, one cup of sour milk (or if sweet milk be used, add one teaspoonful of cream of tartar) , four cups of flour, with half a teaspoonful of soda, and one salt- spoonful each of cinnamon and salt. Enough more flour to make just soft enough to roll out. Mix the dough rather soft at first. Have the board well floured, and the fat heating. Roll only a large spoonful at first. Cut into rings with an open cutter. Mix the trimmings with another spoonful. Work it slightly till well floured, and roll again. Roll and cut all out before frying, as that will demand your whole attention. Remember that the fat should be hot enough for the dough to rise to the top instantly. Doughnuts, No. 2. 1 quart flour. % cup sugar. % teaspoonful salt. % teaspoonful soda. 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar. 1 saltspoonful cinnamon or nut- meg. 1 egg. Milk enough to moisten to a stiff dough. Doughnuts. 105 Doughnuts, No. 3. 1 egg. 1 cup sugar. I tablespoocful melted butter. 1 cup milk. \\2 teaspoonf ul salt. % teaspoonful soda and 1 teaspoonful weam of tartar, or 4 level teasp. baking-powder. 1 saltspoonfnl cinnamon. Flour enough to roll out. Raised Doughnuts. 1 pint risen milk bread dough. 1 cup sugar. 2 eggs. 1 tablespoonful melted butter. Spice to taste. Flour enough to roll out These are more wholesome than those made with soda. Crullers. (A. W.) 1 tablespoonful melted tutter. 2 heaping tablespoonfuls sugar. 1 egg, yolk and white beaten sep- arately. % saltspoonful cinnamon or mace. % saltspoonful salt. Flour enough to roll out. Roll the dough one fourth of an inch thick. Cut in rectangular pieces, two and a half by three and a half inches ; then make five in- cisions lengthwise, cutting to within one third of an FIG. 5. Cruller. Pro. 6. Cruller after Folding. inch at each end Take up every other strip, fold each strip together slightly in the middle, and drop them into hot fat. lo6 The Boston Cook Book. Wonders, or Cheats. Beat one egg ; add one saltspoonful of salt and enough flour to make a very stiff batter. Roll out as thin as a wafer, cut with large round cutter, and fry one minute in hot fat. Serve with honey or syrup, or with cream and jelly, or any delicate pudding sauce. Henriettes. 1 egg, yolk and white beaten sep- arately. % cup cream. 1 saltspoonful salt. 1 saltspoonful baking-powder. % saltspoonful cinnamon. 1 teaspoonf ul wine or brandy. Flour enough to roll out. Roll as thin as a wafer, and cut with a pastry j agger into small squares or diamonds. Fry in boiling lard. Drain, and sprinkle with powdered sugar. Or add less flour, make a thick, stiff batter instead of a dough, and press the batter through a pastry tube into boiling lard, making rings or any shape preferred. Cinci, or Rags. 1 cup flour. I % cup boiling water. 1 saltspoonful salt. 1 egg. Pour the boiling water gradually upon the flour and salt, and stir to a smooth paste ; cool, add the egg, and beat well. Press through a pastry tube into hot lard. Drain, and sprinkle with sugar. Fritter Batter (for Oysters, Clams, or Fruit). Yolks of two eggs, beaten well ; add half a cup of milk or water, and one tablespoonful of olive oil, one saltspoonful of salt, and one cup of flour, or enough to make it almost a drop batter. When ready to use, add the whites of the eggs, beaten ver}^ stiff. If intended for fruit, add a tea- spoonful of sugar to the batter. If for clams, tripe, or meat, lof add one tablespoonful of lemon juice or vinegar. This bat- ter will keep several days. Oyster Fritters. Boil the oysters till the liquor flows freely. Drain, strain the liquor, and use it to make a bat- ter, as in the preceding rule. Dip each oyster in the batter and fry until brown in hot fat. Clam Fritters. Drain the clams, and chop the hard part. Use the liquor to make a fritter batter. Add the clams and fry by small spoonfuls in hot fat. Clams in the shell should be steamed and dressed. Drain, and dip each whole clam into the batter. If large and tough, chop the hard part, and use the same as raw clams. Apple Fritters. Core and pare three or four apples, but do not break them. Cut them in slices one third of an inch thick, leaving the opening in the centre. Sprinkle with sugar, lemon, and spice. Dip each slice in the fritter batter and fry in hot fat. Drain, and sprinkle with pow- dered sugar. Vegetables for fritters, such as celery, salsify, or parsnip, should be boiled till tender, then drained and cut into small pieces ; then stir them into the fritter batter. Swedish Timbale Cups. Make one half the recipe for Fritter Batter, without separating the eggs, put the batter in a cup, heat the timbale iron in hot fat, then lower it into the batter about one inch, turn it partly over as you take it out, plunge it into deep hot fat, and when browned slightly, remove, drain, and remove cup from the iron. Parmesan Fritters, for Soup. Boil four tablespoons of water (or five of milk) with one rounded tablespoon of butter and a pinch of salt. Stir in quickly one third of a cup of flour ; when well mixed, remove ; add three table- spoons grated Parmesan ; cool, and add three unbeaten eggs, reserving one white. Beat well, and drop in bean- like bits from a teaspoon into deep hot fat. Cook till a light brown, drain, and serve with cream soups. The Boston Cook Book, OATMEAL, INDIAN CORN, AND OTHER GRAINS USED AS FOOD. Oatmeal is highly nutritious, being richer in nitrogen than any other grain ; but as it does not contain a tough, adhesive gluten, like wheat, it is not easily made into fer- mented bread. Its nitrogenous matter resembles casein more than gluten, and is called avenin (from avena, the oat). It is used as a mush or porridge, eaten with sugar and milk. It is rich in food for muscle and brain, useful for children and laboring people, but irritating to many . people whose digestive powers are weak. Groats, or Grits, are oats from which the outer husk and inner flinty cuticle are removed. Indian Corn is used in many forms. Some varieties which contain a large proportion of sugar, are eaten green from the cob as a vegetable. The whole grains, hulled, are eaten as samp ; broken grains of various sizes, as hominy ; the ground grains, as either coarse or fine meal. Meal grows musty very quickly when ground by the old process, owing to the moisture of the corn and the heat of the stones. In the new-process, or granulated, meal the corn is first dried for two years, then ground into coarse grains like sugar. Indian corn is also used in the form of a very fine powder, called cornstarch. Corn meal, when cooked, is best made into small loaves or cakes and eaten hot. It is rich in nitrogen, and contains more fat than the other grains. This causes it to attract the ox}'gen from the air, and spoil rapidly. It should be purchased in small quantities. It is better adapted to strong labor- ing people, as it is very heating for persons with weak digestion. Cereals. 109 Rye meal and flour are used, more especially in New England, in the form of bread and mush. Rye is sweeter than wheat, and makes a moist bread which can be kept for some time without becoming hard and unpalatable. Rye should be purchased in small quantities, kept in a cool, dry place, sifted and examined thoroughly before using. Barley is used in soups and sometimes in gruels. It cannot be made into good bread, as it has too little gluten. s It is nutritious, being rich in phosphates. It contains starch and mucilage, and, in the form of gruel, makes a soothing drink in fevers. The husk is removed, the grains are ground and polished, and then it is termed pearl barley. Barley crystals or flakes and granulated barley are also used. Buckwheat has less flesh-forming and more heat-giving elements than wheat. It is therefore suitable only when used in cold weather and by those who labor hard or exer- cise freely. It is used principally in the form of griddle- cakes. j Rice contains very little of the flesh-forming element ( It has more starch and less fat than any other grain. It is cheap, and is largely used by people in very hot cli- mates. It should always be used with milk, eggs, or some fatty substance. Rice is easily digested. Oatmeal Mush. One cup of B. B. oatmeal, and one teaspoonful of salt, to a scant quart of boiling water. Put the meal and salt in the top of the double boiler ; add the boiling water. Place the upper boiler on the stove, and boil rapidly eight or ten minutes, stirring occasionally with a fork. Then place it over the hot water, and cook from forty to sixty minutes if liked dry, from two to three hours if liked very soft. Re- move the cover just before serving, and stir with a fork to let the steam escape, to dry it off. Served with baked apples and sugar and cream. Oatmeal comes in three grades. B. B. is the whole oat with the outer husk removed. It is less pasty than the no The Boston Cook Book. finer grades. The Scotch consider the coarse oatmeal the best, the finer kinds being only suitable for children and invalids. Oatmeal, rice, or any mush that contains much starch, is more easily digested if it is masticated, and mixed with the saliva. When eaten as a soft porridge and still fur- ther thinned with milk, if it be swallowed whole, the saliva has no chance to do its part, and the whole process of the digestion of the starch is left for the intestines. The meal should be thoroughly cooked, stiff, and dry, rather than thin. Hominy, cracked wheat, and granulated wheat are cooked in the same way, using only three cups of boiling water instead of one quart. The cracked wheat may be poured into a mould wet with cold water, and when jellied eaten cold with sugar and cream. Whole wheat requires jive cups of boiling water to one cup of wheat, and should cook six hours. Hasty Pudding, or Indian Meal Mush. Put one quart of water on to boil. Mix one pint of corn meal, one teaspoonful of salt, and one tablespoonful of flour with one pint of cold milk. Stir this gradually into the boiling water and boil half an hour, stirring often. Eat it hot, with milk, and only in cold winter weather. Fried Hasty Pudding. jook as above and pour it into a brickloaf pan ; when cool, cut into three-quarter inch slices. Dip them in flour, and brown each side in hot fat in a frying-pan. Or dip in crumbs, egg, and again in crumbs, and/ry in deep fat. Any of these mushes may be fried the same way. When eaten with bacon, they make a nice relish for breakfast. Tea. in BEVERAGES. Tea. THERE are three varieties of the tea-plant ; both black and green tea can be prepared from them all. Green tea is made from }*oung leaves steamed, roasted, and dried quickly on copper plates. Black tea is made from leaves which have been exposed to the air ten or twelve hours before roasting. The action of the air upon the leaves during this long exposure causes the dark color. Green tea gives up less of its juices in drying, and this accounts for its energetic action on the nervous system. The tea-leaf contains the largest amount of nutritive matter of any plant used as human food, though only a small portion of it is extracted by our common method of making tea. There is a large proportion of casein in the leaves. Many of the savage tribes of Tartaiy boil the leaves with soda, and eat them with salt and butter. But in our method of using tea as a beverage merely, we use such a comparatively small quantity that the amount of nutriment is very little ; its chief value being the sense of warmth and comfort that it gives. It excites the brain to increased activity, and produces wakefulness ; hence it is useful to students and night- workers. It retards the action of the natural functions, causes less waste, and, to a certain extent, saves food. For this reason, when not used in excess, it is suited to poor people, whose supplies of substantial food are scanty ; and to old persons, whose powers of digestion and whose bodily substance have begun to fail. It should not be used early in che morning, as the body needs immediate nourishment in a larger quantity ; and it should at all times be taken moderately, both as to quantit}' and strength. 112 The Boston Cook Book. The water should be freshly boiled. Scald and heat the teapot, which should be of earthen or china, never of tin. Allow one teaspoonful of tea for one cup of boiling water. Reduce the proportion of tea when several cups are required. Put the tea in a strainer, pour through it half a cup of boiling water to cleanse the grounds. Then put the tea in the teapot ; pour on the boiling water ; cover closely and place it where it will keep hot, but not boil, for five minutes. If cold or lukewarm water be used in making tea, the thein, or nitrogenous substance, will not be obtained. In boiling tea or allowing the leaves to remain long in the tea, by repeated steeping, the fragrant aroma is wasted and the tannin is extracted, which may cause gastric dis- orders to those who drink it. Never make tea in a tin teapot, as the tannic acid acts upon the metal and produces a poisonous compound. A slice of lemon is a good substitute for milk in tea. The lemon prevents the headache and sleeplessness which the tea causes in some persons. A French chemist recommends grinding tea like coffee. It will yield nearly double the amount of its exhilarating quality. Also to put a lump of sugar into the teapot with the tea. Iced Tea, or Russian Tea. Make the tea by the first receipt, strain it from the grounds, and keep it cool. When ready to serve, put two cubes of block sugar in a glass, half Jill with broken ice, add a slice of lemon, and fill the glass with cold tea. Coffee. Coffee grows on small trees. Mocha, the best variety, is grown in Arabia. Other choice kinds come from Java, the West Indies, and South America. The fruit of the coffee tree is something like the cherry, and contains two seeds or beans. Bruising the fruit separates the berries, Coffee. 113 which are then washed and dried. The raw berries are tough, difficult to grind, and have but little flavor. Coffee should be roasted and kept in air-tight cans, that the fine flavor may be perfectly developed and preserved. Coffee is more stimulating than tea, and, when taken very strong after a hearty meal, aids digestion. It should be made in such a way that the full strength and aroma are obtained, without developing the tannic acid. This is done by pour- ing boiling water upon the coffee and keeping it in a closely covered vessel just below the boiling-point, or boiling not longer than five minutes. If allowed to boil longer, or left uncovered, the volatile oil which forms the fragrant aroma is dissipated, and the tannic acid extracted. This acid, when combined with cream or milk, forms a leathery, indigestible compound which irritates the internal membranes. The proportion of one third Mocha and two thirds Java coffee is agreeable to most people. Many prefer to roast and grind the coffee for themselves ; but in coffee-houses the arrangements for roasting are now so complete, that it is well for small families to buy coffee already roasted, and to grind it as needed, or buy it ground in a small quantity. The coffee-pot should be of granite ware or porcelain, and kept scrupulously clean, cleansing the spout as well as the pot every time it is used. A brownish deposit is soon formed on the inside of the pot, if the coffee be allowed to stand in it long, or if it be not often scoured. Man}' a cup of ill-flavored coffee is owing to its having been made in an unclean pot. The proportions are, one heaping tablespoonful of coffee to one cup of boiling water, reducing the proportion slightly when several cups are required. Half a cup of ground coffee is enough for one quart of water, and will make sufficient for five people. It takes a greater pro- portion of coffee and water, and it is more difficult to make just enough for one person than for more, as the last coffee poured out is not as clear as the first. The 8 H4 The Boston Cook Be old notion of allowing extra for the pot is not without reason. Fish glue or inferior isinglass, which can be purchased at a druggist's, is a cheap and convenient article to use in clearing coffee. Egg shells should be saved and used for the same purpose. Wipe the eggs as soon as they come from the market, and then the shells may all be used. Two or three shells contain albumen sufficient to clear a quart of coffee. Various modifications of the biggin, or French coffee-pot, are in use, and the coffee made in them is excellent, as none of the aroma is wasted. They are generally quite expensive, and some soon get out of order, if not handled carefully. The spout of the coffee-pot should be closed with a cork, or a thimble fitted for that purpose, or a piece of soft brown paper twisted so as to form a stopper. This prevents the escape of the steam and aroma. Coffee, if allowed to boil, should stand at least ten minutes after boiling, to give it time to settle and become clear. Roasting Coffee. Put one pound of raw coffee in a small frying-pan; Place it on the stove, and shake and stir occasionally for fifteen minutes, or till yellow. Then cover it, and increase the heat, and shake till the kernels are all a deep cinnamon or chestnut color, and have an oily appearance. Be careful that none are burned. Keep it covered, and when still warm, not hot, add one egg and its shell. Beat until every kernel is coated with the egg. The egg will dry quickly. It helps to preserve the flavor, is the cheapest form in which to use egg for clearing, and does not interfere with the grinding of the coffee. Coffee should be kept in air-tight tin cans, and ground only as required. The finer it is ground, the stronger will be the extract* Coffee. US Coffee (Common Coffee-Pot). 1 heaping tablesp. ground coffee. I 1 egg shell. 1 square inch isinglass, or | 1 cup freshly boiling water. Scald the coffee-pot. Put in the coffee and isinglass. Add the boiling water. Cover the spout, and boil just five minutes. Stir it well. Set the pot on the back of the stove, where it will keep hot, but not boil. Add half a cup of cold water. Pour out a little of the coffee and pour it back again to clear the grounds from the spout. Let it stand at least ten minutes. If served in the pot, be careful- not to roil the coffee by shaking the pot or by careless pour- ing. A tablespoonful of caramel mixed with the ground coffee gives additional flavor and color. Steamed Coffee. The same proportions as in the preceding rule. Place the coffee-pot in a kettle of boiling water, or make the coffee in a granite double boiler kept expressly for that purpose, and steam twenty minutes. Pour it from the grounds into a hot coffee-pot for serving. Coffee made with Cold Water. Put the required propor- tion of cold water and coffee into a china or granite coffee- pot, cover closely, and let it stand over night. In the morning let it just come to the boiling-point, and serve at once. J 4 '. needs no straining nor clearing. (Miss Devereux.} Coffee made with an Egg. One egg is sufficient to clear one cup of ground coffee. If a smaller quantity be desired, half an egg may be used, as, if fresh, the remainder will keep till the next day. Or the whole egg may be beaten with the ground coffee, and such portion of it used as is needed, keeping the remainder closely covered. To make the coffee, add half a cup of cold water to the portion of egg to be used and one third of a cup of coffee. n6 The Boston Cook Book. Beat well ; put it in the hot coffee-pot ; add one pint of boiling water and boil five minutes. Keep it hot, but not boiling, for ten minutes. Pour out a little and pour it back to clear the spout. Filtered Coffee. This is made in a French biggin, or any double coffee- pot fitted with one or more strainers. The coffee, which is ground very fine, is placed in the strainer ; this is put into the receptacle for holding the made coffee, the boiling water is poured in and allowed to drip slowly through the coffee. If there be only two parts to it, the coffee-pot should stand where the coffee will keep hot. but not boil. Many of the coffee-pots made on this principle are placed in another vessel containing boiling water. To serve Coffee. Cream, scalded milk, and block sugar are essential to good breakfast coffee. Put in one tablespoonful of cream and two tablespoonfuls of milk, and fill the cup three fourths full. Never fill to overflowing. Let each person add the sugar desired, unless you know the individual tastes of the fam- ily. The milk should be just hot, but never boiled, as boiled milk gives a very unpleasant flavor. After-dinner coffee, or black coffee, is made by either of the receipts previously given, using double the proportion of coffee : two heaping tablespoonfuls of coffee to one cup of water. It should be very strong and perfectly clear ; served in small cups, with block sugar if desired, but not with cream or milk, as the milk counteracts the purpose for which the coffee is taken. The addition of three tablespoonfuls of whipped cream to a cup of coffee gives Vienna Coffee. An equal amount of boiled milk and filtered coffee is called Cafe au Lait. Cocoa and Chocolate. Cocoa is the fruit of a small tree which grows in Mexico, Central America, and the West Indies. The fruit is shaped Cocoa. ii 7 like a large, thick cucumber, and contains from six to thirty beans. The beans are roasted, like coffee. The husks or shells are taken off, and used in that form as cocoa shells. The}' need longer boiling, and are preferred by many persons with weak digestion. They are some- times ground with the bean, making an inferior article of cocoa. Starch is also used to adulterate cocoa. The best cocoa is made from the whole bean after the husk is re- moved. Cocoa nibs are the beans broken instead of ground. Chocolate is the finely ground powder from the kernels mixed to a stiff paste with sugar, and sometimes flavored with vanilla. It is the most nutritious and convenient form of cocoa ; a small cake of it will satisfy hunger. It is a very good lunch for travellers. If the oily scum which forms on the surface after boiling be removed, it is less indigestible. Chocolate does not produce the injurious effects which render tea and coffee objectionable, and is far better for children and working-people. Cocoa. Put half a cup of broken cocoa into a pot with tw o quarts of water. Boil gentty two hours, until reduced to one quart ; or use half cocoa and half shells. Serve with sugar and cream, or scalded milk. It is more digestible if allowed to cool and the globules of fat removed, then reheated. Prepared Cocoa. This ground cocoa comes in man}' forms, and some are recommended to be prepared at the table ; but all kinds are better boiled one minute in a very little water, the same as chocolate, and thinned with hot milk. Shells. Steep one cup of shells in one quart of boiling water three or four hours, adding more hot water as it boils away. Strain, and serve with hot milk, or cream and sugar. The Boston Cook Book. Chocolate. Put one square of Baker's chocolate, two tablespoonfuls of sugar, two tablespoonfuls of hot water, and a pinch of salt in a small saucepan, and boil until smooth ; stir constantly ; add gradually one pint of boiling water, and when read} 7 to serve add one pint of hot milk. Use all milk and two squares of chocolate, if liked richer ; or thicken with one teaspoon- ful of cornstarch wet in a little cold water, and boil five min- utes before adding the milk. German, or Sweetened Vanilla Chocolate. Melt two sticks of chocolate in two or three tablespoonfuls of hot water. . Stir to a smooth paste ; add gradually one pint of hot milk and stir or mill it five minutes. Serve in cups three quarters full with two or three tablespoonfuls of whipped cream on the top. Sweeten and flavor the cream before whipping. Hot Milk. Heat the milk over boiling water until it is barely hot, but not scalded. Test the heat by tasting. Shake in a few grains of salt, and sip it by the teaspoonful. One of the best " nightcap drinks." Lemonade. Boil one cup of sugar and one pint of water ten minutes ; add thin shavings of the yellow peel of one lemon, and pour it hot over the juice of three lemons. When cold, strain it, and add chipped ice and water as desired. Fruit Punch. Boil two cups of sugar and one quart of water twenty minutes. Pour it boiling hot over the following mixture : half a cup each of lemon and orange juice, one cup of strawberry juice, half a cup of canned cherry syrup, and one cup of chopped pineapple. When ready to serve, strain it, dilute with ice water, and add one cup of fresh strawberries quartered, one banana sliced, and half a cup stoned cherries. Dilute with Apollinaris if preferred. Soup. i 19 SOUP. NOTHING can be easier than to make a good soup if one only knows how and has the will to do it ; and if one will, it is easy to know how. Considerations of econ- omy and healthfulness make it the duty of every house- keeper to thoroughly inform herself on the few essential points in soup-making. When these are learned it will be as simple as any other duty. As soups are not made from nothing, a supply of mate- rials should always be kept on hand, such as dried sweet herbs (which may be purchased at any city market for a trifle ; twenty-five cents' worth will last a year or more) ; also whole, as well as ground spices; and, more particu- larly, fresh vegetables, onions, carrots, and turnips. If we had access to the French market, we could buy the smallest amount whenever it might be desired; but as only a few marketmen in America will sell a single onion or a single carrot, it is well for those who cannot cultivate for themselves to purchase in large quantities. They may be kept in a cool place by covering with clean sand. Parsley may be grown in the house if you have a sunny window; and we can all have salt and pepper. Now, having these seasoning materials always at hand, you may easily find other material in the store-room, or from the day's supply of fresh meat, fish, etc., without buying expressly for soup ; that is, if you, instead of the market- man, have the bones and trimmings. Every pantry should have a " catch all." It is vastly more important there than in the sewing-room or on the toilet-table. The coal-hod, refuse pail, and sink catch all in many households. One or two large bowls not tin, but deep earthen dishes, provided they are sw^et and do 120 The Boston Cook Book. not leak will better answer the pnrpose. After breakfast or dinner, do not put away the remnants of steaks 01 roasts on the platters, but look them over and put by themselves any pieces that can be used again, either cold or in what are called made dishes. Then put all the bones, trimmings, fat, gristle, and everything, especially the platter gravy, which usually flavors the dish-water, into the " catch all." If you have just one bone from a steak or chop, if it be not burned it is worth saving, and in cool weather will keep till you have another. If there be a tablespoonful of any vegetables, a stalk of celery, an egg, baked apple, or a bit of macaroni, put them away neatly. You will find a use for them. If } T OU have boiled a fresh tongue, a fowl, a leg of lamb, or a cup of rice, plan to make a soup also, and thus save the water. This economy may be carried to the extreme of saving the water in which cabbages, beans, or potatoes have been boiled, or of keep- ing a fire several hours in a hot day only to save a few cents' worth of bone, or of spoiling all the soup by adding a spoonful of turnip already sour ; but as a rule we err in the opposite practice. Soups are made from meat, fish, and vegetables, with water or milk ; seasoned or flavored with any or every kind of vegetable, sweet herbs, spices, curry powder, catchups, aromatic sauces, and with some kinds of fruit. They are served thin and clear, or thickened with vegeta- bles or cereals, and with or without meat. Soups are classified and named in various ways, accord- ing to material, color, quality, etc. Soups with stock have meat as the basis. Soups without stock are made of fish, vegetables, and milk. They are sometimes called soup maiyre. Soups are named from the principal ingredient, or an imitation of the same, as Potato, Onion, Beef, Mutton, Chicken, Gumbo, Macaroni, Okra, Ox-tail, Gib- let, Cock-a-leekie, Lobster, Mock Turtle, Mock Bisque, etc. ; or from the color, as Clear, or Amber, Brown, and White ; or from the consistency, as Thin soups and Purees ; or from the quality, as simple Broths, Bouillon, and Con- Stock. 121 soinme ; or from the season of the year, as Julienne ; or from the people who use them, as Scotch Broth, French Pot-au-feu, Indian Mullagatawney ; or from the name of the makers, or in any way one's fancy and invention may suggest. But from the scores, yes, hundreds of receipts in the cook-books, which seem so bewildering to the be- ginner, a few simple rules may be deduced which will make the process of soup-making intelligible ; and when once the foundation is laid, you may build and enlarge as you choose. Do not be discouraged because you have not all the dozen or more ingredients mentioned in most receipts. You will find many of them may be omitted with a per- fectly satisfactory result. Much depends upon what is omitted, though, as Potage k la Reine without chicken, or Julienne without vegetables, or Mullagatawney without curry powder, would disappoint those who think only of the name ; but, called by any other name, you would find them very good soups. Soups with Stock. Soups made with stock include all the varieties made from beef, veal, mutton, and poultry. Perhaps a glance at the meaning of the word stock will make clear its appli- cation to cookery. Stock is from the Anglo-Saxon stician, to stick, and the idea of fixedness is expressed in all its forms. Stock in trade or business means the money or material laid b}', or stored, stocked, fixed, us a source of supply, ready for use at any time ; and in the business of soup-making, stock is the material stored or prepared in such a way that it may be kept or fixed for use in making different kinds of meat soup ; or, more definitely, it is a liquid containing the juices and soluble parts of meat, bone, and vegetables, which have been extracted by proper cooking. This liquid is more or less solid when cold, according to the" gelatinous nature of the ingredients. It varies greatly in qualit}*, owing to the manner in which it is prepared and the material used. 122 The Boston Cook Book. Stock is usually made from the cheaper, inferior parts of meat, which yield the most nutriment when cooked in this way ; also from odds and ends of cooked meat, which perhaps could not be used otherwise. The chief object in making stock is to obtain in the quickest manner the largest possible amount of nutriment from the cheap- est parts of meat, and after getting it to keep and use it. This is best accomplished by observing the following rules : First. Cut the meat into small pieces, and soak them in cold water before heating, that every atom of nourish- ment may be extracted. Cold water draws out and dissolves the meat juices, while hot water hardens the albumen on the outside of the meat and prevents the juices from escaping into the liquid. Second. Use a careful selection and proportion of meat, bone, and water, and season judiciously, so that no one flavor will predominate. Third. Use a steam-tight kettle, and simmer, not boil the material rapidly, that the juices may be retained in the water, and not wasted by evaporation. Fourth. Make stock the day before using, if possible, that the fat may be more easily removed ; but do not give up making it simply from "lack of time," for it can be made quickly. A soup digester is the proper vessel for making stock. This is a porcelain-lined iron kettle with a bale, and hav ing a cover fitting closely into a groove, so that no steam can escape except from the valve in the top of the cover, which at once indicates when the water is boiling rapidly. One holding six quarts, and costing three dollars, is a con- venient size for a small family. If you cannot afford a digester, get a granite ironware kettle, with a tightly fit- ting cover. Plain ironware will do if you have nothing better; but it rusts easily, and, if tin-lined, the tin melts in careless usage. The meats used in making stock should contain gelatine, 9$mazome, and a small amount of fat. Stock. 123 Gelatine is found in the bones, skin, tendinous and gristly portions of flesh, especially in veal. It is this which causes the stock to become a jelly. But a soup which forms a jell}', or is made principally from bones, is not the most nutritious. The jelly of bones and sinews boiled into soup can furnish only jelly for our bones and sinews. It is user ful in convalescence, for then the portions of the system in which gelatine is needed have been wasted ; but in other cases, though easily digested, it is unwholesome, for it loads the blood with disturbing products. It is entirely destitute of flavor, and therefore we need with it meat con- taining osmazome. Osmazome is that part of meat which gives to each of the various kinds its distinctive flavor. It is more abundant in brown than in white meats, and in the meat of old rather than in that of young animals. It is found largely in lean beef, mutton, and fowls. Osmazome is more highly developed in roasted meats ; therefore all the bones and remnants of roasts which cannot be utilized in entrees, should be put into the soup-kettle. We need also the alkaline and acid salts found in the blood and juices of the flesh ; therefore a small portion of raw, lean meat should form a part of ah 1 stock. Fat is necessary, as an element of perfect food, and should alwa} r s be used in making stock. It adds to the flavor, and all that is not absorbed in the stock may be re- moved when cold. The marrow, found in the shin bone, is the best form of fat. The browned fat of roast beef gives a fine flavor, and occasionally a bit of ham or bacon may be used. But all mutton fat should be avoided, be- cause of its rankness. These four kinds of meat beef, mutton, veal, and poul- try may be used together or separately. It is better to use mutton, if in a large quantity, by itself, as the flavor is disagreeable to many. After having extracted all the nutriment from the meat in its juices, fat, albumen, and flavor, do not attempt to make further use of the worthless residue pf muscular fibre. It is not only harmful, but dry, 124 The Boston Cook Book. tasteless, and utterly useless as food. It needs the addi- tion of many other materials to make it palatable even, and it is cheaper to get the fi brine we need from meat cooked in other ways, directions for which will be given under Boiling Meats and Stews. Therefore do not hesi- tate, as a matter of economy, to throw away this useless meat. When fresh meat is bought expressly for stock, select v piece from the shin or lower part of the round of beef or veal. This has bone with marrow, a large proportion of gelatine, more or less osmazome, according to the amount of flesh, and costs less than other parts. In mutton, pieces from the neck and forequarter are the best. Fowls are better than chickens. With this fresh meat may be used the bones and trimmings from steak or chops, and the flank ends of roasting pieces, which yield more nutriment if added to the stock pot before being cooked. Add also any remnants of roasted or broiled meat, bone, fat, gristle, anything except mutton fat. In families where large roasts of beef and poultry are often used, there should be mate- rial enough for stock, without bujdng new meat, except for the nicest of clear soups, which the French call Consomme. The proportions of bone and meat should be about equal by weight. When ready to begin the stock, wipe the fresh meat with a clean cloth wet in cold water. Never put the meat in a pan of cold water to soak. It takes out all the juices that you wish to save. Wipe before cutting. The inside is clean. But rinse the cloth and scrub the outside thoroughly. Cut away thd parts that are tainted or dis- colored by rusty meat-hooks, etc. Examine all the odds and ends of cooked meat, and remove any smoked or burned parts from ham or broiled meat, also the stuffing and skin from roast poultry, if }^ou wish to have the stock clear. Scrape the meat clean from the bones and cut into inch pieces. Break or saw the bones as small as you con- veniently can. Remove the marrow (a soft, fatty sub- stance, which you will find in the hollow of the bones) and put it in the soup kettle to keep the bones from sticking. Stock. 125 Put in the bones and pack the meat around them. Place your kettle on the back of the range before adding the water, so that there need be no heavy weight to lift. Allow one quart of fresh cold water to every pound of meat and bone ; one fourth less water if your stock is to be made altogether of cooked meats, or if } r ou use a digester. Cover the kettle, and after the water is quite red, and the juices are well drawn out, draw the kettle forward and let it heat slowly, and simmer, or boil slowly, but never boil hard. The scum, which soon rises on the surface, is the albu- men and juices of the meat which have been drawn out and mixed with the cold water. They coagulate, or har- den, as the water heats, and, being lighter than the water, rise to the surface in the form of scum. It has usually been considered essential, in making soup, to remove every particle of this scum ; but the practice is wholly unnecessary and wasteful. We learn, in the article on Boiling, the three distinct purposes and methods of cooking meat in water ; and yet in skimming a soup we act directly con- trary to the general principle there explained. If the kettle be clean, the water pure, and the meat well cleansed from any impurities on its outer surface, what can there be in the meat not suitable to eat, an} 7 more than in roast beef, or steak, or boiled mutton ? In making beef tea we are directed by the highest scientific authorities to remove the fat, cut the meat small, soak it in cold water, heat gradu- ally, and never skim, as the scum or thickened material in the water is the very thing desired. Soup is only another form of beef tea, and the fat which is objectionable can better be removed when the stock is cold. These juices and soluble parts of the meat should be retained ; they increase, rather than diminish, the flavor, and all the sedi ment which is fine enough to go through the strainer should be used. In any thickened soup it is so mingled with the other ingredients as not to be unpleasant to the eye. And for those who wish clear soups, which are not as nutritious, this sediment can easily be removed in the clearing. 126 The Boston Cook Book. In a criticism which so decidedly rejects a prevailing custom, it may be well to remark that the method of pre- paring soups which is recommended in the preceding paragraph has been successfully proved in the Boston Cooking School for the last three years. The French, who regard skimming as very important in making their Pot- au-feu, remove the meat as soon as tender, and serve it as bouilli, or boiled beef. As it has not been cut in small pieces, and is heated quickly, some of the juices are re- tained in the meat, and it is nourishing and palatable. Their Pot-au-feu is more like our beef stew than like soup stock. In the preparation of the stock, the next step is to add the seasoning, which may be used in these proportions : For every quart of water, one even teaspoonful of salt, two peppercorns or half a saltspoonful of ground pepper, two doves, two allspice berries, one fourth of a saltspoonful of velery seed or a bit of celery root, a sprig of parsley, a teaspoonful of mixed herbs, and a tablespoonful of each vegetable. Herbs and spices are better whole than ground, as they may be more readily removed by straining. The French cooks use a bouquet of herbs, made with two leaves or blossoms of each herb wrapped in a sprig of parsley and tied securely so that it may be easily removed. A con- venient and economical way is to strip off the leaves and blossoms, break the stalks in tiny pieces, mix them, and keep in a tin box. Use sage, summer savory, thyme, marjo- ram, and bay leaves: a teaspoonful of the mixture (not of each herb) for every quart. The vegetables generally used are onion, carrot, turnip, and celery. It is better to omit them entirely in warm weather, or if you wish to keep the stock more than a week, as the vegetable juices ferment quickly and sour the stock. Wash, scrape, or pare the vegetables ; cut them into small pieces for convenience in measuring, as one onion or one slice of carrot is rather indefinite. Keep them in cold water until the juices are drawn from the meat. Stock. 127 When old or strong, they may be blanched or parboiled first. Onions, potatoes, and cabbage should always be scalded to draw out the indigestible qualities. Some object to the use of onions, particularl} 7 on account of the disagreeable odor ; but when added with the other seasoning material, they are so completely absorbed in the stock that no trace of their presence can be detected. All or part of the vegetables may be fried first, if you like. One or two sour apples give a pleasant flavor to stock. Wines or catchups should be added just before serving, as boiling dissipates the flavor. If you wish to have a dark brown stock, reserve part of the lean meat to brown with the onions. Fry the onions in a little fat, and when very brown remove them, to pre- vent burning, and brown the meat in the same fat. Add the onions and meat to the stock. Take a little water from the stock, and wash off all the browned glaze ad- hering to the frying-pan, as this is the best part. A table- spoonful of browned sugar or caramel (see page 134), which should always be kept on hand, will also give a rich dark color. After the seasoning is placed in the mixture, put the kettle where it will keep at a gentle, steady simmering. Do not let it boil furiously one half- hour and not at all the next, but find the place on the range where it will keep at just the right temperature, and then, if you have a steady fire, it will need no furthei attention until ready to strain. It is hot enough if the water just bubbles on one side of the kettle. When the stock has simmered till the meat is in rags and the bones clean, strain at once. Do not let it stand, if in an iron kettle. If you have used a digester or steam- tight kettle, the water will not have lessened much. If boiled in an ordinary kettle, it will be reduced about one half by evaporation, and may be diluted when ready for the table. Strain in this way. Place a stone jar beside your kettle. It should be of a size suited to the amount of stock. Put a colander over the jar (it should fit inside 128 The Boston Cook Book. it), and a strainer cloth over the colander. Then, with a ladle or dipper, dip the contents of the kettle and pour into the strainer. Never try to lift the kettle and pour it out, unless you have more strength and skill than most beginners. When you have only a pint left, you may try the pouring. Do not squeeze the cloth, but let the con- tents drain ten or fifteen minutes, then throw the scraps awa}\ Remember that you have extracted all the nutri- ment, and have it in the water ; so do not expect to have any virtue in the meat or vegetables. Set the jar in a cool place, uncovered, but not in the ice chest while hot. It keeps better to cool quickly. In cold weather, and if you have used a large proportion of bone, the stock will harden like jelly, with a cake of solid fat on the top. This fat, by excluding the air, helps to keep the stock, and should not be removed until the stock is needed. In winter stock will keep a week, and longer, if made without vegetables. It should be heated occasionally to the boil- ing-point, or after taking off an} 7 portion of it, that what remains may harden again in an unbroken form. A little fresh charcoal tied in a bag and boiled with the stock is said to restore it when only slightly changed. In very warm weather, make only enough for each day, as sometimes it spoils in one night. If you wish to make a soup while the stock is still hot, put what portion you may need into a shallow pan and place the pan in ice water, with a larger pan of ice water over it. This will soon harden the fat ; or if you have not time to do this, take off what fat you can with a spoon, and wipe off the remainder with soft tissue paper, or strain several times through a fine napkin. The grease will adhere to the napkin, which should be rinsed in cold water. That hardens the fat. Or you may let the soup boil gently, and nearly all can be taken off. To remove the fat after the stock has jellied, run a knife around between the cake of fat and the jar. If the fat be solid, it will sometimes come off whole ; but if soft, take off all you can without cutting into the jelly, then wring Clearing Stock. 129 a cloth out of very hot water, and wipe the stock. The hot cloth \\ . absorb the fat readily. Remember, if the soup is to be served clear, not a pin-head of fat must be left ; but if it is to be thickened with any starchy material, this will absorb what cannot be removed with a spoon. This fat must be saved and clarified according to direc- tions on page 18. With this stock for a foundation, you may make an endless variety of soups, each soup taking its name from the principal solid ingredient ; and it is equally valuable to use, instead of water, in making gravies or sauces. No matter how little you have, one cupful is worth more than it costs to make it, as an addition to fricassees and braised meats. This stock, if properly made and strained, will be sufficiently clear for any common soups. But for clear sparkling soups and aspic jelly, it must be clarified with the white of an egg- To clear Soup Stock. Remove the fat, and allow the white and shell of one egg for every quart of stock. If you wish to flavor the stock more highly, add half a saltspoonful of celery seed and the thinnest possible shavings from the rind of half a lemon. 1 Add also the lemon juice, and more salt and pepper if needed. Mix celery seed, lemon, egg, etc. with the cold stock, and beat it well. If the stock be hot when the egg is added, tbe egg will harden before it has done its work. This is a point where many fail. Set it over the fire and stir it ah 1 the time, until it is hot, to keep the egg from settling. Then leave it, and let it boil ten minutes. By this time a thick scum will have formed, and as it breaks the liquid will be clear and sparkling, like wine, and darker than before. Draw it back on the stove, and add half a cup of cold water. Let it stand ten minutes, while you get your jar, colander, and fine napkin ready for straining. Wring your napkin out of hot water, and lay it over the colander. Put the finest wire strainer on the napkin and then pour it all through. This strainer will catch the scum 1 Clear soup should be highly seasoned, as clearing destroys some of the strength. 130 The Boston Cook Book. and shells which would otherwise clog the napkin. Let it take its own time to drain ; but if you must h ten it, raise the napkin first at one corner, and then at another, and let the liquid run down to a clean place. This is better than squeezing. This is all ready to serve as a clear soup by simply heating to the boiling-point. Serve with it, in the tureen, thin slices of lemon, a glass of sherry, yolks of hard-boiled eggs, or delicate flavored force-meat balls ; or put on each plate a poached egg, or a spoonful of grated Parmesan cheese. In making soups from this stock, bear this fact in mind : Do not waste the stock by boiling in it any material which requires long boiling. Vegetables, rice, sago, tapi- oca, macaroni, vermicelli, etc., should be cooked separately and then added to the stock, which should be brought to the boiling-point. The following are some of the principal varieties. These soups are all supposed to have no meat served with them. The broth is clear and thin, and every particle of vegetable or cereal should be distinct, except in the soups called Mixed Vegetable and Tomato. Concise rules for Common Brown Stock and Consomme are given for the benefit of those who do not need to read all the preliminary remarks. Brown Soup Stock. 6 pounds hind shin of beef. 6 quarts cold water. 10 whole cloves. 10 whole peppercorns. 10 allspice. Bouquet of sweet herbs. 1 large tablespoon ful salt 3 small onions. 1 carrot. 1 turnip. 2 stalks celery. 2 sprigs parsley. Wipe and cut the meat and bones into small pieces. Put the marrow, bones, half of the meat, and the cold water into the kettle. Soak half an hour before heating. Add spices and herbs. Brown the onions and the remain- der of the meat, and add them to the stock ; add the veg- etables cut fine. Simmer six or seven hours and strain. Consommt. 137 Bouillon. 4 pounds beef, from the middle of the round. 2 pounds bone. 2 quarts cold water. 1 tablespoonful salt 4 peppercorns. 4 cloves. 1 tablespoonful mixed herb*. Wipe and cut the meat and bones into small pieces; add the water, and heat slowly ; add the seasoning, and simmer five hours. Boil down to three pints ; strain, remove the fat, and season with salt and pepper. Serve in cups at luncheons, evening companies, etc. Boil one onion, half a carrot, and half a turnip with it if you like. Clear, or Amber Soup, or Consomme'. 1 1 tablespoonful salt. 3 onions. 1 carrot. 1 turnip. 2 stalks celery. 2 sprigs parsley. 3 eggs, whites and shells. 1 saltspoonful celery seed. Rind and juice of one lemon. 4 pounds shin of beef. 4 pounds knuckle of veal, or 3 pounds fowl. 4 quarts cold water. 2 ounces lean ham or bacon. 6 cloves. 6 peppercorns. 6 allspice. Bouquet of herbs. Wipe and cut the meat and bones into small pieces. Put the marrow, bones, and part of the meat in the kettle with four quarts of cold water. Heat slowly; cut the onions and vegetables fine, and fry them in the ham fat or in drippings ; then brown the remainder of the meat. Add onions, meat, herbs, spices, and vegetables. Simmer until the meat is in rags ; it will take seven or eight hours. Strain, and when cold remove the fat ; add the whites and shells of the eggs, celery seed, lemon, and salt and pepper if needed. When well mixed, heat it, and boil ten min- utes. Strain through the finest strainer, and heat again to the boiling-point before serving. Serve clear, or with wine or lemon. Clear soup should be perfectly transpar- ent, of a light brown or straw color. 1 Consomme means "consumed, boiled to rags." 132 The Boston Cook Book. Left-over Soup. Bones and trimmings from a 6- pound roast of beef. 2 cold mutton-chops. The flank end of a sirloin steak, uncooked. 4 quarts cold water. 1 tablespoonful salt. 4 cloves. 4 peppercorns. 1 cold fried egg. 2 baked apples. 1 cup cold boiled onions, 2 stalks celery. 1 tablespoonful mixed herbs. Cut up the meat and bones, and put them in the kettle with the cold water. Add all the other ingredients, and simmer till the bones are clean, the meat is in rags, and the water reduced one half. Strain, and the next morning remove the fat ; when ready to serve, heat the stock to the boiling-point ; warm with it one cup of cold macaroni or tomatoes left Irom yesterday's dinner. Add more sea- soning if needed. Julienne Soup. 1 quart stock. 1 pint mixed vegetables. \/ teaspoonful salt. % saltspoonf ul pepper. Cut the celery into thin slices, the turnip into quarter- inch dice, and the carrot into three-quarters by one- eighth inch strips or straws, using only the orange part. Or cut carrot and turnip into quarter-inch slices, and then into fancy shapes with small vegetable cutters. Cover with boiling water, add half a teaspoonful of salt, and cook until soft, but not long enough to destroy their shapes. Let the quart of stock come to a boil ; add the vegetables, the water, and more salt if necessary. Serve hot. In spring and summer use asparagus, peas, and string beans. It is quite important that the vegetables should be small and of uniform thickness ; but if an}' require a longer time to cook, they should be cut into smaller pieces. Brown Soups. 133 Macaroni Soup. 1 quart stock. 3 or 4 sticks macaroni. 1 teaspoonful salt. 3^ saltspoonf ul pepper. Cook the macaroni in boiling salted water, about half an hour, or until tender ; drain, pour cold water through it, to keep it from sticking together. Lay the sticks close together on a board, and divide them into eighth-inch pieces, making tiny rings, or cut them into half-inch pieces. There should be about a pint of macaroni for a quart of stock. Bring the stock to a boil ; add the maca- roni, the salt, and the pepper ; then pour all into the tureen. Vermicelli Soup. 1 quart stock. 1 teaspoonful salt. % cup vermicelli. % saltspoonful pepper. The vermicelli may be broken or not, as you please. Cook about ten minutes in boiling salted water. Drain, put it in the tureen, and pour over it the boiling stock. Spaghetti and Italian Paste may be used in the same way. Rice, Tapioca, Sago, or Barley Soup. 1 quart stock. 2 tablespoonfuls either rice, bar- 1 teaspoonful salt. % saltspoonful pepper. ley, tapioca, or sago. Wash the grains, and cook until tender in boiling salted water ; then add them to the boiling stock. Serve with croutons. Barley should be soaked one hour, and boiled / two hours or more. Vegetables and macaroni are better I with beef stock ; and rice, tapioca, and barley with mutton 3r chicken stock. Tomato Soup with Stock. 1 quart stock. 1 teaspoonful sugar. 1 can tomatoes. 1 teaspoonful salt. 1 saltspoonful pepper. Stew the tomatoes until soft enough to strain. Rub all but the seeds through the strainer. Add the sugar, salt, 134 The Boston Cook Book. and pepper. Add all to the boiling stock. Serve with croutons. Carrot, or Crecy Soup. 1 quart rich, brown stock. 1 pint carrot. 1 teaspoonful sugar. 1 teaspoonful salt. % saltspoonf ul pepper. 1 small onion, sliced. Wash and scrape the carrot ; shave off in thin slices s pint of the outer part. Do not use the yellow centre. Cook the carrot with the onion in boiling salted water to cover, till very tender. Rub the carrot through a squash strainer. Add the stock and heat again. Add the sugar, salt, and pepper, and when hot serve immediately with croutons. Mixed Vegetable Soup. 1 cup strained tomatoes. 1 tablespoonful chopped parsley. 1 teaspoonful sugar. 1 teaspoonful salt. 1 saltspoonf ul pepper. / 1 quart stock. 1 quart boiling water. 1 cup each chopped onion, carrot, and celery. ^ cup each chopped turnip, pars- nip, and cabbage. Use all or as many varieties of vegetables as you wish, or if you have only a few, add macaroni, rice, or barley, having in all half the amount of vegetables that you have of liquid. Chop all the vegetables fine. Cabbage, cauli- flower, parsnip, potatoes, or onions should be parboiled five minutes, and drained carefully. Fry the onions and car- rot ; then put all with the water and stock, and simmer until tender. Add the seasoning. Serve without strain- ( ing. Always add sugar to all mixed vegetable soups. The next division of soups includes those which are thickened in various ways, and in which the meat is served with the soup ; also White Soups, and the materials to be served with soups. Caramel, for coloring Soups, etc. Melt one cup of sugar (either brown or white) with one tablespoonful of water in a frying-pan. Stir until it becomes Soups. 135 of a dark brown color. Add one cup of boiling water; sim- mer ten minutes, and bottle when cool. This should always be kept on hand, as it is useful for many purposes. It gives a rich, dark color to soups, coffee, and jelly ; is more wholesome than browned butter in sauces, and is delicious as a flavoring in custards and pudding sauces. Glaze. ' Glaze is simply clear stock boiled down to one fourth of its original amount. Put two quarts of rich, strong stock into a saucepan, and boil it uncovered until reduced to one pint. It should have a gluey consistency, and will keep a month if put in a closely covered jar in a cool place. It is useful in browning meats which have not been colored by cooking, but which we wish to have the appearance of having been roasted or browned. Thickening for Soups. Soups are thickened with flour, cornstarch, or rice flour : one tablespoonful for a quart of soup, heaping, if flour ; scant, if rice flour or cornstarch. Flour is the cheapest, but cornstarch gives a smoother consistency^ Mix the flour with a very little cold water or milk until it is a smooth paste ; then add more liquid, until it can be poured easily into the boiling soup. Remember to boil the soup fifteen or twenty minutes after the thickening is added, that there may be no raw taste of the flour. Where butter and flour are used, the butter is rubbed to a cream, mixed or braided with the flour, and then made into a paste with a little of the soup. A better way is to put the butter in a small saucepan, and when melted and bubbling stir in the flour quickly, until smooth (be careful not to brown butter for any white soup) ; then add gradually about a cup of the hot soup, letting it boil and thicken as } T OU add the soup. It should be thin enough to pour. In vegetable soups or purees, as soon as the hot butter and flour are blended) 136 The Boston Cook Book. they may be stirred at once into the soup. This is what is meant in many of the receipts by thickening with butter and flour which have been cooked together. The hot but- ter cooks the flour more thoroughly than it can be cooked in any other way. When a brown thickening is desired, as in Mock Turtle Soup, melt the butter and let it become as brown as it will without burning ; then add all the flour at once and stir quickly, that every particle of it may be moistened in the hot butter ; add the water or soup gradually. Flour that is browned while dry, either in the oven or over the fire, colors, but does not thicken. A certain amount of moisture, of either fat or water, is necessary with the heat to thoroughly swell the grains of starch in the flour. Thickened soups should be about the consist- ency of good cream. Purees are thicker. Material to be served with Soup. Croutons, or fried Bread. No. 1. Cut stale bread into half-inch slices, remove the crusts, and cut into half-inch cubes ; put them in a fry ing-basket, plunge into fat hot enough to brown them while } T OU count forty ; drain and sprinkle with salt. They may be fried at any time and heated in the oven just before serving. They are espe- cially nice with pea and bean soup. No. 2. Cut the bread into cubes, and brown in butter in an omelet pan ; or butter first, then cut into cubes and brown in the oven. They are best when prepared after the first receipt. Crisped Crackers. Split butter crackers and spread with butter ; put them, the buttered side up, into a pan, and brown in a hot oven. They are delicious with white or vegetable soups, and in fish chowder and oyster stews. Egg Balls. Boiiybwr eggs twenty minutes ; put them in cold water. When cool, cut carefully through the white, and remove Soups. 137 the yolks whole. They may be served in the soup whoio or cut into quarters. Or put the yolks in a small bowl and rub them to a paste with a wooden spoon. Season with one saUspoonful of salt ; one fourth of a sali&poonfnl of pepper ; one teaspoonful of melted butter. Moisten it with the beaten }*olk or white of one raw egg, using just enough to shape it easily into balls about the size of a walnut Roll in flour and fry in butter ; the same as force-me^t balls. They are sometimes boiled five minutes in the soup, but are better fried. Force-Meat Balls for Soup. 1 cup of any cooked meat. i saltsp. each of salt and thyme. % saltspoonful pepper. 1 teaspoonful lemon juice. 1 teaspoonful chopped parsley. Yolk of 1 raw egg. A few drops onion juice. 1 tablespoonful flour. 1 tablespoonful butter. Chop the meat very fine ; add the seasoning ; beat the yolk of the egg, and add enough of it to moisten the meat ; make it into balls the size of a nutmeg, put them in a soup plate, sprinkle them with flour, shake the plate until the balls are all floured ; put the butter in an omelet pan, and when brown put in the balls, and shake the pan occasion- ally until the balls are browned. Mock Turtle Soup. 1 calf's head. 4 quarts cold water. 1 tablespoonful salt. 6 cloves. 6 peppercorns. 6 allspice. % inch stick cinnamon. Bouquet of herbs. 2 onions. 1 carrot. 1 turnip. Celery root. 2 tablespoonfuls butter. 2 tablespoonfuls flour. 1 pint brown stock. 1 lemon. Wash, scrape, and clean the head, and soak an hour In cold water. Remove the brains and tongue. Lay them 138 The Boston Cook Book. in cold water, to be reserved for separate dishes. Cut the head into four or five pieces, and put it into the kettle with the skin side up, to prevent sticking. Add the cold water ; heat slowly and skim thoroughly, as the meat is to be used again. Add the salt, and simmer two hours, or until the meat slips from the bones. Remove the meat, and put the face meat smoothly on a plate, so it can easily be cut into dice when cool. Reserve the remainder of the meat for force-meat balls. Put the bones on to boil again. Add the herbs, spices, and vegetables, and simmer until reduced to two quarts. Strain, and set awa}^ to cool. Half an hdur before serving, remove the fat, put the stock on to boil, and season with one saltspoonful each of ground thyme or marjoram and pepper, and one teaspoonful of salt. Make a brown thickening with two tablespoonfuls of butter, browned, two tablespoonfuls of cornstarch or flour, and one pint of brown stock. Stir this into the stock. Add one cup of meat dice, made by cutting the face meat into half-inch cubes. Boil the three eggs twent} r minutes, and make the yolks into egg balls, or cut the whole eggs in half- inch slices. Make force-meat balls with the reserved meat, according to directions on page 137. Put the meat balls and egg balls into the tureen, add the soup, and serve very hot with thin slices of lemon. This is usually flavored with a glass of sherry wine, but is very good with only the lemon, or a tablespoonful of Worcestershire sauce. Or you may boil with it one pint of strained tomatoes. If you have no brown stock, boil one pound of lean beef with the head, and use the head stock with the flour and butter thickening. This soup is often made from calf's feet, and one or two pounds of lean veal. The feet should be soaked and scalded, boiled in four quarts of water with the herbs, spices, and vegetables, until the water is reduced to two quarts. Strain, and use as directed in the first receipt, making force-meat balls of the veal, and meat dice from the gelatinous meat of the feet. Soups. 139 Ox-Tail Soup. 2 ox-tails. 1 large onion. 1 tablespoonf ul beef drippings. 4 quarts cold water. 1 tablespoonful salt. 1 tablespoonful mixed herbs. 4 cloves. 4 peppercorns. Wash and cut up the ox-tails, separating them at the joints. Cut the onion fine and fry it in the hot beef drip- pings. When slightly browned, draw the onion to one side of the pan, and brown half of the ox- tails. Put the fried onion and ox- tails in the soup kettle, and cover with four quarts of cold water. Tie the cloves, peppercorns, and herbs in a small piece of strainer cloth, and add them to the soup. Add the salt, and simmer three or four hours, or until the meat separates from the bones, and the gristly portions are perfectly soft. Select some of the nicest joints to serve with the soup. Skim off the fat, and add more salt and pepper, if needed. Strain and serve very hot. If vegetables are served with this soup, add one pint of mixed vegetables, onion, carrot, turnip, and celery. Cut them into small pieces, or into fancy shapes with a vege- table cutter. Add them to the liquor after straining, and boil twenty minutes or until tender. Mullagatawny Soup. This is an Indian soup, and means " pepper pot." It can be made from veal, calfs head, chicken, or rabbit. Use one, or a mixture of two or more of these varieties of meat. Mullagatawny soup should always be very highly seasoned with onions, curry powder, and apples, or lemons, or some strong acid fruit. The best portions of the meat are usually removed as soon as tender, and served with the strained soup. Rice should also be served with this soup. 3 pounds chicken, or young fowl. 1 pound veal bones. onions. 1 tablespoonful beef drippings. 4 cloves. 4 peppercorns. 2 sour apples, or The juice of 1 lemon. 4 quarts cold water. 1 tablespoonful curry powder 1 teaspoonful salt. 1 teaspoonful sugar. 140 The Boston Cook Book. Clean the chicken, and cut it at the joints into nice pieces for serving. Put it in the soup kettle with the veal bones, or any pieces of veal you ma} r have. Cover with four quarts of cold water. Slice the onions, and fry them brown in the beef drippings. Put the onions, cloves, pep- percorns, and apples in the kettle. Mix the curry powder, salt, and sugar to a smooth paste with a little of the water ; add it to the soup. Let the soup simmer until the chicken ts tender. Remove the chicken and cut into small pieces. Put the bones back in the kettle, and simmer another hour. Strain the soup, remove the fat, and put the liquor on to boil again, with the pieces of chicken and three or four tablespoonfuls of boiled rice. When the chicken is hot, serve at once. Scotch Brocfl. % cup pearl barley. 2 pounds neck of mutton. 2 quarts cold water. % cup each of carrot, turnip, on- ion, and celery. 2 tablespoonfuls butter. 1 tablespoonf ul flour. 2 teaspoonfuls salt. 1 saltspoonful white pepper. 1 tablespoonf ul chopped parsley. Pick over, and soak the barley over night or several hours in cold water. Wipe the meat with a clean wet cloth. Remove the fat and skin. Scrape the meat from the bones and cut it into half-inch dice. Put the bones on to boil in one pint of cold water, and the meat in three pints of cold water. Let the latter boil quickly, and skim carefully just as it begins to boil. When the scum comes up white, add the barley and skim again. Cut the vege- tables into quarter-inch dice, fry them five minutes in one tablespoonful of the butter, and add them to the meat. Simmer three or four hours, or until the meat and barley are tender. Strain the water in which the bones have sim- mered. Cook one tablespoonful of butter in a saucepan with one tablespoonful of flour. When smooth, add the strained water gradually, and stir into the broth. Add the salt, pepper, and parsley. Simmer ten minutes, and serve without straining. Many people have a prejudice Broth. 141 against mutton in stews or broths. The strong, disagree- able flavor lies mostly in the skin. If this be removed together with the fat, it will repay one for the time and trouble. As this broth is not to be strained, it is always well to boil the bones separately. Care must be taken not to let the water boil away. This is a favorite dish among the Scotch. They often serve it with a larger proportion of vegetables. The carrots are sometimes grated, giving the broth a fine color, and sometimes the dice of meat are first browned in the butter. Rice may be used instead of bar- ley. Scotch broth made after this receipt has been tested by a native Scotchman, and pronounced more like the " auld countree " than any other dish eaten in America. Mutton Broth. Allow one quart of cold water to each pound of meat and bone. Break the bones and cut the meat (which should be lean) into small pieces. Cover with cold water and heat slowly. Add one teaspoonful of salt and half a salt- spoonful of pepper, and a small slice of onion and turnip if you Uke. Simmer until the meat is in shreds. Strain it, and when it is cool remove the fat. To one quart of the broth allow two tablespoonfuls of rice, washed and soaked half an hour. When the broth is boiling, add the rice ; simmer until it is tender, being careful not to let the water boil away. Season, and serve at once. For seasoning, a little curry powder, used as you would use cayenne pepper, or a saltspoonful of celery salt, or a few leaves of fresh mint, are agreeable as a change. When you have not time to cool the broth, a piece of soft tissue paper passed over the surface helps to take up any globules of fat which cannot be removed with a spoon. To make it quickly for a sick person, chop one pound of perfectly lean, juicy mutton very fine ; pour over it one pint of cold water. Let it stand until the water is very red ; then heat it slowly. Let it simmer ten minutes. Strain, and serve hot. 142 The Boston Cook Book. Chicken Broth. Clean the chicken, and separate it at the joints. Re- move all the skin and fat. Cover the chicken with cold water. Add one tablespoonful of salt, one saltspoonful of pepper, one small onion, sliced. Simmer until the chicken is tender. Remove the best part of the meat, and put the bones and gristle back and simmer until the bones are clean. Wash and soak two taUespoonfuls of rice half an hour. Strain the broth. Remove the fat. Put the broth on to boil again, and add to it the rice, and the nicest portions of meat cut into small pieces. Simmer until the rice is tender. Add seasoning to taste, and serve at once. A few spoonfuls of cream may be added if desired. Serve with toasted crackers. Turkey Soup. Take the bones and scraps left from roast turkey or chicken, or any kind of game. Scrape the meat from the bones, and lay aside any nice pieces, no matter how small. Remove all the stuffing, and keep that by itself. Break the bones, and pack them closely in a kettle. Cover with cold water. Add one small onion, sliced, one teaspoonful of salt, and a little pepper. Simmer two or three hours, or until the bones are clean. Strain, and remove the fat. Put the liquor on to boil again, and add for every quart of liquor, one cup of cold meat, cut into small pieces, and half a cup of the stuffing. Or omit the stuffing and thicken the soup with flour. Simmer till the meat is tender, and serve at once. If there be a much larger proportion of meat and stuffing left, use it in making scalloped turkey or croquettes. This is much better than to boil meat, bones, and stuffing together. In that case the stuffing absorbs the oil, and gives a very strong, disagreeable flavor to the soup. White Stock. 143 White Soup Stock. White soup stock is made from veal or chicken, sea- soned with onion, celery salt, and white pepper, avoiding anything which will give it color. White soups are thick- ened with rice, cornstarch, flour, eggs, or the white meat of chicken chopped fine, and are made still richer by milk or cream. White Soup (from Veal). 4 pounds knuckle of veal. 3 quarts cold water. 1 even tablespoonful salt. 6 peppercorns. 2 small onions. 2 stalks celery. 1 pint milk. 1 tablespoonful butter. 1 heaping tablespoonful flour. 1 teaspoonful salt. 1 saltspoonful celery salt. 1^ saltspoonful white pepper. Wipe and cut the veal into small pieces. Put it into the kettle with the cold water. Heat slowly and skim, because we do not wish the soup colored. Add the salt, peppercorns, onions, and celery. Simmer five hours, strain, and when cool remove the fat. There should be about three pints of stock. When ready to use it, put the stock on to boil, and the milk into the double boiler. Thicken the stock with one tablespoonful of butter and one heaping tablespoonful of cornstarch, cooked together. Add the boiling milk, the salt, and pepper. Beat two eggs until light, put them in the tureen, and strain the boiling soup over them. Many people prefer to use the yolks of the eggs only. This makes a yellow soup. Others vary it by boiling the eggs hard and rubbing the yolks through a gravy strainer after the soup is in the tureen. This veal stock may be clarified with the white of an egg, if you wish it transparent. But it is better with the milk or cream, and sheuld be highly seasoned, and re- duced one half by boiling, as when made from veal it is insipid. Serve with croutons. 144 The Boston Cook Book. White Soup (from Chicken). 3 or 4 pounds fowl. 3 quarts cold water. 1 tablespoonful salt. 6 peppercorns. 1 tablespoonful chopped onion. 1 pint cream. 1 tablespoonful butter. 1 tablespoonful cornstarch. 1 teaspoonful salt. 1 saltspoonful white pepper. 2 tablespoonfuls chopped celery. 2 eggs. Singe, clean, and wipe the fowl. Cut off the legs and wings, and disjoint the body. Put it on to boil in cold water. Let it come to a boil quickly, because we wish to use the meat as well as the water, and skim thoroughly. The meat may be removed when tender, and the bones put on to boil again. (Use the meat for croquettes or other made dishes.) Add the salt and vegetables. Simmer until reduced one half. Strain, and when cool remove the fat. For one quart of stock allow one pint of cream or milk. If cream/use a little less flour for thickening. Boil the stock ; add the butter and flour, cooked together, and the seasoning. Strain it over the eggs, stirring as you pour, or the eggs will curdle. By substituting, for the eggs in this white soup, the white meat of the chicken, chopped fine and rubbed to a powder, we have Potage a la Reine, which many think too elaborate for any bu4 a professional cook to undertake. The breast of a roast chicken may be used. Add it to the boiling stock, then thicken it with the flour and butter. Add the cream, and if not perfectly smooth, strain into the tureen. It should be quite thick like cream. Whole rice is sometimes served with clear chicken soup. If used as a thickening, boil the rice until soft enough to rub through a strainer. Add it to the chicken liquor, and unite them with butter and flour cooked together. The liquor in which a fowl or chicken has been boiled, when not wanted for any other purpose, should be saved for white soup. If the vegetables and spices are not boiled with the fowl, fry them five minutes without burn- ing, add them to the stock, and simmer fifteen minutes. White Soups. 145 Strain before serving. Chicken stock clarified makes a pale straw-colored, transparent soup. Potage & la Heine, No. 2. (Queen Victoria's favorite Soup.) Remove the fat from one quart of the water in which a chicken has been boiled. Season highly with salt, pepper, and celery salt, and a little onion if desired, and put on to boil. Mash the j'olks of three hard-boiled eggs fine, and mix them with half a cup of bread or cracker crumbs, soaked until soft in a little milk. Chop the white meat of the chicken until fine like meal, and stir it into the egg and bread paste. Add one pint of hot cream slowly, and then rub all into the hot chicken liquor. Boil five minutes ; add more salt if needed, and if too thick add more cream, or if not thick enough add more fine cracker dust. It should be like a puree. Cocoanut Soup. Cook two pounds of veal bones in two quarts of cold water until the meat is tender and the stock reduced to one quart. Grate the cocoanut and let it simmer with the veal the last half hour. Strain out the bones and cocoanut, and add to it the milk of the cocoanut and one pint of cream. Put it on the fire again, and when boiling, thicken it with one tablespoon each of cornstarch and butter which must first be blended or cooked as for white sauce. Add salt and pepper, and^jpst before serving add a little of the broth to two slightly beaten eggs, then stir it quickly into the broth and serve at once with dried dice of bread. 146 The Boston Cook Book. SOUPS WITHOUT STOCK. ANY of the soups or purees in this division may be at- tempted before one has mastered the imaginary difficulties of stock-making. They are palatable, nutritious, inex pensive, and quickly prepared. Potato Soup. 3 potatoes. 1 pint milk. 1 teaspoonful chopped onion. 1 stalk celery. 1 teaspoonful salt. % teaspoonful celery salt. % saltspoonf ul white pepper. ^ saltspoonful cayenne. % tablespoonf ul flour. 1 tablespoonful butter. "Wash and pare the potatoes, and let them soak in cold water half an hour. Put them into boiling water, and cook until very soft. Cook the onion and celery with the milk in a double boiler. When the potatoes are soft, drain off the water and mash them. Add the boiling milk and seasoning. Rub through a strainer, and put it on to boil again. Put the butter in a small saucepan, and when melted and bubbling, add the flour, and when well mixed stir into the boiling soup ; let it boil five minutes, and serve very hot. This flour thickening keeps the potato and milk from separating, and gives a smoothness and con- sistency quite unlike the granular effect which is often noticed. If the soup be too thick, add more hot milk. The celery salt may be omitted if you have the fresh celery, or, if you like, put one tablespoonful of fine choppeil parsley into the soap just before serving. When you wish a richer soup, use a quart of milk, mak- ing it much thinner, and add two eggs, well beaten, after you take it from the fire ; or put them in the tureen, and stir rapidly as you pour in the boiling soup. New raw potatoes, cut into small dice or balls and cooked till tender but not broken, are sometimes served in potato soup. Soup without Stock. 147 Celery Soup. 1 head celery. 1 pint water. 1 pint milk. 1 tablespoonf ul chopped onion. 1 tables poonful butter. 1 tablespoonful flour. % teaspoonful salt. ^ saltspoonful pepper. Wash and scrape the celery, cut into half-inch pieces, put it into one pint of boiling salted water, and cook until very soft. Mash in the water in which it was boiled. Cook the onion with the milk, in a double boiler, ten minutes, and add it to the celery. Rub all through a strainer, and put it on to boil again. Cook the butter and flour together in a small saucepan until smooth, but not brown, and stir it into the boiling soup. Add the salt and pepper ; boil five minutes, and strain into the tureen. Serve very hot. Tomato Soup. 1 quart can tomatoes. 1 pint hot water. 1 tablespoonful sugar. 1 teaspoonful salt. 4 cloves. 1 saltspoonful white pepper. 1 tablespoonful butter. 1 tablespoonful chopped onion. 1 tablespoonful chopped parsley. 1 tablespoonful cornstarch. 4 peppercorns, or Put the tomatoes, water, sugar, salt, cloves, and pep- percorns on to boil in a porcelain stewpan. Put the but- ter in a small saucepan, and when it bubbles put in the onion and parslej^. Fry five minutes, being careful not to burn it. Add the cornstarch, and when well mixed stir it into the tomato. Let it simmer ten minutes. Add more salt and pepper if needed. Strain, and serve with plain boiled rice, or croutons, or toasted crackers. Mock Bisque Soup. } can tomatoes. 1 quart milk. % cup butter. 1 tablespoonful cornstarch. 1 teaspoonful salt. 1^2 saltspoonful white pepper. Stew the tomatoes until soft enough to strain easily. Boil the milk in a double boiler. Cook one tablespoonful 148 The Boston Cook Book. of the butter and the cornstarch together in a small sauce- pan, adding enough of the hot milk to make it pour easily. Stir it carefully into the boiling milk, and boil ten minutes. Add the remainder of the butter in small pieces, and stir till well mixed. Add salt and pepper and the strained tomatoes. If the tomatoes be very acid, add half a salt- spoonful of soda before straining. Serve very hot. Many would use more tomatoes, but it is more delicate with a small quantity. Black Bean Soup. 1 pint black beans. 2 quarts cold water. 1 small onion. 2 teaspoonfuls salt. 1 saltspoonf ul pepper. 1 saltspoonful mustard. 1 tablespoonful flour. 2 tablespoonfuls butter. 1 lemon. 2 hard-boiled eggs. )4 saltspoonful cayenne. Soak the beans over night. In the morning pour ofl the water, and put them on to boil in two quarts of cold water. Slice the onion and fry it in one tablespoonful of the butter. Put it with the beans. Add a bit of celery root, if you have it. Simmer four or five hours, or until the beans are soft. Add more cold water as it boils away, about half a cup every half-hour, to check the boil- ing and soften the beans, leaving about two quarts when done. Rub the beans through a strainer, put the soup on to boil again, and add the salt, pepper, and mustard. When boiling, thicken it with the flour and butter which have been cooked together. This will prevent the beans from settling. Season to taste. Cut the lemon and eggs into thin slices, put them into the tureen, and pour the hot soup over them. Serve with croutons. Many think tomatoes are an improvement. If that flavor be desired, add to the above half a can of tomatoes, before straining. Others think it is not just right unless a quarter of a pound of salt pork, or some bones and odds and ends of meat, have been boiled with it. The beans are sometimes boiled to quite a thick pulp, and after sifting made of the proper consistency by thinning with brown Pea Soup. 149 soup stock, and seasoned more highly with the addition of ground herbs, spices, force-meat balls, and wine. It is then not unlike Mock Turtle Soup. A very good bean soup may be made from the remains of baked beans. Add one quart of water and a slice of onion to each pint of beans. Boil to a pulp, mash, and season. Or make the soup of equal parts of white beans and canned or dried sweet corn. If dried corn, soak it over night, chop it fine, and boil it with the beans. If canned corn, chop it, and add it to the beans after straining. But whichever way it is prepared, do not boil the beans in the water in which they were soaked, nor serve them without straining, to remove the hulls, which contain no nutriment and are indigestible. Split Pea Soup. 1 cup dried split peas. 3 pints cold water. 1 tablespoonful butter. 1 tablespoonful flour. % teaspoonful sugar. 1 teaspoonful salt. 1 saltspoonf ul white pepper. Pick over and wash the peas. Soak over night, or for several hours in cold water. Put them on to boil in three pints of fresh cold water, and let them simmer until dis- solved, adding enough more water, as it boils away, to keep three pints of liquid in the kettle. Keep it well scraped from the sides of the kettle. When soft, rub through a strainer and put on to boil again. Add either water, stock, milk, or cream to make the consistency you wish. It should be more like a puree than a soup. Cook one large tablespoonful of butter and one of flour together, and add to the strained soup when boiling. Add the salt and pepper, and when it has simmered ten minutes, serve at once with fried (lice of bread. This is delicious made in this simple way. It must always be strained, and thickened with the flour and but- ter, or it will separate as it cools. It will be smooth, per- fectly free from grease; and those who like the natural The Boston Cook Book. taste of the peas prefer it to any other way of cooking. Do not think you must boil more or less salt pork with it, as most receipts advise. It may be varied in many ways, by adding half a can of tomatoes before straining, or by boiling with the peas a small onion which has first been cut fine and fried in a little butter, or by adding any rem- nants of bone or meat, being careful to remove them before straining. Always use the split peas, as the hulls have been removed, and they cook much more quickly than the whole peas. Green Pea Soup. 1 quart green peas. 1 quart water. 1 pint milk. % teaspoonful salt. ^ saltspoonful pepper. ^ teaspoonful sugar. 1 tablespoonful butter. 1 tablespoonful flour. Put the peas into one pint of boiling water, and cook until soft. Mash them in the water in which they were boiled, and rub through a strainer, gradually adding a pint of hot water, which will help to separate the pulp from the skins. Put on to boil again. Cook the butter and flour in a small saucepan, being careful not to brown it. Stir it into the boiling soup. Add the salt, sugar, pepper, and the milk, which should be hot, using enough milk to make it the consistency you prefer. This is a very good way to use peas that are old &nd hard, and unfit to serve as a vegetable, which is often the case with those that come from a market. When the pods are fresh, wash them thoroughly; allow more water, and boil them with the peas. Green Corn Soup. 6 ears sweet corn, or enough to make 1 pint raw pulp. Water to cover the ears. 1 pint milk, or cream. % saltspoonful white pepper. 1 teaspoonful sugar. 1 teaspoonful flour. 1 tablespoonful butter. 1 teaspoonful salt. With a very sharp knife scrape the thinnest possible shaving from each row of kernels, and then, with the back Vegetable Soup. of the knife, scrape out the pulp, leaving the hull on the cob. Break the cobs if long, and put them on to boil in enough cold water to cover them. Boil thirty minutes and strain. There should be about one pint of water after straining. Put the corn water on to boil again, and when boiling add the corn pulp. Cook fifteen minutes. Add the salt, pepper, sugar, and the boiling milk. Thicken it with one teaspoon ful of flour and one tablespoonful of butter cooked together. Boil five minutes and serve at once. Corn is better for soup when it is a little old for the table, and the pulp is thick rather than milky. Vegetable Soup (Winter). 1 cup each of onion and carrot. 1 cup each of turnip and parsnip. 1 pint each of celery and potato, i^ cup butter or drippings. 1 teaspoonfui salt. 1 tablespoonful flour. 1 teaspoonfui sugar. 1 saltspoonf ul white pepper. % saltspoonful cayenne pepper. 1 tablespoonful chopped parsley. 1 slice of bread crust toasted very brown. Cut the onion, carrot, turnip, parsnip, and celery into half-inch dice, reserving the onions to fry, and the pota- toes to boil by themselves. Put the butter in a stew- pan or soup kettle, and when hot add the onions. After frying them carefull}' until colored but not burned, add the flour, and when well mixed pour on gradually a pint of hot water. Add the salt, pepper, sugar, bread, vegetables (except the potatoes), and enough boiling water to cover all. Let them simmer two hours. Boil the potatoes ten minutes, drain, and add them to the soup. When the vegetables are soft, rub all through a strainer. Add more salt and pepper if desired, and keep over hot water until ready to serve. A summer vegetable soup may be made in a similar man- ner, using young onions, turnips, carrots, and cauliflower. Cut fine and parboil ; then cover with fresh boiling water, simmer until soft, mash, strain, season, make quite thin 152 The Boston Cook Book. with hot cream or milk, and pour this over a small quan- tity of tender green peas and asparagus tips, previously boiled. Fish Soup. 1 pound any boiled fish, salmon, cod, or halibut. 1 quart milk. 1 slice onion. 1 tablespoonful butter. 2 tablespoonfuls flour. 1 teaspoonful salt. 1 saltspoonf ul pepper. Cook the fish in boiling salted water, until it flakes easily. Drain it, remove the skin and bones, and rub through a coarse strainer. Cook the onion with one quart of milk ten minutes, remove the onion, and thicken the milk with the flour and butter cooked together. Add the seasoning and fish. Let it boil up once and serve. Pure of Canned Salmon. Remove the oil, bones, and skin from half a can of salmon. Chop the salmon very fine. Boil one quart of milk, and season and thicken it as for fish soup. Add the salmon, and when heated it is ready to serve. Lobster Soup, or Bisque of Lobster. 2 pounds lobster. 1 quart milk. 1 tablespoonful butter. 2 tablesp. flour or cornstarch. 1 teaspoonful salt. 1 saltspoonful white pepper. ^ saltspoonful cayenne pepper. 1 pint water. Remove the meat of the lobster from the shell, and cut the tender pieces into quarter-inch dice. Put the ends of the claw meat and any other tough, hard parts, with the bones of the body, into one pint of cold water, and boil twenty minutes, adding more water as it boils away. Put the coral on a piece of paper, and dry it in the oven. Boil one quart of milk, and thicken it with one tablespoon- ful of butter and two of flour or cornstarch. Boil ten minutes. Strain the water from the bones and add it to the milk. Add the salt and pepper, using more if high Fish Soups. 153 seasoning be desired. Rub the dried coral through a strainer, using enough to give the soup a bright pink color. Put the green fat and lobster dice into the tureen, and strain the boiling soup over them. Serve immediately. If you do not like so much of the lobster in the soup, chop it all very fine, boil it with the milk, and rub it through a squash or gravy strainer. Many like the addi- tional thickening of half a cup of fine cracker crumbs. This soup may also be varied by using one pint of stock, either chicken or veal, and one pint of milk; or by the addition of force-meat balls made in the following manner : Cut only half of the meat into dice ; chop the remainder, and pound it to a fine paste with the yolks of two hard-boiled eggs, one teaspoonful of butter, a little salt, and pepper ; beat one raw egg, and add enough of it to moisten the paste so that it may easily be made into balls the size of a nutmeg ; let them simmer in the soup about five minutes, just enough to cook the egg. Lobster Soup, No. 2. The meat of two small lobsters, cut fine, one pint of cream, one pint of milk. Simmer twenty minutes. Add one table- spoonful of flour wet in cold milk. Salt and cayenne pepper to taste. Just before serving add half a cup of butter, cut into small pieces, and stir till it is entirely absorbed. Strain, and serve very hot. Oyster Soup. 1 quart oysters. 1 pint milk. 1 tablespoonf ul butter. 2 tablespoonfuls flour. Salt to taste. } saltspoonf ul pepper. Put the milk on to boil in the double boiler, while you prepare the oysters. Place a colander over a pan. Put the oysters in a large bowl, and pour over them one cup of water. Take up each oyster with the fingers, to make sure no pieces of shell adhere to it, and drain in the colander. Strain the oyster liquor, which has drained from the 154 The Boston Cook Book. colander, through the finest strainer. Put it on to boil, Remove the scuin, and when clear put in the oysters. Let them simmer, but not boil, until they begin to grow plump and the edges to curl or separate. Strain the liquor into the milk, and put the oysters where they will keep hot, but not cook. Thicken the milk with the butter and flour, which have been cooked together ; add salt and pepper to taste (the amount of salt depending upon the saltness of the oysters). Boil five minutes ; add the oys- ters and serve at once. This receipt may be varied "by boiling one cup of fine chopped celery and a small slice of onion with the milk ten minutes ; then straining and thick- ening it with half a cup of powdered cracker. Add the butter, the seasoning, and the parboiled oysters. Serve at once. Oyster Stew is made like oyster soup, without the thickening. Clam Soup. % peck clams in the shell. Salt to taste. 1 saltspoonful pepper. i^ saltspoonful cayenne pepper. 1 tablespoonful chopped parsley. 1 heaping tablespoonful butter. 2 heaping tablespoonf uls flour. 1 pint milk or cream. 1 tablespoonful chopped onion. Prepare the clams by boiling in the shells, and cutting as directed for clam chowder, keeping the soft part sepa- rate from the hard. Pour off one quart of the clam liquor after it settles, being careful not to take any of the sedi- ment ; put it on to boil, and remove the scum. Add one pint of hot water, and season to taste with salt, pepper, cay- enne, onion, and parsley. Put in the hard part of the clams. Simmer fifteen minutes, strain, and boil again, and when boiling thicken with the flour cooked in the butter. Add the hot milk or cream, and the soft part of the clams ; serve at once, with crackers and pickles. Another method of preparing ^clam soup, if needed quickly : Heat the clam broth to a boiling point ; add the clams cut fine ; season, and pour into the tureen over two eggs beaten up with the boiling milk. Fish Chowder. 155 The clam broth served hot with toasted crackers will ofteb tempt a person with a capricious appetite. Fish Chowder. 4 or 5 pounds cod or haddock or bass. 6 potatoes. A 2-inch cube of fat salt pork. 2 small onions. 1 tablespoonful salt. % teaspoonful white pepper. 1 tablespoonful butter. 1 quart milk. 6 butter crackers. When buying a fish for a chowder, have the head left on but the skin removed ; or if you have to depend upon your self, remove the skin according to directions on page 161. Then begin at the tail and cut the fish from the bone on one side, keeping the knife as close as possible to the bone ; remove the bone from the other side. Do not for- get to take out the small bones near the head. Wipe the fish carefully with a damp cloth, cut it into pieces about two inches square, and put it away in a cool place. Break the bones and head, cover with cold water, and put them on to boil. Pare and slice the potatoes one eighth of an inch thick, using enough to make the same quantity by measurement as 3*ou have of fish. Soak them in cold water half an hour, and parboil or scald in boiling water five minutes ; then pour off the water. Cut the pork into quarter-inch dice, and fry it in an omelet pan. Cut the onions into thin slices and fry them in the pork fat, being careful that it does not burn. Pour the fat through a strainer into the kettle, leaving the pork scraps and onions in the strainer. Put the sliced potatoes into the kettle ; hold the strainer over the potatoes, and pour through it enough boiling water to cover them. This is easier than to fry in the kettle, and skim out the pork and onions, which to a novice would be running the risk of burning the fat, cleaning the kettle, and beginning again. When the potatoes have boiled ten minutes, strain the water in which the bones were boiled, and pour it into the kettle. Add the salt and pepper, and when the chowder is boiling briskly, put in the fish, and set it back where it can sim- 156 The Boston Cook Book. mer ten minutes. Do not break the fish by stirring it. Add the butter and the hot milk. Split the crackers, put them in the tureen, and pour the chowder over them. Do not soak the crackers in cold water. Butter crackers will soften easily in the hot chowder. If you wish the broth thicker, stir in one cup of fine cracker crumbs, or one tablespoonful of flour cooked in one tablespoonful of butter. More milk and a little more seasoning may be added to this amount of fish and potato, if you wish to make a larger quantity. When wanted richer, beat two eggs, mix them with the hot milk, and put in the tureen before turning in the chowder. If added while the chowder is in the hot kettle, the eggs will curdle. Any firm white fish may be used for a chowder, but cod and haddock are best. Many use a cod's head with the haddock. The head is rich and gelatinous, and it should always be boiled with the bones, and the liquor added to the chowder. In this chowder you have nothing but what the most dainty person may relish. There are no bones, skin, or scraps of boiled pork. Fish, potatoes, and crackers are all distinct in the creamy liquid, instead of being a pasty mush, such as is often served. For a change, the crackers may be buttered and browned. If a highly seasoned dish be desired, boil an onion, cut into thin slices, with the potatoes ; add more pepper, and either cayenne pepper, Worcestershire sauce, or curry powder. Omit the boiling water, and use only that in which the bones were boiled, when making a smaller quantity. Clam Chowder. % peck clams in the shells. 1 quart potatoes, sliced thin. A 2-inch cube of fat salt pork. 1 or 2 onions. % teaspoonful white pepper. 1 large tablespoonful butter. 1 quart milk. 6 butter crackers. 1 teaspoonful salt. Clam chowder is made in the same manner as fish chowder, substituting half a peck of clams for the fish. Clams in the shells are better, as you then have more clam liquor. Wash with a small brush, and put them Choivder. 157 in a large kettle with half a cupful of water, or just enough to keep the under ones from burning ; set them over the fire. When the clams at the top have opened, take them out with a skimmer, and when cool enough to handle, take the clams from the shell ; remove the thin skin ; then with scissors cut off all the black end, cut the " leather straps " into small pieces, leaving the soft pail whole. Let the clam liquor settle, and pour it off carefully. Use half water and half clam liquor. Fry the pork and onion the same as in fish chowder ; add the potatoes, which have been soaked and scalded, and boiling water to cover. When the potatoes are soft, add the clam liquor, the seasoning, and the clams ; when warmed through, add the hot milk and turn into the tureen. Do not put the clams into the chowder until the potatoes are nearly done, as prolonged boiling hardens them. Corn Chowder. 1 quart raw sweet corn. 1 pint sliced potatoes. A 2-inch cube fat salt pork. 1 onion. 1 teaspoonf ul salt. 1 saltspoonful white pepper. 1 large tablespoonful butter. 1 tablespoonful flour. 1 pint sliced tomatoes. 1 pint milk. Scrape the raw corn from the cob. Boil the cobs twenty minutes in water enough to cover them ; then skim them out. Pare, soak, and scald the potatoes. Fry the onion in the salt pork fat, and strain the fat into the kettle with the corn water. Add the potatoes, corn, salt, and pepper. Simmer fifteen minutes, or till the potatoes and corn are tender. Add the butter and milk, and serve very hot with crisped crackers. Lobster Chowder. 1 pound lobster. 1 quart milk. 3 crackers. 1 scant teaspoonf ul salt. % saltspoonful white pepper. % saltspoonful cayenne pepper. % cup butter. Boil one quart of milk. Roll three crackers fine ; mix with them one fourth of a cup of butter, and the green fat 158 The Boston Cook Book. of the lobster. Season with one scant teaspoon ful of salt, half a saltspoonful of white pepper, and one fourth of a saltspoonful of cayenne pepper. Pour the boiling milk gradually over the paste. Put it back in the double boiler ; add the lobster meat cut into dice ; let it boil up once, and serve. Puree of Clams. One pint of boiled clams ; remove the dark substance from the soft part, and chop the hard part very fine. Thicken one pint of hot cream with one tablespoonful of flour cooked in one heaping tablespoonful of hot butter ; add the chopped clams, the soft parts, and salt and pepper. Add more hot cream or a little of the clam liquor if the puree be too thick. When hot, strain it into the tureen. Corn-bouillon. 3 onions. 2 tablespoonfuls butter. 1 tablespoonful flour. 1 cup claret, or Y z cup vinegar. 1 pint beef stock. 2 pounds fish, sliced. 4 tomatoes. Fry the sliced onions in the butter in the bottom of the stewpan ; be careful not to burn them ; add the flour, mix well; add gradually the stock, and, when smooth, put in half the fish, then half the tomatoes peeled and sliced, and the wine or vinegar; then another layer of fish and tomatoes. Simmer half an hour. The fish should be skinned and boned. Cherry Soup. Soups made from fruit juices only slightly sweetened, thickened with arrowroot and served cold in bouillon cups are quite acceptable in hot days. Allow one pint of water to a pint of fruit. Stew, mash, and sift the fruit, sweeten and thicken slightly, then boil till clear. Some fruits re- quire a little lemon juice or wine. Add chipped ice and serve with zwieback or toasted wafers. Fish* 159 FISH. FISH, on account of its abundance, cheapness, and wholesomeness, is invaluable as an article of food. It is less nutritious and less stimulating than meat, as it con- tains less solid matter and more water. An exaggerated idea of the value of fish as brain food has prevailed ; the latest authorities, however, state that there is no evidence to prove that fish is any richer than meat in phosphorus. But as it contains little fat, the white varieties particularly, it is easily digested, and as it has a large proportion of nitrogenous material, it is especially adapted to all those upon whom there are great demands for nervous energy. Salmon heads the list " of whatsoever hath scales and fins," in nutritive qualities ; and it is richer than meat. The next in value are fat halibut, shad, white-fish, mack- erel, blue-fish, lean halibut, bass, flounder, trout, cod, haddock, cusk, etc. Red-blooded fish, like salmon, mackerel, and blue-fish, have the oil distributed through the body. They are nutritious for those who can digest them, but are too rich and oil}' for invalids. White fish, like flounder, halibut, cod, and haddock, have the oil in the liver, and are more easily digested. Fish should be perfectly fresh and thor- oughly cooked, or it will be very indigestible and some- times poisonous. Broiling and baking are the best methods. Small pan-fish and fillets of large white dry fish are good if fried ; but oil}' fish should never be fried. Salting draws out the nutritive part of fish the same as it does in meat ; and either, when thus prepared, should be used as a relish, and not depended upon for nourishment. Fat fish are injured less than white fish, as the fat is not removed by salting. i6o The Boston Cook Book, All varieties of fish need an accompaniment of starchy foods, like bread and potatoes ; and white fish need beside to be cooked with butter or fat to make them desirable as food. The juices of fish, shell-fish particularly, are of an alkaline nature ; and this renders lemon juice or vinegar a desirable condiment as a neutralizing agenc} T . The flesh of good, fresh fish is firm and hard, and will rise at once when pressed with the finger. If the eyes be dull and sunken, the gills pale, and the flesh flabby or soft, the fish is not fresh. Fish should be cleaned as soon as possible, in strongly salted water. They should be washed (not soaked) by wiping with a cloth wet in salt water. Then wrap them if* a cloth which is sprinkled with salt, and put them in a cool place. If put in the ice-chest, they will taint the butter and milk. Put ice around them, if necessary ; but do not let them touch the ice, as fresh water and ice will soften them. When once they lose their hard, firm con- sistency, they are considered unfit to eat by those who know what good fish really are. Frozen fish should be thawed in cold water. Fresh- water fish having a muddy taste or smell are improved by soaking in salt and water. Salt fish should be soaked in fresh water, with the skin side up, to draw out the salt, and should be eaten only occasionally, for the reason before stated. To Chan a Fish. If the fish have scales, remove them before opening. Scrape with a small, sharp knife from the tail to the head ; hold the knife flat and slanting, resting rfc on the fish, that the scales may be taken upon the knife ; scrape slowly, that the scales may not fly over everything near, and rinse the knife often in cold water. When the fish is to be served whole, do not remove the head and tail. Smelts and small fish served whole are opened under the gills, and the contents squeezed out by pressing from the middle with the thumb and finger. Large fish are split open from the gills half-way down the lowet Fish. 161 part of the bod}*, the entrails removed, and the inside scraped and cleaned. Open far enough to remove all the blood on the backbone. Many leave the sound, which is the white part adhering to the bone ; but it is better to remove it. To Skin a Fish. Cut a thin, narrow strip down the backbone, taking off the dorsal fin. Then open the lower part half-way down. Slip the knife under and up through the bony part of the gills, and hold this bony part between the thumb and finger, and strip the skin off toward the tail. Then do the same on the other side. Small fish, like mackerel and white-fish, when dressed for broiling, should be split through the back. To Bone a Fish. Clean,- and strip off the skin ; lay the fish flat on a board ; begin at the tail, and run the knife in under the flesh close to the bone, and scrape it away clean from the bone, holding the flesh carefully, not to break the flakes. When the flesh on one side is removed, slip the knife under the bone on the other side, and raise the bone, leaving the flesh on the board ; then pull out all the small bones left in the flesh, which you can easily feel with the fingers. Fish with many fine bones, like shad and her- ring, are not boned ; but from cod, cusk, mackerel, white- fish, and haddock they may be easily removed. Fillets of Fish are the flesh separated from the bone, and served whole or divided, as the case may require. Floun- ders or sole, chicken halibut, and bass, should have the fillets on each side divided lengthwise ; making four long thin pieces, or fillets. Other fish are cut into thin slices or small squares. Very small fish may be split, the bone removed, and the whole fish rolled up from the tail to the head and fastened with a skewer. Broiled Fish. First clean the fish. Wash with a cloth wet in salt water- and dry on a clean fish towel, kept for no other purpose. Mackerel, white-fish, small blue-fish, trout, small cod, and ii 1 62 The Boston Cook Book. shad should be split down the back, and if you prefer, cut off the head and tail. Halibut and salmon should be cut into inch slices, the skin and bone removed, and turned often while broiling. Cut flounder, bass, and chicken hal- ibut into fillets. Oily fish need only salt and pepper ; but dry white-fish should be spread with soft butter or olive oil before broilkisy. Use a double wire broiler, and grease well with salt pork rind. Put the thickest edge of the fish next the middle of the broiler, and always broil the flesh side first, as the skin burns easih r . Cook the flesh side until it is brown. The time should vary with the thickness of the fish ; move the broiler up and down, that all parts may be equally browned ; then turn, and cook on the other side just enough to crisp the skin. Small fish require from five to ten minutes ; thicker fish, fifteen or twenty minutes. The fire should be hot and clear. If the fish be very thick, hold it farther from the fire ; or when nicely browned, put the broiler in the oven on a dripping-pan, and cook till the flesh sepa- rates easily from the bones. Mackerel, trout, and fresh herring are sometimes broiled whole. Clean without open- ing more than is necessary. Wipe and dry well. Gash through to the bone at intervals one inch apart on each side, and rub salt, pepper, and butter or oil in the incisions ; wrap in buttered paper, and broil carefull} r from ten to twenty minutes. When ready to serve, loosen the fish from the broiler on each side, open the broiler, and, leaving the flesh side of the fish uppermost, slide it off without breaking. Or open the opposite way, hold a platter over the skin side, and invert platter and broiler together. Spread with butter, salt, and pepper ; or add chopped parsley or watercresses ; or serve with Maitre d'hotel, Tartare, Tomato, or Curry sauce. Garnish with parsley and slices of lemon. Baked Fish. Cod, haddock, cusk, blue-fish, smaii salmon, bass, and shad may be stuffed, and baked whole. Baked Fish. 163 Stuffing for Baked Fish weighing from four to six Pounds. 1 cup cracker crumbs. 1 saltspoonful salt. 7 saltspoonful pepper. 1 teaspoonful chopped onion. 1 teaspoonful chopped parsley. 1 teaspoonful capers. 1 teaspoonful pickles. % cup melted butter. This makes a dry, crumbty stuffing. If a moist stuffing be desired, use stale (not dried) bread crumbs, and moisten with one beaten egg and the butter ; or moisten the crackers with warm water. Oyster Stuffing. One pint of oysters, one cup of seasoned and buttered cracker crumbs. Drain and roll each oyster in the crumbs. Fill the fish with the oysters, and sprinkle the remainder of the crumbs over the oysters. General Directions. Fish bake through more evenly, brown better, and are more easily served, if placed upright in the pan instead of on one side. Fish that are broad and short, like shad, may be kept in place by propping with stale bread or pared potatoes. But all others that are naiTOw in proportion to the length may be skewered or tied into the shape of a letter S ; run a threaded trussing- needle through the head, middle of the body and tail in the direction indicated by the dotted line above ; then draw the string tight, and fasten the ends. Fish thus prepared will keep their shape after baking. Have an iron sheet with rings at the ends for handles, and just large enough to fit into the dripping-pan. Rub the sheet well with salt pork, and put pieces of pork under the fish to keep it from sticking. This sheet will enable you to lift the fish from the pan and place it on the platter without breaking. If you have no sheet, put two broad strips of cotton cloth across the pan, before laying in the fish. When done, lift out on the cloth. Do not put water in the pan, unless you wish to steam instead of bake the fish. Put two or three slices cf fat salt pork over and near the fish, and when the floui has browned, baste often with the pork fat. Bake till brown, and baste often. 164 The Boston Cook Book. No. 1. Clean, wipe, and dry the fish; rub with salt; stuff and sew. Cut gashes two inches apart on each side. Skewer into shape of S, and put it on the fish sheet. Rub all over with soft butter, salt, and pepper. Put narrow strips of fat salt pork in the gashes. Dredge well with flour. Put it into a hot oven without water; baste when the flour is browned, and baste often afterwards. Remove it FIG. 7. Baked Pish. carefully from the fish sheet, and place it on a hot platter. Draw out the strings or skewer, wipe off all the water or fat which runs from the fish, and remove the pieces of pork. Pour Hollandaise sauce around (not over) the fish, or serve a drawn butter sauce flavored with lemon, in a sauce-boat ; and pile Saratoga potatoes lightly around the fish. Garnish the head of the fish with parsley or watercresses. To serve the Fish. Make an incision along the backbone the entire length of the fish ; then draw the fish away from the bone on each side, cutting at right angles with the bone. Raise the bone to reach the stuffing, and serve a little of the fish, stuffing, and sauce to each person. The skeleton should be left entire on the platter. No. 2. Remove the head, tail, and skin. Rub well with salt and lemon juice. Stuff with oyster stuffing, and sew securely. Skewer it into shape, if long enough, or put it upright on a greased fish sheet, with bread to keep it in place. Or remove the bone, place the fish on a platter, and lay the prepared oysters between the layers of fish. Season cracker crumbs with salt, pepper, and chopped parsley, and moisten with melted butter. Brush the Fried Fish. 165 fish with beaten egg, then sprinkle with the crumbs. Set the platter in the oven over a pan of hot water to keep the platter from cracking. Bake from forty to sixty minutes. Serve with tomato or Hollandaise sauce poured around the fish. No. 3. Baked Halibut. Three or four pounds of halibut. Dip the dark skin in boiling water, and scrape clean. Rub well with salt and pepper. Put it into a clean pan, and pour milk over it till half an inch deep. Bake about an hour, basting with the milk. Remove the bone and skin, and arrange on the platter in the original form. Serve with plain drawn butter, egg sauce, or cream sauce, and garnish with slices of boiled eggs. The milk keeps the fish moist, is a good substitute for pork, and makes the fish brown better. Use just enough milk to baste, and let it cook away toward the last Or sprinkle buttered crumbs over the top, when the fish is nearly done, and serve with tomato sauce. A large cod, or any whole fish too large for a small family, may be cooked as follows : Remove the skin and bones from the middle and thickest part ; stuff and bake. Use the bones and head for a chowder. Cut the tail piece into slices, salt well, and fry or broil them. Or crimp them by soaking in salted water ; then simmer in water with salt and lemon juice, and serve cold with Tartare sauce. Fried Fish. Mackerel, salmon, blue-fish, and all oily fish should never be fried. Smelts, perch, and other small pan-fish may be fried whole. When fried smelts are used as a garnish, fry them in the shape of rings by pinning the tail in the mouth. Cod, halibut, etc., should be skinned and boned, and cut into slices one inch thick and two or three inches square. Flounder and bass may be cut in fillets, as described on page 161, and each fillet seasoned with salt and pepper, and fastened with a small wooden skewer. Small fish may be boned without parting in the middle. 1 66 The Boston Cook Book. and rolled from tail to head. Fish for frying should be thoroughly cleaned and dried, seasoned with salt and pepper, and covered first with flour or fine bread crumbs, then dipped in beaten egg, then in crumbs again. If this does not cover them completely, repeat the process. When the fish has been kept on ice, let it become slightly warm before frying, as otherwise it will chill the fat and become greasy. Fry in deep, smoking hot fat. Observe the directions given for frying on page 15, testing the fat first with bread ; and after the first plunge into the hot fat set the kettle back to keep from burning ; then reheat before frying any more. Fry from two to five minutes. Drain and serve with tomato, or Tartare, or any acid sauce. Garnish with slices of pickle or lemon, and parsley. Arrange small fish with heads and tails alternating; or two or three on a skewer, one skewer for each person ; or in a circle round a PIG. 8. Small Fish served whole. silver CU P> P^Ced ill the centre of the platter and holding the sauce. Slices or rolled fillets may be arranged in a circle, with the sauce in the centre. Boiled Fish. Boiling is the most insipid and wasteful way of cooking fish. To make boiled fish palatable, a rich sauce, like lobster, oyster, or shrimp sauce, is needed for all kinds except salmon and blue-fish. Salmon is so much richer and more oily than other fish that boiling does not injure it. Hollandaise and sauce piquante are appropriate for salmon. A fish kettle with a drainer for lifting out the fish is quite essential. Or you may put a small piece of fish in a wire basket or on a plate ; tie the plate in a square of cloth, and lift cloth, plate, and fish together. Never try to boil a fish whole, as nothing can be more Boiled Fish. 167 unsightly than the head of a boiled fish. Clean the fish thoroughly, and remove the head, tail, and skin. Rub well ^ith salt and lemon juice. Fish should be of uniform thickness, to boil nicely. A small salmon or the middle cut / of a large one, or the thickest part of cod or blue-fish, or a thick piece of halibut, should be selected for boiling. Cod, haddock, and cusk, unless perfectly fresh, will break in boiling. If fish be put into cold water, the juices are drawn out into the water. If cooked in rapidly boiling water, the fish breaks on the outside before the middle is done. The best and most economical way is to cook it in a steamer over boiling water. If that is not convenient, put the fish into boiling salted water, and simmer till done. Fish is cooked when the flesh separates easily from the bones, and should be taken up immediately, and well drained be- fore serving. A very good way of boiling fish is to steep it for five minutes in strongly salted boiling water, with one or two tablespoonfuls of lemon juice, then plunge it into fresh boiling water without salt, and simmer till done. Less scum rises in the fresh water, and the fish looks whiter. Allow about six minutes to a pound for boiling ; more if in a cubical form than for a thin narrow piece of the same weight. Serve boiled fish on a folded napkin, and the sauce in a sauce-boat. Parisienne potatoes boiled or fried and piled h'ke cannon balls, alternating with parsley and button mushrooms ; or sliced pickles, fried oysters, Saratoga po- tatoes, slices of lemon, or hard-boiled eggs ma} r be used as a garnish. If the fish break and look unsightly, re- move the bones, and flake it ; pile it lightly on a platter, and pour the sauce over the fish. To boil Fish au Court Bouillon. Fish are improved by cooking in water flavored with vegetables and spices. Mince one onion, one stalk of celery, and two or three sprigs of parsley. Fry them in a little butter ; add two tablespoon- fuls of salt, six peppercorns, a bay leaf, three cloves, two quarts of boiling water, and one pint of vinega* or sour 1 68 The Boston Cook Book. wine. Boil fifteen minutes, skim well, strain, and keep to use in boiling fish. Rub the fish with salt and lemon juice, and put it into the boiling liquor, and simmer till the flesh separates from the bone. Stewed Fish. Any dry white fish or fresh-water fish may be stewed, and made into a very palatable and eco- nomical dish. Remove the skin, head, and bones from a four-pound fish. Cover the bones and head with cold water, and cook them for half an hour. Slice and scald two small onions. Drain, and fry them till yellow, in the fat obtained from a two-inch cube of salt pork. Pour it all into the kettle with the bones. Cut the fish into pieces two inches square, and season them with salt and pepper. Put them in a clean kettle with a little butter to keep them from sticking, and strain the boiling bone water over them, using just enough to cover. Add the juice of half a lemon, and when boiling thicken with one heaping table- spoonful of butter and two of flour cooked together. Sim- mer fifteen minutes. Add salt and pepper to taste, and one tablespoonful each of chopped parsley, and tomato or mushroom catchup, if desired ; or add one quart of drained oysters, and simmer till the O3 r sters are plump. A Matelote of fish is the French name for fish stewed with wine. Fish a la Creme. Four to six pounds of fish, one to one and a half pints of cream sauce, and one cup of cracker crumbs, moistened in one third of a cup of melted butter. This is one of the most attractive and convenient methods of serving any kind of dry white fish, cod, had- dock, or cusk. Clean the fish ; cook in boiling salted water with one tablespoonful of vinegar till the flesh sepa- rates easily. Drain, and when cool remove the skin and bones, and pick apart in flakes. Sprinkle 'well with salt and pepper. Make a rich white sauce. Put a layev of fish on a platter suitable for serving. Cover with the white sauce, letting the fish soak up all it will ; then arrange Fish Left Overs. 169 another la} r er of fish and sauce. Moisten cracker crumbs in melted butter, and spread over the top with a fork. Set the platter in the oven over a pan of hot water, to keep the platter from cracking, and bake till the crumbs are brown. Garnish with parsley. The whites of two or three eggs, beaten stiff and salted, are sometimes used in the place of crumbs, but are not so palatable. Two or three taUespoonfuls of grated cheese may be mixed with the crumbs, if you like the flavor. The sauce may be mixed with the fish ; but be careful not to mash the fish or get it too moist. Then the fish may be piled on the platter, higher and broader at one end and giving the outline of a flat fish ; or arranged in the form of a fish shaped like the letter S, and covered with the crumbs. Or, if the fish be not broken in boiling, take it up carefully on the drainer, remove the head, skin, and small bones from one side, put a platter over the fish and invert platter and fish together; then remove the skin and the backbone from the other side, leaving the fish as whole as possible. Cover with the sauce and crumbs, and bake as above. This is not so desirable as the first method, because some fine bones are liable to be over- looked, and the sauce is not so well mixed with the fish. Remnants of Cooked Fish. Remnants of cold boiled or bakec^fish (using stuffing and sauce also) may be freed from skin and bones, flaked, and used in any of the following ways : Scalloped Fish. Put^A and stuffing into a shallow dish in alternate layers, with cream sauce to moisten ; cover with buttered crumbs, and bake till the crumbs are brown. Fish in Potato Border. Warm the fsh slightly in a white sauce, and put it in the centre of a dish with a border of mashed potatoes. Or, if } T OU have enough material for a large platter, put the border on the edge and a higher mound of potatoes in the centre, and fill the space between with the Jish. Sprinkle buffered crumbs Iightl3 r over the whole and set in the oven till brown. The Boston Cook Book. Chartreuse, or Casserole of Fish, No. 1. One cup of anj 1 cold fish, flaked, seasoned, and moistened with a little cream ; the same quantity of mashed potatoes ; and two hard- boiled eggs. Butter a small mould and put in alternate lay ers of potatoes, fish, and slices of egg. Steam twenty minutes, turn out upon a hot platter, and garnish with varsley. No. 2. Mix one cup of stale bread crumbs, one pint of cold Jish, flaked, and two eggs. Season to taste with Wor- cestershire or tomato catchup, salt, and cayenne pepper. Put into a buttered mould. Boil thirty minutes, and serve with any fish sauce. Kedgeree. Warm cold flaked Jish slightly over hot -water ; and just before serving stir in one egg, beaten with one or two tablespoonfuls of hot milk and a bit of butter, and serve in a rice border. Steam the rice, one cupful, in two cupfuls of highly seasoned stock, in a double boiler thirty minutes, or till tender and dry. Curried Fish. Warm any cold flaked Jish in curry sauce, page 190. Creamed Fish with Oysters. Add an equal amount of oysters to theflsh, and cook in white sauce till the O3 T sters are plump. Garnish with points of toast. Spiced Fish. Steep six cloves, six allspice kernels, six peppercorns, and one tablespoonful of brown sugar in one cup of sharp vinegar ten minutes, and pour it over one pint of any cold flaked Jish. Crimped Fish. Soak slices of any firm white fresh fish in very strongly salted water. Put them into boiling salted water enough to cover, with two tablespoonfuls of vinegar, and boil about ten minutes. Drain ; arrange on a platter ; remove the skin and bones. Serve hot with oyster or lobster sauce, or cold with a Mayonnaise or Tartare sauce poured into the cavity left by the bone. Garnish with water' presses. Fish Balls. 1 71 Potted Fish. Three shad or six small mackerel, uncooked ; one third of a cup of salt with half a saltspoonful of cayenne pepper mixed with it, and half a cup of whole spices, cloves, peppercorns, and allspice mixed in about equal proportions. Vine- gar to cover. Clean, remove the skin, split in halves, cut each half into three pieces, and remove all the larger bones. Pack the fish in layers in a small stone jar. (Earthenware must not be used on account of the vinegar.) Sprinkle the sa;o and spices over each layer. Add one onion sliced thin, ii you do not dislike the flavor. Add vinegar enough to completely cover the fish. Tie a thick paper over the top, or tie a cloth over and cover with a crust of dough to keep in all the steam. Bake in a very moderate oven five or six hours. Remove the dough-crust, and when cooled cover, and keep in a cool place. This will keep some time, if the fish be kept under the vinegar ; the bones will be dissolved, and it makes an ex- cellent relish for lunch or tea. Rules for Fish Salad, Croquettes, and Chowder are given' elsewhere. Salt Fish Balls. X 1 cup raw salt fish. 1 pint potatoes. 1 teaspoonf ul butter. 1 egg, well beaten. ^ saltspoonful pepper. More salt, if needed. Wash the fish, pick in half-inch pieces, and free from bones. Pare the potatoes, and cut in quarters. Put the potatoes and fish in a stewpan, and cover with boiling water. Boil twent3'-five minutes, or till the potatoes are soft. Be careful not to let them boil long enough to be- come soggy. Drain off all the water ; mash and beat the fish and potatoes till very light. Add the butter and pepper, and when slightl}' cooled add the egg and more salt, if needed. Shape in a tablespoon without smoothing much, slip them off into a basket, and fry in smoking hot The Boston Cook Book. lard one minute. Fry only five at a time, as more will cool the fat. The lard should be hot enough to brown a piece of bread while you count forty. Or, first dipping the spoon in the fat, take up a spoonful of the fish and plunge it into the hot fat. Drain on soft paper. These fish balls should be mixed while the potatoes and fish are hot. If you wish to prepare them the night before, omit the egg, and in the morning warm the fish and potato in a double boiler, then add the egg. Keep the fish in a bowl of cold water while picking it apart, and it will need no further soaking. Contrary to all old theories, boiling the fish with the potato does not harden it. When well mashed and beaten with a strong fork, the fish will only be recognized in the potato by the taste, and not by the presence of hard, lumpy pieces. Never chop salt fish. If picked apart into small pieces and then rubbed with a potato masher till it is re- duced to fine threads, it will blend with any mixture better than it will when chopped. These are the most quickly prepared and the most delicious fish balls ever made, and are worthy the superlative adjectives which have been given them by enthusiastic pupils. Fish Hash. The same mixture as above, cooked in a little salt pork fat in a frying-pan till brown, and turned out like an omelet. Fish Souffle. Prepare the fish as for fish balls ; add two tablespoonfuls of cream and two eggs, beaten separately ; and bake in a buttered dish. To prepare Salt Fish for Cooking. Soak over night in cold water with the skin side up, that the salt may be drawn out ; or, if you can, strip the skin off before soaking. By changing the water often, less time will be required. Salt mackerel and other small corned fish should be broiled. Salt codfish should be put on the stove in fresh water and kept warm, but not boiling, till softened. Then remove the bones and skin, and flake in delicate pieces. Serve with egg or cream sauce, potatoes, sweet beets, Fish Roes. 173 carrots, and onions, and crisp salt pork scraps, and you. have the old-fashioned saltjish dinner. Creamed Salt Fish. Serve one cup of the picked up jish in a rich cream sauce with potato border or on toast. Mock Oyster Stew. (Mrs. S. M. Bailey.) Prepare one cup of salt fsh by washing, shredding, and simmering till soft when ready to serve, put it hi a shallow dish with one pint of oyster crackers or three butter crackers split and browned, and pour over it one pint of hot milk. Add a tablespoonful of butter and half a saltspoonful of pepper, and serve. Scorched Salt Fish. Pick a small piece of the thickest part of salt Jish into long flakes. If very salt, soak a few minutes in cold water. Brown over hot coals. Spread with butter, and serve hot. Fish thus prepared is a nice relish with potatoes which have been roasted in the ashes. It will also tempt a convalescent. Smoked salmon or hali- but may be prepared in the same manner. Tongues and Sounds. Soak them in warm water several hours, or till freshened ; scrape off the skin. Cut them in small pieces and heat slowly in milk or water. Make a thin white sauce to pour over them, and serve on toast garnished with hard-boiled eggs. Fish Roes, Fried. Wash the roes and cook them ten minutes in boiling salted water with one tablespoonful of vinegar. Then plunge them into cold water. Drain, and roll in beaten egg, then in seasoned crumbs, and fry till brown in smok- ing hot fat. Scalloped Roes. Boil the roes as in the preceding re- ceipt. Drain, and break up lightly with a fork. Sprinkle a layer of the roe in a shallow dish ; then rub the yolk of hard-boiled egg through a fine strainer. Add a sprinkling of parsley and a little lemon juice. Moisten with a thin white sauce. Then another layer of roe, egg, seasoning, and sauce. Cover with buttered crumbs and bake till 174 The Boston Cook Book. brown. If a larger dish be required, use with the roes any cold flaked fish^ or a small quantity of cooked rice. Small Fresh Fish Baked in a Crust. Clean the fish, and wipe dry. Cut gashes one inch apart on each side ; sprinkle with salt and pepper. Make a rich biscuit crust with baking-powder, or make a pastry crust; roll it out half an inch thick ; wrap the fish in the crust, pinch the edges together, and bake about half an hour. Serve with egg sauce. Table of the Cost, etc., of Fish. Cost. Weight. How sold. When in Season. Cod. 8 cts. per Ib. 3 to 20 Ibs. Whole. Haddock. 6 to 8 cts. per Ib. 5 to 8 Ibs. Whole. Cusk. 8 cts. per Ib. 5 to 8 Ibs. Whole. Winter. Halibut. 12 to 20 cts. per Ib. By the Ib. Flounders. 6 to 10 cts. per Ib. i to 5 Ibs. Whole. Salmon. 25 to 50 cts. per Ib. By the Ib. May to Sept. Shad. $1.25 in March, Whole. Spring. 25 cts. in May. Blue-fish. 7 to 15 cts. per Ib. 4 to 10 Ibs. Whole. June to Oct. Tautog. 12 cts. per Ib. Whole. July to Sept. White-fish. 20 cts. per Ib. 4 Ibs. Whole. Winter. Bass. 12 to 25 cts. per Ib. 3 to 8 Ibs. Whole. Sword-fish. Smelts. Perch. 15 cts. per Ib. 10 to 25 cts. per Ib. 20 cts. per dozen. i Average j 8 to a Ib. By the Ib. July to Sept. Sept. to March. Summer. Pickerel. 15 cts. per Ib. 1 to 4 Ibs. Whole. Trout, Brook. 75 cts. per Ib. Whole. Spring. Mackerel. 5 to 25 cts. each. Whole. April to Oct. Eels. 15 cts. per Ib. * to 1 Ib. ' Whole. Lobsters. 12 cts. per Ib. 1 to 2 Ibs. Oysters. 35 to 50 cts. per qt. Sept. to May, Clams. 20 cts. per qt. ; 40 cts. per pk. in the shell. Crabs. $1.25 to $1.50 per Summer. dozen. Herring. 20 cts. per dozen. Mar. and Apr. Salt Cod Fish. 10 cts. per Ib., best. Smoked Fish. 20 to 35 cts. per Ib. Where no time is specified the fish are always in season. Oysters. 175 SHELL FISH. Oysters, Clams, Scallops, Lobsters, Grabs, Shrimps, and Prawns are the principal varieties of shell fish used as food. Oysters. These shell fish are found in perfection in the cooi waters of the Northern Atlantic coast. The Blue Points from Long Island are considered the best in the New York market. The Wareham and Providence River are equally esteemed in Boston. Oysters are neither healthful nor well flavored from May to September ; at all other times the3 T are used more extensively and are more highly prized than any other shell fish. They aro nutritious, and are easily digested when fresh and eaten raw, or when only slightly cooked. When over-cooked , they are tough and leathery. Oysters should never be kept long after being taken from the shell ; and if to be used raw, should not be opened till just before using. Oysters cooked in the Shells. Wash and scrub the shells, and put them in a pan with the round side down (to hold the juice), and cook either in a hot oven, on the top of a hot stove, on a gridiron over the coals, or in a steamer, ten to twenty minutes. When the shells open, the oysters are done. Remove the upper shell ; season the oyster on the lower shell with butter, pepper, salt, and vinegar, and serve at once. Or take from the shells, put into a hot dish, season, and serve immediately. There is no other way of cooking the oyster in which the natural flavor is so fully developed. Raw Oysters. Open the oysters ; look them over care- fully ; remove any fine pieces of shell which may adhere to them ; then season slightly with salt and pepper, and let 1 76 The Boston Cook Book. them stand half an hour in the ice chest. Serve on fancy oyster plates, or on the deep half-shell, with slices of lemon. Serve with small squares of buttered brown bread. Oysters on Ice. Put a rectangular block of clear ice, having smooth, regular surfaces, in a large pan. With a hot brick or flat-iron melt a cavity large enough to hold the desired number of oysters. Pour the water from the cavity, and fill with oysters, which should first be drained, and seasoned with salt and pepper. Place a thick napkin on a platter, put the ice upon this, cover the dish with parsley or smilax, and garnish with lemon. The ice is some- times roughly chipped to resemble a rock. If the dinner be served from the sideboard, individual plates of ice are made. To prepare Oysters for Cooking. Pour half a cup of cold water over one quart of oysters ; then with clean hands take out the oysters separately and remove any bits of shell or seaweed. Serious accidents have often resulted from the presence of pieces of shell. The crabs which are found among the oysters are considered a delicacy and should be saved. The oyster liquor is seldom used, as enough comes from the oysters in cooking ; but, if de- sired, it shoufd be strained before using. The oysters may then be cooked in any of the following ways. To cook or parboil Oysters in their Liquor. Put them in a saucepan without water ; stir them, or shake the pan slightly; as soon as heated, sufficient liquor comes from them to keep them from burning. When the edges curl or ruffle, and the oysters look plump instead of flat, they are cooked. Season with salt, pepper, and butter, and serve as a plain roast; or pour on toast, and call it a fancy roast. For Oyster Stew, see page 154. Smothered Oysters, Put one tablespoonful of butter in a covered saucepan with half a saltspoonful of white pepper, ne teaspoonful of salt, and a few grains of cayenne pepper. When hot, add one pint of oysters carefully prepared. Cover closely, and shake the pan to keep the oysters from Oysters. 177 sticking ; cook two or three minutes, or till plump. Serve on toasted crackers. Creamed Oysters. Make one cup of thick cream sauce (see page 190), and season with salt, pepper, cayenne, and celery salt. Wash and pick over one pint of oysters, and parboil until plump. Skim carefully ; drain and add them to the sauce. Serve on toast, and garnish the dish with points of toast; or the toast ma}' be omitted, and bread crumbs browned in butter sprinkled over the o}*sters. When served in patty shells or in a vol-au-vent, make the cream sauce thicker. fricasseed Oysters. Cook one pint of oysters in hot but- ter, till plump, as directed for smothered oysters. Drain, and keep the oysters hot, and add enough cream to the oyster liquor to make one cupful. Cook one tablespoonful of flour in one tablespoonful of hot butter. Add slowly the hot cream and oyster liquor. Season with one teaspoonful of lemon juice, salt, and pepper to taste. Pour the sauce into one well-beaten egg, add the hot oysters, and heat one minute. Serve on toast, if for breakfast ; or in paper cases, or patties, if for lunch or dinner. Scalloped Oysters. One pint of solid oysters, washed and drained ; one third of a cup of melted butter; one cup of cracker or stale bread crumbs, moistened in the melted but- ter. Butter a shallow dish ; put in a layer of crumbs then a layer of oysters ; season with salt and pepper; and, if you like, add Worcestershire sauce, lemon juice, wine, or mace. Then put in another layer of crumbs, then oysters and seasoning, with a thick layer of crumbs on the top. Bake in a hot oven about twenty minutes, until the crumbs are brown. Many prefer to heat the O} r ster liquor and the butter with an equal quantity of milk or cream, and use more cracker. Moisten each layer of cracker with the hot liquid. Reserve the larger part of the butter for the top layer of crumbs. In this way a larger dish may be prepared with the same quantity of oysters. Oysters en Coquille. Prepare as for scalloped oysters. Put one or two very large or several smaller oysters in X 178 The Boston Cook Book. oyster or scallop shells ; season, and cover with buttered crumbs. Bake till the crumbs are brown. Place the shells on small plates, and serve one to each person. Large scallop shells may be obtained at the fish market, then cleaned and used several times. Tin, granite, or silver shells may also be used. Oysters and Mushrooms in Crusts. Bake Parker-House- roll dough in round pans, or as small round biscuit placed some distance apart. When cold, cut a slice from the top of each, and remove the soft inside without breaking through the crust. Fill with the following mixture : Parboil half a pint of oysters. Strain, and save the liquor. Cut the oysters fine, and mix with them half a can of chopped mushrooms. Mix the oyster liquor and mush- room juice with enough cream to make one pint in all. Pour this hot liquid slowly on one tablespoonful of butter and three of flour cooked together. Season highly with salt, pepper, lemon juice, and cayenne. Pour this into the crusts, and serve at once. This dish is acceptable to those who cannot eat oysters in puff-paste patties. Pigs in Blankets, or Huitres au Lit. Season large oys- ters with salt and pepper. Cut very thin slices of fat bacon ; wrap each oyster in a slice of bacon, and fasten with a wooden skewer. Put in a hot omelet pan, and cook just long enough to crisp the bacon. Serve on small pieces of delicate toast. Fried Oysters. Wash the oysters, drain, sprinkle with salt and pepper, and let them stand twenty minutes. Roll first in seasoned crumbs, then dip in beaten egg mixed with one tablespoonful of milk ; roll in crumbs again, and fry one minute in smoking hot lard. Drain on paper, and garnish with chopped or sliced pickle, or chowchow. Serve with cold slaw or celery salad. Fried oysters are much better, and spatter less in frying, if parboiled slightly and drained before rolling in the crumbs. When only a few are wanted, and those espe- cially nice, select the large oysters, roll them in fine crumbs, tben in Mayonnaise dressing, then in crumbs again, and fry. Clams. 179 Sauted Oysters. Prepare as for fiying, and brown on each side in hot butter ; or roll in the cracker only, and brown them. Oysters in Fritter Batter , see page 107. Broiled Oysters. Pick over, and drain large oysters. Dip in melted butter, then in fine cracker crumbs seasoned with salt and pepper. Butter a fine wire gridiron ; put the oysters in closely, and broil till the juice flows. Some prefer to broil them without the crumbs, but more juice is lost in this way. Pickled Oysters. Cook one quart of oysters in their liquor, till plump. Remove the oysters, and add to the liquor half a cup of good cider vinegar. Skim as it boils, and add one teaspoonful of salt, two blades of mace, ten cloves, ten peppercorns, ten allspice berries, and a few grains of cayenne pepper. Boil five minutes. Pour the liquor over the oysters, and when cold seal in glass jars, and put in a cool dark place. They will keep two weeks. Clams. Thin shell clams, and round shell clams, or quahaugs, furnish a delicious and wholesome form of food if eaten only when fresh. They are more easily opened and have a finer flavor when cooked in the shells. Steamed Clams. Wash and scrub the shells. Put them in a kettle without water, cover closely, and cook till the shells open. Take them out with a skimmer, pour the clam water into a pitcher, and let it settle. Straining is not sufficient, as the fine sand will go through the finest strainer ; but the water will be clear if care be taken not to disturb the sediment. Remove the clams from the shells, peel off the thin skin around the edge, and cut off the whole of the black end. Scissors are better than a knife for this purpose. Rinse each clam in a little of the clam water, and if very large, cut the tough part into small pieces. When the water is clear, pour it into a saucepan, add the clams, and heat again till just hot, but i8o The Boston Cook Book. do not let them boil. Serve with brown bread, or toasted crackers; and let each person season them to taste with melted butter, pepper, and vinegar. Scalloped Clams. Prepare the clams as in steamed clams. Make a while sauce, as for fish (see page 189) ; put the clams in a shallow dish or in clean shells ; cover with the sauce and buttered crumbs, and bake till brown. For Clam Soup, Clam Chowder, and Clam fritters, see the Index. A Clam Bake. An impromptu clam bake may be had at any time at low tide along the coast where clams are found. If you wish to have genuine fun, and to know what an appetite one can have for the bivalves, make up a pleasant party and dig for the clams yourselves. A short thick dress, shade hat, rubber boots, or, better still, no boots at all, if you can bring your mind to the comfort of bare feet, a small garden trowel, a fork, and a basket, and } T OU are ready. Let those who are not digging gather a large pile of driftwood and seaweed, always to be found along the shore. Select a dozen or more large stones, and of them make a level floor ; pile the driftwood upon them, and make a good brisk fire to heat the stones thoroughly. When hot enough to crackle as you sprinkle water upon them, brush off the embers, letting them fall between the stones. Put a thin layer of seaweed on the hot stones, to keep the lower clams from burning. Rinse the clams in salt water by plunging the basket which contains them in the briny pools near by. Pile them over the hot stones, heaping them high in the centre. Cover with a thick layer of sea- weed, and a piece of old canvas, blanket, carpet, or dry leaves, to keep in the steam. The time for baking will depend upon the size and quantit} r of the clams. Peep in occasionally at those around the edge. When the shells are open, the clams are done. They are delicious eaten from the shell, with no other sauce than their own briny sweetness. Melted butter, pepper, and vinegar should be Lobsters. 181 ready for those who wish them ; then all may " fall to." Fingers must be used. A Rhode Islander would laugh at any one trying to use a knife and fork. Pull off the thin skin, take them by the black end, dip them in the prepared butter, and bite off close to the end. If you swallow them whole, they will not hurt 3^011. At a genuine Rhode Island clam bake, blue-fish, lobsters, crabs, sweet potatoes, and ears of sweet corn in their gauz}' husks are baked with the clains. The clam steam gives them a delicious flavor. Brown bread is served with the clams, and watermelon for dessert completes the feast. Scallops. This shell fish has a round, deeply grooved shell. The muscle which unites the shell is the only part eaten. Scal- lops have a sweet flavor, and are in season during the fall and winter. They may be stewed like oysters, but are better fried. Fried Scallops. Pick over, and wash quickly ; drain between towels ; season fine cracker crumbs with salt and pepper. Dip the scallops in the crumbs, then in beaten egg, and again in crumbs. Fry in smoking hot fat, and serve at once. Lobsters. The markets are now so well supplied with these deli- cious shell fish, that they may be obtained in good condi- tion all the year. The canned lobster is also convenient in an emergency, for use in soups and salads. Lobsters are put alive into boiling salted water, and cooked twenty minutes from the time the water boils. They should not be eaten until cold, and never be kept more than eighteen hours after boiling.- Lobsters are difficult of digestion, and should be eaten with mustard, cayenne pepper, and lemon juice or vinegar. To Choose a Lobster. Select one of medium size, heavy in proportion to the size. Those with hard, solid shells, streaked with black, will be found full of meat; those witu i $2 The Boston Cook Book. thin shells are watery. If the tail spring back quickty when straightened, the lobster is fresh. To Open a Lobster. Wipe the shell with a wet cloth, Break off the large claws, separate the tail from the bod^ and the body from the shell, leaving the stomach, or lady, in the shell ; then remove the small claws. Save the green liver and coral. Crush the tail by pressing the sides together, then pull it open on the under side, and take out the meat in one piece. Draw back the flesh on the upper end of this meat, and remove the intestinal canal, which runs the entire length. This is sometimes black, and sometimes the color of the meat. Break off all the gills on the body before picking the meat from tne joints, as they are liable to drop off with the meat, and are too woolly to be palatable. The gills, stomach, and intestines are the only parts not eaten. Break the body in the middle, and pick the meat from the joints, being careful not to take any of the bones. When the shells of the large claws are thin, cut off a strip down the sharp edge, and remove the meat whole ; or break them by hammering on the edge. Never pound them in the mid- dle, as that crushes the meat. If the lobster shell is to be used for serving the meat, cut down the under side of the tail with a sharp knife, and remove the meat without breaking the outside shell. Trim the inside, and clean the shell. The body shell may be cleaned, split in halves, and trimmed with sharp scissors into the shape of clam shells. Plain Lobster. The simplest way of serving lobster is by many considered the best. Remove the meat from the shell, and arrange in a tasteful manner ; or cut it into small pieces. Let each person season to taste with salt, pepper, vinegar, and oil, or melted butter. Stewed Lobster. Cut the lobster fine ; put it in a stew- pan, with a little milk or cream. Boil up once ; add one taUespoonful of butter, a little pepper, and serve plain or on toasted crackers. Cook lobster just long enough to heat it, as a longer cooking renders it tough. CfnAt. 183 Creamed Lobster. For one pint of lobster meat cut fine, make one pint of white sauce (see page 189). Season with salt, cayenne, and lemon. Heat the lobster in the sauce, but do not let it boil. Serve on toast. Curried Lobster. Make a curry sauce (see page 190) and warm the diced lobster in the sauce. FIG. 9. Scalloped Lobster. Scalloped Lobster. Season one pint of lobster, cut into dice, with salt, pepper, and cayenne. Mix with one cup of cream sauce (see page 190) ; fill the lobster shells, using the tail shells of two lobsters. Cover the meat with cracker crumbs, moistened with melted butter. Bake tiH the crumbs are brown. Put the two shells together on a platter, with the tail ends out, to look like a long canoe. Lay the small claws over the side to represent oars. Gar- nish with parsley. The lobster may also be served in scallop shells. Devilled Lobster. The same as the preceding receipt, with the addition of more salt, pepper, and cayenne; add, also, chopped parsley, onion juice, mustard, and Worcester* shire sauce. For Lobster Soup, Chowder, Cutlets, Croquettes, and Salad, see the Index. Crabs. These are found near the coast of the Southern and Middle States, and are considered such a luxury in Mary- land that special means are taken for their propagation. They are usually quite expensive in Eastern markets. Boston Cook Book. Crabs, like lobsters, shed their shell annually. When the new shell is forming, they are called soft shell crabs, and are highly esteemed by epicures. Soft Shell Crabs. Use them only when freshly caught, as the shells harden after twenty-four hours. Pull off the sand bags, and the shaggy substance from the side ; then wash, and wipe dry ; sprinkle with salt and pepper ; roll in crumbs, then in egg, again in crumbs ; and fry in smoking hot lard. Boiled Grabs. These should be heavy, of medium size, and with stiff joints. Plunge them head first into boiling water, and cook fifteen minutes ; then remove the outside shells and the shaggy substance, rinse in hot water, and arrange on a platter. They are eaten from the sheh 1 . Scalloped Grabs. Pick the meat from the shells, mince it, and mix with a cream sauce ; season with salt and pep- per, put the mixture in the crab shell or in scallop shells, cover with buttered cracker crumbs, and bake till brown. Devilled Grabs. Prepare as for scalloped crabs, add- ing mustard, cayenne pepper, and lemon juice to the seasoning. Crab Salad. Mix the meat with a Mayonnaise dress' ing, pack in the crab shells, and garnish with sliced lemon and cresses. Shrimps. Shrimps and Prawns are found in the summer season on the Southern coasts. They are similar in form to a lobster, but very small. They should be cooked in boiling salted water from five to eight minutes. Remove the shells and head ; the part that is eaten resembles in shape the tail of a lobster. They are used in fish sauces, and are very effective as a garnish. Shrimp Salad and Shrimps en Goquille may be prepared like lobster. Canned shrimps are generally used in East- ern markets. Scalloped Shrimps. Make a tomato sauce (see page 193). Pick over one can of shrimps, and heat them in the sauce , Terrapin. 185 add one glass of wine. Turn into a scallop dish, cover with buttered crumbs, and bake till the crumbs are brown. Reptiles. Fried Frogs. Frogs are considered a delicacy by those who have cultivated a taste for them. If not already pre- pared for cooking, remove the skin from the hind legs, which is the only part used. Dip in crumbs, seasoned with salt and pepper, then in egg, and again in crumbs. Wipe the bone at the end ; put in a basket, and fry one minute in smoking hot fat. Drain, and serve in a circle* around a centre of green peas. Some parboil them three minutes in boiling salted water and a little lemon juice* before frying. Frogs' legs may also be broiled, or they may be made into a white or brown fricassee, seasoned with mushrooms or tomato catchup. Terrapin. This expensive member of the turtle family is highly prized in Baltimore and Philadelphia, but seldom used a New England. Terrapin may be kept alive through che winter by putting them in a barrel, where they will not freeze, and feeding them occasionally with vegetable parings. Before cooking, soak them in strong salt water. Put them alive into boiling water, and boil rapidly ten or fifteen minutes. Remove the black outside skin from the shells, and the nails from the claws. Wash in warm water ; then put them on again, in fresh boiling water ; add a little salt, and boil about three quarters of an hour, or until the under shell cracks. Open them carefully over a bowl to save the gravy, remove the under shell, the sand bags, the head, and the gall bladder from the liver. If the gall bladder be broken in the process, the whole dish will be ruined by the escaping gall. Put the upper shells on to boil again in the same water, and boil until tender ,* vratch then* carefully, and take each out as soon M 1 86 The Boston Cook Book. tender. Pick the liver and meat from the upper shell, and cut into several pieces. The intestines are used with the meat in winter, when the turtle is in a torpid condition ; but in the summer they should be thrown away. Boil the intestines by themselves one hour. This should be pre- pared the day before. Heat the meat in the gravy. To each terrapin add one wineglassful of cream, half a cup of butter, a little salt, cayenne, and one wineglassful of sherry. Use the turtle eggs if there be any ; if not, the yolks of two hard-boiled eggs to each terrapin. Rub smooth, mixing with raw yolk enough to make into balls the size of tur- tle eggs. Add these and the wine just as you send the dish to the table. Green Turtle Soup. The green turtle is highly prized on account of the deli- cious quality of its flesh ; but as it is very large and ex- pensive the canned turtle is more generally used. One can of green turtle, one quart of brown stock, two tablespoonfuls each of butter and flour, one lemon. Cut the green fat into dice and lay it aside. Simmer the remain- der of the turtle meat in the stock for half an hour. Brown the flour in the browned butter, add it to the soup, season highly with salt and pepper. Serve with thin slices of lemon, egg balls, and the reserved green fat. Crab Olio A Southern Kecipe. Scald and skin six large, smooth tomatoes, and drain on a sieve until the water is out. Chop fine the meat of four large crabs and the inside of one egg-plant which has been boiled, also the cold tomatoes. Add three eggs, slightly beaten, salt and pepper to taste, aiid half a cup of bread crumbs. Cook until warmed through in a tablespoonful of butter, but do not brown it. Put it into the crab shells, cover with buttered crumbs, place the shells in a pan, and bake until the crumbs are brown. Drawn Butter Sauce. 187 MEAT AND FISH SAUCES. Drawn Butter, or water and melted butter thickened with flour, and seasoned, is the simplest form of a sauce. When milk, or cream, or white stock is used in place of water, less butter is required, and the sauce is called White, or Cream, or Bechamel sauce. By browning the butter, using brown stock, and adding different seasoning materials, we have all the varieties of Brown sauces. Many people fail in making sauces by not cooking the flour sufficiently, and also by serving them with a mass of oily butter on the surface. Usually the flour is wet to a smooth paste and stirred into the boiling liquid. When made in this manner, the sauce should boil at least ten min- utes to have the flour thoroughly cooked. But by cooking the dry flour in the hot butter the starch in the flour is more quickly cooked, and the butter is all absorbed and converted into an emulsion. Sauces made in this manner are perfectly smooth, free from grease, and have a fine flavor. Every one should learn how to make both white and brown sauces. They are adapted to nearly every form of food. Meats, fish, vegetables, eggs, macaroni, rice, toast, etc., are rendered more palatable by being served with an appropriate sauce. Drawn Butter Sauce. 1 pint hot water or white stock. > cup butter, scant 2 tablespoonf uls flour, 3^ teaspoonf ul salt. i. saltspoonf ul pepper. Put half the butter in a saucepan ; be careful not to let it become brown ; when melted, add the dry flour, and mix 1 88 The Boston Cook Book. well. Add the hot water, a little at a time, and stir rapidly as it thickens. When perfectly smooth, add the remainder of the butter in small pieces, and stir till it is absorbed. Add the salt and pepper. When carefully made, this sauce should be free from lumps ; but if not smooth, strain it before serving. The following sauces may be made with one pint of this plain drawn butter as a foundation : Gaper Sauce (for Boiled Mutton) . Add six tablespoon- fuls of capers. Pickled Nasturtium seeds may be used in place of capers. Egg Sauce (for Baked or Boiled Fish). Add two or three hard-boiled eggs, sliced or chopped. Parsley Sauce (for Boiled Fish or Fowls). Add two table spoonfuls of chopped parsley. Lemon Sauce (for Boiled Fowl). Add the juice and pulp of one large lemon, and the chicken liver boiled and mashed fine. Shrimp Sauce (for Fish) . Add half a pint of shrimps, whole or chopped, two teaspoonfuls of lemon juice, and a few grains of cayenne pepper. Acid Sauce. Add one tablespoonful of lemon juice or vinegar, and a few grains of cayenne pepper. Mustard Sauce (for Devilled Turkey, Salt Fish, etc.). Add three tablespoonfuls of mixed mustard and a little cayenne pepper. Lobster Sauce (for Boiled Fish). One pint of lobster meat, cut into quarter-inch dice. Put the inner shells and scraggy parts in one and a half pints of cold water, and boil fifteen minutes. Strain and use the water in making one pint of drawn butter sauce. Add the lobster dice, the dried and powdered coral, a little cayenne pepper, and two tablespoonfuls of lemon juice. Oyster Sauce (for Boiled Fish, Turke} 7 , or Chicken). Parboil one pint of oysters ; drain, and use the oyster liquor in making one pint of drawn bntter sauce. Season with celery salt and cayenne pepper. Add the oysters ; cook one minute longer, and pour it over the fish or chicken. Add White Sauce. 189 the beaten yolk of one egg or one glass of claret wine, if you wish a richer sauce. Celery Sauce (for Boiled Fowl) . One pint of the ten- der part of celery, cut very fine. Cook in boiling salted water, enough to cover, till tender. Drain ; add enough hot water to that in which the celery was cooked to make a pint, and use it in making one pint of drawn butter sauce. Add the cooked celery and the seasoning. Richer Drawn Butter Sauce. Make a plain drawn butter sauce, and when ready to serve, pour it boiling hot into the well-beaten yolks of two eggs. Stir thoroughly, season to taste, and serve at once. Sauce Piquante. Add one tablespoonful each of vinegar and lemon juice, two tablespoonfuls each of chopped capers, pickles, and olives, half a teaspoonful of onion juice, and a few grains of cayenne pepper, to one pint of drawn butter. White Sauce (for Vegetables, Chicken, Eggs, etc.). 1 pint milk, or half milk and half white stock. 2 tablespoonf uls butter. 2 heaping tablespoon! uls flour. % teaspoonful salt. % saltspoonf ul pepper. Heat the milk over hot water. Put the butter in a granite saucepan, and stir tih 1 it melts and bubbles. Be careful not to brown it. Add the dry flour, and stir quickly till well mixed. Pour on one third of the milk. Let it boil, and stir well as it thickens ; tip the saucepan slightly to keep the sauce from sticking. Add another third of the milk ; let it boil up and thicken, and stir vig- orously till perfectly smooth. Be sure that all the lumps are rubbed out while it is in this thick state. Then add the remainder of the milk ; let it boil, and when smooth add the salt and pepper, using more if high seasoning be desired. This white sauce may be used in place of drawn butter in any of the preceding rules. Bechamel Sauce. A white sauce made partly with cream and partly with rich white stock, either veal or The Boston Cook Booh chicken, according to directions for white sauce, is called Bechamel. The water in which celery, oysters, or lobsters have been cooked may be mixed with milk in making sauces given under these names. For Fish a la creme and other preparations of fish, boil one slice of onion with the milk, or add half a teaspoonful of onion juice and one tablespoonful of chopped parsley. For Oysters, add half a teaspoonful of celery salt, a few grains of cayenne pepper, and one tablespoonful of lemon juice. For boiled Fowl, add half a can of mushrooms. A richer white sauce is made by beating the yolks of two eggs, and pouring the hot sauce into them just before serving. Gurry Sauce (for Curried Eggs, Chicken, etc.). Cook one tablespoonful of chopped onion in one tablespoonful of butter five minutes. Be careful not to burn it. Mix one tablespoonful of curry powder with two tablespoonfuls of flour, and stir it into the butter. Add one pint of hot milk grad- ually, and stir as directed for white sauce. Cream Sauce, No. 1. 1 pint hot cream. 1 heaping tablespoonful butter. 3^ teaspoonful salt. 3^ saltspoonf ul pepper. 2 heaping tablespoonfuls flour. Make in the same manner as white sauce, and vary the seasoning for the different dishes for which it is to be used, as directed in white sauce. A thicker Cream Sauce is given under rules for Cro- quettes. Cream Sauce, No. 2. Warm one cup of cream. Beat the yolks of two eggs, strain them into the warm cream, and cook over hot water till the eggs thicken the cream like boiled custard. Stir all the time and when smooth and thickened remove from the fire, and add salt and pepper to taste. Serve with boiled celery, cauliflower, chicken, oysters, fish, etc. Brown Sauce. 191 Brown Sauce. 1 pint hot stock. 2 tablespoonf uls ininced onion. 2 tablespoonfuls butter. 2 heaping tablespoonfuls flour. % teaspoonf ul salt. y 2 saltspoonf ul pepper. 1 tablespoonful lemon juice. Caramel enough to color. Mince the onion and fry it in the butter five minutes. Be careful not to burn it. When the butter is brown, add the dry flour and stir well. Add the hot stock a little at a time, and stir rapidly as it thickens, until perfectly smooth. Add the salt and pepper, using more if high seasoning be desired. Simmer five minutes, and strain to remove the onion. The stock for brown sauces may be made from bones and remnants of any kind of meat, by soaking them in cold water, and boiling until the nutriment is extracted. The onion may be omitted if the flavor be not desired ; but the sauce is better with it if it be not burned. By the addition of different seasoning materials to this brown sauce a great variety of sauces may be made. Half the quantit}- given is sufficient for most entrees, or to use for any purpose in a small family. Be very careful not to burn the butter, as the desired color can better be obtained by adding caramel. Brown Sauce Piquante (for Beef) . To one cup of brown sauce add one tablespoonful each of chopped pickles and capers. Sauce Poivrade. Make one cup of brown sauce; add one teaspoonful of mixed herbs-, thyme, parsley, bay leaf, and cloves. Simmer ten minutes ; add two tablespoonfuls of claret, and strain. Sauce Robert. To one cup of brown sauce, add one teaspoonful of sugar, one teaspoonful of made mustard, and one tablespoonful of vinegar. Brown Mushroom Sauce (for Beef) . To one cup of brown sauce add half a can of mushrooms, whole or quar- tered, and simmer five minutes. Currant Jetty Sauce (for Mutton) . Make one cup of 1 92 The Boston Cook Book. brown sauce, strain it, and add half a cup of> melted currant jelly. Heat till the jelly is well mixed, and serve very hot. Olive Sauce (for Roast Duck) . Soak twelve olives in hot water enough to cover, thirty minutes, to extract the salt. Pare them round and round, close to the stone, leaving the pulp in a single piece, which should curl back into the natural shape after the stone is removed. Make one cup of brown sauce, add the olives, and simmer ten minutes. Cumberland Sauce. To one cup of brown sauce add one teaspoonful of made mustard, two tablespoonfals of currant ielly, and two tablespoon/ids of wine. Flemish Sauce (for Beef or Veal) . Cut a cupful of the red part of carrot into quarter-inch dice, and cook in boiling salted water till tender. Make one cup of brown sauce, add the cooked carrot, half a tablespoonful of chopped parsley, one tablespoonful each of chopped pickles and grated horseradish. Sauce a la Italienne. Fry one tablespoonfid of fine chopped shalots in one tablespoonful of salad oil till yellow. Add one bay leaf, a sprig of parsley, one tablespoonful of chopped mushrooms; fry five minutes. Remove the bay leaf, add two tablespoonfuls of flour, mix well, and add one cup of stock. When smooth, add two tablespoonfuls of mushroom catchup, and one teaspoonful of essence of anchovy. Serve without straining. Chestnut Sauce (for Roast Turkey). Remove the shells from one pint of large chestnuts. Scald or boil them three minutes to loosen the inner skin. Remove the skin ; break them in halves, and look them over carefully. Cook in salted boiling water or stock till very soft. Mash fine in the water in which they were boiled. Cook one tablespoon- ful of flour in two tablespoonfuls of brown butter, stir into the chestnuts and cook five minutes. . Add salt and pepper to taste. The boiled chestnuts may be added to the gravy made from the drippings of the poultry, or to one cup of white Meat Sauces. 193 sauce. Common chestnuts are much sweeter and more highly flavored, but it takes a long time to prepare them. Peanut Sauce may be made in the same manner. Port Wine Sauce (for Venison). Half a cup of port wine, half a glass of melted currant jelly, one saltspoonful of salt, a little cayenne pepper, one teaspoonful of lemon juice, half a cup of thick brown stock, or half a cup of the drippings from the meat freeci from fat. Heat all together till very hot. Espagnole Sauce. Boil one quart of strong consomme or rich, highly seasoned brown stock, till reduced to one pint. Then use it as given under the rule for brown sauce, and flavor with wine. Bread Sauce (for Game). 1 pint milk. > cup fine bread crumbs. 2 tablespoonfuls chopped onion. 1 tablespoonf ul butter. % teaspoonful salt. % saltspoonful pepper. % cup coarse bread crumbi, 1 tablespoonful butter. Boil the fine bread crumbs and onion in the milk fifteen minutes, and add the butter, salt, and pepper. Fry the coarse bread crumbs in another tablespoonful of butter till brown. Pour the sauce around the birds, and sprinkle the brown crumbs over the whole. Soubise Sauce (for Lamb or Mutton Chop). Boil three large onions till very soft. Drain, and rub the onion through a sieve. Stir the onion pulp into half a pint of white sauce made with milk or cream. Tomato Sauce (for Macaroni). Stew half a can of tomatoes and half a small onion ten minutes. Rub all the tomato pulp through a strainer. Cook one tablespoonful of butter and one heaping table- spoonful of flour in a granite saucepan ; add the strained tomatoes gradually, and one saltspoonful of salt and a shake of white pepper. 13 194 Th* e Boston Cook Book. Tomato Sauce (for Chops or Fish). % can tomatoes. 1 cup water. 2 cloves. 2 allspice berries. 2 peppercorns. 1 teaspoonf ul mixed herbs. 2 sprigs parsley. 1 tablespoonful chopped onion, 1 tablespoonful butter. 1 heaping tablesp. cornstarch. j^ teaspoonful salt. ^ saltspoonful pepper. Put the tomato, water, spices, herbs, and parsley on to boil in a granite saucepan. Fry the onion in the butter till yellow, add the cornstarch, and stir all into the tomato. Simmer ten minutes ; add the salt and pepper, and a little cayenne pepper, and strain the sauce over boiled meat or fish. Hollandaise Sauce (for Baked or Boiled Fish). (Miss ParloaJ % cup butter. Yolks of 2 eggs. Juice of % lemon. I saltspoonful salt. % saltspoonful cayenne pepper. % cup boiling water. Rub the butter to a cream in a small bowl with a wooden or silver spoon. Add the yolks, one at a time, and beat well ; then add the lemon juice, salt, and pepper. About five minutes before serving, add the boiling water. Place the bowl in a saucepan of boiling water and stir rapidly until it thickens like boiled custard. Pour the sauce around the meat or fish. 1 Tartar Sauce (Hot, for Broiled Fish). 1 tablespoonful vinegar. 1 teaspoonful lemon juice. 1 saltspoonful salt. 1 tablespoonful Worcestershire sauce. % cup butter. Mix the vinegar, lemon juice, salt, and Worcestershire sauce in a small bowl, and heat over hot water. Brown the butter in an omelet pan, and strain into the other mixture. 1 Sprinkle chopped parsley and pickles over the sauce if you like. Cold Sauces. Tartar Sauce (for Broiled or Devilled Chicken). One tablespoonful each of mustard, Chili vinegar, shalot vinegar, and claret wine, and two tablespoonfuls of Harvey tauce. Heat in a bowl over hot water, and pour it over the chicken. Horseradish Sauce (Hot, for Beef). 4 tablesp. grated horseradish. 4 tablesp. powdered cracker. 3^ cup cream. 1 teaspoonful powdered sugar. 1 teaspoonful salt. % saltspoonful pepper. 1 teaspoonful made mustard. 2 tablespoonfuls vinegar. Mix, and heat over hot water. Horseradish Sauce (Cold). Cream one fourth of a cup of butter till very light ; add two tablespoonfuls of grated horseradish, one tablespoonful of very thick cream, and half a teaspoonful of Tarragon vinegar. Keep it on the ice till thick and cold. Sauce Tartare (Cold, for Fried or Boiled Fish, Tongue, Fish Salad, or Broiled Chicken). 1 teaspoonful mustard. Y 2 saltspoonful pepper. 1 teaspoonful powdered sugar. 1 saltspoonful salt. Few drops onion juice. Yolks 2 raw eggs. 8 tablespoonfuls vinegar. 1 tablespoonful chopped olives. 1 tablespoonful chopped capers. 1 tablespoonful chopped cucum- ber pickles. 1 tablespoonful chopped parsley. % cup oil. Mix in the order given ; add the yolks, and stir well ; add the oil slowl}*, then the vinegar and chopped ingre- dients. This will keep for several weeks. Maitre d'Hotel Butter (Cold, for Beefsteak). % cup butter. % teaspoonful salt. 3^ saltspoonful pepper. 1 tablespoonful chopped parsley. 1 tablespoonful lemon juice. Rub the butter to a cream ; add salt, pepper, parsley, and lernop iuice. Snread it on hot beefsteak. ig6 The Boston Cook Book. Maitre d'Hotel Sauce (Hot). Add the beaten yolks of two eggs to the cold Maitre tf Ho- tel butter, and when ready to serve add one pint of drawn butter, made with strong white stock. Sauce for Fish Balls (Cold). 2 teaspoonfuls dry mustard. 1 teaspoonful salt. 1 teaspoonful sugar. 1 teaspoonful flour 1 teaspoonful soft butter. 2 tablespoonfuls vinegar. Mix in the order given, in a granite saucepan ; add half a cup of boiling water, and stir over the fire till it thickens and is smooth. Serve it cold. Mint Sauce (for Lamb). 1 cup fresh chopped mint. I ^ cup vinegar. ^ cup sugar. Use only the leaves and tender tips of the mint. Let it stand an hour before serving. Use more sugar if the vin- egar be very strong. Bearnaise Sauce. Heat two tablespoons of Tarragon vinegar and two of water, and steep in it a slice of onion. Cream four tablespoons of butter very light. Beat the yolks of four eggs slightly, add half a teaspoon salt and one salt- spoon paprika. Remove the onion, and add the hot liquid to the egg. Cook over the fire, stirring constantly until it is thick and smooth. Lift it up frequently, and stir well from the bottom. Often the heat in the thickened portion is sufficient to cook the remainder. When all thickened, add the creamed butter, a fourth at a time, and stir each portion until well blended. Serve it on broiled steak or chops. For fish, add one tablespoon each of fine chopped pickles, and parsley. Eggs. 197 EG-G-S. WHATEVER else you may economize in, do not limit your family in respect to eggs. They are nutritious, and even at four cents each are cheaper than meat. The}' should be used freely by ah 1 except those who know the}' cannot digest them. Using freely does not mean their unnecessary or extravagant use in rich cakes, custards, etc., nor in the indigestible form of fried or what is ordinarily called hard- boiled eggs ; but it means the frequent use of them in any of the simple forms of boiling, baking, omelets, plain cake, and other wholesome combinations. It is very poor econ- omy, especially for those who keep hens, to exchange eggs for corned beef or salt fish ; or to use soda and cream of tartar as a substitute for eggs in sponge cake, or half- cooked flour in an omelet. They may be served in an unlimited variety of styles, are especially suitable for breakfast or lunch, attractive as a garnish, and when combined with sugar and milk make the most healthful puddings, desserts, or tea dishes. But though a type of perfect food, eggs are not intended to be eaten exclusively, any more than other foods. They are one of the most highly concentrated forms of food, and, being wholly destitute of starch, should be eaten witli bread or rice. The white of the egg has but a trace of fat in it, anci requires the addition of butter, milk, or fat meat, like bacon or ham. The white of egg contains water, mineral ingredients, and soluble albumen ; the yolk has, in addi- tion to these, oil and sulphur. The albumen is enclosed in layers of thin- walled cells. When beaten, these walls break, and the albumen, owing to its glutinous nature, catches and holds the air, and increases to many times its original bulk. 1 98 The Boston Cook Book. Do not use an egg till it has been laid ten hours, as the white does not become set or thick till then, and cannot be beaten stiff. Eggs for poaching or boiling are best when thirty-six hours old. Albumen, when heated, becomes a dense solid ; if mixed and heated with a liquid, it hardens and entangles in its meshes any solids or impurities in the liquid, and rises to the surface with them as scum, or pre cipitates them. It is thus the white of egg clears soups, jellies, and coffee. Strong acids, corrosive sublimate, and creosote will also coagulate albumen ; and there- fore, if any of these poisons be taken into the system, the white of egg, swallowed quickly, will combine with the poison and protect the stomach. The shells of newly laid eggs are almost full ; but as the shells are porous, on exposure to the air, the water inside evaporates, and the eggs grow lighter, while air rushes in to fill the place of the water, and causes the nitrogenous elements to decompose, and the eggs soon spoil. This explains why a good egg is heavy, and will sink in water; and why a stale egg is lighter, has a rattling or gurgling sound, and floats in the water. Any- thing which will fill up the pores and thus exclude the air, when applied to perfectly fresh eggs, will preserve them indefinitely ; a coating of liquid fat or gum, or a packing in Dran or salt, with the small end downward, is effectual. Eggs should be kept in a cool, dark place, and handled carefully, as any rough motion may cause the white and yolk to become mixed, by rupturing the membrane which separates them, and then the egg spoils quickly. Never buy eggs about the freshness of which you have any doubt, not even in winter. One can easily judge which is the better economy, to pay twenty-five or thirty cents a dozen, and find none of them full and fresh, and perhaps half of them really rotten ; or to pay fifty cents, and obtain them freshly laid, not merely fresh from the country, and all sound and good. Eggs with a dark \ shell are richer and have larger yolks. Eggs are of better Boiled Eggs. 199 flavor and more palatable in the spring, but are good and suitable, if perfectly fresh, at any season. Boiled Eggs (the Best Way). Put the eggs in a saucepan, cover with boiling water, and let them stand about ten minutes where the water will keep hot (180), but not boiling. The white should be of a soft jelly-like consistency, and the yolk soft but not liquid. Experience will show the exact time to keep the eggs in the water to suit individual tastes. They should be served immediately, as they harden by being kept in the hot shell. An egg, to be cooked soft, should never be cooked in boiling water, as the white hardens un- evenly before the heat reaches the yolk. Hard-boiled Eggs. Cook eggs for twenty minutes in water just below the boiling-point, for use in any receipt which specifies hard-boiled eggs. The yolk of an egg cooked ten minutes is tough and indigestible ; twenty minutes will make the yolk dry and mealy ; then it may be more easily rubbed smooth for salad or other mixtures, and more quickly penetrated by the gastric fluid. If the shell of an egg be cracked before boiling, pierce several small holes | in the large end to keep the contents from bursting out at the crack. Dropped or Poached Eggs on Toast. Toast a slice of bread for each egg, and trim neatly, or cut with a round cutter before toasting. Have a very clean shallow pan nearly full of salted and boiling water. Remove all the scum, and let the water simmer. Break each egg carefully into a cup, and slip it gently into the water. Dip the water over them with a spoon, and when a film has formed on the }*olk and the white is firm, take each up with a skimmer ; drain, trim the edges, and place on the toast. Put a bit of butter and a little salt and pepper on each egg; or make a thin cream sauce and pour it around them. Put a tablespoonful of lemon juict 20O The Boston Cook Booh. in the water, or poach the eggs in muffin-rings to give them a better shape. An egg-poacher, something like a castor with perforated cups, is very convenient. No. 2. Spread the toast with butter and anchovy paste or sardine paste, and serve a poached egg on each slice ; or spread the toast with potted or finely minced boiled ham. Ham and Eggs. Serve poached eggs on thin slices of broiled or fried ham ; when served on hot, highly seasoned boiled rice, they are called Spanish Eggs. Eggs poached in Tomatoes, or a la Dauphine< (M. L. Clarke.) Stew slowly for ten minutes half a can of toma- toes and one small onion, cut fine. Season highly with salt and pepper and butter. Break six eggs into a bowl with- out beating, and when everything else is ready to serve slip them into the hot tomatoes. Lift the white care- fully with a fork, as it cooks, until it is all firm ; then prick the yolks and let them mix with the tomato and white. It should be quite soft, but with the red toma- toes, the white and yellow of the egg, quite distinct. Serve at once on toast. Scrambled Eggs. Beat four eggs slightly with a fork ; add half a teaspoonful of salt, half a saltspoonful of pepper, and half a cup of milk. Turn into a hot buttered omelet pan and cook quickly, stirring all the time till the egg is firm but soft. Serve on toast or with hot minced ham or veal. Any of the ingredients given in fancy omelets may be mixed with the beaten eggs before cooking. No. 2. Put a tablespoonful of butter in an omelet pan: when hot, add three whole eggs ; stir quickly till the mix- ture is firm but soft. Add a little salt and pepper, and serve at once. Omelets. Beat the yolks of two eggs till light-colored and thick ; add two tablespoonfuls of milk, one saltspoonful of salt, and one fourth of a saltspoonful of pepper. Beat the white* of two eggs till stiff and dry. Cut and fold them lightly into the yolks till just covered. Have a clean, smooth Omelets, 201 omelet pan. When hot, rub it round the edge with a teaspoonful of butter on a broad knife ; let the butter run ah 1 over the pan and when bubbling turn in the pmelet quickly and spread it evenly on the pan. Lift the pan from the hottest part of the fire and cook carefully, until slightly browned underneath ; slip the knife under to keep it from burning in the middle. Put it on the oven grate to p^. 10 . Plain Omelet dry (not brown) the top. When the whole centre is dry as you cut into it, run a knife round the edge, then under the half nearest the handle, and fold over to the right. Hold the edge of a hot platter against the lower edge of the pan, and in- vert the omelet upon the platter. Or add only half of the beaten whites to the yolks, and when nearly cooked spread the remainder over the top ; let it heat through ; fold over, and the white will burst out round the edge like a border of foam, making &foam omelet, or an}' fancy name you may choose to give it. If }'ou have no omelet pan, or no convenience for dry- ing the omelet in the oven, use a smooth iron spider or ftying-pan with a tin cover, and double the quantities given. Heat the pan and the cover very hot. Butter the pan, turn in the mixture, cover -it, and place on the back of the stove for five minutes, or till firm. Fold as usual. Omelets should be only slightly browned, never burned, as the flavor of scorched egg is not agreeable. One tablespoonful of chopped parsley, or a teaspoonful of fine grated onion, or two or three tablespoonfuls of grated sweet corn may be added to the yolks before cooking. Thin slices of cold ham, or three spoonfuls of chopped ham, veal, or chicken; stewed tomatoes or raw tomatoes sliced; chopped mushrooms, shrimps, oysters which have been par boiled and drained ; cooked clams, chopped fine ; or gratea 2O2 The Boston Cook Book. cheese, may be spread on the omelet before folding, giving all the varieties of fancy omelets, each variety taking the name of the additional ingredient. 2^0. 2. Beat six eggs until light and foamy with a Dover egg-beater ; add half a teaspoonful of salt and one scant salt- spoonful of pepper, and one cup of milk. Fry a large spoon- ful at a time in a hot pan or on a griddle, and roll over quickly like a French pancake. This is a convenient way "where the family coma irregularly to breakfast. The mix- / ture mav stand for some time if beaten again thoroughly before frying. Creamy Omelet. (Mrs. Ewing.} Beat/owr eggs slightly with a spoon till you can take up a spoonful. Add a scant half-teaspoonful of salt, half a saltspoonful of pepper, four tablespoonfuls of milk or cream, and mix well. Butter a hot omelet pan, and before the butter browns turn in the mixture. Then with the point of a fork pick or lift up the cooked egg from the centre and let the uncooked egg run under. This leaves the butter on the pan, and is better than stirring. Continue the lifting until the whole is of a soft creamy consistency ; then place it over a hotter part of the fire to brown slightly ; fold and turn out as usual. Sweet or Jelly Omelet. Allow a teaspoonful of powdered sugar to each egg, and omit the pepper. Mix and cook as in Omelet No. 1, and when ready to fold put two or three tablespoonfuls of an} T kind of preserves, marmalade, or jelly on the top. Fold and sprinkle with sugar. Orange Omelet. The thinly grated rind of one orange and three tablespoonfuls of the juice, three eggs, and three tea- spoonfuls of powdered suqar. Fio. 11. Orange Omelet. Y= , *\ , r y Beat the yolks; add the sugar, rind, and juice; fold in the beaten whites, and cook as in Omelet, No. 1. Fold, turn out, sprinkle thickly with powdered sugar, and score in diagonal lines with a clean red-hot poker. The burnt sugar gives to the omelet Baked Eggs. 203 a delicious flavor. Or cut the orange into sections, re- move the seeds and tough inner skin; cut each section into pieces, and mix with the 3'olks before cooking ; or spread part of the orange over the omelet before folding, and sprinkle the remainder over the sugared top. This is a convenient dessert for an emergency, and may be prepared in ten minutes if one have the oranges. Omelet Souffle. Allow a heaping teaspoonful of pow- dered sugar, a few drops of lemon or vanilla for flavoring, and two whites to each yolk. To make a small omelet, beat the yolks of two eggs till light and thick ; add two heaping teaspoonfuls of powdered sugar and half a teaspoon- ful of lemon or vanilla. Beat the whites of four eggs till stiff and dry, and fold them li^itly into the yolks. Put it by the tablespoonfuls lightly into a well-buttered baking- dish. Cook in a moderate oven about twelve minutes, or till well puffed up and a straw comes out clean. Serve at once, as it falls quickly. Baked Eggs. Small stone china dishes or egg-shirrers, holding one 01 two eggs for each person, are convenient for this method of serving eggs ; or use a common platter placed over hot water ; or bake in the sheHsiu a moderate oven ten minutes, first pricking several holes with a large pin in the large end of the egg, to keep the air within from bursting the shell as it expands < No. 1. Break eat. Cover with a thin white sauce, or Fancy Eggs. 207 any chicken or veal gravy ; sprinkle buttered crumbs over the whole, and bake till the crumbs are a delicate brown. No. 2. After the eggs are filled with the mixture and put together as above, roll each egg in fine bread crumbs and beaten egg and in crumbs again, then repeat the pro- cess, and fry in smoking hot fat. Drain, and serve hot with tomato sauce or garnished with parsley. Scotch Eggs. One cup of lean cooked ham chopped very fine ; six hard-boiled eggs. Cook one third of a cup of stale bread crumbs in one third of a cup of milk to a smooth paste. Mix it with the ham ; add half a teaspoonful of mixed mustard, half a saltspoonful of cayenne, and one raw egg. Mix well, remove the shells from the eggs, and cover with the mixture. Fry in hot fat two minutes. Drain, and serve hot or cold, for lunch or picnics. Cut them into halves lengthwise, and arrange each half on a bed of fine parsley. The contrast between the green, red, white, and yellow gives a very pretty effect. No. 2. Boil six eggs twenty minutes. Make a force- meat with one cup of any kind of cold meat finely chopped, half a cup of soft bread crumbs cooked to a paste, in one third of a cup of milk and one raw egg, beaten light, using just enough of the egg to unite the mixture, being careful not to have it too soft. If chicken be used, season with chopped parsley and a pinch of herbs ; season ham with mustard and cayenne ; veal, with lemon juice or horseradish; and salmon, with lemon and cayenne. Divide the eggs crosswise or lengthwise, or leave them whole. Cover each half or whole egg thickly with the force-meat, and place them on a buttered tin pan and bake in a hot oven till slightly browned. Arrange on a hot platter with a white sauce poured around (not over) them. Scalloped Eggs. Boil six eggs twenty minutes. Make one pint of white sauce with stock and cream or milk, and season to taste. Moisten one cup of fine cracker crumbs in one fourth of a cup of melted butter or cream. Chop fine one cup of ham, tongue, poultry, or fish. Remove the 208 The Boston Cook Book. yolks of the eggs, and chop the whites fine. Put a layer of buttered crumbs in a buttered scallop dish, then a layer of chopped whites, white sauce, minced meat, yolks rubbed through a fine strainer, and so on, until the material is all used, having the buttered crumbs on the top. Bake till the crumbs are brown. Egg Balls in Baskets. Boil three eggs twenty minutes. Remove the shells, cut off a thin slice at each end, that the eggs may stand upright, and cut in halves crosswise. Remove the yolks, and stand the cups or baskets thus made around the edge of a platter. Rub the yolks to a smooth paste ; add an equal amount of cooked ham or tongue, chopped fine, one taUespoonful of melted butter, salt, pep- per, and mustard to taste. Make into balls the size of the original yolks, and fill the cups. Make one cup of white sauce, with cream or milk and white stock, seasoned with salt and pepper. Pour it in the centre of the eggs. Set the platter in the oven a few minutes, and when ready to serve put a tin}* bit of parsley on each ball. In place of the meat, you may use, if you prefer, two tablespoonfuls of grated cheese, a speck of cayenne pepper, and moisten with vinegar and olive oil. Eggs a la Creme. Boil three eggs twenty minutes. Cut off a slice at each end, and cut the eggs in halves crosswise. Remove the yolks, and cut them in thin slices. Mix with them an equal amount of small thin pieces of cold chicken, ham, salmon, FIG. u. Eggs 4 la Creme. or lobster, and season to taste. Fill the white cups with the mixture. Place them on a shallow dish and pour one cup of thick cream sauce (page 190) around them. The sauce should come nearly to the top of the cups. Or cut the eggs in halves, and place them with the cut side down and serve in the sauce. Fancy Eggs. 209 Eggs in a Nest. Boil six eggs twenty minutes. Remove the shells. Separate the yolks without breaking ; or rub them to a smooth paste with a little olive oil to moisten, and shape into small balls. Cut the whites in thin narrow slices, and mix with them an equal quantity of fine shredded chicken, ham, or salmon, and a tablespoonful of fine sprigs of parsley. Pile this mixture, which should be light and dry, on a platter in a circular or oval ring, and put the yolks in the centre. Set the platter in a steamer, to heat the mixture. Make a pint of thick white sauce ; pour enough of it round the edge of the dish to come half-way up the nest, and serve the remainder in a sauce-boat. The same materials may be served cold as Devilled Eggs. Mix a little cayenne pepper and made mustard with the yolks and also with the shredded meat ; add a sprink- ling of vinegar, and garnish the dish with parsley or water- cresses. Or serve as a salad, garnished with cresses or lettuce, and sprinkle a French dressing over the whole. Egg Salad may be served in this form. Cut the yolks in dice, and mix them lightly with diced chicken, salmon, fish, or lobster; fill the white cups heaping with the mixture, and serve on a bed of lettuce or cresses, with French or Mayonnaise dressing. Egg Timbales. Beat six eggs lightly with fork till well mixed, add one and one-half cups of milk, one teaspoonfal of salt, a little pepper i one teaspoonful of minced parsley, one-fourth tea- spoonful of onion juice ; stir all well, pour into well-buttered moulds, set in pan of hot water, and cook in moderate oven till firm. Serve with either cream or tomato sauce. Hot Eggs. Into a hot bowl kept in very hot water break two eggs, add one teaspoon of butter and a dash of salt and pepper, beat them slightly, and when they taste hot, serve at once. Excellent when nourishment is needed quickly. n 210 The Boston Cook Book. MEAT. MEAT is a general term applied to the flesh of animals used for food. It includes the muscular flesh, sinews, fat, heart, liver, stomach, brains, and tongue. Meat is divided into three classes : Meat, including beef, veal, mutton, lamb, and pork. Poultry, including chicken, turkey, geese, and ducks, or all domestic fowls. Game, including partridges, grouse, pigeons, quail, or other birds, venison, and any wild meat that is hunted in the forest or field. Meat consists of several substances, fibrins, albumen, gelatine, fat, and the juice of flesh. Fibrine exists in the blood and flesh. In the former it is soluble, owing to the alkaline nature of the blood ; it is deposited by the blood, made into flesh, and becomes insoluble flesh- fibrine, and forms the basis or fibre of mus- cular tissue. It is separated into bundles by membranes, and into larger separate masses by cellular tissue, in which fat is deposited. Its true color is white ; but the blood in the veins which penetrate every part of the fibre gives it a reddish tinge. This may be seen by washing a piece of lean meat in cold water. The red coloring matter is soon drawn into the water, and the meat is a mass of white fibre. Fibrine is hardened and contracted by intense heat, but softened by moderate and long- continued heat. Meat that has tough fibre should simmer and not boil. Albumen exists in the flesh and in the blood. It is the soluble portion of the flesh. It dissolves in cold water, but hardens in hot water. Gelatine is a peculiar substance found in the tendons Meat. 211 and gristly parts of flesh, the shin, and the sinewy parts about the joints, and in the nutritive parts of bones. It may be dissolved by soaking in cold water, and then boil- ing gently for several hours. The solution hardens when cold. Gelatine hardens in a dry heat, and such parts of meat as contain it in abundance should be stewed, rather than roasted or broiled. Fat of meat is contained, a good measure of it, in the adipose tissue of almost all flesh which is used as food. It is liquefied by heat, and resolved into various acid and acrid bodies. It is a warmth-giver, and is therefore most appropriately used in cold seasons and climates. The juice of the flesh consists of water, a small propor- tion of albumen, and a mixture of other compounds. It is not the blood, for it still exists after the blood has been withdrawn. It may be obtained by chopping lean meat fine, putting it in a closely covered jar without water, and heating it gradually. If heated above 160, the albumi- nous matters in it harden and turn brown. The solid residue, consisting of fibres, tissue, etc., is white, tasteless, and inodorous. This separated juice is strongly acid, while the blood is always alkaline. It contains many sub- stances which are very valuable as food, and the savory principle, or ozmazome, which gives flavor to the meat and causes it to differ in different animals. Meat should always be cooked in such a manner as to retain the largest proportion of this juice. The juice is drawn out into the brine in salting, and this renders salt meat less nutritious. The juice when the water has been separated from it by evaporation, is termed extract of meat. The flesh of all young animals is more tender, but not so nutritious as that of maturer animals. Nearly all parts of an animal may be used as food. Meat is in season all the year ; but certain kinds are better at stated times. Pork is good only in autumn and winter ; veal, in the spring and summer ; venison, in the winter ; fowls, in autumn and winter ; lamb, in the summer and fall ; mutton and beef&t any time. 212 The Boston Cook Book. FIG. 15. Diagram of Ox. 1. Tip of Sirloin. 2. Middle of Sirloin. 8. First Cut of Sirloin. 4. Back of Bump. 5. Middle of Rump. 6. Face of Rump. 7. AitchBone. 8. Lower Part of Round. 8J. Top of Round. 9. Vein. 10. Poorer Part of Round. 11. Poorer Part of Vein. 12. Shin. 13. Boneless Flank. 14. Thick Flank with Bone. 15. First Cut of Ribs. c. Chuck Ribs. d. Neck. 16. Rattle Rand. 17- Second Cut of Rattle Rand. 18. Brisket (a. the navel end ; b the butt end). 19. Fore Shin. FIG. 16. Hind Quarter of Beef. The figures in the hind quarter correspond to those in the same section of the whole ox. Cost of Meat. 213 All meat should be removed from the brown paper in which it is wrapped as soon as it comes from the market, or it will taste of the paper and the paper will absorb the meat juices. Wipe all over with a clean wet cloth. Chops and steaks will keep sweet much longer if examined at once, and any parts that are not clean and sweet removed. In warm weather look at the meat often. Put it on a dish near, but never directly upon, the ice. Cost of Meat and Game. Shin of beef, 3 to 6 cts. per lb. Middle cut of shin, 7 to 10 " " Lower part of round, 13 to 15 " " Vein, 20 to 25 " " Top of round, 20 to 25 " " Aitch bone, 8 to 10 " " Face of rump, 17 to 22 " Middle, " 25 to 28 " Back, " 22 to 30 " " Sirloin, 28 to 33 " Whole tenderloin, 75 c. to $1.00 " Small " 30 to 45 cts. " Tip of sirloin, 22 to 30 " " First cut of rib, 17 to 25 " Second cut of rib, 15 to 20 " " Chuck rib, 7 to 14 " " Second cut, rib eorned, 12 to 15 " " Brisket, 8 to 12 " Boneless brisket, 15 " Flank, 6 to 11 " Liver, 10 to 12 " " Tripe, plain, 6 to 18 " " Tripe, honey-comb, 15 " " Heart, 3 to 10 u " Suet, 7 to 12 " Mutton, leg, 12 to 20 " " Mutton, loin, 14 to 20 " Mutton, saddle, 15 to 20 " " Mutton, chops, 15 to 25 " " Mutton, fore quarter, 8 to 12 " " Mutton, neck, 6 to 9 " " Lamb, leg, 14 to 30 cts. per lb Lamb, chops, 15 to 40 " Lamb, fore quarter, 10 to 25 " ' Veal, knuckle, 12 to 17 " " Veal, cutlet, 22 to 28 ' Veal, breast, 9 to 14 " Sweetbreads, 25 to 70 ' whole. Calf's liver, 25 to 70 ' " Calf's heart, 5 to 8 ' each. Calf's head, 25 to 60 " " Fresh pork, 9 to 15 " per lb. Salt pork, 11 to 15 " Bacon, bag, 17 to 20 " " Bacon, slices, 15 to 18 " " Ham, bag, 17 to 20 " " Ham, sliced, 20 to 25 " " Lard, 11 to 15 " " Leaf lard, 10 to 15 " Sausage, 12 to 20 " Turkeys, 20 to 35 " " Fowl, 12 to 30 " " Chickens, 18 to 75 " Ducks, wild, 25 c. to $1.50 each, Ducks, tame, 20 to 37 cts. per lb, Ducks, Canvas- back, $1.50 to $2.00 each. Grouse, 75 c. to $1.25 " Partridge, 75 c. to $1.25 " Pigeon, wild, 75 c. to $2.00 per d. Pigeon, tame, 12^ to 25 cts. each. Squab, $2.50 to $4.50 per d Quail, $1.50 to $3.00 " 214 The Boston Cook Book. BEEF. GOOD beef should be bright red, well marbled with yel- lowish-white fat, and with a thick outside layer of fat. The flesh must be firm, and when pressed with the finger no mark should be left. The suet should be dry, and crumble easily. A side of beef is divided into the hind quarter and fore quarterc The hind quarter consists of the round, the rump, and the loin. The fore quarter is divided into the back half and the rattle rand. In cutting up a hind quarter, the flank is first removed. The cut should slant two or three inches toward the tip. The upper part of the flank has the ends of the short ribs, and is used for corning. The lower end of the flank has no bones. This may be stuffed, rolled, and boiled, either fresh or corned. The round is sep- Fio.17. AitchBone. rump in the line from 7 to 9. The aitch bone (7) lies between the back and middle cut of the rump and the top of the round. It is usually sold whole ; it makes a good roast for a small family, considering the price (10 cents), and is the best piece for a beef stew. The first cuts of the vein (9) which joins the face of the rump make good steak. The top of the round is Beef. 215 the inside of the thickest part of the leg (8, behind 8 in the diagram). As seen on the counter, it is above the bone. It consists of one large section or muscle with a thick edge of fat. The best round steaks lie between this point and the ridge of fat. The third slice is considered the best. After cutting beyond this ridge comes the beginning of another muscle, which is very tough. One may easity detect, by the separation of this narrow strip of meat along the top of the slice, whether the meat came from the best part of the top of the round. It may be the PIG. 18. Round, showing the beginning of the tough muscle on the top. best the marketman has ; but it is not the best cut, though often palmed off in place of the third slice. The under part of the round has two sections or muscles, the one nearest the bone being larger than the outside section. The skin is thin, with very little fat. Steaks from this cut are sometimes sold as good round steak to the ignorant buyer ; but keep in mind that in the top cut there is one large muscle with thick fat, instead of two smaller muscles and thin fat, and you will not be deceived. This under cu+ of the round is excellent for braising. It is well shaped, requires no trimming, and is the cheapest cut, as every scrap of it may be eaten. Below this, as we follow down the leg, are nice pieces for stews, pie meat, etc. The marrow bone, running through the round to the shin, contains the best marrow. The next best is in the 216 The Boston Cook Book. foreshin. The hind shin differs from the fore shin in hav- ing a thick tendon, which separates entirely from the end of the leg, and unites again at the joint, forming a loop by which the hind quarter is hung on the meat hook. The middle cut of the shin may be used for stews and brais- ing, and the lower part for soups. The rump is usu- ally separated from the loin, and divid- ed into the back, middle, and face of the rump. The back of the rump, one of the best pieces for roasting, has part of the backbone and sometimes the rump bone, as some marketmen will not cut it out before weighing. The small end nearest the loin has the most tender meat. PIG. 19. Back of Rump. PIG. 20. First Cut of Sirloin, showing the bulging muscle on upper edge. The middle cut has no bone, but it is not tender. It is better for braising than for roasting. Some- times the rump is not divided, and is cut into steaks. If cut parallel with the backbone, ii will be tough. If cut at right angles, and from the end nearest the loin, it makes the Sirloin. 217 FIG. 21. Sirloin Boast, second Cut best steaks, and is well worth the extra price charged for cutting in this manner. The face of the rump has a thick piece of fat in the middle, often purposely covered by a thin cutting from the ten- derloin. This is a cheap piece for roasting, but not of the best quality. The sirloin is separated from the rump in a slant- ing direction. Never buy the first slice, as it always has a small narrow bone near the top in addition to the rib, and a larger por- tion of tough flank and gristle than the middle or second cuts. As it lies on the counter you ma3 T easily tell if it be the first slice by the small bone ; and if you press on the top of the meat near the middle, a small sec- tion of meat bulges out. This is the end of the muscle forming the face of the rump and vein, and is very tough. The second cut of sirloin has the most tenderloin, and onl}' a straight rib at right angles with the backbone. An}' part after the first slice is taken off, until you come to the tip, is called the second cut, and is sold for roasts or steak. The tip is ver} r juicy. The whole hind-quarter is hung up by the shin, the juices all flow down, and the tip holds a large portion. The muscles which are the least used have the most tender fibre and the least juice. These muscles, lying along the loin or middle of the backbone, above the ribs, and forming the top of the sirloin, are more tender, but less juicy, than those of the rump and round. The tenderloin, lying along the middle of the back under the sirloin, from below the tip to the face of the rump, is protected by its bed of suet below, and its roof of bones above. It is a muscle very little used, is very tender, but dry, and entirely without flavor. This is removed 2i8 The Boston Cook Book. whole, and sold as the long fillet ; or divided, and the smaller part, lying under the rump, sold as the short fillet In cold weather it is economy to buy a large sirloin. Remove the fillet, or tenderloin, and cook that first, as it PIG. 22. Tip of Sirloin. spoils easily; corn the flank, or use it for a stew; and roast the upper part. If very large, roast it slightly the first time, and it may be roasted again for a second dinner. The Fore Quarter. The back half of the fore quarter has the backbone on the upper edge. The best roasting piece is the first cut of the rib, which joins the tip of the sirloin, and is sometimes sold for the tip. The tip has only one thick muscle above the rib, and the bones are usually slanting. One side of the first cut of the rib looks just like the tip ; the other side has the beginning of another tough muscle next to the skin, and the bones are straight. There are ten ribs in the fore quarter ; three are left in the sirloin. This first cut may be one, two, three, or four ribs ; but two are enough to roast for a small family. The shoulder blade begins in the fifth rib, and above this lie what are called the chuck ribs. The meat above the blade is tough, and Rib Beef. 219 only suitable for stews. The part underneath is cut into small steaks, and is often offered for sale as sirloin steaks. The shoulder of mutton, just above the fore shin, is good for braising and pie meat. The rattle rand is divided into three long narrow strips, thick and lean at the upper end, and thin and fat at the lower end, all of which are usually corned. The upper part, called the rat- tle, is divided into three cuts. The thick upper end is preferred by those who like lean corned beef. The second cut has straight ribs running through it, and three distinct laj'ers of meat with fat, and is considered the choicest piece by those who like " a streak of fat and FIG. 23. First Cut of Rib. Fio. 24. Chuck Rib, with six ribs removed. a streak of lean." The middle strip has a thick layer of fat, and only one layer of lean, and the bones are slanting. This is not a desirable piece. The lower strip ia the brisket, the upper end of which is thick ; the lower end, 22O The Boston Cook Book. toward the middle of the creature, is called the navel end. Brisket pieces alwa} r s have what is called a selvedge on the lower side, and the breast bones running at right angles with the rib. After a little experience in marketing one may easily distinguish the various cuts of beef. It is well to know what you want, and to know whether you get what you have ordered. Roast Sirloin of Beef. Six or eight pounds from the tip or second cut of the sirloin, Wipe, trim, and tie or skewer into shape. If there be a large piece of the flank, cut it off, and use it for soups or stews. If you prefer to use it for this purpose after roast- ing, draw it round underneath and fasten it with a skewer. Lay the meat on a rack in a pan, and dredge all over with salt, pepper, and flour. Put it in a very hot oven with two or three tablespoonfuls of drippings or pieces of the beef fat placed in the pan. Place a rack under the pan, or turn the heat off from the bottom of the oven. Put the skin side down at first, that the heat may harden the juices in the lean part. When the flour is brown on the pan and the meat is seared, baste with the fat and reduce the heat. Baste often, and dredge twice with salt and flour. When seared all over, turn and bring the skin side up for the final basting and browning. Bake fifty or sixty minutes, if liked very rare ; an hour and a quarter to an hour and a half, if liked well done. If there be any danger of burning the fat in the pan, add a little hot water after the flour is browned. Meat may be roasted and carved better if placed in the pan and on the platter with the skin up instead of the flesh side. Carve a sirloin roast by cutting several thin slices parallel with the ribs. Then cut down near the backbone and sep- arate the slices. Cut out the tenderloin from under the bone, and slice it in the same manner. Many turn the sirloin over and remove the tenderloin first. Serve a little of the crisp fat on the flank to those who wish it. Roast Beef. 221 Rib Roast. Remove the backbone and ribs. Skewer or tie into a round shape, and prepare as for sirloin. Allow a longer time for roasting, as the meat is in a more com- pact form without the bones. Place it skin side up on the platter, and carve thin slices from the flesh side. The Back of the Rump. This is the best and .cheapest piece for roasting, as the meat is all good and there is not as much bone as in other pieces. It is usually too large for a small family ; but in cold weather it may be used to advantage, by cutting steaks from the thickest end, using the small end for a roast and the bones for soup. In carving the rump, when the bone has not been taken out, a deep cut should be made at the base, to loosen the meat ; then the slices may be cut lengthwise or crosswise. When the family is large and all the meat is to be used, it is well to cut it lengthwise. Should only a small quan- tity be needed, cut only from the small end, and save the tougher parts for a stew. Many think it more economical to serve the poorer parts the first day, as they are then more palatable, reserving the tender meat to be served cold. Roast from the Round. A slice three inches thick, from the best part of the top of the round, may be dredged with salt, pepper, and flour, and roasted. Carve in thin slices, the same as steak. It is rather tough, but juicy and well flavored. Yorkshire Pudding. Beat three eggs very light. Add one scant teaspoonful of salt and one pint of milk. Pour half a cup of this mixture on two thirds of a cup of flour, and stir to a smooth paste. Add the remainder of the mixture and beat well. Bake in hot gem pans forty-five minutes. Baste with the drippings from the beef. This is a more convenient way than to bake in the pan under the beef, and gives more crust. Serve as a garnish for roast beef. Gravy for Roast Beef. When the meat is done, put it on a plate, and keep it hot while making the gravy. Hold the corner of the dripping-pan over a bowl ; let the liquid in the pan settle ; then pour off all the fat and save it 222 The Boston Cook Book. When no water is used in baking and the oven is very hot, this liquid will be the fat from the meat. The brown flour will settle, and some will adhere to the pan. Pour one pint of hot water or stock into the pan, and scrape off all the sedi- ment. Pour this water into a saucepan from which it may be poured easily, and place it on the stove to heat. Put four tablespoonfuls of the hot fat into a small fiying-pan, and when browned stir in two heapiny tablespoonfuls of dry flour, or enough to absorb all the fat. Stir until the flour is brown and well mixed ; then add the hot liquid grad- ually, and stir as it thickens. Season with salt and pepper, and simmer five minutes. Strain if not perfectly smooth. Gravy can be made in the dripping-pan ; but such pans are usually large, inconvenient to handle, and take up more space than can be spared on the top of the stove, and are much harder to wash when the gravy has been made in them. To make it in the pan, pour off nearty all the fat. Put the pan on the stove and add dry flour until the fat is all absorbed. Then add hot water or hot stock, and stir as it thickens. Cook five to eight minutes, and strain. It is well for those who like gravies to make a large quantity, as it is useful in warming over the remnants of the roast. But there is no sauce or made gravy equal to the natural juices contained in the meat, which should flow freely into the platter when the meat is carved. FIG. 25. Fillet of Beef. Fillet of , Beef . Wipe, and remove the fat, veins, and tough tendinous portion in the middle. Trim into shape. Lard the upper side (see page 25). Dredge with salt, pep- per, and flour. Put several pieces of pork in the pan under Broiled Steak. 223 the meat. Bake in a hot oven twenty or thirty minutes. If you prefer, omit the pork and put the choice pieces of beef fat over the meat. Serve with mushroom sauce. Or brush the fillet with beaten egg, and sprinkle seasoned and buttered crumbs all over it, and bake thirty minutes. Or stuff' the incisions left by the removal of the veins and tendons with any stuffing or force-meat. Dredge with sail and flour, and bake. Broiled Steak. Wipe, trim off the superfluous fat, and remove the bone. Save the flank end for broiled meat cakes. Grease the gridiron with some of the fat. Broil over a clear fire, turning every ten seconds. Cook three or four minutes, if liked rare ; longer, if well done. Serve on a hot platter. Season with butter, salt, and pepper, or serve with Maitr? cT Hotel butter. Steaks should be cut at least an inch thick. Many prefer them much thicker. Sirloin, cross cut of the rump, and top of the round are all good steaks. The round is juicy, but has a net work of tough white fibre, which makes it difficult to masticate. If the steak be very tough, pound it with a meat hammer (a hammer with sharp teeth for cutting) or cut across it several times with a sharp knife on each side. The intense heat will sear the surface quickly, and prevent the escape of the juices. Many prefer not to remove the bone in a sirloin steak ; but it burns quickly, and is better for the soup kettle if not cooked, and the steak is more easily carved when the bone is removed. Carve in narrow slices, giving each person a bit of tenderloin, fat, and upper part. Broikd Fillet of Beef. Cut slices from the tenderloin. Wipe the meat ; grease the gridiron ; broil over a clear fire, turning every ten counts, for three or five minutes. Spread with Maitre d' Hotel butter. Broiled Meat Cakes. Chop lean, raw beef quite fine. Season with salt, pepper, and a little chopped onion, or onion juice. Make it into small flat cakes, and broil on a well- greased gridiron or on a hot frying-pan. Serve very hot 224 TI ie Boston Cook Book. with butter or Maitre d? Hotel sauce. The flank end of the sirloin is better when cooked in this manner than when broiled with the other part of the steak. Hamburgh Steak. Pound a slice of round steak enough to break the fibre. Fry two or three onions, minced fine, in butter until slightly browned. Spread the onions over the meat, fold the ends of the meat together, and pound again, to keep the onions in the middle. Broil two or three minutes. Spread with butter, salt, and pepper. Braised Beef. Four to six pounds of beef from the lower part of the round or face of the rump. Trim, and rub well with salt, pepper, and flour. Cut two small onions into dice, and fry them until light brown in salt pork fat or drippings. Skim them out into a braising-pan or large granite pan ; then brown the meat all over, adding more fat if needed. Put the meat into the pan on skewers, to keep it from stick- ing, with the onions around, not under, the meat. Add one quart of boiling water and one tablespoonful of mixed herbs, which should be tied in a small piece of strainer cloth. Cover closely, putting a brick on the cover to keep it down, and cook in a moderate oven four hours, basting every twenty minutes. Turn over after two hours ; add more water as it evaporates, so as to have one pint left for gravy. When tender, take up the meat, remove the fat and bag of herbs from the gravy ; add more salt and pep- per, and if desired add lemon juice, tomato, or mushrooms; thicken with two tablespoonfuls of flour, wet in a little cold water. Cook ten minutes, and pour the gravy over the meat. Garnish with potato balls, boiled onions, or with veg- etables a la Jardiniere. Horseradish sauce ma} 7 be served with the meat. This is a very nutritious, palatable, and convenient way of cooking the cheaper parts of beef, a cusiii^n of veal, tongues, fowls, liver, and some other kinds of meat. The meat is equally good cold or hot ; there is no waste if care be taken not to let it become hard and dry Beef Stew. 225 by being exposed to the air. This method of cooking commends itself especially to those who " are tired of roasted, boiled, or fried meat." Beef a la Mode. Four to six pounds from the under part of the round of beef, cut thick. Wipe, and trim off the rough edges. Put it in a deep earthen dish, and pour over it spiced vine- gar, made by boiling for five minutes one cup of vinegar, one onion, chopped fine, three teaspoonfuls of salt, and half a teaspoonful each of mustard, pepper, cloves, and allspice. Let the meat stand several hours, turning it often. Then daub it with ten or twelve strips of salt pork, cut one third of an inch wide, and as long as the meat is thick, inserting them with a larding-needle or carving-steel. Or make large incisions and stuif with bread crumbs, highly seasoned with salt, pepper, onions, thyme, marjoram, etc., moistened with hot water, one tablespoonful of butter, and one well-beaten egg. Tie it into good shape with a narrow strip of cotton cloth, to keep in the stuffing. Dredge with flour. Cut two onions, half a carrot, and half a turnip fine, and fry them in fat or drippings until brown. Put them in the stewpan. Then brown the meat all over in the fat ; put it on a trivet in the pan, and half cover with boiling water. Add one tablespoonful of mixed herbs, tied in a small strainer cloth. Cover closely, and simmer four hours, or until tender. Take it up carefully, remove the strings, and put it on a large platter. Remove the fat from the gravy, add more seasoning, and thicken with flour wet in a little cold water ; boil -eight minutes, and strain it over the meat. Garnish with potato balls and small onions. Beef Stew with Dumplings. The aitch bone is the nicest piece for a beef stew. There is some very juic}* meat on the upper side in the large muscle which lies next to the top of the round, 'and it will serve a small family for a roast, and then may be made 15 226 The Boston Cook Book. into a stew. The flavor obtained by roasting adds much to the stew ; for this reason, when the meat has not been cooked, brown it in a little fat before stewing. The bones should never be chopped and splintered, but sawed care- fully, and all the fine, crumbly pieces removed before cooking. Other good pieces for stews are two or three pounds from the middle cut of the shin, or the flank end of a large sirloin roast, or the upper part of the chuck rib. Any part that has bone and fat, as well as lean, either cooked or uncooked, makes the best-flavored stew. The fat and bones may be removed before serving, and such pieces are much better than dry, lean meat. Remove the meat from the bones, and put them with part of the fat into the stewpan. Cut the meat into small pieces, and if not previously cooked, dredge with salt, pepper, &r\& flour, and brown all over in salt pork fat or drippings. Put it into the stewpan. Cut two onions, one small white turnip, and half a small carrot (if you like the flavor) into half-inch dice. Cook them slightly in the dripping, and add them to the stew. Add boiling water enough to cover, and sim- mer two or three hours, or till the meat is tender. Remove the bones, and skim off the fat. While the meat is cook- ing pare six or eight small potatoes, and soak them in cold water. When the meat is tender, pour boiling water over them, and boil five minutes to take out the acrid taste. Drain, and add them to the stew. Add salt and pepper to taste. When dumplings are to be served with the stew, add them when the potatoes are nearly done. The liquor should come up just even with the potatoes, that the dump- plings may rest on them. Cover closely to keep in the steam, and cook ten minutes without lifting the cover. Take out the dumplings, put the meat and potatoes in the centre of a hot platter, and the dumplings round the edge. Remove the fat, and add more salt and pepper, if needed, to the broth ; and if not thick enough, add a little flout wet smooth in cold water, and boil five minutes. Add one cup of strained tomato and one teaspoon ful of chopped parsley Pot Roast. 227 Pour the gravy over the meat, putting part of it in a sauce tureen if there be more than the platter will hold. Dumplings. One pint of flour, half a teaspoonful of salt, one teaspoonful of cream of tartar, and half a tea- spoonful of soda (or three level teaspoonfuls of baking- powder). Mix with one scant cup of sweet milk into a dough soft enough to handle easily. Pat it out half an inch thick. Cut in small rounds, or mix softer and drop by the spoonful into the boiling stew. Cook ten minutes. Rolled Flank of Beef. Four or Jive pounds of the flank. Wipe, and remove the skin, membrane, and extra fat. Pound and trim until of uniform thickness. Make a stuffing with one cup of cracker crumbs, two tablespoonfuls of fine chopped salt pork, half a teaspoonful of salt, one saltspoonful each of thyme, marjoram, and sage, half a saltspoonful of pepper, a few drops of onion juice, or one teaspoonful of chopped onion, and one egg. Moisten with hot water until soft enough to spread over the meat. Roll over, and tie or sew securely. Wrap a cloth around it. Put it into boiling water, and simmer six hours or until tender. Remove the cloth, press it, and when cold remove the strings. Serve cold, cut in thin slices. Corned flank ma}' be prepared in the same way. The stuffing may be omitted, and the meat covered with vinegar spiced and flavored with onion, and after remain- ing in the pickle several hours, rolled, and boiled as above. Smothered Beef, or Pot Roast. Four to six pounds from the middle or face of the rump, the vein, or the round. Wipe with a clean wet cloth. Sear all over by placing in a hot ftying-pan and turning till all the surface is browned. Put in a kettle with one cup of water, and place it where it will keep just below the boiling-point. Do not let the water boil entirely away, but add only enough to keep the meat from burning 228 The Boston Cook Book. Have the cover fitting closely to keep in the steam. Cook until very tender, but do not let it break. Serve hot or cold. The meat when cold is delicious, cut in quarter- inch slices, and sauted in hot butter. Spiced Beef. Four to Expounds from the middle cut of the shin. Wash the meat on the outside, and cut off any part of the skin which is not sweet and clean. Pick off all the fine frag- ments of bone. Cut the meat into several pieces ; cover with boiling water. Skim carefully as it boils, and then simmer until the meat falls to pieces, and the liquor is reduced to half a pint. Remove the meat ; season the liquor highly with salt, pepper, sage, and thyme. Add it to the meat, and mix with a fork till the meat is all broken. Pack in a brickloaf pan. When cold, cut in thin slices. Corned Beef. Select a piece of beef which has a fair proportion of fat, - the brisket or second cut of rattle rand. If very salt, soak in cold water half an hour. Put on to boil in fresh cold water, enough to cover it. If not very salt, wash it and use boiling water, but never let it boil fast. Skim care- fully when it begins to boil, and cook slowly, simmering (not boiling) until so tender that you can pick it to pieces with a fork. Let the water boil away toward the last, and let the beef stand in the water until partially cooled. Lift it out of the water with a skimmer, and pack it in a brickloaf pan; let the long fibres run the length of the pan ; mix in the fat so that it will be well marbled. Put a thin board, a trifle smaller than the in- side of the pan, over the meat, and press by putting a heavy weight on the board. When cold, cut in thin slices. This is the most appetizing way of serving the fat of the meat, which in corned beef is a desirable part and is often untouched if offered in a mass on the edge of the lean. ti oiled D'mneri 229 An Old-fashioned Boiled Dinner. (Mrs. Poor.) Notwithstanding that this dish has fallen into ill-repute with many people, it may be prepared so as to be both pal- atable and nutritious for those who exercise freely. It is more suitable for cold seasons. The most healthful and economical way, though perhaps not the old-fashioned way, is to boil the beef the day before. Four pounds of corned beef, two or three beets, a smatt cab- bage, two small carrots, one small white French turnip, six or tight potatoes of uniform size, and one small crooked-neck tquash. Wash and soak the corned beef in cold water, and put it an to boil in fresh cold water ; skim, and simmer until ten- der, but not long enough for it to fall to pieces. Let it cool in the liquor in which it was boiled. Put it into a flat shallow dish, cover it with a board, and press it. Remove all the fat from the meat liquor, and save it to clarify for shortening. Save the meat liquor, but do not let it stand in an iron kettle or tin pan. Boil the beets the day before, also', and cover them with vinegar. The next day prepare the vegetables: Wash them all, scrape the carrots, and cut the cabbage into quarters ; pare the turnip and squash, and cut into three-quarter-inch slices, and pare the potatoes. Put the meat liquor on to boil about two hours before dinner time ; when boiling, put in the carrots, afterward the cabbage and turnip, and half an hour before dinner add the squash and potatoes. When tender, take the vegetables up carefully ; drain the water from the cabbage by pressing it in a colander. Slice the carrots. Put the cold meat in the centre of a large dish, and serve the carrots, turnips, and potatoes round the edge, with the squash, cabbage, and pickled beets in separate dishes ; or serve each vegetable in a dish by itself. This may all be done the same day if the meat be put on to boil very early, removed as soon as tender, the fat taken off, and the vegetables added to the boiling meat liquor, beginning with those which require the longest time to 230 The Boston Cook Book. cook. This will depend very much upon their freshness. But whichever way the dish is prepared, boil the beets alone, remove the meat and fat before adding the vege- tables, and serve each as whole and daintily as possible. The next morning use what remains of the vegetables as a vegetable hash. Vegetable Hash. Equal parts of cabbage, beets, and tur* nips, and as much potato as there is of all the other vege- tables. Chop all very fine ; add a little salt and pepper / put a spoonful of drippings in the fiying-pan, and when hot add the hash, and cook slowly until warmed through. Tongue in Jelly. Wash a fresh tongue, and skewer the tip to the root. Cook until tender in boiling salted water ; remove the skin ; trim and tie it in good shape. Season two quarts of soup stock highly with salt, pepper, herbs, and wine or lemon. Clear it with eggs, and stiffen with the proportion of Cox's gelatine, as given for Aspic Jelly. Pour a little jelly into a mould ; when cool, lay in the cold tongue, and add the remainder of the jelly slowly. Smoked Tongue. Smoked tongues are much more pala- table, though not so economical as when fresh. Bend the tip of the tongue around, and tie it to the root. Put it in cold water and place over the fire. When the water boils, pour off the water, and put it on again in cold water. Boil until tender, or about two hours. Remove the skin, roots, and fat. Pour a white sauce over the tongue, and serve it hot; or serve it cold with a salad dressing. Tongues may also be braised (see Braised Beef, page 224) and served hot or cold. Lyonnaise Tripe. Tripe should always be boiled twenty to thirty minutes before cooking, or it will be tough. Cut the tripe in small pieces ; boil twenty-five minutes, and drain. Fry one tablespoonful of chopped onion in one Z/iver. 231 heaping tablespoonful of butter till yellow. Add the tripe, one tablespoonful of vinegar, and one tablespoonful of chopped parsley, salt and pepper to taste. Simmer five minutes, and serve plain or on toast. Broiled Tripe. Boil the tripe twenty minutes ; dry it, spread with soft butter, salt, and pepper, and broil until brown. Tripe in Batter. Boil the tripe twenty minutes. Cut in pieces two inches square, dip in batter, and fty in salt pork fat in a frying-pan. Batter. One egg, one quarter of a cup of water, one tablespoonful of vinegar, one teaspoonful of salt, and flour to make almost a drop batter. Liver. Soak ten minutes in boiling water to draw out the blood. Drain ; remove the thin skin and veins. Cut into pieces for serving. Season with salt and pepper; roll in flour, and fty in salt pork or bacon fat. Drain, and serve with a brown gravy, seasoned with onion, lemon juice, or vinegar. Or spread with butter, and broil, and season with salt, pepper, and butter. Kidneys. Beef and sheep's kidneys are often recommended for food on account of their cheapness. Epicures are fond of them. The taste for them is an acquired taste, which it is not desirable to cultivate. The latest decision of physicians is that they are not suitable to eat ; as " from their constant use in the animal system as excretory or- gans, organs which separate from the blood that which, if it remained in the blood, would poison the system, they are often liable to become diseased." 232 The Boston Cook BOOK. MUTTON AND LAMB. MUTTON stands next to beef in nutritive qualities, and with many has even more value as food, because more easily digested. In mutton about one half the weight is in fat, while with beef it is only one third. The choicest mutton comes from the mountainous re gions of Pennsylvania, Virginia, and North Carolina. Good mutton should be large and heavy, the fat clear white and very hard, the flesh fine-grained and bright red. Poor mutton has but little fat, and little flesh as compared with the bone. Mutton is cut at the market by splitting down the back, and dividing at the loin into the hind and fore quarters ; or the hind and fore quarters are separated without split- ting, and the loin is taken out whole and sold as the sad- dle of mutton. The leg, loin, and saddle are best for roasting, and are better if kept for some time before cook- ing. The leg, if to be boiled, should be fresh. The fore quarter is good boned and stuffed ; then steamed, and browned in the oven. The neck arid bones are used for broths and stews. Chops are cut from the ribs and from the loin. The rib chops are sometimes cut long, with the flank on. The bone is removed and the meat rolled. These roll chops are not economical, as the flank forms the greater part. French chops are cut short from the rib, and the flesh is scraped clean from the end of the bone. The best-flavored, most tender, and cheapest in the end, are the chops from the loin. They have very little bone, and a piece of tenderloin. Mutton has a strong flavor, disagreeable to man}''. It is said to be caused by the oil from the wool, which pen- etrates the skin. The pink skin above the fat should always be removed from chops, and wherever it is pos- Leg of Mutton. 233 sible, scrape it off without cutting into the lean. The caul, or lining membrane of the abdomen, is fastened round the meat, particularly on the leg, partly to increase its weight. This is often left on in roasting to help baste the meat ; but it gives a strong flavor, and should always be removed, and the kidney fat used if needed. If care be taken in selecting only the best mutton, and in cook- ing it in the best manner, many who have become preju- diced against it could eat it with as much relish as beef. Mutton may be cooked rare, but lamb should always be well cooked. The end of the bone in a leg of mutton is smooth and oval, and is separated at the joint; while lamb may be known from mutton by the flat, irregularly grooved end of the bone, which is broken off squarely, instead of separated at the joint. Sometimes the bone is cut off close to the second joint, and then you will have to depend upon the word of your butcher. Saddle or Loin of Mutton or Lamb. Trim off all the pink skin and superfluous fat. Remove the ends of the ribs, the cord, and veins along the back. Wipe, and rub the inside with salt. Roll the flank under on each side, and sew it across the middle. Dredge with salt, pepper, and flour ; place it in the pan, with the inside up, in order to thoroughly cook the fat. Baste, and dredge often. When the fat is brown and crisp, turn, and cook the upper part till brown. Keep a buttered paper over it to prevent burning. Carve long slices parallel with the backbone, then slip the knife under and separate the slices from the ribs. Divide the slices, and serve with some of the crisp fat. A loin of mutton may be stuffed and rolled, having first removed the ends of the ribs. Bake, and serve in slices cut at right angles with the backbone. Leg of Mutton, Stuffed and Roasted. Remove the bone ; wipe inside and out with a wet cloth ; sprinkle the inside with salt ; stuff and sew. Put it on 234 The Boston Cook Book. rack in a dripping-pan, with some of the kidney suet on the meat and in the pan. Dredge with salt, pepper, and flour, and bake in a hot oven. Baste as soon as the flour is brown, and baste often. Bake one hour, if liked rare ; one hour and a quarter, if well done. Stuffing. One cup of cracker or stale bread crumbs. Season with one saltspoonful each of salt, pepper, thyme, or marjoram, and moisten with a quarter of a cup of melted butter. Add hot water if a moist stuffing be desired. Boiled Leg of Mutton or Lamb. Wipe, remove the fat, and put into well-salted boiling water. Skim, and simmer twelve minutes for each pound of meat. One quarter of a cup of rice is sometimes boiled with the mutton, or the meat may be tied in a cloth to keep it from becoming discolored. Serve with a thick caper sauce poured over the mutton. Garnish with parsley. Serve with currant jelty. Carve slices from the thickest part of the leg down to the bone ; then slip the knife under and remove the slices from the bone. The thickest part of the leg should be toward the back of the platter. What to do with a Fore Quarter of Mutton. Mutton Duck. Select a fore quarter of mutton with the whole length of the leg bone left on. Ask the butcher to cut off what is called a raised shoulder, that is, raised from the backbone and ribs, cutting it far up on the shoulder to take in the whole of the shoulder blade, bone, and gristle. You may cut it yourself by removing the neck, the back bones, the ribs, and breast bones, leaving the shoulder blade in the upper part. Then scrape the flesh from the shoulder blade, and separate the blade at the joint. Lay it aside for further use. Kemove the meat from the leg bone, turning the meat over, as you would turn a glove over your hand. Be careful not to cut through the thin skin at the end of the leg. When within three inches of the lower joint, saw the bone off, and saw or trim the bone below the joint into the shape of a duck's bill. Bend the joint without breaking the skin. Wipe the Mutton Duck. 235 meat and rub inside with salt. Make a moist stuffing and put it in between the layers of meat With a coarse needle threaded with twine gather the edges of the meat, draw them together, fill the cavity with stuffing, and shape the meat into a long oval form like the body of a duck. Bend the leg at the lower joint to represent the duck's head and neck, and keep it in place with skewers. Run one skewer FIG. 26. Mutton Duck. through the side at the top of the body, and put one into the body on each side of the neck. Wind a string around the bill, and fasten it to the skewers. Scrape the shoulder blade clean, trim the bony end into a sharp point, and notch the gristle at the opposite end. Insert this in the body to represent the tail, and fasten with twine. Put the bones and scraps of meat in water in a steamer or kettle. Place the duck on a plate, and steam it over the bones one hour to make it tender. Dredge with salt, pepper, and flour, and bake one hour, or till brown ; use the water in the kettle for basting if needed, or for a gravy. Tie paper over the head and tail to prevent burning. This may be made of lamb, and if tender will require no steaming. Garnish with parsley and Scotch eggs, or with any kind of force-meat balls , crumbed and fried, or with egg-shaped potato croquettes. This Mock Duck is an attractive way of serving what is usuall} 7 considered an inferior piece of meat, and solves the vexing problem, " how to carve a fore quarter of mutton." 236 The Boston Cook Book. The bones may be entirely removed, and the meat stuffed, and sewed in an oval shape, then steamed and browned ; this will prove just as palatable to those who do not crave something new. In serving, cut it across in medium slices. Braised Mutton. Bone and stuff the leg or the fore quarter, as directed in the preceding receipts ; cut the bone at the joints. Add oysters to the stuffing if preferred, and cook the same as braised beef. The breast of mut- ton may be boned and rolled without stuffing and then braised. Lamb or Mutton Chops. Wipe with a wet cloth; re- move the skin and extra fat ; have a frying-pan hissing hot, without any fat; put in the chops and cook one minute, turn, and sear the other side ; cook more slowly until done, five minutes if liked rare. Stand them up on the fat edge to brown the fat, without over-cooking the meat. When nearly done, sprinkle a little salt on each side. Drain on paper, and serve hot, either plain or with tomato or Soubise sauce. Mutton Cutlets, Breaded. Trim the cutlets, and season with salt and pepper. Dip in crumbs, beaten egg, and crumbs again, and fry in smoking hot fat, four to six minutes if rare, eight to ten if well done. Ar- range in the centre of a hot dish, and pour tomato sauce around them, or place them around a mound of mashed potatoes or spinach. Trim the bones with a paper ruffle; or arrange them with the bone end up, stacked like bayonets, and gar- nish with stuffed tomatoes. p a F 'r ^ Chops en Papillote. Wipe, trim, wrap in but- e> tered papers, and broil from three to five min- utes ; season, and serve plain or trimmed with paper ruffles. Or make a thick sauce with one cup of boiling stock, thickened with one heaping tablespoonful of flour and one tablespoonful of butter, cooked together and flavored with mushrooms, parsley, and lemon juice. Lay the cutlets on clean papers, spread the sauce over them, fold the Mutton Chops. 237 edges, place in a pan in the oven for ten minutes. Serve in the papers. If the chops be tough, dip them hi olive oil before broiling. Fricassee of Mut- ton or Lamb with Peas. Cut two pounds of the breast of mutton or lamb into square pieces. Dredge with salt and flour, and brown in butter or drippings. Put them in a stew- pan with one onion sliced, cover with boiling water, and simmer until the bones slip out. Remove the bones, strain the liquor, skim off the fat, and when the liquor boils again, add the meat, salt, and pepper, and stew until nearly tender ; then add one quart of peas, or one pint of boiled mac- aroni cut into half-inch pieces, or one pint of asparagus tips, and sim- mer fifteen minutes. Mutton Stew for Two. Two mut- ton chops, cut from near the shoul- der. Put them in a shallow pan having a tight cover. Pour on boiling water to the depth of one inch ; cover and simmer one hour ; add more water as it boils away, using only enough to keep the meat from burning. Add two slices of French turnip, two small onions whole ; and when the meat and turnip are nearly tender, add two common-sized potatoes, having first soaked 238 The Boston Cook Book. and scalded them. Add one teaspoonful of salt and a little pepper. Remove the vegetables without breaking ; let the water boil nearly away, leaving enough for a gravy. Re- move the fat, thicken the gravy with flour, and if needed add salt and tomato catchup. Pour it over the meat. Gurry of Mutton. Fry one large onion, cut fine, in one heaping tablespoonful of butter. Mix one tablespoonful of curry powder, one teaspoonful of salt, one tablespoonful of flour, and stir it into the butter and onion. Add gradu- ally one pint of hot water or stock. Cut two pounds of lean mutton into small pieces, and brown them in hot fat ; add them to the sauce, and simmer until tender. Place the meat on a hot dish, and arrange a border of boiled rice or Turkish pilaf around the meat. Slices of cold cooked mutton may be used instead of the fresh meat. Veal curry is prepared in the same manner. Ragout of Mutton, made from the fore quarter, or any cooked mutton, may be prepared as directed for beef stew, adding carrots and turnips cut small, and seasoning highly. Sheep's Tongues, Braised. Wash, dredge with salt and flour, and brown in salt pork fat, with one or two minced onions. Put them in a pan with water or stock to half cover ; add one sprig of parsley, a little salt and pepper ; cover and cook two hours, or until tender. Remove the skin, and trim neatly at the roots. Place a mound of spinach in the centre of the dish ; ar- range the tongues around the spinach, alternating with diamonds of fried bread. Lambs' Tongues, Soiled. Boil six tongues in salted water, with the juice of half a lemon, until tender. Serve cold with Tartar sauce. Or pickle them by covering with hot spiced vinegar. Veal 239 VEAL. VEAL is always in the market, but is better in the spring. The fat should be white and clear ; and the lean, pink or flesh color. If the flesh be white, the calf has been bled before being killed, and the meat is unfit to eat. Veal contains less nitrogen, but more gelatine, than beef. It has very little flavor, and needs to be highly seasoned to make it even palatable. Veal stands lowest among heat-producing meats, and should be eaten with potatoes or rice, which stand highest, or with bacon and jelly, which furnish in their fat and sugar the carbon wanting in the flesh. It should always be thoroughly cooked, as under- done veal is not wholesome. At its lowest price veal is never a cheap food when we take into consideration the small amount of nutriment it contains, the large amount of fuel required to cook it, and the danger of being made ill by its use. The lower part of the leg or knuckle and all the gristly portions are used for soups. Cutlets, or steaks, the fillet, fricandeau, or cushion, are cut from the thickest part of the leg. The loin is used for chops or roasts, the breast for roasts, and the neck for stews and soups. Calf s head and pluck includes the lights, heart, and liver. The head is used for soup, the heart and liver for braising. The lights are now seldom used. Boast Veal. The loin, breast, and fillet (a thick piece from the upper part of the leg) are the best pieces for roasting. The bone should be removed from the fillet, and the cavity filled with a highly seasoned and very moist stuffing. Tie or skewer into a round shape. Dredge with *a&, peppet, 240 The Boston Cook Book. and flour. Put strips of pork over the top, and bake. Allow half an hour to a pound. Cover with a buttered paper to keep the meat from burning. Add water, when the flour has browned, and baste often. Serve with horse- radish or tomato sauce. Fricandeau of Veal. This is made of a thick piece of lean meat from the top of the leg. Trim it off high in the centre and thin on the edges, and lard the top. Braise it in stock highly seasoned with bacon, onions, and herbs (see Braised Beef) . Serve it with tomato or horseradish sauce. Veal Stew or Fricassee. The ends of the ribs, the neck, and the knuckle may be utilized in a stew. Cut the meat two pounds in small pieces, and remove all the fine bones. Cover the meat with boiling water ; skim as it begins to boil ; add two small onions, two teaspoonfuls of salt, and one saltspoonful of pep- per. Simmer until thoroughly tender. Cut four potatoes in halves ; soak in cold water, and parboil them five min- utes ; add them to the stew. Add one tablespoonful of flour wet in cold water, and more seasoning if desired ; and just before serving add one cup of cream, or if milk be used add one tablespoonful of butter. Remove the bones before serving. To make Veal Pot-Pie add dumplings, as in Beef Stew. If intended for a fricassee, fry the veal in salt pork fat before stewing, and omit the potatoes. Add one egg to the liquor just before serving, if you wish it richer. Veal Cutlets. (Joanna Sweeny.} One slice of veal from the leg. Wipe, and remove the bone, skin, and tough membranes. Pound and cut, or shape into pieces for serving. Sprinkle with salt and pepper. Roll in flne crumbs, then dip in beaten egg, then in crumbs again. Fry several slices of salt pork, and fry the cutlets brown in the pork fat. When brown, put the cutlets in a stewpan. Make a brown gravy with one tablespoonful of butter, or the fat remaining in the pan if it be not Calf's Liver. 241 burned, and two heaping tablespoonfuk of flour. Pour on gradually a cup and a half of stock or water. Season with Worcestershire sauce or lemon or horseradish or tomato. Pour the gravy over the cutlets, and simmer forty-five min- utes or till tender. Take them out on a platter, remove the fat from the gravy, add more seasoning if needed, and strain over the cutlets. Garnish with lemon and parsley. Calf s Liver, Braised. Wipe with a clean wet cloth. Lard the rounded side with bacon or salt pork. Fry , one onion in salt pork fat. Put the liver and fried onion in a braising-pan ; add hot water or stock to half cover, one teaspoonful of salt, one salt- spoonful of pepper, and one tabkspoonful of herbs. Cover, and cook in a moderate oven two hours, basting often. When ready to serve, strain the liquor, season with lemon juice, and pour it over the liver. Calf's Heart, Braised. Wash, remove the veins and arteries, and stuff with cracker crumbs, seasoned with onion juice, salt, pepper, and herbs, and moistened with butter. FIG. 30. Calf s Heart Lard with bacon or salt pork. Dredge with salt and flour. Fry one onion in salt pork fat or dripping ; brown the meat in the pork fat. Cook it as liver is cooked, by the preced- ing receipt. Calf's Head. Scrape and clean a calf s head. Take out the brains and tongue, and put them in cold water. Remove all the dark membrane from the inside, and the gristle around the nose 16 242 The Boston Cook Book. and eyes. Soak two hours in lukewarm water to whiten it. Put the head, tongue, and heart on to boil in cold water, and skiin carefully. Add one tablespoonful of herbs tied in a piece of strainer cloth, one tablespoonful of salt, and one saltspoonful of pepper. Pour boiling water over the liver, let it stand ten minutes, and when the head is nearly done, add the liver. When done, take up the head ; re- move the skin in as nice pieces as possible. Put the pieces of head meat on the platter ; lay the skin over them. Cut the heart, tongue, and liver in slices, and place them round the edge of the dish. If the head is to be served with the bones, tie it in a floured cloth, and boil it until tender, but not long enough for the skin to fall off. Serve it plain ; or score the top, brush with beaten egg, sprinkle battered cracker crumbs over it, and brown in the oven. Serve with it a brown sauce piquante, tomato sauce, or brain sauce. Brain Sauce. Clean the brains, remove the red mem- brane, and soak in cold water. Put them into one pint of cold water with one tablespoonful of lemon juice and half a teaspoonful of salt. Boil ten minutes ; then plunge into cold water. Make one pint of drawn butter sauce; flavor with lemon and parsley ; add the brains chopped fine, and when hot serve. " Calf's Head, Minced. Chop what is left of the head, tongue, and liver very fine, and warm it in a sauce made with the meat liquor ; season with lemon or horseradish, salt, and pepper. Sweetbreads. The sweetbreads found in veal are considered the best. They are two large glands lying along the back of the throat and in the breast. The lower one is round and compact, and called the heart sweetbread, because nearer the heart. The upper, or throat, sweetbread is long and narrow, and easily divided into sections. The connecting membrane is sometimes broken, and each gland sold as a whole sweetbread. But there should always be two. Sweet- Sweetbreads. 243 breads were formerly thrown away as worthless ; but the demand for them has increased so that now they are a lux- ury. They have a delicate flavor, and as they spoil quickly, should be put into cold water as soon as pur- chased, and parboiled before using in any form, to insure their being thoroughly cooked. They are sometimes left on the breast of veal, and may then be roasted with the meat. To Prepare Sweetbreads. Put them in cold water; re- move the pipes and membranes. Cook them in boiling salted water, with one tablespoonful of lemon juice, twenty minutes, and plunge into cold water to harden. They may then be cooked in either of the following ways : Larded. Lard, and bake until brown, basting with brown stock. Serve with peas. Fried. Roll in fine bread crumbs, egg, and a second time in crumbs, and fry in deep fat, or saute in a little fat. No. 2. Cut in half-inch slices, roll in seasoned crumbs, egg, and crumbs again. Put three slices on a small skewer, alter- nating with three thin slices Of bacon one p^. 31 . Sweetbreads and Bacon. inch square. Fry in deep fat. Serve on the skewers, with tomato sauce. Creamed. Cut in small pieces, and serve in a white sauce, on toast or in toast patties or in puff-paste shells or as a vol-au-vent. Broiled. Rub with butter, salt, and pepper ; wrap in buttered paper, and broil ten minutes. Serve with Mafare d" Hotel butter. Scalloped or in Cases. Cut or break the sweetbreads into small sections. Mix with a rich cream sauce made with eggs (see page 190). Put them in a scallop dish, in shells, or in paper cases. Cover with buttered crumbs, and bake until the crumbs are brown. 244 The Boston Cook Book. With Mushrooms. Prepare as for creamed or scalloped, and add half or an equal amount of mushrooms, chopped or cut into quarters. Garnish with toast points. Braised. Lard with bacon. Put in a covered pan with fried onions, and parsley, and a pinch of herbs, tied in a cloth. Half cover with stock. Bake forty or fifty minutes. Fritters. Break into sections, and mix with a fritter batter (page 106). Fry by small spoonfuls in deep fat. Sweetbread Croquettes, see Index. To serve sweetbreads, either larded, broiled, or fried, arrange around a centre of tomato sauce, mushrooms, or FIG. 82. Sweetbreads on Macaroni peas. Or put the sweetbreads in the centre on a nest of boiled macaroni. Sprinkle the macaroni with cheese, and pour white sauce or tomato sauce over it ; or garnish the sweetbreads with stuffed tomatoes. Garnish for Fried or Larded Sweetbreads. Cut into strips the size of matches, part of the breast of a roasted or boiled chicken, some cold boiled ham and cooked spaghetti, about a cup of each. Keep them hot in a steamer until the sauce is ready. Stew half a can of tomato until soft. Rub all but the seeds through a puree strainer. Heat again and boil down till quite thick and reduced to one cup. Season with one tablespoonful of butter, half a teaspoonful of salt, a bit of cayenne, and one tablespoonful of lemon juice. Add one tablespoonful of glaze if you have it. When the sweetbreads are ready, arrange the mixture of ham, spaghetti, and chicken on a hot platter ; pour the tomato over it and lay the sweet- breads on the top. Pork. 245 PORK. PORK is an unwholesome meat, and should never be eaten by children, or people with weak digestion, nor, indeed, by any one except in cold weather. Salt pork, bacon, and ham are less objectionable than fresh pork. If fresh pork be desired, obtain it, if possible, from a source where you can be sure the animal has been kept in a cleanly manner and fattened on corn. Fresh pork should be young and firm, the fat white, the lean a pale red, and the skin white and clear. The fat, when salted, should be a delicate pink, and the rind should be thin. Soft, flabby flesh, and yellowish fat with kernels, indicate that the pork is not of the best quality. Unlike other meat, pork is divided into fat and lean. The flank and the thick layer of fat above the flesh are salted. The sides of very 3'oung pigs are smoked, as well as sailed, and are called bacon. The hams and shoulders are salted and smoked. The head and feet are pickled or boiled, and made into souse or head cheese. After the fat is removed, the loin and ribs are used for roasting or for chops. The leaf fat from the kidneys is heated until melted, then strained, cooled, and used as lard. The trimmings of lean and fat, when chopped and highly seasoned, are called sausage meat. Roast Pig. Select a pig from three to five weeks old. Clean well, and stuff with hot mashed potatoes, or stale bread, highly seasoned with sage, salt, pepper, and onions. If bread be used, moisten with warm water, melted butter, and one beaten egg. Stuff and sew. Skewer the fore legs forward, and 246 The Boston Cook Book. the hind legs backward. Rub all over with butter, salt, pepper, and flour. Put it into a pan with a little water ; the oven should not be very hot at first, as it should be thoroughly warmed through before browning. Baste very often, and at first use melted butter to make the skin tender and soft. Be careful not to let it burn. Bake two and a half or three hours. Arrange in a bed of parsley and celery leaves, with a ' i tuft of cauliflower in the mouth and a garland of parsley round the neck." Serve with apple sauce or pickles. In carving, cut off the head, then the hams and shoulders ; split down the back, and separate the ribs. Roast Pork. The chine, or loin, and the spare ribs are the best pieces for roasting. Rub well with pepper, or sage, salt, and flour, and bake twenty minutes for each pound. Baste often, and do not have the oven as hot as for other meat. Roast pork is more wholesome when eaten cold. Pork Chops or Steaks. If pork chops are to be broiled, they should be cut very thin, salted, and peppered, wrapped in greased paper, and broiled until thoroughly cooked, from ten to fifteen minutes. To fry or saute them, cook them in a hot frying-pan in a little hot lard or salt pork fat. Cook slowly after they are brown, and be careM not to burn them. If a gravy be desired, pour off nearly all the fat left in the frying-pan, add two taUespoonfuls of flour, and when brown add hot water until of the desired consist- ency. Season with salt, pepper, vinegar, and chopped pickles. Breakfast Bacon. Cut off the rind and smoked part ; slice very thin ; cook in a frying-pan till the fat is tried out and the bacon is dry and crisp, or fry in deep fat. Drain on paper, and serve alone or as a garnish for beefsteak. Fried Salt Pork. Cut fat salt pork in thin slices ; pour hot water over them ; drain, and fry in a pan until crisp ; or roll in egg and crumbs, and fry in deep hot fat. Serve With salt flsh or fried mush or baked potatoes. Ham. 247 Boiled Ham. If very salt, let it soak over night Scrub well ; trim off the hard black part, cover with cold water, and let it simmer slowly, allowing half an hour to the pound. Take it from the fire ; let it remain in the water until nearly cold ; then peel off the skin and sprinkle sugar and grated bread, or cracker crumbs, over the top, and brown in the oven. Or boil until nearly tender ; remove the skin and bake two hours ; baste often with vinegar. Cover with crumbs, return to the oven, and brown. Or omit the crumbs and cover with a paste made with one teaspoonful of brawn flour and half a cup of brown sugar, moistened with a little port wine. Spread this over the ham, and brown in the oven. Serve with a brown sauce flavored with half a glass of champagne. Trim the knuckle with a paper ruffle. In carving, cut in very thin slices. Old hams are improved by adding a pint of vinegar and a table- spoonful of herbs to the water in which they are boiled. If the ham is not to be served whole, boil till it is very tender ; let it cool, and remove the skin and bones, and press it, with the fat well mixed with the lean. A boiled ham is done when the skin will peel easily. To serve Cold Boiled Ham. Cut in thin slices ; season highly with cayenne pepper, or with mustard and lemon juice, and broil two minutes. Melt half a glass of currant jelly ; add a teaspoonful of butter, a little pepper, and when hot add several small thin slices of ham. Let it boil up and serve at once, Fried Ham. Cut the ham in thin slices, remove the outside, gash the fat, and cook in a frying-pan till the fat is crisp. If cooked too long, it will become hard and dry. Ham will fry quicker and be less dry if cooked in hot lard or some of the ham fat from a previous frying. Broiled Ham. Cut in very thin slices, and broil three or four minutes. Old or very salt ham should be parboiled five minutes before being broiled. Serve with poached eggs. 248 The Boston Cook Book. If you like to know what you are eating, have your sausage meat prepared at home or by some one whom you can trust. Of sweet fresh pork take one third fat and two thirds lean, and chop fine, or have it ground by your butcher. Season highly with salt, pepper, and sage (use the whole sage ; dry, pound, and sift it). Mix thor- oughly. Make cotton bags, one yard long and four inches wide. Dip them in strong salt and water, and dry before filling. Crowd the meat into the bags closely, pressing it with a pestle or potato-masher. Tie the bag tightly and keep in a cool place. When wanted for use, turn the end of the bag back, and cut off the meat in half- inch slices, and cook in a frying-pan till brown. Core and quarter several apples, and fry in the hot fat and serve with the sausages. A safe rule in seasoning sausage meat is one even table- spoonful of salt, one teaspoonful of sifted sage, and a scant half-teaspoonful of white pepper to each pound of meat. Souse. Take the gristly part of the pig's head, but not the fat ; also the ears and feet. Remove the hard part from the feet. Scald or singe the hairs, soak in warm water, and scrape thoroughly. Let them remain in salt and water for ten hours. Scrape, and clean again, and put them a second time in freshly salted water. With proper care they will be perfectly clean. Put them in a kettle and cover with cold water ; skim when it begins to boil ; set back and let it simmer till the bones slip out easily. Skim out the meat, and remove the hard gristle, bones, and any superfluous fat. Season with salt, pepper, and vinegar, and pack in stone jars. When hard, cut in slices, and brown in the oven. Head Cheese. Prepare the same as souse, omitting the vinegar, and season with sage. Put into a strainer cloth, Baked Beans. 249 and press out the fat. Pack it in jars or moulds. Serve cold, or brown slightly in a frying-pan. Though seldom seen on modern tables, these dishes when carefully prepared are very acceptable to many who have pleasant recollections of them as served at ' ' grand- mother's table." To Try out Lard. Cut the leaves into small pieces ; remove all flesh and membrane ; put a few pieces in a kettle on the back of the stove, and when they are heated through, put in the remainder. Cook slowly until the scraps are crisp ; strain through a fine cloth into tin pails or pans, and press that obtained from the scraps into a separate pail. Never put water with the leaves, as the object is to expel that which they already contain, and there is no danger of burning if only a few pieces be put in at first, and the kettle be not over the hot fire. The kettle should not be covered until the scraps are crisp ; then cover it, and if no steam condenses on the cover, the water is evaoorated. Baked Pork and Beans. Soak one quart of pea beans in cold water over night. In the morning put them into fresh cold water, and simmer till soft enough to pierce with a pin, being careful not to let them boil enough to break. If you like, boil one onion with them. When soft, turn them into a colander, and pour cold water through them. Place them with the onion in a bean-pot. Pour boiling water over one quarter of a pound of salt pork, part fat and part lean ; scrape the rind tih 1 white. Cut the rind in half-inch strips ; bury the pork in the beans, leaving only the rind exposed. Mix one teaspoonfui of salt more, if the pork is not very salt and one teaspoonfui of mustard with one quarter of a cup of molasses. Fill the cup with hot water, and when well mixed pour it over the beans ; add enough more water to cover them. Keep them covered **h water until the 250 The Boston Cook Book. last hour ; then lift the pork to the surface and let it crisp. Bake eight hours in a moderate oven. Use more salt and one third of a cup of butter if you dislike pork, or use half a pound of fat and lean corned beef. The mustard gives the beans a delicious flavor, and also renders them more wholesome. Many add a tea- spoonful of soda to the water in which the beans are boiled, to destroy the acid in the skin of the beans. Yellow-eyed beans and Lima beans are also good when baked. Much of the excellence of baked beans depends upon the bean-pot. It should be earthen, with a narrow mouth and bulging sides. This shape is seldom found outside of New England, and is said to have been modelled after the Assyrian pots. In spite of the slurs against "Boston Baked Beans " it is often remarked that strangers enjoy them as much as natives ; and many a New England bean- pot has been carried to the extreme South and West, that people there might have " baked beans" in perfection. They afford a nutritious and cheap food for people who labor in the open air. Parsnip and Pork Stew. Clean and scrape the rind of one quarter of a pound of fat salt pork. Put it on to boil in two quarts of cold water. Put with it any remnants of cold roast pork or pork chops, first removing any burned parts ; or you may use one pound of fresh, uncooked pork, or only the salt pork, if you prefer. After it has stewed for an hour, skim off the fat. Wash and scrape two large parsnips, cut then in inch slices, and add them to the stew ; add, also, one small onion, sliced. Half an hour before dinner, add four or Jive potatoes, cut in small pieces, and parboiled five minutes. When done, skim out the meat and vegeta- bles, thicken the liquor with flour and water, add more salt and pepper, if necessary, cook ten minutes longer, then pour it over the meat. Poultry. 251 POULTRY AND GAME. THE flesh of poultry and of game birds has less red blood than the flesh of animals ; but as it abounds in phos- phates, it is valuable food, particular^ for invalids. The flesh is drier, and not marbled with fat as in that of quad- rupeds. All game has a strong odor and flavor, which is by some mistaken for that of tainted meat. It should be kept till tender, but no longer, unless frozen. White-fleshed game should be cooked till well done; that with dark flesh may be served underdone. The breast of all birds is the most juicy and nutritious part. ' ' The wing of a walker and the leg of a flier are consid- ered choice tidbits." To Choose Poultry and Game. The best chickens have soft yellow feet, short thick legs, smooth moist skin, plump breast ; and the cartilage on the end of the breast bone is soft and pliable. This is sometimes broken in fowls to deceive purchasers ; but the difference between a broken bone, that slips when moved, and a soft yielding cartilage may be very easity detected. Pin feathers alwaj's indicate a young bird ; and long hairs, an older one. The bodies of capons are very plump and fat, and larger in proportion than those of fowls or chickens. The meat is of finer flavor. Old fowls have long thin necks and feet, and sharp scales ; the flesh has a purplish tinge, and they usually have a large amount of fat. The best turkeys have smooth black legs, with soft, loose spurs, full breasts, and white plump flesh. Geese and ducks should be young, not more than a year oid, have white soft fat, yellow feet, and tender wings, and be thicl? and hard on the breast. The windpipe 252 The Boston Cook Book. should break when pressed with the thumb and finger. Wild ducks have reddish feet. Tame ducks have thick yellowish feet. Young pigeons have light red flesh on the breast, and full flesh-colored legs. Old pigeons are thin, and the breast very dark. Wild pigeons are cheaper, but are dry and tough. Stall-fed pigeons are the best. Squabs are young tame pigeons, and always have pin feathers. Grouse, partridge, and quail should have full heavy breasts, dark bills, and yellowish legs. Young rabbits should have smooth, sharp claws, tender ears and paws, and short necks. Venison should be dark red, with some white fat. To Glean and Truss Poultry and Game. The practice of sending poultry to market undressed is one that de- mands as earnest opposition from housekeepers as that of the adulteration of food. The meat is rendered unfit to eat, is sometimes infected with poison ; and the increase in weight makes poultry a ve^ expensive food. All poultry should be dressed as soon as killed. The feathers come out more easily when the fowl is warm, and when stripped off toward the head. If the skin be very tender, pull the feathers out the opposite way. Use a knife to remove the pin feathers. Singe the hairs and down by holding the fowl over a gas jet, or over a roll of lighted paper held over the fire. Cut off the head, and if the fowl is to be roasted, slip the skin back from the neck and cut the neck off close to the body, leaving skin enough to fold over on the back. Remove the windpipe ; pull the crop away from the skin on the neck and breast, and cut off close to the opening into the body. Be careful not to tear the skin. Always pull the crop out from the end of the neck, rather than through a cut in the skin, which if made has to be sewed together. Cut through the skin about two inches below the leg joint ; bend the leg at the cut by pressing it on the edge of the table, and break off the bone. Then pull, not cut, out the tendons. If care be taken to cut only through the skin, these cords may be pulled out easily. Fowl. 253 one at a time, with the fingers. Or take them all out at once, by putting the foot of the fowl against the casing of a door, then shut the door tightly and pull on the leg. The tendons will come out with the foot ; but if once cut they cannot be removed. The drumstick of a roast chicken or turkey is greatly improved by removing the tendons, which always become hard and bony in baking. There is a special advantage in cutting the leg below the joint, as the ends of the bones afford more length for tying, and after roasting this is easily broken off, leaving a clean, un- burned joint for the table. Cut out the oil bag in the tail. It is better to dress a fowl for a fricassee first. Then you learn the position of the internal organs, and can tell bet- ter how to remove them when dressing for roasting, as with the whole fowl you work by feeling and not by sight. To Cut up a Fowl for a Fricassee. Cut through the loose skin between the legs and body, bend the leg over, and cut off at the joint ; then cut off the wings. Make an incision in the skin near the vent, and cut the membrane lying between the breastbone and the tail, down to the backbone, on each side. Then } T OU have the intestines, gizzard, liver, and heart exposed, and can easity remove them. Do not forget the kidneys, lying in the hollow of the backbone, and the lungs in the ribs. Cut the ribs through the cartilage, separate the collar bone, and break the backbone just below the ribs. Divide at the joints in the wings and legs ; separate the side bones from the back, and remove the bone from the breast Never chop the bones, but divide smoothly at the joints. To Dress a Fowl for Roasting. Make an incision near the vent ; insert two fingers, loosen the fat from the skin, and separate the membranes lying close to the body. Keep the fingers up close to the breastbone, until you can reach in beyond the liver and heart, and loosen on either side down toward the back. The gall bladder lies under the lobe of the liver on the left side, and if the fingers be kept up, and everything loosened before drawing out, there will be no danger of its breaking. The kidneys and 254 The Boston Cook Book. lungs are often left in by careless cooks ; but everything that can be taken out must be removed. When the fowl has been cleaned carefully, it will not require much wash- ing. Hold it under the faucet, or rinse out the inside quickly ; then wipe dry. If the breastbone protrude more than is desirable, put a small knife in at the opening, and cut through the cartilage in the ribs or through the breastbone. Or put a pestle in the inside, lay a towel over the breast, and pound slightly until the bone gives way. To Stuff a Fowl. Place the fowl in a bowl, and put the stuffing in at the neck ; fill out the breast until plump and even. Then draw the neck skin together at the end, and sew it over on the back. Put the remainder of the stuffing into the body at the other opening, and if full, sew it with coarse thread or fine twine. If not full, sewing is unnecessary, except when the fowl is to be boiled,, To Truss a Fowl. Draw the thighs up close to the body, and cross the legs over the tail, and tie firmly with twine. Put a long skewer through the thigh into the body and out through the opposite thigh, and another through the wings, drawing them close to the body. Wind a string from the tail to the skewer in the thigh, then up to the one in the wing, across the back to the other wing, then down to the opposite thigh, and tie firmly round the tail. If you have no skewers, the strings must be passed round the body, over the thighs and wings ; and care must be taken, in removing them, not to tear the browned crust on the breast. Sometimes the feet are cut off in the joint, and the legs passed into the body and out through an opening under the sidebone near the tail, or left in the body and covered with the skin. To Glean the Giblets. Slip off the thin membrane round the heart, cut out the veins and arteries, remove the liver, and cut off all that looks green near the gall bladder. Trim the fat and membranes from the gizzard, cut through the thick part ; open it, and remove the inner lining with- out breaking. Cut off all the white gristle, and use only Carving Poultry. 255 the thick fleshy part. Wash, and put them in cold water, and simmer till tender. The neck and tips of the wings are often cooked with the giblets. These directions apply to all kinds of poultry and game. Wild ducks, coot, and geese should be washed thor- oughly on the outside before being drawn. Scrub them with slightly warm water and soap. The skin is very thick and oily, and it is impossible to get it clean without soap. The strong smell in old fowls may be removed by wash- ing in warm soda water. To dress Fowls or Birds for Broiling. Singe, wipe, and split down the middle of the back ; lay open, and then remove the contents from the inside. Cut the tendons in the thigh, or break the joints, and remove the breastbone to facilitate the carving. To Carve Poultry. Place the fowl on the platter, with the head at the left. Put the fork in across the breast- bone. Cut through the skin round the leg joint. Bend the leg over and cut off at the joint. Then cut off the wings, and divide wings and legs at the joints. Carve the breast in thin slices parallel with the breastbone. Some prefer to cut it at right angles with the bone. Take off the wish-bone ; separate the collar-bone from the breast ; slip the knife under the shoulder blade, and turn it over. Cut through the cartilage which divides the ribs, separat- ing the breast from the back. Then turn the back over, place the knife midway, and with the fork lift up the tail end, separating the back from the body. Place the fork in the middle of the backbone, and cut close to the back- bone, from one end to the other, freeing the side bone. As soon as the legs and wings are disjointed, begin to serve, offering white or dark meat and stuffing as each prefers. Do not remove the fork from the breastbone till the breast is separated from the back. Use an extra fork in serving. If all the fowl be not required, carve only from one side, leaving the opposite side whole for another meal. 256 The Boston Cook Book. Gravy for Roast Poultry and Game. Put the giblets, or neck, liver, gizzard, and heart, on to boil in one quart of water, and boil till tender, and the water reduced to one pint. Mash the liver, and if desired chop the gizzard, heart, and meat from the neck. Pour off the clear fat from the dripping-pan, and put the settlings into a sauce- pan ; rinse out the pan with the water in which the giblets were boiled, and pour this water into the saucepan and put on to boil. Put three or four tablespoonfuls of the fat into a small frying-pan ; add enough dry flour to absorb all the fat, and when brown add the giblet liquor gradu- ally, and stir till it thickens. Season with salt and pep- per. If not smooth, strain it ; pour half of it into the gravy boat, and add the chopped giblets to the remaining half, and serve separately, as all may not care for the giblet gravy. Roast Turkey. Clean as directed on page 252. Stuff with soft, bread or tracker crumbs highly seasoned with sage, thyme, salt, and pepper ; moisten the stuffing with half a cup of melted butter, and hot water enough to make it quite moist. Add one beaten egg. Some use salt pork chopped fine, but stuffing is more wholesome without it. Oysters, chestnuts, chopped celery, stoned raisins, or dates make a pleasing variety. For Stuffing and Trussing, see page 254. Put the turkey on a rack in a pan, rub well with butter, and dredge with salt, pepper, and flour. Put in a hot oven, and when the flour is browned reduce the heat, and add a pint of water. Baste with butter until nicely browned ; then with the fat in the pan. Baste often, and dredge with salt and flour after every basting. Allow three hours for an eight-pound turkey. Cook till the legs will separate from the body. Prepare the gravy as directed above. Garnish the tur- key with parsley or celery leaves and sausages or force-meat balls. Serve cranberry sauce or currant jelly with roast turkey. Roast Chicken 257 If the giblets be not desired in the gravy, they may be boiled, chopped fine, and mixed with the stuffing ; or make them into force-meat balls, with an equal amount of soft bread crumbs. Moisten, and season highly, and brown them in hot butter. Boiled or Steamed Turkey or Fowl. Clean ; rub well with salt, pepper, and lemon juice, and stuff with oyster or bread stuffing. It is better without the stuffing, as the oysters are usually over-done, and the same flavor may be obtained from an o} T ster sauce served with the turkey. Truss the legs and wings close to the bod}' ; pin the fowl in a cloth to keep it whiter and preserve the shape. Put into boiling salted water. Allow twenty minutes to the pound. Cook slowly till tender, but not long enough for it to fall apart. Turkeys are much nicer steamed than boiled. Serve with oyster, celery, lemon, or caper sauce. Garnish with a border of boiled rice or macaroni, and pour pail of the sauce over the fowj. Fowls are sometimes stuffed with boiled celery, cut into pieces an inch long ; or with . macaroni which has been boiled and seasoned with salt and pepper. Roast Chicken. Singe ; remove the pin feathers, oil bag, crop, entrails, legs, and tendons. Wipe, stuff, sew, and tie or skewer into shape. Place it on one side, on a rack in a dripping- pan, without water. Dredge, and rub all over with salt, pepper, soft butter, and flour. Put chicken fat or beef drip- pings over it and in the pan. Roast in a hot oven, with a rack under the pan. When the flour is brown, check the heat, baste with the fat, and afterwards with one third of a cup of butter, melted in one cup of hot water. When brown, turn the other side up ; then place it on the back, that the breast may be browned. Baste often, and dredge with flour after basting. Add more water if needed. Bake a four-pound chicken an hour and a half, or till the 17 258 The Boston Cook BooJt. joints separate easily. Lay buttered paper over it, if it brown too fast. Stuffing. Moisten one cup of cracker or soft bread crumbs with one third of a cup of melted butter; season highly with salt, pepper, and thyme. Chestnut Stuffing. Shell one quart of large chestnuts. Pour on boiling water, and remove the inner brown skin. Boil in salted water or stock till soft. Mash fine. Take half for the stuffing, and mix with it one cup of fine cracker crumbs ; season with one teaspoonful of salt, one saltspoon- ful of pepper, and one teaspoonful of chopped parsley. Moisten with one third of a cup of melted butter. Profes- sional cooks sometimes, mix a little apple sauce, flavored with wine, lemon, and sugar, with a chestnut stuffing. Chestnut Sauce. Remove the fat from the dripping- pan ; add nearly a pint of hot water ; thicken with flour which has been cooked in brown butter ; add salt and pepper, and the remainder of the chestnuts, Braised Fowl. _ Prepare the same as for roasting; dredge with salt, pepper, tind flouT , and brown slightly in hot butter or chicken fat in a frying-pan. Put in a deep pan ; half cover with water. Add the giblets, one onion, and one table- spoonful of herbs tied in a bag. Cover with a tightly fitting pan, and bake till tender, basting often. Chop the gib- lets, thicken, season, and strain the gravy ; add the giblets, and pour around the fowl. Chicken Fricassee. Singe, and cut the chicken at the joints, in pieces for serving Cover with boiling water ; add one heaping teaspoon- ful of salt, and half a saltspoonful of pepper. Simmer one hour, or till tender, reducing the water to nearly a pint. Remove all the large bones, dredge with salt, pepper, and flour, and brown in hot butter. Put the chicken on toast on a hot platter. Strain the liquor and remove the fat. Chicken Curry. 259 Add to the liquor one cup of cream or milk, and heat it* again. Melt one large tablespoonful of butter in a saucepan ; add two tablespoonfuls of flour, and when well mixed pour on slowly the cream and chicken liquor. Add salt, pepper, Haifa teaspoonful of celery salt, one teaspoonful of lemon juice. Beat one e^ ; pour the sauce slowly on the egg ; stir well, and pour over the chicken. The chicken may^ be browned before cooking, then stewed, and a brown grav} T made b}* browning the butter before adding the flour. Half a can of mushrooms may be added to improve the flavor, letting them simmer in the sauce five minutes. Arrange the body of the chicken in the centre of the dish, with the wings at the top, the thighs below, and the ends of the drumsticks crossed at the tail. If the chicken be not fried, it is simpty a chicken stew , and dumplings may be added, or not, as }'ou prefer. And if put into a deep dish with a rich gravy, made as for fricassee, but without the egg, and covered with a rich crust of pastry and baked, it is chicken pie. Chicken Curry. Cut the chicken at the joints, and remove the breast bones. Wipe, season with salt and pepper, dredge with flour, and brown lightly in hot butter. Put in a stewpan. Fiy one large onion, cut in thin slices, in the butter left in the pan till colored, but not browned. Mix one large tablespoonful of flour, one teaspoonful of sugar, and one tablespoonful of curry powder, and brown them in the but- ter. Add slowty one cup of water or stock and one cup of strained tomatoes, or one sour apple chopped, and salt and pepper to taste. Pour this sauce over the chicken, and simmer one hour, or till tender. Add one ewp of hot milk or cream. Boil one minute longer, and sarve with a bor- der of boiled rice. Rabbit, veal, and lamb may be curried in the same way. 260 The Boston Cook Book. Broiled Chicken. Singe, and split a young spring chicken down the back. Break the joints ; remove the breastbone, clean, and wipe with a wet cloth. Sprinkle with salt and pepper, and rub well with soft butter. Place in a double gridiron, and broil twenty minutes over a clear fire. Spread with butter, and serve very hot. Or cover with fine bread crumbs and bake in a hot oven half an hour. Serve with Tartar sauce. To Carve. Separate the legs and wings, and then sep- arate the breast from the lower part. Fried Chicken. Singe ; cut at the joints ; remove the breast bones. Wipe each piece with a clean wet cloth ; dredge with salt, pepper, and flour, and saute them in hot salt pork fat till brown and tender, but not burned. Arrange on a dish, with boiled cauliflower or potato balls, and pour a white sauce over them. Or dip in egg and crumbs, and fry iu deep hoi fat, and serve with tomato sauce. Broiled Fillets of Chicken. Remove the bone from the breast and thighs. Rub the meat with butter or olive oil ; season, and cover with fine cracker dust. Broil about ten minutes. Devilled Chicken. Boil a chicken until tender in boiling salted water. When cold, cut at the joints, baste with soft butter, and broil till brown. Or cut any cold boiled or roasted chicken at the joints, rub with salt and butter, and broil till warmed through. Pour hot Tartar sauce over them. Or make several incisions in the flesh, and rub with mustard and cayenne pepper before broiling. Geese, Ducks. 261 Boast Goose. Singe, remove the pin feathers, and before it is cut or drawn, wash and scrub thoroughly in warm soapsuds, to open and cleanse the pores, and render the oil more easy to be extracted. Then draw, as directed on page 253. Wash and rinse the inside in clear water, and wipe dry. Stuff with masked potatoes highly seasoned with onion, sage, salt, and pepper, or with equal parts of bread crumbs, chopped apples, and boiled onions, seasoned with salt, sage, and pepper. Sew and truss ; put on a rack in a pan, and cover the breast with slices of fat salt pork. Place in the oven for three quarters of an hour. The pork fat is quickly drawn out by the heat, flows over the goose, and aids in drawing out the oil. When considerable oil is extracted, take the pan from the oven, and pour off all the oil. Remove the pork, and dredge the goose with flour, and place again in the oven. When the flour is browned, add a little hot water, and baste often. Dredge with flour after basting. Cook until brown and tender. Make a gravy as on page 256. Garnish with watercresses. Serve with apple sauce. Roast Ducks. Pick, singe, and remove the crop, entrails, oil bag, legs, and pinions. Wipe, truss, dredge with salt, pepper, butter, and flour. Bake in a hot oven twenty minutes if liked rare, or thirty minutes if preferred well done. Serve with olive sauce and green peas. Geese and ducks have a strong flavor, and are improved by stuffing the craw and body with apples cored and quartered. The apples absorb the strong flavor, therefore should not be eaten. Celery and onions are also placed inside the duck, to improve its flavor. Braised Ducks. Ducks that are tough and unfit to roast are improved b\ r being braised with onions, carrots, and turnips. Or they may be stewed, and served with canned peas. 262 The Boston Cook Book. Larded Grouse. Clean, wipe, lard the breast and legs, and truss. Rub with salt and soft butter, and dredge with flour. Roast twenty minutes in a quick oven if liked rare, thirty minutes if well done. Serve with bread sauce. Potted Pigeons. Draw and clean. Break the legs just above the feet ; leave enough below the joint to tie down to the tail. Wash and wipe. If old and tough, cover them with vine- gar, spiced and flavored with onion, and let them stand several hours. This makes them tender. Drain and wipe ; stuff, if you like, with cracker crumbs highly seasoned and moistened with butter. Dredge with salt, pepper, a&djlour. Fry several slices of salt pork ; cut one large onion fine, and fry in the salt pork fat. Put the crisp fat in the steW- pan, add the fried onion, then brown the pigeons all over in the fat left in the pan. Put them in the stewpan ; add boiling water or stock enough to half- cover them ; add a pinch of herbs tied in a bag. Simmer from one to three hours, or till the pigeons are tender. Remove the fat from the broth, season to taste, and thicken with flour and butter cooked together. Strain over the pigeons, and serve hot. Braised Pigeons. Prepare the pigeons as for potted pigeons, and cook in a braising-pan. Cook spinach (see page 296) ; chop it fine, and season. Spread the spinach on slices of toast, and lay the pigeons on the spinach one on each slice. Serve the gravy in a boat. Pigeons Stuffed with Parsley. (Miss Ward.) Allow one pint of loose parsley for each pigeon. Wash, remove the large stems, and chop very fine, adding salt Birds. 263 and pepper and two or three tablespoonfuls of water while chopping. Stuff the pigeons with the parsley ; add also the heart and a half -inch cube of salt pork for each pigeon. Add the water left in the tray to that in the stewpan, and cook as in the preceding rule. Roast Birds, Draw, and wash quickly ; season with salt and pepper. Pin a thin slice of salt pork on the breast. Put on a shal- low pan, and bake in a hot oven, fifteen or twenty minutes. Baste often. Serve on toast with currant jetty or with bread sauce. Small birds may be baked in sweet potatoes, or if large cut in halves, using the breast only. Cut the potatoes in halves lengthwise, make a cavity in each half, season the bird with salt, pepper, and butter; fit it into the potato, put the other half over it, and bake till the potatoes are soft. Remove the string, tie with a bright ribbon, and serve in the potatoes, garnished with parsley. An inviting dish to serve to an invalid. Small birds are also broiled or stewed. Quail. Quail may be roasted, broiled, or braised ; or the breasts only may be removed and broiled. Use the bones and trimmings to make stock for a rich sauce. Woodcock. Dress, and wipe clean. Dredge inside and out with salt and pepper ; tie the legs close to the body, skin the head and neck, and tie the beak under the wings. Tie a piece of bacon over the breast, and fry in boiling lard two minutes ; or roast in the oven, and serve on toast. Venison. Venison is one of the most easily digested meats. It may be cooked after the same rules as mutton or beef. It 264 The Boston Cook Book. should be cooked rare, and served very hot with currant jelly. The saddle, or loin, is the choicest cut for roasting or for steaks. Steaks are also cut from the leg. Venison steaks should be broiled the same as beefsteaks, and served with Maitre d' Hotel butter, made with currant jelly instead of lemon juice. The cheaper, tougher parts of venison may be stewed or braised. Venison should be wiped carefully before cooking, as the hairs are often found clinging to the meat. Rabbits and Squirrels. These may be cooked the same as chickens, stewed, fricasseed, or larded and baked. FIG. 83. Birds and Spinach on Toast. Brunswick Stew. Two squirrels, well skinned and cleaned, or two small chickens. Put them into a large kettle with two quarts of cold water. Add one slice of bacon, two quarts of tomatoes, six large potatoes sliced thin, one quart of Lima beans, two large onions sliced, one tablespoon of salt, and half a teaspoon of pepper. Let it stew until tender. Add more water as it boils away. Add six ears of corn cut from the cob, cook twenty minutes longer, being very careful not to let it burn. Entrees. 265 ENTREES AND MEAT RECHAUFFE. Boned Turkey or Chicken. BONE the turkey as directed on page 27. Stuffing for a Hen Turkey weighing Eight Pounds. The meat from a four-pound chicken, one pound of raw, lean veal, one cup of cracker crumbs, two eggs, boiling stock enough to moisten, salt, pepper, and thyme to taste, and one cup of potted ham or tongue. Disjoint the chicken ; remove the skin, tough sinews, and bones. Cut the meat from the thighs and breast in Pw. 34 Boned Turkey, browned and served like a Roast Turkey. long thin strips, lay it aside, and chop all the remainder with the veal. Do not use any salt pork unless you wish the stuffing to taste like sausage meat. Add the cracker crumbs ; make it quite moist with hot stock, and season to taste. Fill the legs and wings of the turkey with the force- meat. Put the fillets, which came out in boning, on the skin below the breast; then a layer of force-meat with a little of the tongue here and there ; or you may use thin slices of boiled tongue or ham. Then a la} T er of the re- served meat from the chicken, and force-meat again. Sew and tie into the natural shape. Or, if for a galantine, turn the legs and wings inside before stuffing, and roll up. Sew tightly in a cloth. Put the bones of chicken and turkey 266 The Boston Cook Book. and all the trimmings from the veal in a kettle, and cover with cold water. Steam the turkey over the bones three hours. Remove the cloth, dredge with salt and flour, and bake one hour or until nicely browned. Serve cold, and garnish with parsley, sparkling jelly, carrots, and beets cut into fanc} T shapes, or with potato balls. Carve in slices across the breast. When the turkej^ is to be moulded in jell}', strain the liquor in which the bones were boiled ; remove the fat, clear, and stiffen with gelatine as directed below. Make a brown aspic jelly with soup stock. Mould in the dark jelly and garnish with the light, or vice versa. Stuffing for Boned Chicken. Use more veal, omit the chicken, and vary the amount of the other ingredients FIG. 35. Boned Chicken, larded and baked. given in stuffing for turkey, according to the size of the fowl. Lardoons of pork may be inserted all over the top when the chicken is to be browned in the oven. To Mould in Aspic Jelly. Take enough stock to fill the mould, beef if for dark jelly, and veal or chicken, if for light. Season highly with salt, pepper, celery seed, herbs, lemon, or wine. If a darker shade be desired, add a little caramel. For three pints of stock mix the whites and shells of two eggs with the cold stock ; add one box of Cox's gela- tine which has been soaked in one cup of cold water. Put all over the fire, and stir till hot. Boil till a thick scum has formed ; remove that, and strain the liquor through a fine napkin. Pack a mould in a pan of snow or broken ice, and pour in jelly to the depth of half an inch. When hard, garnish Ported Turkey. 267 mth fancy vegetables of different colors, slices of hard-boiled eggs, Italian paste, rings of macaroni, etc. Fasten each ornament in place with liquid jelty, and when hard add enough jelly to cover all. When this is hard, place the meat, or whatever you have to mould, in the centre, being careful not to let it break the jelly. Keep the meat in place with some of the liquid jel- \y, apd when hard add enough jelly to fill the mould. If to be dec- FIG 36 Chicken in Jelly orated on the side, dip the ornaments in the liquid jell}', and if the mould be icy cold, they will adhere. The jelly must be added slowty. Keep in the mould in a cool place till ready to serve. To remove it, dip the mould quickly in warm (not hot) water, put the dish over it, and invert dish and mould together. Garnish with parsley and sparkling jelly. Tongue, boned turkey or chicken, birds, moulds of different kinds of meat audjish, etc., may be served in jelly. Pressed Chicken. An Easy Way of Preparing Boneless Chicken. Boil a fowl in as little water as possible till the bones slip out and the gristly portions are soft. Remove the skin, pick the meat apart, and mix the dark and white meats. Re- move the fat, and season the liquor highh r with salt and pepper; also with celery salt and lemon juice, if you like. Boil down to one cupful, and mix with the meat. Butter a mould, and decorate the bottom and sides with slices of hard-boiled eggs ; also with thin slices of tongue or-ham cut into round or fane}' shapes. Pack the meat in, and set awa}~ to cool with a weight on the meat. When ready to serve, dip the mould in warm water, and turn out carefulh*. Garnish with parsley, strips of lettuce or celery leaves, and radishes or beets. 268 The Boston Cook Book. Blanquette of Chicken. Make one cup of cream sauce, put it in a double boiler, and add one pint of cooked chicken cut in strips, and one tablespoonful of chopped parsley. When hot, beat the yolks of two eggs ; add two tablespoonfuls of milk, and stir into the chicken. Cook two minutes. Serve in rice or potato border, or with a garnish of toast points. Chicken Pilau. Warm one pint of canned chicken, or* cold roast or boiled chicken, in one pint of water till the meat is very tender. Skim out the meat, and add to the liquor one pint of strained tomatoes. Season highly with salt, pepper, jine chopped onion, and curry or Chutney sauce. When boiling, add one cup of well-washed rice, and cook twenty minutes, or till the rice is soft. Add the pieces of chicken and half a cup of butter or cream. When hot, turn out on a platter s and garnish with triangles of toast. Scalloped Chicken. Take equal parts of cold chicken, boiled rice or macaroni, and tomato sauce. Put in layers in a shallow dish, and cover with buffered crumbs. Bake till brown. Cold roast turkey, using stuffing and gravy, may be prepared in the same way. Chicken Pie for Thanksgiving. (Miss A. M. Towne.) Two chickens, three pints of cream, one pound of butter, flour enough to make a stiff crust. Cut the chicken at the joints, and cook in boiling salted water till tender. Crust. Three pints of cream, one heaping teaspoon ful of 9alt, and flour to mix it hard enough to roll out easily. Line a deep earthen dish having flaring sides with a thin layer of paste. Roll the remainder of the paste half un inch thick. Cut three quarters of a pound of butter into Chicken Pie. 269 small pieces, and put them on the dough quite close to- gether. Sprinkle a little flour over the butter, and roll the paste over and over. Roll out again half an inch thick and roll up. Cut off from the ends of the roll, turn the pieces over and roll out half an inch thick for rims. Wet the paste in the dish with milk, and lay the rims round the sides of the dish. Put on two, three, or four rims, showing one above another, the inside rim the highest. Wet each rim to make it adhere. Fill the centre with the parboiled chicken. Take out some of the larger bones. Season the chicken liquor with salt and pepper, and pour it over the chicken ; use enough to nearly cover. Cut the remaining quarter of butter into pieces the size of a chest- nut, and put them over the meat. Roll the remainder of the crust to fit the top. Make a curving cut in the crust and turn it back, that the steam may escape. Bake three hours in a brick oven. If baked in a stove oven, put on only two rims of crust and bake two hours. Chicken Terrapin. (Miss Minot.'} Chop one cold roast chicken and one parboiled sweet- bread moderately fine. Make one cup of rich cream sauce, with one cup of hot cream, a quarter of a cup of butter, and two tablespoonfuls of flour. Then put in the chicken and sweetbread. Salt and pepper to taste. Let it heat over hot water fifteen minutes. Just before serving add the yolks of two eggs, well beaten, and on wineglass of sherry wine. Golfs liver, parboiled till tender, and cut fine, may be prepared in the same way, and used alone or with cold chicken or veal. Chicken Chartreuse. Chop very fine nine ounces, or a heaping cup, of cold cooked chicken ; add the inside of two sausages, or two ounces of lean, cooked ham, chopped fine, three tablespoonfuls of powdered bread crumbs, one tablespoonful of caper s, or one 2/o The Boston Cook Book. iablespoonful of chopped parsley, two tablespoonfuls of lemon juice or vinegar, a speck of cayenne, two eggs, well beaten, and enough hot soup stock to make it quite moist. Add salt and pepper to taste, the amount depending upon the seasoning in the sausages. The sausages may be omitted, and a larger amount of chicken used. Butter a small mould, and pack the meat in closety to within an inch ot the top to allow for swelling. Put it on a trivet in a kettle, and steam three hours. If no uncooked meat be used, one hour will be sufficient. Cool it in the mould ; when ready to serve, dip the mould quickly into warm water and loosen the meat around the edges with a thin knife and remove the mould. It may be served plain or moulded in jelly (see page 266). Salmis of Game. Cut the meat from cold roasted game into small pieces. Break up the bones and remnants, cover them with stock or with cold water, and add a pinch of herbs, two cloves, and two peppercorns. Boil down to a cupful for a pint of meat. Fry two small onions, cut fine, in two tablespoonfuls of but- ter till brown ; add two tablespoonfuls of flour, and stir till dark brown. Strain the liquor in which the bones were boiled, and add it gradually to the butter and flour. Add more salt if needed, one tablespoonful of lemon juice, two tablespoonfuls of Worcestershire sauce, and the pieces of meat. Simmer fifteen minutes ; add six or eight mush- rooms, smdaglass of claret, if } r ou like, or the juice of a sour orange. Serve very hot on slices of fried bread, and gar- nish with fried bread and parsley. Or serve canned peas in the centre, with the meat on toast around the edge. Beef Olives, or Beef Rolls. 1 Cut thin slices from cold roast beef, two and a half by four inches. Chop the trimmings and fat, allowing one 1 Olives is not an appropriate name, although in common use. Beef Roll*. 271 tdblespoonful of the chopped mixture for each slice. Sea- son highly with salt, pepper, and herbs, and mix with one fourth as much cracker crumbs as meat. Spread this on each slice, nearly to the edge. Roll and tie. Dredge with salt, pepper, and flour, and fry brown in drippings or salt pork fat ; put in a stewpan, and make a brown gravy by adding two tablespoonfuls of flour to the fat left in the pan, and when brown pour on one pint of hot water. Sea- son with salt and pepper ; pour over the rolls and simmer till they are tender. Remove the strings, place the rolls on a platter, season the gravy and pour it over them. Rolls may be made in the same way by using raw lean meat from the round, cut in small thin slices ; pound it to break the fibre, and trim into shape. Rolls may be made of veal or thin slices of liver (parboil and remove the skin before using the liver) . If there be any of the chopped mixture left, make it into round or oval balls, roll in crumbs, then in egg, and again in crumbs ; and brown in the oven or fry iufat. Beef Rouktte. Take a large thin slice of meat from the round, or anj r tough part ; pound it enough to break the fibre, and trim into rectangular shape. Season and spread with a stuffing ; roll, tie, and cook as directed for Beef Rolls. Serve hot with a gravy ; or cold, cut into thin slices. Fricadilloes, or Meat Balls, Sausages, or Rolls. Chop the meat fine ; add a slice of onion chopped fine, and if the meat be lean, add one or two slices of bacon ; sea- son highly with salt, pepper, sage, thyme, lemon juice, and parsley ; add one fourth as much bread crumbs or boiled rice as you have meat. Moisten with beaten egg and hot water or stock if needed ; shape like a ball, egg, or cylinder. Brown them in drippings or butter in a ftying-pan, or roll them in crumbs, egg, and crumbs again, and fry in hot deep fat. 272 The Boston Cook Book. Frizzled Beef. Half -a pound of smoked beef, cut in thin shavings. Pour boiling water over it, and let it stand ten minutes. Drain and heat it in one tabkspoonful of hot butter, to curl or frizzle it. Add one cup of hot cream. Or make a cup of thin white sauce with one cup of milk, one tablespoonftd of butter, and one tablespoonful of flour. Pour it over one well-beaten egg, add the beef and a little pepper, and serve at once. Or frizzle it, and mix it with two or three poached eggs. Meat Pie. Cut cold cooked meat into small thin slices or into half- inch cubes, remove all the gristle and fat except the crisped outside fat, put into a baking-dish, and cover with the meat gravy or with tomato or brown sauce piquante. Spread a crust of mashed potatoes over the meat, brush with beaten egg or sprinkle with cracker crumbs, and cook twenty minutes or till brown. Meat Porcupine. Chop fine some lean cooked veal, chicken, or lamb; add one fourth its amount of cracker or bread crumbs, or mashed potato, and a small quantity of chopped bacon ; season highly with salt, pepper, cay- enne, and lemon juice ; moisten with beaten eqq and stock or water FIG. 37. Meat Porcupine. . enough to shape it. Mould it into an oval loaf, and put into a shallow pan well greased. Cut strips of fat bacon, one fourth of an inch wide and one inch long. Make holes in the loaf with a small skewer, insert the strips of bacon, leaving the ends out half an inch, and push the meat up firmly round the Hash. 273 bacon. Bake till brown. The bacon will baste the meat sufficiently. Ragout of Cooked Meat. v Cut one pint of cold meat into half-inch dice ; remove the fat, bone, and gristle. Put the meat in a stewpan ; cover with boiling water, and simmer slowly two or three hours, or till very tender ; then add half a can of mushrooms, cut fine, two tablespoonfuls of Madeira wine, salt and pepper to taste. Wet one tablespoonful of flour to a smooth paste with a little cold water ; stir it into the boiling liquor ; add a teaspoonful of caramel, if not brown enough. Cook ten minutes, and serve plain or in a border of mashed potatoes. The seasoning may be varied by using one tea- spoonful of curry powder, a few grains of cayenne pepper, or half a tumbler of currant jetty, and salt to taste. Hash. Equal parts of meat and potatoes, or two of potatoes to one of meat. Remove all the bone, gristle, and skin, and have only one-fourth part fat meat. Chop very fine, and mix well with the potatoes, which should be hot and well mashed. Season to taste with pepper and salt. Put in enough hot water to cover the bottom of the spider ; add one large tablespoonful of butter. When the butter is melted, add the hash, and let it simmer till it has absorbed the water and formed a brown crust. Do not stir it. Fold like an omelet. Use corned meat or roast beef. If the potatoes be cold, chop them with the meat. Sandwiches. Chop very fine some cooked ham or cold corned beef 01 tongue with one-fourth part fat. Mix one teaspoonful of dry mustard and one saltspoonful of salt with cold water to a stifl paste ; add to it one fourth of a cup of butter creamed. Cut stale bread in very thin slices ; spread with the mus- tard and butter paste, then with the ham. Put two slices together, and cut into rectangular pieces. 18 274 Th e Boston Cook Book. Scalloped Mutton. Remove the fat and skin from cold roast mutton ; cut the meat in small thin slices ; season it with salt and pepper. Butter a shallow dish, put in a layer of bread or cracker crumbs, then a layer of meat, then oysters, strained and seasoned, tomato or brown gravy, then crumbs, meat, etc., having; on the top a thick layer of crumbs moistened in one third of a cup of melted butter. Cold boiled macaroni, cut into inch pieces, may be used in place of oysters. Casserole of Rice and Meat. Boil one cup of rice till tender. Chop very fine half a pound of any cold meat ; season highly with half a teaspoon- ful of salt, half a saltspoonful of pepper, one saltspoonful of celery salt, one teaspoonful of finely chopped onion, one tea- spoonful of chopped parsley, and one saltspoonful each of thyme and marjoram. Add one beaten egg, two tablespoon- fuls of fine cracker crumbs, and moisten with hot water or stock enough to pack it easily. Butter a small mould, line the bottom and sides half an inch deep with the rice, pack in the meat, cover closely with rice, and steam forty-five minutes. Loosen it around the edge of the mould ; turn it out upon a platter, and pour tomato sauce over it. Casserole of Mock Sweetbreads with Potato Border. One pound of uncooked lean veal cut into half-inch cubes, and cooked with one slice of onion in boiling salted water till tender, then put into cold water to whiten. Make one cup of white sauce, and season with one saltspoonful of salt, one saltspoonful of celery salt, and half a saltspoonful of pepper. Put the veal and half a cup of mushrooms, cut into quarters, into the sauce. Heat over hot water five minutes, or till the meat and mushrooms are hot Remove from the fire ; add quickly one teaspoonful of lemon juice and one well-beaten egg ; serve inside a potato border \ or on toast garnished with toast points. Veal Loaf. 27$ Potato Border. One quart of mashed and seasoned potatoes shaped into a mound like a wall on the edge of a platter. Brush over with beaten white or yolk of an egg, and brown slight^. Fill with any kind of cooked meat or fish warmed in a white or brown sauce. Veal Birds. Slices of veal from the loin, cut very thin. Wipe, re- move the bones, skin, and fat, and pound till one fourth of an inch thick. Trim into pieces two and a half by four inches. Chop the trimmings fine with one square inch of fat salt pork for each bird. Add half as much fine cracker crumbs as you have meat ; season highly with salt, pepper, thyme, lemon, cayenne, and onion. Moisten with one egg and a little hot water. Spread the mixture on each slice nearly to the edge, roll up tightly, and tie or fasten with skewers. Dredge with salt, pepper, and flour ; fry them slowly in hot butter till a golden brown, but not dark or burned. Then half cover with cream, and simmer fifteen or twenty minutes, or till tender. Remove the strings, and serve on toast ; pour the cream over them ; gar- nish with points of toast and lemon. If the veal be tough, dip in olive oil before spreading with the stuffing. Melton Veal. Take any cold veal, either roasted or boiled ; chop it fine, and season with salt, pepper, and lemon juice ; add two or three tablespoonfuls of cracker crumbs, and moisten with soup ttock or hot water. Take one third as much finely chopped ham as of veal ; season with mustard and cayenne ; add one tablespoonful of cracker crumbs, and moisten with hot stock or water. Butter a mould, and line it with slices of hard- boiled egg. Put in the two mixtures irregularly, so that when cut it will have a mottled appearance ; press in closely, and steam three-quarters of an hour. Set away to cool ; remove from the mould, and slice before serving. This is an excellent dish for lunch or tea, and is a con 276 The Boston Cook Book. venient waj' of using pieces of veal that would not other- wise be utilized. Veal Loaf. Parboil two pounds of lean veal. Chop fine with one fourth of a pound of salt pork or bacon ; add four butter crackers, pounded, two eggs, well beaten, two teaspoonfuh of salt, one saltspoonful of pepper, and half a saltspoonful ol nutmeg or mace. Moisten with the meat liquor, mould into an oval loaf, and put into a shallow tin pan. Add a little of the water in which the meat was boiled. Bake till quite brown, basting often. Serve hot or cold, cut in slices. Raw veal may be used in the same way, baking it two hours or more. No. 2. Select a knuckle of veal, or any bony piece that has a large proportion of gelatine. Cut in small pieces, and remove any fragments of bone. Cover with cold water, boil quickly, skim, and add one onion, one teaspoonful of salt, and one saltspoonful of pepper. Let it simmer till the meat slips from the bones, the gristly portions are dissolved, and the liquor reduced to one cupful. Remove the meat, pick out all the bones, strain the liquor, and season highly with salt, lemon juice, and pepper, and slightly with sage or thyme. Chop or pick the meat apart; add two or three tablespoonfuls of powdered cracker and the meat liquor ; mix well and put into a bread pan. Put it in a cool place, and when hard serve in thin slices. The gelatine in the meat liquor will harden, and hold the meat together without pressure. Meat Souffld. Make one cup of cream sauce, and season with chopped parsley and onion juice. Stir one cup of chopped meat (chicken, fresh tongue, veal, or lamb) into the sauce. When hot, add the beaten yolks of two eggs; cook one min- ute, and set away to cool. When cool, stir in the whites, beaten stiff. Bake in a buttered dish about twenty min- utes, and serve immediately. If for lunch, serve with a mushroom sauce. Potting. 277 Potting. Chop and pound to a paste any fragments of cooked ham, tongue, beef , poultry, game, orjish. With ham use a quarter part fat. Remove all gristle and skin, and pound till free from an}' fibre and reduced to a paste. Season highly with salt, pepper, cayenne, and made mustard, and moisten with a little melted butter (except ham, which has fat enough) . Pack closely in small stone or earthen jars. Put the jars in a steamer, and heat for half an hour. Then press the meat down again, and cover with hot melted butter. This will keep some time, and may be served in slices or used for sandwiches. Ham and tongue may be mixed with veal or chicken. Beef, game, and fish are" better alone. Potted Liver. Braise a calf's or lamb's liver in rich, highly seasoned stock. When tender, cut fine and pound to a paste, add- ing enough of the strained liquor in which it was cooked to moisten it ; add half a cup of butter, melted and strained. Rub all through a sieve ; pack in jars and pour melted butter over the top? Ragout of Lamb's or Calf s Liver. Boil till tender. Cut in thin round slices. Make a rich brown sauce ; season with spices and wine. Stew the liver in it till hot, and serve at once. Garnish with alternate slices of lemon and hard-boiled eggs. Croquettes. These may be made of any kind of cooked meat, fish, oysters, rice, hominy, and many kinds of vegetables, or from a mixture of several ingredients. When mixed with a thick white sauce (see page 278), which adds ven r much to the delicacy of meat or fish croquettes, less meat is required. The sauce is a, stiff paste when cold, and being mixed with the meat or fish the croquettes may be 278 The Boston Cook Book. handled and shaped perfectly, and when cooked will be soft and creamy inside. To Shape a Croquette. Croquettes may be shaped into rolls, or ovals, or like pears, with a bit of parsley or a clove in the end to represent the stem. Take a tablespoon- ful of the cold mixture, and shape into a smooth ball. If the mixture stick, wet the palms of the hands slightly. Give the ball a gentle, rolling pressure between the palms till slightly cylindrical ; then roll it lightly in the crumbs, clasp it gently in the hand, and flatten one end on the board. Turn the hand over, and flatten the opposite end. Place the croquette on a broad knife, and roll it in beaten egg. With a spoon dip the egg over the croquette, drain *on the knife, and roll again in the crumbs. Fry in deep hot fat (see page 15). Drain on paper. In rolling any kind of croquettes, if the mixture be too soft to be handled easity, stir in enough fine cracker dust to stiffen it, but never add any uncooked material like flour, nor the dried bread crumbs used in rolling, as thosi will make the croquettes too stiff. Thick Cream Sauce (for Croquettes and Patties). 1 pint hot cream. 2 even tablespoonfuls butter. 4 heaping tablespoonfuls flour, or 2 heaping tablesp. cornstarch. % teaspoonful salt. ^3 saltspoonful white pepper. ^2 teaspoonful celery salt. A few grains of cayenne. Scald the cream. Melt the butter in a granite sauce- pan. When bubbling, add the dry cornstarch. Stir till well mixed. Add one third of the cream, and stir as it boils and thickens. Add more cream, and boil again. When perfectly smooth, add the remainder of the cream. The sauce should be ver} r thick, almost like a drop batter. Add the seasoning, and mix it while hot with the meat or fish. For croquettes, one beaten egg may be added just as the sauce is taken from the fire ; but the croquettes are whiter and more creamy without the egg. For patties, warm the meat or fish in the sauce, and use the egg or not as you please. Croquettes. 279 Chicken Croquettes. Half a pound of chicken chopped very fine, and seasoned with half a teaspoonful of salt, half a teaspoonful of celery salt, a quarter of a saltspoonful of cayenne pepper, one saltspoonful of white pepper, a few drops of onion juice, one teaspoonful of chopped parsley, and one teaspoonful of lemon Juice. Make one pint of very thick cream sauce (see page 278). When thick, add one beaten egg, and mix the sauce with the chicken, us- ing only enough to make it as soft as can be handled. Spread on a shallow plate to cool. Shape into rolls. Roll in Jine FIG- 38. Chicken Croquettea breadcrumbs, then dip in beaten egg, then in crumbs again, and fry one minute in smoking hot fat. Drain, and serve with a thin cream sauce. Many prefer to cut the chicken into small dice. If this be done, use less of the sauce, or the croquettes will be difficult to shape. The white meat of chicken will absorb more sauce than the dark. Mushrooms, boiled rice, sweetbreads, calf s brains, or veal may be mixed with chicken. Cold roast chicken, chopped fine, may be mixed with the stuffing, moistened with the gravy, and shaped into croquettes. Veal Croquettes. Chop cold veal fine ; season highly with salt, pepper, cayenne, onion juice, celery salt, and pars- ley. If you like, add half the amount of oysters, parboiled and drained. Moisten with beaten egg and white sauce. Shape into rolls. Roll in Jine bread crumbs, egg, and crumbs again, and fry in smoking hot fat. Oyster Croquettes. Parboil and drain one pint of oysters. Cut them into quarters, and mix with cream sauce enough to hold them together. Season with salt and pepper. Shape, roll in crumbs, then in egg, then in crumbs again, and fry. Sweetbread Croquettes. One parboiled sweetbread, half a can of mushrooms, chopped fine, and half a cup of warm 280 The Boston Cook Book. boiled rice. Season to taste with salt and pepper, and moisten with hot thick cream sauce until soft enough to be handled. When cool, shape, roll in crumbs, then in egg, and again in crumbs, and fry. Calfs brains may be parboiled and mixed with sweetbreads or chicken for croquettes. Lobster Croquettes. One pint of lobster meat, cut fine Season with one saltspoonful of salt, one saltspoonful of mus- tard, and a little cayenne, and moisten with one cup of thick cream sauce. Cool, and shape into rolls. Roll in crumbs, egg, and crumbs again, and fry in smoking hot fat. Drain on paper. Lobster Cutlets. Prepare the lobster as for croquettes, and spread it half an inch thick on a platter. Cut into the shape of cutlets. Roll in crumbs, egg, and crumbs again. Fry in smoking hot fat. Drain, and serve with a claw to represent the bone. Salmon, or any fish croquettes or cutlets are made in the same way. Clam Croquettes. Steam the clams. Remove the shells, thin skin, black end, and the dark substance from the soft part. Cut the "leather straps," with the scissors, into small bits. Mix these and the soft part with a thick cream sauce, season with salt and pepper, and shape into rolls. Roll in fine bread crumbs, dip in beaten egg, then roll in crumbs again. Fry in smoking hot lard. Potato Croquettes. One pint of hot mashed potatoes, one tablespoonful of butter, half a saltspoonful of white pepper, a speck of cayenne, half a teaspoonful of salt, half a teaspoon- ful of celery salt, a few drops of onion juice, and the yolk of one egg. Mix all but the egg, and beat until very light. When slightly cool, add the yolk of the egg, and mix well. Rub through a sieve and add one teaspoonful of chopped parsley. Shape into smooth round balls, then into rolls. Roll in fine bread crumbs, then dip in beaten egg, then roll in crumbs again. Fry in smoking hot lard one minute. Drain and serve in the form of a pyramid. Oyster Plant Croquettes. Scrape, boil, mash, and season Sweet Croquettes. 281 the O} T ster plant. Shape into rolls. Roll in crumbs, dip iu egg, and again in crumbs, and fry as usual. Prepare parsnips in the same way. Turkish Croquettes. Stew half a can of tomatoes fifteen minutes with one slice each of onion, carrot, and turnip, one teaspoonful of herbs, one sprig of parsley, two cloves, two pep- percorns, one teaspoonful of salt, and one saUspoonful of pep- per. Rub through a strainer. Take one cup of the strained tomatoes, one cup of brown soup stock, season nighty, and when boiling add one scant cup of uncooked rice. Cook till the liquor is absorbed. Add a quarter of a cup of butter, and steam it, or cook on the back of the stove until the rice is soft. Add one beaten egg and a little cream sauce, or thick tomato sauce, using enough to make it quite moist. When cool, shape into rolls. Roll in fine bread crumbs, then in egg, then in crumbs again, and fry in smoking hot fat. Sometimes it is better to parboil the rice for five minutes, as it is more difficult to soften it in stock than in clear water. Sweet Rice Croquettes. Steam one scant cup of well- washed rice in one pint of boiling water, or milk and water, thirty minutes, or till very soft. Add, while hot, one tea- spoonful of butter, two tablespoonfuls of sugar, and the well- beaten yolk of one egg, and a little hot milk, if it need more moisture. When cool, shape into small ovals, roll in crumbs, dip in egg, roll in crumbs again, and fry. Or, after shaping, press the thumb into the centre of each, and put in two boiled raisins or candied cherries, or half a teaspoonful oi' jelly or marmalade. Close the rice over the centre, roll in crumbs, dip in egg, roll in crumbs again, and fry. Savory Rice Croquettes. One pint of cold boiled rice warmed in the double boiler with two or three tablespoonfuls of milk. When soft, add one egg, well beaten, one table- spoonful of butter, half a teaspoonful of salt, one fourth of a saltspoonful of white pepper, a few grains of cayenne, anc[ one heaping tablespoonful of fine chopped parsley. Shape, roll, and fry as usual. Rice or Macaroni Croquettes. One pint f it, and spread the remainder over the top. Mayonnaise Tartare is simply the addition of chopped olives, pickles, parsley, capers, and onions to the May- onnaise. Lettuce Salad. Pick over and wash each leaf with- out breaking. Shake off the water and drain in a net. Keep the lettuce in a cool place until ready to serve. Just before serving, dry between two towels. Arrange the leaves in a salad bowl, the larger leaves around the edge and the light ones in the centre. Serve with boiled dress- ing, or French dressing, or sugar, salt, and vinegar to taste. Lettuce should be served cool, fresh, and crisp. Never cut it, as that causes the leaves to wilt quickly. Tear them apart. Radishes or olives may be served with lettuce ; and when a brilliant effect is desired, garnish with a few nas- turtium blossoms. When lettuce is used with other mate- rials, never mix them until ready to serve. Dressed Celery. Use only the white, crisp part of the celery stalks. The green parts may be made into a puree or used in soups. Scrape off the brown discolored part, and wash thoroughly. Keep in cold water, and when ready to serve, drain and arrange in a celery glass. Serve with salt. Or cut the celery in thin slices, moisten with French or Mayonnaise dressing, and garnish with lettuce, cresses, or celery leaves. Lettuce and celery may be served with the roast if desired. Cucumber Salad. Cut off an inch from each end of the cucumber, and pare off a thick paring, as a bitter juice lies near the skin. Cut in thin slices, or shave with a vegetable cutter. Keep in cold water until ready to serve. 313 Drain, and place in the bowl with ice. Serve with salt, pepper, and vinegar, or with a French dressing. Young onions thinly sliced are sometimes mixed with cucumbers. Cucumber and Tomato Salad. Place a bed of crisp lettuce in a salad dish, then a layer of sliced cucumbers, then sliced tomatoes, and pour a French dressing, or a Mayonnaise, over the whole. Tomatoes peeled and cut into halves, and served with a spoonful of Mayonnaise on each half, make an attractive salad. Potato Salad. One pint of cold boiled potatoes, cut in half-inch dice or shaved in thin slices, and seasoned with salt and pepper ; the yolk of one hard-boiled egg, one heaping tablespoonful of chopped parsley , half a cup of cold beet dice,*G,nd a French dressing. Put alternate layers of potato, beet, yolk of egg, rubbed through a fine strainer, parsley, and French dressing, until the materials are all used. Have parsley and egg on the top, and leave half of the dressing for the last layer. Or arrange the potatoes, parsle}', and egg in the centre of the dish, then a circle of beets and lettuce around the edge, with French dressing sprinkled over the whole. Sliced onions, red cabbage chopped, capers, dice of turnips, and carrots cut into fancy shapes or rubbed through a strainer, may be used with potatoes for a salad. No. 2. One pint of hot potatoes, mashed or cut in slices, half a cup of chopped cabbage, half a cup of chopped celery, one tablespoonful of chopped parsley, one cucumber pickle, and one hard-boiled egg, chopped fine. Mix well, and add enough of Boiled Dressing No. 2 to moisten. Keep on the ice until ready to serve. Place two tablespoonfuls on a leaf of lettuce, and serve in the leaf. Many professional cooks prefer to mix a potato salad while the potatoes are hot, as the salad looks more appetizing, will keep longer, and have less of the soggy peculiar taste than when made with cold potatoes. Rubbing a cut onion or a little garlic round the salad 314 The Boston Cook Book. bowl is sufficient where only a slight flavor of onion is desired. Vegetable salads are suitable for lunch or tea, or may be served as a course at dinner. Egg Salad. Boil six eggs twenty minutes. Cut the whites in thin slices, or chop them very fine. Arrange a bed of cresses on a dish. Make nests of the whites, and put one whole yolk in the centre of each nest ; or rub the yolks through a fine strainer over the whites. Sprinkle a French dressing over the whole. Serve small balls of cottage cheese with the salad. Oyster Salad. Steam or parboil one pint of oysters. Drain, cool, and marinate them with a French dressing. Serve with cresses, celery, or lettuce, and a Mayonnaise dressing. Fish Salad. *0ne quart of any kind of cold cooked fish, flaked and freed from bones and skin, and placed on a bed of lettuce. Pound the yolks of three hard-boiled eggs, and three sardines (bones and skin removed) to a smooth paste. Mix this paste with the Boiled or the Mayonnaise dressing, and pour it over the fish. Gar- nish with slices of lemon. Chicken Salad. One pint each of cold boiled or roasted chicken and celery, or half as much celery as FIG. 40. Chicken Salad. chicken. Cut the chicken into quarter-inch dice. Scrape, wash, and cut the celery in dice. Mix and marinate with a French dressing, and keep on the ice until ready tf> serve. Make a Mayonnaise dressing, and mix part of it with the chicken ; arrange the salad in a dish, pour the remainder of the dressing over it, and garnish with celery Salads. 315 leaves and capers, or lettuce, and yolk of hard-boiled egg rubbed through a fine strainer. Lobster Salad. Cut one pint of lobster meat in dice, season with a French dressing, and keep it on ice until ready to serve, then mix with half of the Mayonnaise Make nests or cups of the crisp lettuce leaves FIG. 41. Lobster Salad. Put a large spoonful of the lobster in each leaf, with a tablespoonful of the Mayonnaise on the top. Garnish with capers and pounded coral, sprinkled over the dress- ing, and with lobster claws and parsley round the edge. Salmon Salad. Prepare in the same way with cooked or canned salmon, freed from bones, skin, and oil. Salad Sandwiches. Mix a small quantity of Mayon- naise dressing with finely chopped lobster or chicken. Cover a small slice of bread with lettuce, then the salad, lettuce, and bread again. Wrap them in tin foil or oiled paper, and serve at picnics or when travelling. Strawberry Salad. Choose the heart leaves of nice head lettuce, and make cups of two leaves, stems crossed. Heap a few straw- berries in the centre, dust lightly with powdered sugar, and put a teaspoonful of Mayonnaise dressing on each portion. Sliced bananas may be served in the same way. 316 The Boston Cook Book. PASTRY AND PIES. PUFF PASTE, when skilfully made, is light and tender, and so delicate that it cannot be touched without crashing. It should be thoroughly baked, and is therefore more suit- able for tarts and patties and the upper crust of pies. Eat it sparingly ; unless you have a good digestion, and exer- cise freely, never eat it. It is, however, less injurious than the ordinary pastry seen on many tables, as it con- tains no more shortening than much of the pastry made with a "guess measure" of lard. It is not so much the amount of fat the paste contains that makes it indigestible, as the inferior quality of the fat, such as rancid butter or impure lard, or the soggy, greasy, half-cooked paste. Pastry that is light, dry, and flaky is more easily sepa- rated by the gastric fluids than that which is heavy. Many housekeepers use lard in making pastry, as it is cheaper than butter, and makes a softer and more tender crust. Butter is more wholesome, and is preferable if you wish to make a brown crust. A mixture of half lard and half butter answers ve^ well for common paste, but for puff paste butter alone should be used. In French receipts for puff paste eggs are considered essential, but there is no necessity for their use. It requires practice to make puff paste well ; and as there are so many other dishes more easily made and vastly more important, it is better not to waste time and strength upon it. Let your ambition as a house- keeper soar higher than perfection in making puff paste. But those who will have it may observe the following directions. Puff Paste. One pound of the best butter, one pound of pastry flour, one scant teaspoonful of salt, about one Puff Paste. 317 cup of ice water. By measure, use one quart of flour and one pint of butter. Scald the bowl, then fill with cold water. Dip the hands into hot and then into cold water ; this makes bowl and hands smooth, and keeps the butter from sticking. Wash the butter, bj r working it in the cold water, till soft and waxy. Divide into four parts ; pat each part into a long and narrow piece, and wrap in a clean napkin. Have three shallow oblong pans that will fit the one into the other. Fill the largest and smallest of the pans with broken ice. Put the butter, covered with the napkin, into the other, and place it between the two pans of ice to harden. Mix the salt with the flour, then break in one quarter of the butter. Rub with the tips of the fingers, and keep plenty of flour between the fingers and the but- ter. Man} r prefer to chop it, that the warmth of the hand may not soften the butter. When the butter and flour are well mixed, and fine and dry like meal, pour in the cup of ice water slowly. Mix with a knife, and cut, rather than stir. Wet only part of the flour at first and toss it to one side of the bowl, then wet another part ; and when it is all of the proper consistency, cut and mix it together till it can be taken up clean from the bowl with the knife. Add the last of the water cautiously, wetting onh r the dry flour, and use less or more than the cupful as the flour may require. If the butter be softened by the heat in rubbing, it will moisten the flour, and less water will be required. But it should not be allowed to soften. The mixture should be light and dry, like separate minute crumbs of butter coated with flour. Use a large smooth rolling-board and a glass rolling- pin. Put half a cup of flour in the dredger, and sprinkle the middle of the board with a light coating of flour. Toss the ball of paste in the flour with a knife until floured all over, then pat with the rolling-pin into a flat cake an inch thick. Have the end of the board next you, that you may roll the paste the required length. Hold the handles of the pin firmly, and roll with a light quick stroke as far as 318 The Boston Cook Book. your arms will allow, the whole length of the paste, if possible, at every stroke. Do not attempt to roll the paste when it is in a ball or a cubical form, but pat it lightly, to make as large and flat a surface as possible before rolling. Roll out to the thickness of one third of an inch, and to a rectangular form. Lay one of the quarters of butter in a little flour on the corner of the board, and roll quickly into a long thin piece ; scrape it up with a knife, and lay along the middle of the whole length of the paste. Fold over one side of the paste, then the other, letting the edges just meet in the middle of the butter. Do not pat it down. Then fold each end to the middle and double again. Pound into a flat cake and roll again one quarter of an inch thick. Roll another piece of butter thin, lay it on the paste, fold the sides over, then the ends over, and then together, and repeat the process with the remaining pieces of butter. When the butter is all rolled in, the paste may be folded, patted, and rolled out, two, three, or seven times, as your strength will permit. Twice is enough for pies, three or four times for patties ; but more are needed for a vol-au- vent. When the butter is of the right texture, fine, smooth, and firm, not dry and crumbly, and the mixing and rolling are done so quickly and deftly that the butter does not soften, the paste will not stick, and very little flour will be required in rolling. Do not strike a hard blow in rolling, nor press the paste down to the board, but roll with a light gentle stroke. When the paste does not slip along the board, you may know it is sticking, and it must be lifted at once, the board scraped clean, and floured slightly. Should the paste become soft and sticky, fold again, and pat it out to the size of the pan, and put it in the napkin between the two pans of ice. It will harden in ten minutes, and then may be rolled easily. After all the but- ter is in the dough, cut in two pieces, then roll and fold one, while the other is in the ice pan. Keep the board and pin wiped dry, and use only a little flour, but use enough to keep the paste from sticking. Patty Shells, 319 Keep the edges even while rolling, and fold evenly, that there may be an equal number of layers in all parts. Each time the paste is folded over the butter a small amount of air is enclosed and is retained, unless the fold be patted down and allow the air to escape at the end. These bub- bles of air may be plainly seen when the ball of dough is patted and rolled out, and care must be taken not to let the air escape. For this reason roll lightly and always from you, as a hard motion back and forth is more liable to break the bubbles. Roll with a fan-like sweep, a little to the right and left, to widen it and keep the rectangular shape ; then roll gentty on the edge nearest you, to make it of uniform thickness. The more of the bubbles you can retain in the paste, the lighter and more puffy it will be. The number of folds or layers of butter and paste makes the paste flaky, but the amount of air in it makes it rise and puff in baking. The paste should be folded and rolled till no streaks of butter can be seen. After the last rolling, place it on the ice to harden, as it may then be cut and shaped more easil}\ To Bake Puff Paste. The dough should be icy cold when it is put into the oven. If the patties soften after being shaped, place them between the pans of ice till they are hard. The oven should be about as hot as for rolls, with the heat greater underneath, that the paste may rise nearly to its full height before browning ; then quicken the fire to brown the tops, and turn the heat from underneath or put a pan or grate under to prevent burning. If the oven be too hot, the paste will burn before it is risen ; if too slow, it will melt and spread. Patty Shells, Tarts, Vol-au-vents, and other Forms of Puff Paste. There are two ways of shaping the paste for patties and tarts. First, roll puff paste one eighth of an inch thick, and stamp out circular pieces with a cutter, two and 320 The Boston Cook Book. one half inches in diameter. With a smaller cutter stamp out the centres from half of these pieces, leaving rings half an inch wide. Dip the cutters in hot water, and cut quickly, that the edges may not be pressed together or cut unevenly. Rub a little white of egg on the top of the large rounds near the edge, put on the rings, and press them lightly to make them adhere, but be careful not to get any egg on the edges, as that will prevent them from rising. Put round pieces of stale bread, cut half an inch thick, in the centre, to keep the paste from rising and fill- ing the cavity. Bake on shallow pans lined with paper, and when done remove the bread and soft paste under- neath. Bake the small pieces cut from the centre on a pan by themselves, as the} 7 take less time for baking. In serving place them on the top of the shells for a cover. Another way is to roll the paste one fourth of an inch thick, cut with a round cutter, and then with the smaller cutter cut nearly through the centre of each round, making a rim half an inch wide. After baking remove the centre crust and soft part underneath, without breaking through, as then the shell will not hold any liquid mixture. Some persons prefer this method ; but there is less waste when cut in the first wa}*", as the parts cut out may be baked for covers, and usually prove to be the most delicate part of the pa^te. Or, if covers are not wanted, these cen- tres may be rolled out thinner, and used as bottom pieces. The paste for patties is usually rolled one fourth of an inch thick and cut with a plain cutter. Two or three rims may be put on when a deeper shell is desired. Any kind of delicate cooked meat or fish ( chicken, sweetbreads, oysters, lobster, etc.) may be cut into small pieces, and warmed in a thick cream sauce (see page 278), and served hot in patty shells, with a cover of the paste. Tarts are made thinner, and cut with a fluted cutter. They are filled with jelly or preserves, and served cold without a cover. Cupid's Wells. Cut the rounds of puff paste of three or four different sizes ; use the largest one for the bottom, Fancy Puff Paste. 321 and cut the centres from the others, leaving the rims of different widths, and put them on the whole round, with the narrowest at the top. Bake, and fill with jelly. Vol-au-vent. This is made from the lightest form of puff paste, cut to any size and shape desired, a large oval being generally preferred. Mark the outline with an oval mould or pan, and cut quickly with a knife dipped in hot water. Put on two or three rims, wetting the edge of each with white of egg. Make an oval hoop of stiff paper, two inches high, and slightly larger than the vol-au-vent, and place around i^ to prevent scorching. Bake a large vol- au-vent nearly an hour. Cakes a la Polonaise. Ro' puff paste very thin, cut into pieces three inches square, wet tha centre, turn each corner over, press the point down in the centre, and put a very smaU round of paste on the centre. Bake, and when cool put dots of jelly on each corner. FIG. 42. Bow-Knots. Bow-Enote Cut thin puff paste into half-inch strips, and shape them on the baking-pan into the form of a double bow-knot. When baked, put jelly on each loop of the bow. Rissoles. Roll the scraps of puff paste thin, and cut into rounds. Put a spoonful of whatever material is to be used in the centre of half of the number, wet the edges, and cover with the remaining rounds, first cutting a cross in the middle, or stamping out a small piece with a vege- table cutter or pastry tube. Any kind of cold meat may be cut fine, seasoned to taste, moistened with a white sauce, and used in the rissoles. Or they may be filled with stewed and sweetened fruit, or mince meat prepared 21 322 The Boston Cook Book. as for pies. They may be cut into larger rounds, the filling placed on one half, and the edges folded together like turnovers. Bake in a hot oven. Plaits. Roll very cold puff paste thin, and cut into half-inch strips. Braid them together, and bake quickly. Cheese Straws. Roll scraps of puff paste thin, sprinkle with grated cheese, and cayenne pepper if you like, fold, roll out, and sprinkle again, and repeat the process. Then place on the ice to harden. When cold, roll into rectangular shape one eighth of an inch thick ; place it on a baking-pan, and PIG. 43. Cheese Straws. with a P*Stry CUtter dipped in hot water, cut into strips four or five inches long and less than a quarter of an inch wide. Bake, and serve piled cob-house fashion. Some- times, when the paste is very hard, they are cut as narrow as possible, laid on the pan in groups of five or six, with one straw laid over the middle to represent a bundle of straws, and baked in that form. Pies. For Pies, roll the puff paste out a quarter of an inch thick, then roll up, and cut from the end of the roll. Turn each piece on the side, so that the folds show in rings, and pat out flat, then roll to fit the plate. Keep the paste in a circular form, and roll evenly in every direction. Make slightly larger than the plate, as the paste shrinks when taken from the board, and should be fulled in rather than stretched to the required size. After a little practice it is just as easy to judge of the amount of paste required for one crust, and roll it in this way to fit the plate, as to roll so large a quantity that the edges have to be trimmed off and mixed with the remainder of the paste. Roll some of the paste, and cut into strips three quarters of an inch wide ; wet the under crust and place the rim on the edge. Use one rim for pies which are to be covered, and two, if you Plain Pastry. 323 like, for pies without an upper crust. Fill the plate with the material to be used. Roll the upper crust larger than the plate, make a cut in the centre to let the steam escape, wet the rims, put the crust on the edge even with the rim and slightly fuller in the centre, to allow for shrinking in baking ; otherwise the crust, as it is forced up by the steam within, will draw away from the edge. Wet every spot of the rim and edge, and press closely but lightly together, to keep the juices from boiling out. All pies, meat pies especially, with a top crust should have several holes cut in the crust to let the steam escape. All fruit pies are better flavored if made with fresh, rather than stewed, fruits. If to be filled with juicy fruit, or cream, they are more wholesome prepared as follows: Bake the two crusts separately, stew the fruit, fill, and put the two together. Or fill with a mock filling of pieces of clean cloth, bake, remove the cloth, and just before serving fill with the prepared fruit Pies should bake from half to three quarters of an hour, or till brown. Use tin plates, as pies bake better on the bottom in them. No greasing is needed, and the pies should be changed to earthen plates as soon as done. Pastry for One Pie. One heaping cup of pastry flour, one saltspoonful of baking-powder, one saltspoon- fid of salt, and from one third to one half of a cup of butter and lard mixed. Mix the baking-powder and salt with the flour, and rub in the lard. Mix quite stiff with cold water. Roll out, put the butter on the paste in little pieces, and sprinkle with flour. Fold over, and roll out. Roll up like a jelly roll. Divide in two parts, and roll to fit the plate. Cream Paste. Mix half a teaspoonful of salt and half a saltspoonful of soda with one cup of cream, and stir in flour enough to mix to a stiff paste. Roll half an inch thick. Cut half a cup of butter into small pieces, and put it on the paste. Sprinkle with flour, fold and roll out thin ; roll up, cut a piece from the end, and roll to fit the plate. 324 The Boston Cook Book. Plain Paste. (Mrs. Tilton.) Beat the white of one egg with one tablespoonful of lard. Work it into one quart, of flour with the hands, till fine as meal. Add about one cup of ice water. Roll out, and put half a pound of butter on the paste in little pieces, either all at once or half of it at a time. Dredge lightly with flour. Fold the edges over, roll up, pat, and roll out. Lemon Pie, No. 1. Mix one heaping tablespoonful of cornstarch with one cup of sugar ; add one scant cup of boiling water, and boil five minutes. Add one tea- spoonful of butter, the juice of one large lemon, and one egg, well beaten. Bake between two crusts. ' No. "2. (Miss M. L. Clarke.) Mix three table- spoonfuls of cornstarch, one saltspoonful of salt, and one cup and a half tf sugar ; add one pint of boiling water, and boil five minutes. Add the grated rind and juice of two large lemons. When slightly cooled, add the well- beaten yolks of four eggs, then the whites beaten stiff. Cut them in as for an omelet. Line the plate with crust and rim, add the filling, and bake about twenty min- utes. If desired, cover when cool with a meringue, made with the whites of three eggs and one third of a cup of sugar. No. 3. (Miss Hammond.) Mix one cup and a half of sugar and two heaping teaspoonfuls of flour ; add the well-beaten yolks of six eggs and the whites of two eggs, beaten stiff, the grated rind of one and the juice of two lemons, and one cup of ice water. Line two plates with a crust and rim, fill, and bake in a moderate oven. Make a meringue with the whites of four eggs and one cup of powdered sugar. Chess Pie. Beat the yolks of three eggs until light and thick ; add half a cup of fine granulated sugar, and beat again ; add one third of a cup of butter rubbed to a cream, and half a teaspoonful of vanilla. Bake on a plate lined and bordered with puff paste. When done, cover with the whites of three eggs beaten stiff, and mixed with half a cup of powdered sugar and one teaspoonful of Pies. 325 lemon juice. Brown slightly, and cut while hot, but serve cold. Apple Pie. Cut sour apples in quarters, remove the cores and skins, and cut each quarter in two pieces lengthwise. Fill the plate, putting the pieces of apple round the edge in regular order, and piling slightly in the middle. They will cook as quickly as when sliced, though many are unwilling to believe it. When the apples are dry, add a little water. Cover with crust without wet- ting the edges, and bake about half an hour. When done, boil three heaping tablespoonfuls of sugar and one of water five minutes. Add the grated rind of one quarter of a lemon, or one tablespoonful of lemon juice. When the pie is done, remove to an earthen plate, pour this syrup through a cut in the top, or raise the upper crust and pour it over the fruit, or simply sprinkle with sugar and bits of butter. To sweeten before baking, sprinkle half a cup of sugar, mixed with a little spice or grated lemon rind over the apple. Bind the edge of the crusts with a narrow strip of wet cloth, to keep in the syrup. Or wet the edge of the lower crust, sprinkle with flour, put on a rim, wet and flour that also ; fill with fruit, sweeten, put on the upper crust, and press the edges firmly together. Rhubarb Pie. Peel the rhubarb, cut into inch pieces, pour boiling water over it, and let it stand ten minutes. Drain, fill the plate, sprinkle thickly with on& cup of sugar, dot with bits of butter, cover with a crust, and bake. Squash Pie. One cup and a half of stewed and sifted squash, not watery, but dry and mealy, one cup of boiling milk, half a cup of sugar, half a teaspoonful of salt, one saltspoonful of cinnamon, and one egg beaten slightly. Mix in the order given. Line a plate with paste, put on a rim, and fill with the squash. Pumpkin pies are made in the same wa}\ Custard Pie. Beat three eggs slightly, add three tablespoonfuls of sugar, one saltspoonful of salt, and one saltspoonful of nutmeg, if liked. Pour on three cups of 326 The Botion Cook Book. scalded milk; strain into a deep plate, lined with paste. Bake slowly, and the moment it puffs and a knife blade comes out clean, it is done. Berry Pies. Pick over the berries and sprinkle slightly with flour / add sugar to taste, about one cup for a quart of fruit. Do not spoil the fruit flavor by using spices. Bake in a deep plate, with two crusts. Mince Meat for Pies. 1 cup chopped meat. 1^2 cup raisins. !) cup currants. 13*2 cup brown sugar. % cup molasses, or 1 cup granulated sugar. 3 cups chopped apples. 1 cup meat liquor. 2 teaspoonf uls salt. 2 teaspoonfuls cinnamon. 3^ teaspoonf ul mace. 3^ teaspoonf ul powdered cloves. 1 lemon (grated rind and juice). 34 piece citron. 3^ cup brandy. 34 cup wine. 3 teaspoonfuls rose water. Mix in the order given. Use enough of the meat liquor to make quite moist. Substitute one cup of cider for the wine and brandy, if you prefer. Cook it in a porcelain kettle until the apple and raisins are soft. Do not add the wine, brandy, and rose water until the mixture is cooked. One cup of chopped suet or half a cup of butter may be added if preferred ; but if the fat on the meat be used, or the pies are to be eaten cold, suet is not needed. Meat from the vein or the lower part of the round that has a little fat and no bone is the best for pie meat. Plain Mince Pie. One cup of chopped meat (cold steak or roast beef which has been simmered till tender), two cups of chopped apple, one teaspoonful each of salt, allspice, and cinnamon, one cup of brown sugar, half a cup of small whole raisins, half a cup of currants, mois- tened with one cup of cider, or one cup of sweet pickle vinegar, or half a cup of water, juice of one lemon, and two or three spoonfuls of any remnants of 'jelly or preserve. Eccles Pie. (Miss Itarnes.) Two cups of seedless raisins and half a pound of citron, chopped very fine ; Pies. 327 add one cup of sugar, the juice of one lemon, and a little ivater. Stew five minutes. Line small patty pans with puff paste, fill with the fruit mixture, cover, and bake. Fanchonnettes. Line small patty pans with puff paste, rolled very thin ; fill them with lemon prepared as for Lemon Pie, No. 1; cover with a thin crust, and bake quickly. Or fill them as directed for Lemon Pie, No. 2, and bake without an upper crust. Grandmother's Pumpkin Pies. 2 cups pumpkin. 2 cups milk. 1 egg or cracker. j^ teaspoonful ginger. % cup sugar. i^ cup molasses. )^ teaspoonful salt. 2 tablespoonfuls raisins. Bake the. pumpkin ; it will be drier than when stewed. Boil the raisins half an hour; let the water boil away, slip out the seeds, and add the pulp to the pumpkin. Scald the milk, and mix it with the pumpkin ; add the seasoning, molasses, and egg last. Bake in a plate lined and bordered with crust. Marlboro Pie. ^ cup cracker crumbs. Whites of 4 eggs. 4 tablespoons powdered sugar i Juice of lemon. 2 cups hot apple sauce. 2 tablespoonfuls butter. Yolks of 4 eggs. 1 YL cups sugar. 1 lemon. Stew the apples and, if lumpy, sift them. Stir in the butter while the apples are hot. Add the sugar to the beaten yolks and beat well; mix with the cold apple, then stir in the lemon and half of the rind grated and the crumbs. Line and rim a plate with rich pastry, fill, and bake, and when done, cover with the meringue made with the whites, powdered sugar, and lemon juice. Color slightly, and serve cold. 328 The Boston Cook Book. PUDDING- SAUCES. Hard Sauce (for Hot Puddings). V $ cup butter. I % teaspoonf ul lemon or vanilla, i cup powdered sugar. | or a little nutmeg. Rub the butter to a cream in a warm bowl ; add the sugar gradualty, then the flavoring. Pack it smoothly in a small dish, and stamp it with a butter mould or the bottom of a figured glass. Keep it on ice till very hard. Or pile it lightly on a small fancy dish, and you may call it Snowdrift Sauce. Lemon Sauce. 2 cups hot water. 1 cup sugar. Grated rind and juice of 1 lemon. 1 tablespoonful butter. 3 heaping teasp. cornstarch. Boil the water and sugar five minutes, and add the corn- starch, wet in a little cold water. 1 Cook eight or ten minutes, stirring often, and'acbd the lemon rind and juice and the butter. Stir until the fcutter is melted, and serve at once. If the water boil away and the sauce become too thick, add more hot water till of the right consistency. Whipped Cream Sauce. 1 cup cream I % cup powdered sugar. 1 teaspoonf ul lemon or vanilla. | White of 1 egg. Mix the cream, vanilla, and sugar, and whip it without skimming off the froth. Add the beaten white of the egg and beat all together. Serve it on an}' pudding usually eaten with sugar and cream. 1 Or mix the sugar well with the conutaivh and add the boiling water Pudding Sauces. 3 2 9 Apricot Sauce. 1 cup apricot juice. j 1 teaspoonful cornstarch or % cup sugar. flour. Boil all together five minutes and strain. Use any kind of fruit juice or syrup in the same manner. Creamy Sauce. % cup butter. I 2 tablespoonfuls wine, % cup powdered sugar, sifted. | 2 tablespoonfuls cream. Cream the butter ; add the sugar slowly, then the wine and cream. Beat well, and just .before serving place the bowl over hot water and stir till smooth and creamy, but not enough to melt the butter. When the wine and cream are added, the sauce has a curdled appearance. This is removed by thorough beating, and by heating just enough to blend the materials smoothly. It is not intended to be a hot sauce ; and if the sauce become oily in heating, place the bowl in cold water and beat again until smooth like thick cream. Omit the wine if desired, and use half a cup of cream, and one teaspoonful of lemon or vanitta. Serve on any hot pudding. Foamy Sauce, No. 1. Whites of 2 eggs. I * CU P boiling milk. 1 cup sugar. Juice of 1 lemon. Beat the whites of the eggs till foamy, but not dry ; add the sugar, beat well ; add the milk and lemon juice. Foamy Sauce, No. 2. ^ cup butter. 1 cup powdered sugar. 1 teaspoonful vanilla. 2 tablespoonfuls wine, or fruit juice, or syrup, cup boiling water. White of 1 egg beate* to a foam. Cream the butter; add the sugar, vanilla, and wine. Just before serving add the boiling water, stir well, then add the egg, and beat till foamy. 33O The Boston Cook Book. Half a cup of jelly melted in one fourth of a cup of boil- ing water and poured into the butter and sugar mixture, makes a pleasing variety. Yellow Sauce. (Mrs. Towne.) *4 pound butter. ^ pound brown sugar. 1 gill brandy or wine. A little nutmeg. Yolk of 1 egg. Cream the butter, add the sugar, and stir over hot water till liquid, then add the yolk of the egg, beaten. Stir till it thickens ; add brandy or wine and nutmeg, and serve. Wine Sauce. 1 cup boiling water. 1 tablespoonful cornstarch. % cup butter. legg. 1 saltspoonf ul grated nu+meg. % cup wine. 1 cup powdered sugar. Wet the cornstarch in cold water, and stir into the boil- ing water. Boil ten minutes. Rub the butter to a cream ; add the sugar gradually, then the egg, well beaten, and the nutmeg. When the cornstarch has cooked ten min- utes, add the wine, and pour the whole into the butter, sugar, and egg, stirring until well mixed. Caramel Sauce. (Miss Parloa.) Put half a cup of sugar in an omelet pan, and stir over the fire till melted and light brown. Add half a cup of boiling water and simmer ten minutes. Molasses Sauce. Mix one cup of molasses, the juice of one lemon or one tablespoonful of vinegar, half a salt- spoonful of salt, and one tablespoonful of butter. Boil ten minutes and serve with plain rice or apple pudding. Plain Pudding Sauce. (Miss Hammond.) Melt one heaping tablespoonful of butter; a'dd two tablespoon- fuls of flour, and one cup and a half of hot water. Cook as for drawn butter ; then add one cup and a half of brown sugar. Stir till the sugar is melted, add two tea- spoonfuls of lemon juice and a little nutmeg. Hot Puddings. 331 HOT PUDDINGS. Cottage Pudding. 2 heaping cups flour. 3> level teasp. baking-powder. % teaspoonful salt. 1 egg. % cup sugar. 3 tablespoonf uls melted butter. 1 cup milk. Mix the salt and baking-powder with the flour. Beat the egg, add the sugar, melted butter, and milk, and stir into the flour. Bake in a shallow dish. Serve with lemon, wine, or foamy sauce. Dutch Apple Cake. This is used as a pudding (see page 86). It is easily prepared, attractive, and delicious, served with lemon sauce. Scalloped Apple, or Apple Sandwich. Mix half a cup of sugar and half a saltspoonful of cin- namon or the grated rind of half a lemon. Melt half a cup of butter, and stir it into one pint of soft bread crumbs; prepare three pints of sliced apples. Butter a pudding- dish, put in a layer of crumbs, then sliced apple, and sprinkle with sugar ; then another layer of crumbs, apple, and sugar until the materials are used. Have a thick layer of crumbs on the top. When the apples are not juicy, add half a cup of cold. water; and if not tart apples, add the juice of half a lemon. Bake about an hour. Cover at first, to prevent burning. Serve with cream. Ripe ber- ries and other acid fruits may be used instead of apples, and oatmeal or cracked wheat mush in the place of bread crumbs. 332 The Boston Cook Book. Steamed Apple Pudding, or Dumpling. (Mrs. S. M Bailey. ) Fill a two-quart granite pan two thirds full of sour apples cut into eighths, and add half a cup of water. Butter the edge of the pan and the inside of the cover. Cover with a biscuit crust, made of one pint of flour, three level teasp. of baking-powder, and half a teaspoonful of salt ; wet with one scant cup of milk, just stiff enough to roil out. Cover closely and steam one hour, or cook on top of the stove half an hour, with a trivet under the pan to keep the apple from burning. Serve at once with lemon or molasses sauce. Put a large round plate over the pan ; invert them, leaving the crust on the plate with the apples at the top. Cut like a pie. The crust may be shortened, the apples sweetened with molasses, and then baked in the oven ; and it is called Pandowdy. Steamed Carrot Pudding. (Mr. Cole.) % pound flour. 3^ pound chopped suet. % pound currants. pound sugar, pound grated carrot, teaspoonful salt. Mix in the order given, and steam in a buttered mould three hours. Serve with wine sauce. Bread and Fruit Pudding. Soak one cup of stale bread crumbs in one pint of hot milk; add one tablespoonful of butter, one cup of sugar, one saltspoonful of salt, and one saltspoonful of spice. When cool, add three eggs, well beaten. Add two cups of fruit, either chopped apples, raisins, currants, canned peaches, or apricots, one; or a mixture of two or more varieties. When using canned fruit, drain it from the syrup, and use the latter in making a sauce. Vaiy the sugar according to the fruit. Turn into a buttered pud- ding-mould, and steam two hours. No. 2. Beat the yolks of three eggs, add one cup and Apple Puddings. 333 a half of sugar, the grated rind said juice of one lemon, one saltspoonful of salt, one cup each of chopped apples, currants, and grated bread crumbs. Mix well, then*add the whites of the eggs, beaten stiff. Boil in a buttered pudding-mould three hours, or bake two hours. Serve with lemon or foamy sauce. JEve's Pudding. Add half a cup of butter or one cup of chopped suet to the preceding rule. Bird's-Nest Pudding. Six or seven apples, cored and pared, and put into a buttered pudding-dish. Mix^we teaspoonfuls of flour and one teaspoonful of salt, wet it to a smooth paste with cold milk, and add the yolks of three eggs, well beaten, then the whites, and more milk, using one pint in all. Pour it over the apples, and bake one hour. Serve with hard or creamy sauce. Apple Tapioca Pudding. Pick over and wash three quarters of a cup of pearl tapioca. Pour one quart of boiling water over it, and cook in the double boiler till transparent ; stir often, and add half a teaspoonful of salt. Core and pare seven apples. Put them in a round baking-dish, and fill the cores with sugar and lemon juice. Pour the tapioca over them and bake till the apples are very soft. Serve hot or cold, with sugar and cream. A delicious variation may be made by using half pears, or canned quinces, and half apples. Apple Me'ringue. Core, pare, and bake seven apples, on a shallow plate, till soft, but not till broken. Beat the yolks of three eggs; add three tablespoonfids of sugar, a little salt, and on& pint of scalded milk. Pour it over the baked apples. Bake till the custard is firm. When cool, add a meringue made of the whites of three eggs, beaten till foamy ; add three tablespoonfuls of powdered sugar gradually, flavor 334 The Boston Cook Book. with lemon, and beat till stiff. Set the pudding-dish on a board in the oven, and brown the meringue. The whites of eggs for a meringue should be cool, and beaten till light and foamy, but not stiff ; then add sugar gradually, in the proportion of one tablespoonful for each egg, and beat till stiff enough to keep its shape. No. 2. Pare and core the apples, fill the cavity with \ sugar and spice mixed, or with sugar, butter, and lemon. Bake the apples, cover with a meringue made with the whites of the eggs ; make the yolks into a boiled custard for a sauce, or serve with cream. This may be served hot or cold. Brown the meringue by holding a hot stove cover over it. Apple Porcupine. Arrange eight or ten apples (baked as in the preceding rule, or cored, pared, and cooked carefully in syrup, see Compote of Apples) in a mound on a dish for serving. Put quince jelly among the apples. Cover with a meringue made of the whites of four eggs and half a cup of pow- dered sugar. Stick blanched almonds into the meringue. Put the dish on a board in the oven, and brown slightly, or hold a hot iron over it. Serve with boiled custard sauce. Friar's Omelet. Steam tart apples, mash, and drain quite dry. Take one pint of the pulp, and mix with it the yolks of three well-beaten eggs, one cup of sugar, and the juice of half a lemon / then add the beaten whites. Brown one cup of soft, fine bread crumbs in one tablespoonful of butter in an omelet pan. Butter a plain mould thickly with cold butter, and sprinkle over the bottom and sides as many of the browned crumbs as will adhere. Fill with the prepared apple ; cover with buttered crumbs, and bake twenty min- utes. When cold, turn out on a platter, and serve with cream. It may be baked in a pudding-dish, and eaten hot. Rice Pudding. 355 Apricots a la Neige. Boil one cup of rice fifteen minutes, or steam till tender (see page 307). Wring small pudding-cloths (one third of a yard square) out of hot water, and lay them over a small half-pint bowl. Spread the rice one third of an inch thick over the cloth. Put an apricot in the centre, filling the cavity in each half-apricot with rice. Draw the cloth around till the apricot is covered smooth- ly With the rice. FIO.U. Apple Snowballs. Tie tightly, and steam ten minutes. Remove the cloth carefully, and turn the balls out on a platter, and serve with apricot sauce. This amount of rice will make four or five balls. Apples, cored and pared, may be substituted for apricots. They should be steamed half an hour. These are more whole- some than apple or fruit dumplings, made with a flour crust. They are called Apple Snowballs. Plain Rice Pudding. Half a cup of well- washed rice, half a cup of sugar, a little salt, and one quart of milk. Soak half an hour. Bake about two hours, slowly at first till the rice has soft- ened and thickened the milk ; then let it brown slightly. This is creamy and delicious, though it is often called Poor Man's Pudding. Serve hot or cold. No. 2. Three tablespoonfuls of rice, a little salt, three tablespoonfuls of sugar, one quart of milk, and three sour apples, pared and quartered, or one cup of small, whole raisins. Put all into a deep pudding-dish, well buttered. Cover, and bake slowly four or five hours, till the milk is all absorbed and the rice is red or colored. Serve hot with butter. 336 The Boston Cook Book. Rice and Fruit Pudding. \ Steam one scant cup of rice in two cups of boiling water, in the double boiler, thirty minutes. Add, while hot, one tablespoonful of butter, one scant teaspoonful of salt, one beaten egg, and half a cup of sugar. Cook -five minutes. Butter a plain pudding-mould, sprinkle it with bread crumbs, or line with macaroons. Put in a layer of rice half an inch thick, then a layer of apricots or peaches or pineapple, then rice, fruit, etc., till the mould is full, hav- ing crumbs on the top. Bake twenty minutes in a mod- erate oven. Turn out on a platter, and serve with boiled custard flavored with vanilla, or with an apricot sauce. Rice Souffle. Boil half a cup of rice in one quart of boiling salted water fifteen or twenty minutes, and drain it. Put the rice in the double boiler with one pint of milk, cook ten minutes ; add the yolks of four or six eggs beaten with four or six tablespoonfuls of powdered sugar and one tablespoonful of butter. Cook five minutes, and set away to cool ; add half a teaspoonful of vanilla or lemon. Half an hour before serving, beat the whites of the eggs stiff, and cut them lightly into the cooked mixture. Bake in a well-buttered pudding-dish half an hour. Serve im- mediately with creamy sauce. Rice Custard. Soak half a cup of cold cooked rice in one pint of hot milk till every grain is distinct. Add the yolks of two eggs, beaten with a quarter of a cup of sugar and a pinch of salt, and cook like soft custard. While still hot, stir in the whites, beaten stiff, and set away to cool. Or turn Jhe hot custard into a dish, and when cool cover with a meringue of the whites. Brown slightly, and serve cold. Souffle Puddings. 337 Custard Souffle. (Miss Parloa.) . Rub two scant tablespoonfuls of butter to a cream ; add two tablespoonfuls of flour, an,d pour on gradually one cup of hot milk. Cook eight minutes in the double boiler, stirring often. Separate the yolks and whites of four eggs, and put the whites away in the ice-chest. Beat the yolks, add two tablespoonfuls of sugar, and add to the milk, and set away to cool. Half an hour before serving, Deat the whites stiff, and cut them in lightly. Bake in a buttered pudding-dish in a moderate oven thirty minutes, and serve at once with creamy sauce. This mixture may be put into buttered paper cases, and baked ten or fifteen minutes. Serve in the papers. Sponge Pudding. (Miss Alice Walcott.) % cup sugar. i-o cup flour. l~pint milk, boiled. ^ cup butter. Yolks of 5 eggs. Whites of 5 eggs. Mix the sugar and flour, wet with a little cold milk, and stir into the boiling milk. Cook until it thickens and is smooth ; add the butter, and when well mixed stir it into the well-beaten } T olks of the eggs, then add the whites beaten stiff. Bake in cups, or in a shallow dish, or in paper cases, in a hot oven. Place the dish in a pan of hot water while in the oven. Serve with creamy sauce. Bread Pudding. One pint of fine stale bread crumbs, soaked one hour in one quart of milk. Beat two eggs ; mix one quarter of a cup of sugar, one teaspoonful of salt, one saltspoonfvl of nutmeg or cinnamon, and one tablespoonful of softened butter. Stir into the eggs, and then stir all into the milk. Bake one hour in a buttered pudding-dish. Add ohe cup of raisins, and you have a Plum Pudding. The raisins should be first boiled, at least one hour, in water to cover, till plump and soft, as they will not cook 22 338 The Boston Cook Book. sufficiently in the baking. Four eggs may be used when a richer pudding is desired. And this becomes the Queen of Puddings by leaving out the whites, and after baking spreading a layer of jam over the top, then a meringue of the whites, and browning slightly. French Bread Pudding. Butter small thin slices of J nice bread, spread with apple jelly, and lay them loosely in a quart pudding-dish, filling it about half full. Pour over them one quart of lolled custard, and cover with a meringue. Brown the meringue and serve cold. Or put the prepared bread in a buttered mould lined with maca- roons, cover with the custard, steam one hour, and serve hot , Plymouth Indian Meal Pudding. (Mrs. Faunce.) v Mix one cup of yellow corn meal, one cup of molasses, and one teaspoonful of salt. Pour on one quart of boiling milk, add one tablespoonful of butter, three pints of cold milk, and one cup of cold water, or two eggs. Bake in a deep, well-buttered pudding-dish, holding at least three quarts. Bake very slowly seven or eight hours. Do not stir, but cover with a plate if it bake too fast. One cup of currants may be used to give variety. Baked Indian Meal Pudding (made quickly). Boil one quart of milk. Pour it gradually on three tablespoonfuls of granulated Indian meal. Put it back in the double boiler, and boil one hour, stirring often. Then add one heaping tablespoonful of butter, one tea- spoonful of salt, half a cup of molasses, two eggs, and one quart of cold milk. Mix well, pour into a well-buttered dish, and bake one hour. Eat with cream or butter. Whole-Wheat Pudding. (Miss Helen Spaulding.) Mix two cups of whole-wheat flour, half a teaspoonful of soda, and half a teaspoonful of salt. Add one cup of milk, half a cup of molasses, and one cup of stoned and chopped raisins, or one cup of ripe berries. Steam two Steamed Pudding. 339 hours and a half, and serve with cream or any plain pudding sauce. One cup of dates, figs, stewed prunes, or chopped apple makes a pleasing variety. This is an economical pudding, wholesome for children and invalids when served with cream, and rich enough to suit any one when served with creamy or foamy sauce. Steamed Fruit Pudding. 1 pint flour. 3 level teasp. baking-powder. % teaspoon ful salt. 1 cup milk. 2 tablespoon fuls melted butter. 2 eggs. % cup sugar. 1 pint berries, or ripe fruit or cut small, or 1 cup raisins, stoned and halved. Mix the baking-powder and salt with the flour ; add the milk and melted butter. Beat the yolks of the eggs, add the sugar, and beat them well into the dough. Then add the whites of the eggs, beaten stiff; and then the fruit, well rolled in flour. Steam two hours, and serve with lemon or foamy sauce. Steamed Suet and Fruit Pudding. 2)^ cups flour. 1 teaspoonful soda. % teaspoonful salt. % saltspoonf ul cinnamon. % saltspoonf ul nutmeg. 1 cup chopped suet, or YI cup butter. 1 cup chopped raisins or currants. 1 cup water or milk. 1 cup molasses. Sift the soda, salt, and spice into the flour, rub in the butter, and add the raisins. Mix the milk with the molasses, and stir it into the dry mixture. Steam in a buttered pudding-mould three hours. Serve with foamy sauce. If water and butter be used, three cups of flour will be required, as these thicken less than milk and suet. This pudding is sometimes steamed in small stone cups. Cabinet Pudding. Butter a melon mould, and decorate it with candied fruit, or with raisins boiled till soft and seeded ; then put 340 The Boston Cook Book. in a layer of lady fingers or stale sponge cake, then a few pieces of fruit, and repeat till the mould is nearly full. Pour one pint of boiling milk into the yolks of three eggs, beaten with three tablespoonfuls of sugar and half a salt- spoonful of salt. Pour over the cake in the mould. Set the mould in a pan of warm water on the back of the stove half an hour, then bake one hour, keeping it in the pan of hot water. Or steam it one hour. Serve hot with wine or foamy sauce. Six macaroons or six cocoanut cakes may also be used, and the custard may be flavored with wine. Christmas Plum Pudding. (Mrs. J. M. Towne.) One pint and a half of grated bread crumbs (soft, oot dried), one pint of chopped suet, one pint and a half of currants and stoned raisins mixed, half a cup of citron shaved thin, one scant cup of sugar, half a teaspoonful of salt, half a teaspoonful of grated nutmeg, five eggs, two even tablespoonfuls of flour, made into a thin batter with milk, and half a glass of brandy. Mix in the order given, and boil or steam four hours. Serve with yellow sauce. Thanksgiving Plum Pudding. (Mrs. S. M. Bailey.) Six butter crackers, rolled fine, and soaked in three pints of milk. Cream one quarter of a cup of butter with one cup of sugar ; add half a teaspoonful of salt, one teaspoonful of mixed spice, and six well-beaten eggs. Stir it all into the milk, and add one pound of the best raisins. Bake in a deep pudding-dish, well greased with cold butter. Bake very slowly in a moderate oven three or four hours. Stir several times during the first hour, to keep the raisins from settling. Make half of this receipt and steam it in a pudding-mould. Butter the mould, and line it with macaroons. Blanc Mange. 341 CUSTARDS, JELLIES, AND CREAMS. Irish Moss Blanc-Mange. % cup Irish moss. 1 saltspoonful salt. 1 quart milk. 1 teaspoonf ill vanilla. Soak the moss in cold water fifteen minutes ; pick over, wash, tie in a lace bag, and put it into the double boiler with the milk. Boil until the milk thickens when dropped on a cool plate. Add the salt ; strain and flavor. Mould in small cups or in egg-shells. Break off a piece as large as a ten-cent piece on one end of the egg-shell, pour out the egg, rinse the shells, stand them upright in a pan of meal, and fill with the blanc-mange. Serve blanc- mange with sugar and cream, also with apple or grape jelly ; or put half a peach or any candied fruit in the bot- tom of the cup before filling. Blanc-mange may be made by using one tablespoon- ful of sea-moss farina. Stir it into the boiling milk, and cook twenty minutes. Or use three tablespoonfuls of Hector's farina in the same way. Cornstarch and gela- tine are often used, but they are neither palatable nor nutritious without eggs. Chocolate Pudding. Use the same proportion of moss and milk as in the preceding rule. Put one square of chocolate in a saucepan with two tablespoonfuls each of suoar and water. Stir, and boil until smooth ; add a little of the milk, until thin enough to pour easily, then mix it well with the remainder of the milk. Add the moss, and boil till thick. 342 The Boston Cook Book. Danish Pudding, or Fruit Tapioca. ^ cup sugar. % tumbler currant jeljy. % cuprpearl tapioca. 1) pint boiling water. 1 saltspoonf ul salt. Pick over and wash the tapioca. Put it in the double boiler with the boiling water, and cook one hour, or till soft and transparent, stirring often. Add the salt, sugar, and currant jelly. Stir till the jelly is all dissolved. Pour into a glass dish, and keep on ice. Serve very cold with sugar and cream. Half a cup of lemon juice, or any acid fruit syrup, or one cup of canned apricot, peach, or quince, may be used instead of the jelly. Or, in summer, use one pint of ripe berries, or any small fruits, adding more sugar as required. Fruit Pudding. Cook one quart of ripe berries or canned peaches or apricots with one pint of water, and sugar to taste, till the fruit is well scalded. Skim out the fruit into a dish for serving. Wet one scant cupful of fine granulated wheat flour in a little cold water, stir it into the boiling syrup ; cook ten minutes, and pour it over the fruit. Serve very cold with cream. Boiled Custard. I pint milk. Yolks of 3 eggs. 3^ saltspoonful salt % teaspoonf ul vanilla. 3 tablespoonf uls sugar. Scald the milk. Beat the yolks, add the sugar and salt, and beat well. Pour the hot milk slowly into the eggs, and when well mixed pour all back into the double boiler, and stir constantly till smooth and thick like cream. Strain, and when cool add the flavoring. Do not stir the egg into the hot milk, as there is danger of curdling, and a part of the egg will be left in the bowl. Scalding the milk hastens the process, so that less stirring is required. When nearly thick enough, the foam on the top disappears, and the custard coats the spoon ; but the surest test is Custards. 343 given by the sense of feeling. You are conscious that the custard is thicker by the way the spoon goes through it. Do not leave the custard an instant ; take it off as soon as it is smooth, as it will thicken in cooling, and curdles quickty if cooked a moment too long or if left in the boiler. Have a fine strainer placed in a bowl or pitcher before you begin to cook the custard, that you may strain it quickly. Boiled custard, when to be used as a sauce, should be thin enough to pour ; when to be served as a custard, it should be cooked a moment longer, to make it thicker. Four or even Jive eggs to a pint of milk may be used when a rich custard is desired. But three are sufficient for nearly all purposes. Boiled custard is much smoother when only the yolks of the eggs are used. Many combinations may be made by adding the whites of the eggs after the custard is cold. Beat the whites stiff, put them on a sieve, and cook over steam, or pour boiling water through them. The water will cook and stiffen the egg, and when well drained it may be piled in rock}' form on the custard. Or the white may be poached by dipping it by the spoonful into boiling milk. Serve the custard in a large glass dish, and pile the white in a mass, or put spoonfuls of it here and there on the cus- tard, with bright-colored jelly on the white ; or serve in small glass custard cups with the white and jelly on the top. Or pour the custard over slices of sponge cake (soaked in wine, if you prefer), and cover with a meringue of the whites sweetened and flavored. Floating Island, Flummery, Tipsy Pudding, and hosts of other dishes are only fancy names given to the different combinations of cake, boiled custard, and meringue. Any of the following ingredients may be used as flavor- ing ; this will give a variety of dishes, which want of space prevents us from giving as separate receipts : half a square ' of chocolate, melted ; the three tablespoonfuls of sugar melted to a caramel before mixing with the yolks ; one cup of grated cocoanut, or cocoanut cakes crumbled ; six mac- aroons soaked in wine; one cup of chopped almonds or 344 The Boston Cook Book. any of the varieties of candied fruits ; four oranges, peeled, seeded, and cut fine ; one pint of any canned fruit ; one pint of lemon, wine, or orange jelly, cut in cubes. Or color the meringue pink by beating three tablespoon- fuls. of bright-colored jelly with the whites ; or brown it with a salamander or hot poker, or by putting the dish on a board in the oven. Baked or Steamed Custard. \ quart milk. I 6 tablespoonfuls sugar. 6 eggs. 1 saltspoonf ul salt. Scald the milk. Beat the eggs ; add the sugar and salt, then the scalded milk. Strain, add a little nutmeg, and bake about twenty minutes in a deep dish or in cups set in a pan of warm water ; or steam in a bowl or in cups. Test the custard with a spoon ; if it come out clean, the custard is done. Caramel Custard. ) cup sugar. 2 tablespoonfuls water. 1 quart milk. 6 eggs. % teaspoonful salt. 1 teaspoonful vanilla. Put the sugar in an omelet pan, and stir until it melts and is light brown ; add the water, and stir into the warm milk. Beat the eggs slightly, add the salt and vanilla and part of the milk. Strain into the remainder of the milk, and pour into a buttered two-quart mould. Set the mould in a pan of warm water, and bake thirty to forty minutes, or till firm. Cut into the middle with a knife ; if it come out clean, the custard is done. Serve cold with caramel sauce. Delicate Pudding. 1 cup water. 1 cup fruit juice. 3 tablespoonfuls cornstarch. % saltspoonful salt. Sugar to taste. 3 eggs. Boil the water and fruit juice (orange, lemon, or canned cherries, quince, or apricot). Wet the cornstarch in a little Fancy Custards. 345 cold water, stir into the boiling syrup, and cook ten min- utes. Add the salt and sugar to taste ; the quantity de- pending upon the fruit. Beat the whites of the eggs till foamy, and stir into the starch. Turn at once into a mould. Serve cold with a boiled custard sauce made with the yolks of the eggs. Apple Snow. 3 large tart apples. I % cup powdered sugar. 3 eggs (whites). I ) cup jelly. Stew or steam the apples (cored and quartered, but not pared), drain, and then rub them through a hair sieve. Beat the whites of the eggs stiff, add the sugar, beat again ; add the apple, and beat till like snow. Pile lightl} 7 in a glass dish, garnish with jelly or holly leaves. Serve with boiled custard. Tapioca Cream. 2 tablespoonf uls pearl tapioca. 1 pint milk. Yolks of 2 eggs. % saltspoonful salt. Whites of 2 eggs. % teaspoonf ul vanilla. Yi cup sugar. Soak the tapioca in hot water enough to cover it, in the top of the double boiler placed on the back of the stove. When the water is absorbed, add the milk, and cook until the tapioca is soft and transparent. Beat the yolks of the eggs, add the sugar and salt. Pour the boiling mixture on them, and cook two or three minutes, or till it thickens like boiled custard. Remove from the fire, add the whites of the eggs, beaten to a foam. Stir well, and when cool flavor. Do not try to mould it, as it is more delicate when soft. Jellies and Fancy Dishes made with Gelatine, Custard, and Cream. Gelatine, as now obtained, is refined and clarified during the process of manufacture, and this renders it unnecessary to use the white of egg in making jellies, as was required 346 The Boston Cook Book. when using the old preparation of isinglass and gelatine. Much of the strength and flavor of jellies is lost in clearing them with eggs. Cox's gelatine makes a clear jelly, but it softens slowly and requires a strong flavoring like wine or lemon to disguise the fishy taste. Nelson's English gelatine is of fine quality, softens quickly, has an agree- able flavor, and is well adapted to creams and other delicate dishes. Granulated gelatines are convenient for accurate measurement and quick work. Never cook gelatine. Soak (not dissolve) it in cold water, in the proportion of o, *> of cold^nafer to one box of gelatine. It will soften in fifteen mintu^-, if stirred often. Then dissolve in boiling liquid, either water, milk, or custard, and always strain through a fine strainer after it is dissolved. Gelatine Pudding, or Spanish Cream. % box gelatine. 1 % cup cold water. % cup boiling water. Yolks of 3 eggs. 3 tablespoonf uls sugar. % saltspoonf ul salt. 1 pint milk. Whites of 3 eggs. 1 teaspoonful vanilla. Soak the gelatine in the cold water till soft, then dis- solve it in boiling water. Make a custard with the yolks of the eggs, beaten, and mixed with the sugar and salt. Pour on the hot milk, and cook in the double boiler till it thickens. Then add the strained gelatine water, the vanilla, and the whites of the eggs, beaten stiff. Mix all well, and turn into moulds wet in cold water. Place in ice water, and when hard and ready to serve turn out on a dish. Italian Cream. Use the same proportions as in the preceding receipt. Dissolve the soaked gelatine in the hot custard instead of in hot water, and strain the whole while hot into the beaten whites. When well mixed, add lemon or vanilla, and pour into a mould. Quaking Custard. The same proportions as in Span- 1 If erramiTated gelatine, use 1J tablespoons. Snow Pudding 347 ish Cream. Dissolve the soaked gelatine in the hot cus- tard, and strain into a mould. When ready to serve, beat the whites of the eggs stiff, add three heaping table- spoonfuls of powdered sugar, and the juice of one lemon. Turn the custard on a platter, and heap the meringue around it. % box gelatine. 1 ^ cup cold water. 1 euj n 'g water. 1 cup '. )^cup 1< . ion juice. Whites of 3 eggs. Snow I , 'lidding. Yolks of 3 eggs. 3 tablespoonfuls sugar. % saltspoonful salt. 1 pint hot milk. % teaspoonful vanilla. Soak the gelatine in the cold water fifteen minutes, or until soft. Then dissolve it in the boiling water ; add the sugar and lemon juice. Stir till the sugar is dissolved. Strain into a -large bowl, and set in ice water to cool. Stir occasionally. Beat the whites of the eggs to a stiff froth, and when the gelatine begins to thicken, add the beaten whites, and beat all together till very light. When nearly stiff enough to drop, pour into a mould. Or beat until stiff enough to hold its shape, if your strength will allow, and pile lightly in a tall glass dish. Make a boiled custard of the yolks of the eggs, the sugar, salt, and milk, and when cool flavor with vanilla. Serve the sauce in a pitcher. Or, if the snow be moulded, turn it out on a dish, and pour the sauce around the pudding. The snow may be turned into a shallow dish, two inches deep, to harden, and when ready to serve cut into blocks and piled like a pyramid. Blocks of lemon or wine jelly, mixed with the snow or sparkling jelly (jelly broken up lightly with a fork), make a pleasing variety. If the whites of the eggs be added to the gelatine mixture before it becomes cold, as is directed in many re- ceipts, more time will be required for the beating. Many have never made the dish a second time on account of the time and strength expended. Fifteen minutes is sufficient when made according to this receipt. 1 If granulated gelatine, use 1J tablespoons. 348 The Boston Cook Book. Yi box gelatine. Yi cup cold water. Yz cup boiling water, 1 cup sugar. Orange Charlotte. Juice of 1 lemon. 1 cup orange juice and pulp. 3 eggs (whites). FIG. 45. Orange Charlotte. Line a mould or bowl with lady fingers or sections of oranges. Soak the gelatine in cold water till soft. Pour on the boiling water, add the sugar and the lemon juice. Strain and add the orange juice and pulp wi*h a little of the grated rind. Cool in a pan of ice water. Beat the whites of the eggs stiff, and when the orange jelly be- gins to harden beat it till light. Add the beaten whites, and beat together till stiff enough to drop. Pour into the mould. One pint of whipped cream m&y be used instead of the whites of the eggs, or it may be piled on the top after the Charlotte is removed from the mould. Apple Charlotte. One cup of cooked sour apple (steamed, drained, and sifted) may be used in place of the orange in the preceding receipt. Line the mould with lad}' fingers or sponge cake, and serve a boiled custard, made with the }*olks of the eggs, as a sauce. Or use one cup of canned peach, pineapple, or apricot, or one pint of fresh strawberries or raspberries. Mash and rub the fruit through a sieve before using. Fruit Charlotte. % box gelatine. 1 Yz cup cold water. 1 cup sugar. 13^ cup water and 1 cup lemon juice, or 1 pint orange juice and 1 cup water. Yolks of 4 eggs. Whites of 4 eggs. 1 dozen lady fingers. It granulated gelatine, use 2\ tablespoons. Wine Jelly. 349 Soak the gelatine in cold water till soft. Make a syrup with the sugar and fruit juice. When boiling, pour it into the beaten yolks of the eggs. Stir well, and cook in a double boiler till it thickens. Add the soaked gelatine, stir till dissolved, and strain at once into a granite pan placed in ice water. Beat occasionally till cold, but not hard. Beat the whites of the eggs to a stiff froth, and then beat all together till it thickens. When almost stiff enough to drop, pour at once into moulds lined with cake. Keep on ice, and serve with or without powdered sugar and cream. Vary the fruit by stewing one pint of canned peaches, pineapple, or apricots in one cup each of sugar and water till soft, then sift; add the yolks of the eggs, and cook till it thickens. Add the gelatine, strain, and when cool add the whites. Grated pineapple will not require sifting. Velvet Cream. (Miss Ward.} Yz box gelatine. 1 1> cup sherry wine. \% cup sugar. \% pint cream. 1 lemon (grated rind and juice). Soak the gelatine in the wine, add the lemon and sugar, and heat all together till the gelatine is dissolved. Then strain and set it away to cool. When nearly cold, but before it begins to stiffen, add the cream. Beat till nearly stiff enough to drop, then pour it into moulds and set it on ice until stiff as blanc-mange. Wine Jelly )^ box gelatine.! ^ cup cold water. 1 pint boiling water. Juice of 1 lemon. 1 cup sugar. 1 cup sherry or S. M. wine. Soak the gelatine in cold water fifteen minutes, or until soft. Add the boiling water, lemon juice, sugar, and wine. Stir well, and strain through a fine napkin into a shallow dish. Keep in ice water till hard. When ready, to serve, cut in cubes or diamonds, or break it up lightly 1 If granulated erelafino. 11*0 9 1 f.nl>!oop ons 350 The Boston Cook Book. with a fork. If 3-011 wish to mould it, or to use for mould- ing creams, add only two thirds of a pint of boiling water. Orange Jelly. % box gelatine. 1 % cup cold water. 1 cup boiling water. Juice of 1 lemon. 1 cup sugar. 1 pint orange juice. Soak the gelatine in cold water until soft. Add the boiling water, the lemon juice, sugar, and orange juice. Stir till the sugar is dissolved, and strain. Or use one cup of orange juice and one scant pint of boiling water, one lemon, one scant cup of sugar, and two tablespoonfuls of brandy. Lemon Jelly. % box gelatine.* 1 scant cup cold water. 1 pint boiling water. 1 cup sugar. % cup lemon juice (large). 1 square-inch stick cinnamon. Soak the gelatine in the cold water till soft. Shave the lemon rind thin, using none of the white. Steep it with the cinnamon in the pint of boiling water ten minutes, then add the soaked gelatine, sugar, and lemon juice, and when dissolved strain. Italian Jelly, or Fruit Moulded in Jelly. % box gelatine. 1 % cup cold water. Rind and juice of 1 lemon. 1 scant cup boiling water. 1 cup sugar. 1 pint orange juice. 1 cup fruit. Soak the gelatine in the cold water till soft. Shave the rind of the lemon, using only the yellow part, and soak with the gelatine. Pour on the boiling water ; add the sugar, lemon juice, and orange juice. Strain through a fine napkin into a pitcher, or something from which it can be poured. Wet a mould in cold water, and pack it in a pan of ice. Put in a la} 7 er of jelly half an inch deep and harden it, then a layer of candied fruit or sections of 1 If granulated gelatine, use 2 tablespoons. Crelatine Jellies. 351 oranges, fastening each piece of fruit in place with a little jelly before adding enough to cover the fruit, otherwise the fruit will float. Repeat till the mould is full. Place the pitcher where the jelly will keep liquid but not hot, and be sure that every piece of fruit is firmly in place before add- ing more. This may be made with lemon or wine jetty. A variety of designs may be made by arranging different colors of fruit; and it well repays one for the trouble, which seems very slight after the first attempt. Do not devote your whole morning to it, but look at it occasion- ally while you are doing other things, adding fruit and jelly as required ; and before you are conscious of it, the dish will be prepared. Orange Baskets. Cut as many oranges as will be re- quired, leaving half the peel whole for the baskets, and a strip half an inch wide for the handle. Remove the pulp Fio. 46. Orange Baskets. and juice, and use the juice in making orange jelly. Place the baskets in a pan of broken ice to keep upright. Fill with orange jelly. When ready to serve, put a spoonful of whipped cream over the jelly in each basket. Serve in a bed of orange or laurel leaves. No. 2. With a vegetable cutter cut out several smaP portions of the peel in the basket and handle, to give ai open-work effect, and fill with a mixture of orange, wine and lemon jelly, cut into inch dice and piled lightly in the baskets. Or the baskets may be filled with Bavarian cream. Orange Sections. Cut off a small portion from the end of the orange, and scoop out the pulp and juice. Be careful not to break through the skin. Fill them with 352 The Boston Cook Book. orange jelly which is thoroughly cold, but not hard, and place them upright in a pan of broken ice. When hard, cut each orange in quarters, and serve garnished with green leaves. Imperial Cream. Make the rule for Lemon Jelly (page 350), and color part of it pink with cochineal or cranberry juice. Harden it in a shallow pan. Make Snow Pudding (page 347) , and when nearly stiff enough to drop, stir in small squares of the pink and lemon jelly. Mould, and when ready to serve, turn out on a dish, garnish the base and top with maca- roons soaked in wine. Pour rich boiled custard round the dish, and put macaroons and cubes of the jeUies in the custard. Whipped Cream. Many wholesome, delicious, and attractive dishes may be made with whipped cream. To those who can obtain plenty of cream, these dishes afford a cheaper, more easily prepared, and far more satisfactory course than pie and many forms of hot puddings. Many of them are equally suitable for tea. Very rich cream should be diluted and well mixed with an equal quantity of milk. The best quality of cream obtained from the milkman is usually of the proper consistenc} 7 . Thin cream will become liquid after whipping, and thick cream will turn to butter. The cream should always be icy cold; when it is to be served as a garnish, or for cream whips, it should be sweetened and flavored before it is whipped. A whip churn is the best utensil for whipping cream. This is a tin cylinder, perforated at the bottom and sides, and having a perforated dasher. When the churn is placed in a bowl of cream, and the dasher worked up and down, the air is forced from the cylinder into the cream, causing ft to become light and frothy. A Dover egg-beater will make the cream light, but it has a different consistency from that obtained by churning. Whipped Cream. 353 To Whip Cream. Place a bowl half filled with cream in a pan of broken ice. When very cold, put the churn into the creain, hold the cylinder firmly, and keep the cover in place with the left hand. Tip the churn slightly, that the cream may flow out at the bottom. Work the dasher with a light short stroke up, and a hard, pushing stroke down. \Vhen the froth appears, stir it down once or twice, as the first bubbles are too large ; and when the bowl is full of froth, skim it off into a granite pan placed on ice. Take off the froth only, and do not take it off below the holes in the cylinder, as it whips better when they are covered. For this reason never whip a pint of cream in a three- quart bowl, and do not try to whip it all, as usually a little is left in the bowl which is too thin to whip. One pint of cream should treble in whipping. If for a garnish, drain the whipped cream on a hair sieve placed over a pan, and keep it on ice till stiff enough to keep it shape. Creams that are to be moulded are made stiffef by the addition of gelatint Cream Whips. (Miss Ward.) % cup sugar. Whites of 2 eggs, beaten light 1 pint rich cream. 1 cup pale sherry wine. 1 lemon (grated rind and juice). Mix in the order given. Add more sugar if desired. Stir till the sugar is dissolved, then whip it and take off the froth as it rises, and put it on a hair sieve. Fill jelly glasses with the cream left hi the bowl, and put the froth on the top. Newport Whips. (Mrs. Upham.} One pint of cream, sweet or sour, one gill of sweet milk, half a lemon sliced, sugar and wine to taste. Whip, and serve the whip only, in jelly glasses. If prepared in a covered bowl or tureen, the unwhipped cream may be kept for several days, add- ing more cream, sugar, and wine to taste, and whipping as required for use. 354 Th e Boston Cook Book. Charlotte Russe (Cream). 1 pint rich cream. 1 teaspoonful vanilla. % cup sugar. Sponge cake. Mix the cream, vanilla, and sugar. Place the bowl in ice water, and when chilled whip to a stiff froth, and skim off the froth into a sieve. Drain, and whip again that which has drained through. When nearly all whipped, line a glass dish with lady fingers or sponge cake, fill with the cream, put cubes of wine jelly or any bright ielly on the cream, and keep on ice till ready to serve. Charlotte Russe, No. 2 (Cream and Eggs). 1 pint rich cream. I Whites of 2 eggs. 1 teaspoonful vanilla. 1 cup powdered sugar. 1 tablespoonful wine. Sponge cake. Flavor the cream with vanilla and wine, and whip to a stiff froth. Beat the whites of 'the eggs stiff, add the pow- dered sugar, and mix it lightly with the whipped cream. Keep it on ice till it stiffens. Line small cups or paper moulds with sponge cake, and fill with the cream. Or fill fancy paper cases with cream, and ornament each with thin triangles of sponge cake and a cube of wine jelly. A small part of the cream may be colored with melted chocolate or cochineal, and used for decoration. Charlotte Russe, No. 3 (with Gelatine). (Miss Parloa.) gelatine. 1 % cup cold water. 1 pint cream. 1 dozen lady fingers. Yi cup powdered sugar. 1 teaspoonful vanilla 1 tablespoonful wine. ^ cup boiling water Soak the gelatine in the cold water till softened. Chill the cream. Line a three-pint mould with lady fingers or narrow slices of sponge cake, crust side out ; leave a little space between the slices, and have the cake even at the top. Whip the cream, and skim off into a granite 1 If granulated gelatine, use \\ tablespoons. Charlotte Russe. pan set in ice water. Sift the powdered sugar over the whipped cream, and add the vanilla and wine. Dissolve the gelatine in the boiling water, and strain through a fine strainer over the whipped cream. Then stir (not beat) rapidly with the bowl of the spoon resting on the bottom of the pan. Turn the pan with the left hand while stirring with the right. If it feel lumpy, lift the pan from the ice and place it in warm water to melt the gela- tine. Stir till the gelatine is well mixed with the cream, and when nearly stiff enough to drop, turn it into the mould. Keep on ice, and when ready to serve, turn out and garnish the top with^W/y. This filling may be used in paper cases as directed in No. 1. Plain Bavarian Cream. % box gelatine. 1 % cup cold water. Yi cup sugar. 1 teaspoonful vanilla. 1 pint cream. Soak the gelatine in cold water till soft. Chill and whip the cream till you have three pints of the whip. Boil the remainder of the cream (or if it be all whipped, use a cup of milk) with the sugar ; and when boiling add the soaked gelatine. Stir till dissolved. Strain into a granite pan, add the vanilla or lemon, and wine if you wish ; or flavor with two tablespoonfuls of melted choco- late, or one quarter of a cup of strong coffee. Place the pan in ice water, stir occasionally, and when the mixture is thoroughly cold and beginning to thicken, stir in lightly the whipped cream. When nearly stiff enough to drop, pour into the moulds. This cream is sometimes moulded in small cups. Put half of a canned apricot or peach, or three sections of orange, or several small cherries, or a candied plum, in the bottom of the cup before filling with the cream. Or line a bowl with whole strawberries and fill with the cream. This is called a Strawberry Charlotte. Red b& nanas sliced may be used in the same manner. * If granulated gelatine, use 1} tablespoons. 356 The Boston Cook Book. Riz a V Imperatrice. Prepare the cream as for Bava- rian Cream ; put one cup of cooked rice in the hot milk. and stir till every grain is distinct, then proceed as directed in the preceding receipt. Bavarian Cream, No. 2 (with Eggs). > box gelatine. 1 }<2 cup cold water. 1 pint creain. 1 pint milk. % cup sugar. % saltspoonf ul salt. 1 teaspoonful vanilla 1 tablespoonf ul wine. 4 eggs (yolks). Soak the gelatine in cold water till soft. Chill and whip the cream till you have three pints. Keep the whipped cream on ice, and boil the remainder of the cream, adding enough milk to make a pint in all. Beat the yolks of the eggs, and add the sugar and salt. Pour the boiling milk on the eggs, and when well mixed put back in the double boiler and cook about two minutes, or just enough to scald the egg. Stir constantly, add the soaked gela- tine, and strain at once into a pan set in ice water. When cool, add the vanilla and wine, or half a cup of orange juice. Stir till it begins to harden, then stir in quickly the whipped cream, and when nearly stiff enough to drop, pour into moulds wet in cold water. Chocolate Bavarian Cream. Melt two sticks of sweetened chocolate^ and stir them into the custard before straining. Coffee Bavarian Cream. Add one quarter of a cup of very clear, strong black coffee. Or boil half a cup of ground coffee in the milk, before straining it over the Bavarian Cream with Fruit. 1 quart berries. 1 cup sugar. 3^ box gelatine. % cup cold water. )^ cup boiling water. 1 pint cream. Strawberries or Raspberries. Mash the berries with the sugar ; let them stand till the sugar is dissolved. Strain through a sieve fine enough to keep back the seeds. Soak 1 If granulated gelatine, use 2J tablespoous Bavarian Cream. 357 the gelatine in the cold water, then dissolve in the boiling water, and strain it into the berry juice. Cool, and beat till slightly thickened ; add the cream (whipped), and mould it in a plain mould, or lined like a Charlotte. Pineapple. Stew a can of grated pineapple with one cup of sugar ten minutes, and use in the same manner without sifting. Peaches and Apricots. Mash and sift one can of peaches or apricots (use juice and fruit), and stew with a heaping cup of sugar, and use as above. Norfolk Cream. Line a mould with one pound of can- died plums , having first removed the stones, and spread the plums out as thin as possible. Make the plain Bava- rian cream, and when thick enough to drop, take out one third of it and color with cochineal; add half a cup of candied cherries cut in halves. Put a layer of the white FIG. 47. Mould of Bavarian Cream garnished with Whipped Cream and Fruit. cream next to the plums, and fill the -centre with the pink. When ready to serve, loosen the edges with a knife and invert carefully. Garnish with whipped cream. Mock Canteloupe. Mould the yellow Bavarian cream in a melon mould lined with lady fingers, and when ready to serve, turn out on a dish and sprinkle the top of the cream thickly with chopped pistachio nuts, or any green fruit, plums, or angelica. Garnish with whipped cream and candied fruit. Prune Pudding. (Mrs. A. A. Lincoln.) Make a small mould of lemon jelly. Boil large selected prunes slowl}* until very tender, taking care to keep the skins unbroken. Drain and place in a glass dish. Break up 358 The Boston Cook Book. the jelly all about them, so that it will have the appearance of being made together. Pile whipped cream, prepared as for Charlotte Russe, No. 1, over the prunes and jelly. Creme Diplomate. (Miss M. L. Clarke.) % box gelatine. 1 % cup cold water. 1 pint cream. % cup sugar. 4 eggs (whites) 1 teaspoonf ul vanilla. 1 tablespoonful wine. 1 cup French fruit. Soak the gelatine in the cold water. Chill and whip the cream. Boil the cream left in the bowl with milk enough to make a pint in all. Add the sugar, and when boiling add the soaked gelatine. Stir until dissolved, and strain it into the well-beaten whites of the eggs. Add the vanilla, and the wine, if you approve. Stir well, and when slightly thickened add the whipped cream. When stiff enough to drop, add the French fruit. Mould it, and garnish with wine jelly, fruit, and green leaves. Or add one pint of blanched almonds m pistachio nuts, chopped fine, instead of the fruit. Combinations of Jelly, Cream, Custard, and Cake. Royal Diplomatic Pudding. (Miss JParloa.) Make lemon, orange, or wine jelly, using only two thirds of a pint of boiling water, that it may be stiff enough to mould. Strain it into a pitcher. Place a two-quart mould in. a pan of ice water ; pour in jelly half an inch FIG. 48. Royal Diplomatic Pudding. deep. When hard, put in candied fruit in some fanciful design. Cut cherries in halves, and cut plums to represent leaves, and arrange them like a cluster of cherries ; or cut the cherries smaller, and design a branch of barberries. Fasten each piece of fruit in place 1 If granulated gelatine, use 2.J tablespoons. Fancy Creams. 359 with a few drops of the liquid jell}*, and when hard add jeliy to cover the fruit. When this is hard, place a smaller mould in the centre on the jelly and fill with ice. Pour the remainder of the jelly between the two moulds, adding it slowly, and dropping in fruit here and there, if you choose, until the mould is full. When the jell}' is all firm, remove the ice, and add warm, not hot, water to the smaller mould, and take it out carefully, without breaking the wall of jelly. Fill the space with a JBavarian cream (page 356). Make a rich soft custard with the yolks of five eggs, half a cup of sugar, and a pint of milky strain, and flavor with vanilla. When ready to serve, dip the mould in warm water, put a dish over it, and invert dish and mould together. Remove the mould carefully, and pour the soft custard around the pudding. Make the soft custard while the jelly is hardening ; and do not put the materials for the Bavarian cream together until the small mould is removed from the jelly, and the cavity ready for the cream. Do not turn out of the mould until just before it goes to the table, as the slightest jarring breaks the jelly. A coffee cup within a quart bowl, and a small pail within a larger one, have been successfully used by those who had no moulds. A variety of dishes may be made by using the differ- ent colored jellies and fruits ; and any of the creams stiff enough to mould can be used as filling. Snow Pudding. or Creme Diplomate and Wine Jelly, Norfolk Cream and Lemon Jelly, Orange Sponge and Orange Jelly, are attractive combinations. It may also be made in two sizes of small moulds, serving one mould to each person. G&teau St. Honore. Line a pie plate with thin puff paste, prick with a fork, and bake light brown. Make a cream cake paste (see Index) , press it through a pastry bag round the edge of a jelly cake tin, and bake the re- mainder in balls the size of walnuts. Place the puff paste on a plate, and spread with raspberry jam or orange mar- malade. Lay the border of cream cake paste on the edge, and press it into the marmalade. FiT the centre with any 360 The Boston Cook Book. kind of Bavarian cream. Garnish with the cream cake balls a,ud fruit. Use orange sections with orange marma- lade, and candied cherries and plums with raspberry jam. Sponge cake or feather cake, baked thin in a round tin plate, is more delicate than puff paste as a foundation for the gateau. Gdteau de Princess ^Louise. Bake sponge drop mix- ture or feather cake or snow cake in jelly cake tins. Cut the centre from one cake, leaving a rim one inch and a half wide. Put jetty on the remaining cake, lay the rim on the edge, and fill the centre with Bavarian cream. Garnish with candied fruit. Frost the rim if you prefer. Chantitty Baskets. Dip the edges of soft flexible macaroons in syrup, prepared as for crystallized fruit, and form them into a basket on a fancy plate, something as children shape a burr basket. A rim and handle of paste- board aid in keeping the shape. When dry, fill with any fancy Bavarian cream. FIG. 49 Strawberry Charlotte. Andermatt Cream. Cook half a cup of washed rice in one cup of boiling water until the water is absorbed ; then turn it into the double boiler with three cups of boiling milk. Steam it until tender. Stir in one heaped cup of a mixture of preserved fruits. When cool, stir in one pint of thick cream whipped stiff, and turn it into a melon mould. When firm, turn out, and serve with sponge cake. Ice Cream. 361 ICE-CREAM AND SHERBET. A GOOD ice-cream freezer should be in every kitchen ; for with it a great variety of wholesome and attractive dishes may be prepared with veiy little expenditure of time and strength. Fruit, cream, and eggs, when frozen, are more palatable in hot weather than when served in other ways. A deep can, four inches in diameter, with a tight cover fitting outside the can, and packed in a firkin with ice and salt, makes a good substitute for a freezer. By scraping the cream from the sides and beating occa- sionall}' with a large bread-knife as the cream freezes, one ma}* have a very smooth quality of cream with very little effort. But whether with a patent or home-made freezer, the essential points are to have the ice finely crushed, to use the right proportion of coarse rock salt, and to beat the mixture thorough!}* during the freezing. Salt has a great affinity for water, and when mixed with broken ice it unites with the water ; the ice, in changing from its solid form to a liquid, parts with its heat, and the mixture of melted ice and salt is many degrees colder than the ice alone. This is sufficient to reduce to the freezing-point the temperature of any liquid placed in the ice and salt. The finer the ice is crushed, the quicker it melts ; and the more the mixture is stirred, the sooner all parts become chilled. The melted ice and salt should surround the can, and not be drawn off as fast as melted. For this reason it is a mistake to have the outlet for the water in the bot- torn of the firkin. It should be just below the top of the can, and then the water will run out before it can get in- side the can. Draw it off only when it floats the ice. The ice should be nearly as fine as the salt. Use one part 362 The Boston Cook Book. salt to three or four parts ice. An easy way is to measure each with a saucer or small shallow pan. Put in a layer of ice three inches deep (pack it in solidly) , then a meas- ure of salt (sprinkle it evenly on the ice) , then three meas- ures of ice and one of salt, etc., till the freezer is fall. Pack each layer in closely with a wooden paddle, and turn the freezer handle occasionally while packing. Be sure that the freezer works perfectly before adding the cream. The bearings and gears, and the socket in the tub should be kept well oiled. When the cream is thoroughly cold, pour it into the can. Turn slowly at first, and after ten minutes more rapidly, till you can turn no longer. Remove the beater, scrape off the cream, and beat and pack the cream closely in the can. Put a cork into the opening in the cover, and lay the cross-piece over to keep the can down in the ice. Cover with a piece of old carpeting wet in the salt and water. If the ice and salt have been well packed, and the cream is to be served within an hour and not moulded, no more ice will be needed ; but if to be kept longer, draw off the water and pack again. If to be moulded, beat the cream well, and pack into the mould ; bind the top with a buttered paper or cloth, cover closely, and bury in ice and salt. After using the freezer, clean and scald the can ; dry thoroughly, and keep it uncovered while not in use. Drain the salt left in the freezer, and use again. Use Turk's Island or coarse rock salt, and not what is called coarse fine salt. Ice-Cream, No. 1 (Philadelphia Ice-Cream). 2 quarts cream ; if thick, add I 2 cups sugar. 1 pint milk. I 2 tablespoonfuls vanilla. This is the simplest, and to many the most delicious, form of ice-cream. Scald the cream ; melt the sugar in it, and flavor when cool. Freeze as directed above. The cream should be very sweet and highl}' flavored, as both sweetness and flavor are lessened by freezing. To make it lighter and more delicate, whip the cream until you have Ice Cream. 363 a quart of froth, and add the froth after the cream is partly frozen. Many prefer to add the whites of eggs, beaten till foamy, but not stiff. Use two, three, or four eggs to each quart of cream. The proportion of sugar should vary according to the flavoring used. Ice-Cream, No. 2 (Neapolitan Ice-Cream). 1 quart milk. (6 or 8 eggs yolks) 1 cup sugar. 1 pint to 1 quart cream. Sugar to taste. Flavoring. Make a boiled custard with the milk, sugar, and the yolks of the eggs. Cook it slightly till smooth, but not curdled. Strain, and when cool add the cream, sugar to make it quite sweet, and any flavoring desired. The cus- tard, when made with cream instead of milk, makes the richest kind of ice-cream. If cream cannot be obtained, beat the whites of the eggs till foamy, and add them just before freezing. No matter how many eggs are used, a little cream, if not more than half a cupful, is a decided improvement to all ice-creams. It is better to make sher- bet, or fruit and water ices, than an inferior quality of ice- cream with milk. Ice-creams are richer and mould better when made with gelatine ; but care must be taken to flavor highly, to disguise the taste of the gelatine. Use a quarter of a box of Nelson's gelatine for two quarts of custard. Soak in half a cup of cold milk, and dissolve in the boiling custard just as it is taken from the fire. If by any acci dent the custard should curdle in cooking, it will be smooth when frozen. Ice-Cream, No. 3. (Miss Parloa.) 1 pint milk. 1 cup sugar. 2 tablespoonfuls flour. 1 saltspoonful salt. 2 eggs. 1 pint to 1 quart cream. 3^ to 1 cup sugar. 1 tablesp. flavoring extract. Boil the milk. Mix the sugar, flour, and salt ; add the whole eggs, and beat all together. Add the boiling milk, 364 The Boston Cook Book. and when well mixed turn into the double boiler, and cook twenty minutes, stirring constantly till smooth ; after that, occasionally. When cool, add the cream, flavoring, and sugar to make it quite sweet. This makes a smooth and delicious cream ; and if the milk be boiling and the custard cook fully twenty minutes, there will be no taste of the flour. The following flavorings, with either of these receipts for a foundation, will give a great many varieties of ice-cream. Vanilla Ice- Cream. Use one tablespoonful of FOBS' extract or one heaping tablespoonful of the pounded vanilla bean sugar. Lemon Ice- Cream. One tablespoonful of lemon extract. Chocolate Ice-Cream. Melt two bars of sweetened vanilla chocolate with one or two tablespoonfids of water ; add a little cream or custard, and when smooth stir it into the remainder of the custard. Add half a tablespoonful of vanilla. Confectioners sometimes mix half a teaspoon- ful of Ceylon cinnamon with the chocolate. It gives a rich, spicy flavor. Coffee Ice- Cream. Make half a cup of very strong black coffee for two quarts of cream ; or boil half a cup of ground coffee in the milk. Caramel Ice- Cream. Add half a cup of caramel (see page 134), and omit part of the usual amount of sugar. Pineapple Ice- Cream. Add half a can of grated pine- apple or one pint of the ripe fruit, grated. Strawberry Ice-Cream. Sprinkle sugar over the ber- ries ; mash, and rub through a fine sieve. Measure the juice, and use one pint of juice to two quarts of cream or custard. Add more sugar as^ the berries require. Use the French bottled strawberries when the ripe fruit cannot be obtained. Banana Ice -Cream. Make a custard with one pint of milk, one cup of sugar, and two eggs. When cold, add one pint of cream, and six bananas, sifted, or cut in Ice Cream. 365 thin slices. Add a little lemon juice if the bananas lack flavor. Baked Apple Ice - Cream. Bake and sift six sweet apples. Add one quart of rich cream, and sugar to taste. When the sugar is dissolved, freeze. Pistachio Ice- Cream. One cup of pistachio nuts, and one quarter of a cup of almonds, blanched, chopped, and pounded to a paste. Add this to any receipt for ice-cream. Macaroon, Almond, Walnut, Cocoanut, or Brown Bread Ice -Cream may be made by adding one pint of either of the above ingredients to any receipt for ice* cream. Crumble the macaroons and cocoanut cakes, and brown them slightty ; dry, crumble, and sift the brown bread, and chop the nuts fine. Fruit Ice - Cream. Canned fruit, or ripe fruit sweet- ened to taste, and cut into small pieces, may be added to partlj* frozen cream, giving many delicious varieties. Use peaches, strawberries, raspberries, pineapples, apricots^ or cherries. Cafe Parfait. One pint of cream, one cup of sugar, half a cup of strong, clear coffee. Mix, chill, and whip. Take the froth off into a freezer or into a mould. Pack the mould in ice and salt, and let it stand two hours with- out stirring. Glace Cream. Boil one cup of sugar and one scant cup of water until the syrup forms into a ball when rubbed in water between the finger and thumb. Then pour this syrup in a fine stream into the whites of three eggs beaten stiff, and beat till stiff and cool. Stir it into any frozen cream, made with a little less than the usual amount of sugar. Ice -Cream with Condensed Milk. Mix one can of condensed milk with three pints of scalded milk, and use in making a rich custard, as directed in rule No. 2. Flavor highly, and add a pound of candied fruit if desired. Tutti Frutti. Make either of the receipts for ice- cream, and flavor with two tablespoonfuls of Sicily Ma- deira wine or Maraschino, When partly frozen, add one 366 The Boston Cook Book. pound of French candied fruit, cut fine. Use a mixture of cherries, plums, apricots, pineapples, pears, strawber- ries, and angelica root. Or use home-made preserves, carefully drained from the syrup, and cut into dice. Nesselrode Pudding. Shell one pint of chestnuts. Blanch, and boil half an hour, then mash to a pulp, and stir into ice-cream made from rule No. 2. Strain, and when partly frozen add one pint of mixed fruit, cut fine. Frozen Pudding. Make ice-cream, No. 3 ; add two tablespoonfuls of soaked gelatine, flavor with wine and vanilla, and freeze. Cut a pound of French fruit or brandy peaches in small pieces ; or use half a pound of mixed raisins, currants, and citron, and one cup of mac- aroons, pounded, or one cup of mixed almonas and pista- chio nuts, pounded fine. Wash, and soak the currants and raisins until swollen. Remove the seeds, drain and quarter the raisins, and shave the citron in small thin slices. Mix half the fruit and nuts with the frozen cream. Butter a melon mould slightly, and line with lady fingers / then sprinkle over a layer of mixed fruit, pack in the frozen cream nearly to the top, then a layer of fruit, and cover with cake. Cover closely, and bind a strip of buttered cloth round the edge of the cover. Pack in ice and salt for two hours. When ready to serve, dip quickly in warm water, and turn out carefully. Sprinkle the remainder of the mixed nuts over the top, and garnish with cream, sweetened, flavored, and whipped. Some prefer to serve a rich boiled custard -sauce, made with one pint of cream, the yolks of four eggs, half a cup of sugar, and one tea- spoonful of vanilla. 1 quart milk. 1 pint cream. 6 whole eggs. 3 egg yolks. Plombiere. (Miss Ward.} \% cup sugar. 2 ounces each of preserved cit- ron, greengages, and pine- apple, cut fine. Boil the milk and cream, and pour it on the beaten eggs and sugar. Cook slightly, an4 when cool add the fruit. and freeze, Sherbets, Water Ices. 367 Bombe Glace. Line a mould or the freezer with one quart of raspberry or pomegranate sherbet. Pack the sherbet round the bottom and sides of the mould one inch deep. Fill the centre with Bavarian cream, or Charlotte Husse cream, or Creme Diplomate. Cover with the sher- bet, and pack in ice and salt one hour. Biscuit Glace. Ice-cream and sherbet are often served in small, fancy paper cases, which may be obtained at a confectioner's. Make and freeze the cream, and fill the paper cases with two kinds, either sherbet and plain ice- cream, or sherbet and tutti frutti, or Charlotte Russe cream and sherbet, or ice-cream. Pack the cases in a freezer, and keep on ice and salt till very hard. Serve on a lace paper napkin laid on a fane} 7 plate. Sometimes the bis- cuits are covered with a meringue, and colored slightly with a salamander just before serving. Frozen Apricots. Cut one can of apricots into small pieces, add one pint of sugar and one quart of water. When the sugar is dissolved, freeze. When partly frozen add, if you like, one pint of whipped cream, measured after whipping. This is delicious without the cream. Peaches, pineapples, cherries, and strawberries are deli- cious when frozen. Vary the amount of sugar as the fruit requires. Sherbets, or Water Ices. Sherbets, or water ices, are made with the juice of fruit, water, and sugar. With a supply of canned fruit, or fruit syrup always at hand, a variety of delicious desserts may be quickly prepared. A tablespoonful of gelatine, soaked and dissolved, gives a light and smooth consistency to water ices. Many prefer to boil the water and sugar to a clear syrup, remove the scum, and when cool add the fruit juice ; and others use the white of egg beaten stiff, add- ing it after the sherbet is partly frozen. The following are some of the most delicious water ices. Follow the directions given under Orange Sherbet, for all the othej varieties. 368 The Boston Cook Book. Orange Sherbet. 1 tablespoonful gelatine. % cup cold water. % cup boiling water. 1 cup sugar. 1 cup cold water. 6 oranges, or 1 pint of juice. Soak the gelatine in the cold water ten minutes. Add the boiling water, and when dissolved add the sugar, anothei cup of cold water and the orange juice. Strain when the sugar is dissolved, and freeze. Pomegranate Sherbet. Make the same as Orange Sherbet, using the blood-red oranges. Lemon Sherbet. 1 tablespoonful gelatine. 1 1 pint sugar. 1 quart water. Juice of 6 lemons. The boiling water used in dissolving the gelatine should be part of the quart of water. Pineapple Sherbet. 1 can grated, or 1 pint fresh fruit. 1 pint water. 1 tablespoonful gelatine. 1 pint sugar. In using fresh pineapple be careful to remove all the eyes. Raspberry and Strawberry Sherbet. 1 pint berry juice. 1 pint sugar. 1 pint water. Juice of 2 lemons. 1 tablespoonful gelatine.* Or, 1 pint preserved fruit. 1 cup sugar. 1 quart water. 2 lemons. 1 tablespoonful gelatine. When using preserved strawberries or raspberries, soak the fruit in part of the water and strain out the seeds. 1 If granulated gelatine, use teaspoon. Cake Making. 369 GENERAL DIRECTIONS FOR MAKING CAKE. STUDY first the directions given under Measuring, Mix- ing, and Baking. Cake is a mixture of part or all of the following mate- rials : eggs, sugar or molasses, flour, butter or cream, milk or water, fruit, soda, cream of tartar, spices, etc. An unlimited variety of cakes may be made by varying the proportions of these materials, and to the same pro- "portions many different names are given. Many amusing experiences are known of the eagerness with which a newly named receipt for cake is received, which, after many trials, has been found to be an old receipt arranged in a different order. An analysis of the hundreds of receipts given in books devoted to cake-making would show that the gen- eral principles involved may be included under two di- visions, namety, receipts for sponge cakes, made without butter; and pound QV cup cakes, made with butter. Sponge cakes are made rich with eggs, the lightness depending wholly upon the amount of air beaten into the egg ; or an inferior qualitj' is sometimes made by substituting soda and cream of tartar for part of the eggs, and adding more flour and some liquid, usually water. They vary in color, according as the white or yolk of the egg is used. Butter cakes are varied in the same way, and also by the addi- tion of fruit, or spices, or various coloring and flavoring materials. There is no one department in cooking where so much depends upon the baking as in making cake. The fire should be rather low, but sufficient to last through the entire baking. In many stoves it is exceedingly difficult to bake cake by a morning fire ; as so much coal is put on, 24 The Boston Cook Book. the fire is too hot and cannot be checked sufficiently. The oven should be less hot than for bread. If too hot, leave the oven door open for ten minutes before putting in the cake, then watch it, and protect it by putting over it a covering of paper, or a pan on the grate above. Do not attempt to make cake unless you can have entire control of the fire. Thin cakes require a hotter oven than those baked in thick loaves. If the oven be not hot enough at first, or be cooled too suddenly during the baking, the cake will not be light. Cakes with molasses in them burn more quickly than others. Thin cakes should bake from fifteen to twenty minutes, thicker cakes from thirty to forty minutes, very thick loaves about an hour, and fruit cake from two to three hours. Whichever kind you are baking, divide the time required into quarters. During the first quarter the heating is not manifested in appearance except by the rising ; during the second the cake should continue to rise and begin to brown ; then should become all over a rich golden brown ; and in the last quarter settle a little, brown in the cracks, and shrink from the pan. Be careful not to take it out too soon. If necessary to move it, do it very gently, and never move it when it has risen to the full height, but is not browned or fixed in its shape. If cake brown before rising, the oven is too hot. When it rises more in the centre, cracks open, and stays up, it is too stiff with flour. It should rise first on the edges, then in the middle, crack slightly, settle to a level again, when the cracks usually come together. Nothing is more sug- gestive of bakeshop cake, or inferior quality in material, than a loaf with an upper surface having sharp edges, then hollows, and a peaked centre, as if the inside of the cake had boiled up and run out over the top. Line your cake tins with paper, to prevent burning the bottom and edges and to aid in removing the cake from the pans. Lay the paper over the outside of the pan, and crease it round the edge of the bottom. Allow it large enough to come above the top of the pan. Fold in the Cake Making. 371 middle lengthwise and crosswise, and cut out the open corners to the crease made by the pan. Then fit it into the inside of the pan, and grease the paper, not the pan, with fresh butter or lard. Many use a rag tied on a stick ; others grease with a brush. Nice brushes are very ex- pensive (and no others are suitable), and unless carefully cleaned are quite objectionable. Rags and paper absorb the grease which should be put on the pan, and in any case the fingers should be washed after the process. So there is no quicker, easier, or more economical way of greasing a tin than to rub the butter on with the fingers. Mix cake in an earthen bowl, and never in a tin pan. Use a wooden spoon, as iron spoons discolor the hand and the mixture. Use only the best materials. Go without cake rather than try to make it, or eat it when made, with what is called cooking butter and second-rate eggs. Such cake cannot be good or wholesome. Wash the butter, if very salt. Brown sugar is good for fruit cake, but for all other varieties use the finest granulated or powdered sugar. Very coarse granulated sugar makes heavy cake, with a hard and stick} T crust. The flour should be dry. When it has been kept in a cool place it should be slightly warmed, and always sifted before using. St. Louis flour or pastry flour, as it is sometimes called is best for cake. When new-process flour is used, take one eighth less. Soda, cream of tartar, and baking- powders should be crushed and sifted into the flour, then sifted two or three times with the flour. Mix spices with the flour or with the sugar. Mix a little of the measure of flour with the fruit to keep it from sticking together or settling. If the sugar be lumpy, crush and sift before using. Eggs should be fresh, and cooled by keep- ing in cold water or in the ice-chest. The yolks and whites should be beaten separately. Break each egg on the edge of the cup, just enough to crack the middle of the shell, so the white will flow out, but not hard enough to break into the 3 r olks. Then hold the egg over the cup, with the cracked side up, and break it apart. Let the 3/2 The Boston Cook Book. white run into the cup, and keep the yolk in the half shell until all the white is drained off'. Be careful not to break the yolk, as the smallest portion of it in the whites will prevent them from frothing. Beat the yolks in a bowl, and the whites in a platter if you use a fork or whisk, or in a bowl if you use a Dover beater. Never stop beating the whites until they are stiff and dry, as it is impossible to have them light if they become liquid again. Measure all the ingredients, and have the fire and all utensils ready, before you begin to mix. Observe the fol- lowing order in putting materials together. Sponge Cake Mixtures. Beat the yolks until light or lemon-colored and thick. Add the sugar gradually, and beat again. Add the lemon juice or flavoring, and water, if that is to be used. Beat the whites until stiff and dry, and cut or fold them in lightty, then sift in the flour, and fold in carefully without any stirring. Sponge cakes should not be beaten after adding the flour. Those made with soda and cream of tartar require less beating than those without, but they are a very poor substitute for genuine sponge cake. Sutter Cake Mixtures. Warm the bowl with hot water, then wipe dry. Put in the butter, and rub with a wooden or silver spoon until light and creamy. Be careful not to have the bowl so hot as to melt the butter. Add the sugar and beat again. If the habit of rubbing the butter and sugar together with the hand be already formed, and you find it easier than to use a spoon, it is hardly worth while to change ; but for those who are wholly inexperienced it is better to learn to use the spoon, and every lady would prefer to have her cook mix in that way. If the proportion of sugar be large for the butter, more than double, beat part of the sugar with the butter, and the remainder with the yolks of the eggs. Where a very small proportion of butter is to be used, it may be melted and mixed with the eggs and sugar. Beat the yolks till light and thick, then beat them well with the butter and sugar. Add the Sponge Cake. 373 flavoring. Then add a little milk, then a little flour, and milk again, and continue until all the milk and flour are used. Lastty, add the beaten whites. All cakes made with butter require to be beaten long and vigorously after adding the flour, that they may be smooth and fine- grained. Fruit should be added last ; cake with fruit should be a little stifler with flour than that without fruit. Citron and large pieces of fruit may be put in in la}~ers, or spread over the dough in the pan. All cake should be baked as soon as possible after it is mixed. Put the scrapings from the bowl into small tins. If put into the loaf, they sometimes cause a heavy streak through the top. Cake is baked when it shrinks from the pan and stops hissing, or when a straw inserted in the centre comes out clean. Remove the loaf from the pan as soon as baked, lifting it out by the paper ; or, if not papered, loosen the edges with a knife, and turn the pan over upon a cloth laid over a bread-cooler. Remove the pan as soon as possible. Never let cake stand in the pan to become moist. When cake is baked too hard or burned, rub off the burned surface with a coarse grater. Sponge Cake. 6 eggs. 1 cup sugar, powdered or fine granulated. 1 saltspoonful salt. % lemon (grated rind and juice). 1 cup pastry flour. See general directions for putting together (page 372) The mixture should be stiff and spongy, of the consistency of Charlotte Russe filling, as it is poured into the pan. Bake in a deep bread pan, in a moderate oven, nearly an hour, in a shallow pan, about forty minutes. If stirred instead of beaten, the bubbles of air will be broken and the mixture will become liquid. When baked, it will be tough and too close-grained. To make this cake well, requires strength in beating and judgment in baking ; but when successful, it is one of the most satisfactory^ and perfect 374 Th e Boston Cook Book. cakes made. Cut through the crust with a sharp pointed knife, then break apart. /Sponge Cake. (Miss Jbsselyn.) Beat the yolks of three eggs ; add one cup of fine granulated sugar, one tablespoonful of lemon juice, and one tablespoonful of cold water, or a lump of ice melted in the lemon juice to make two tablespoonfuls of liquid. Add the whites, beaten stiff, and one cup of pastry flour. Lady Fingers and Sponge Drops. Four eggs, half a cup of powdered sugar, half a saltspoonful of salt, one teaspoonful of flavoring, and three quarters of a cup of pastry flour. See general directions for mixing sponge cakes. Pour the mixture into a pastry bag, and press through it into shape, about three inches long and not quite one inch wide. Or drop by the spoonful on a but- tered pan, and you have Sponge Drops. Sprinkle pow- dered sugar over them, and bake twelve or sixteen minutes in a very slow oven. Miss Ward's Sponge Cake. Break ten eggs into a bowl ; add one pound of powdered sugar, and beat to- gether for half an hour without stopping. Add half a pound of flour, the grated rind and juice of one lemon, and a wineglassful of wine. Bake in deep pans one hour ; slowly at first, then quicken the fire the last half-hour. Sprinkle powdered sugar over the top before baking. Angel Cake. One cup of flour, measured after one sifting, and then mixed with one teaspoonful of cream of tartar and sifted four times. Beat the whites of eleven eggs, with a wire beater or perforated spoon, until stiff and flaky. Add one cup and a half ofjine granulated sugar, and beat again ; add one teaspoonful of vanilla or almond? then mix in the flour quickly and lightly. Line the bottom and funnel of a cake pan with paper not greased, pour in the mixture, and bake about fort} 7 minutes. When done, loosen the cake around the ; dge, and turn out at once. Some persons have been more successful with this cake by mixing the sugar with the flour and cream of tartar, aiid adding all at once to the beaten egg. Angel Cake. 375 Sunshine Cake. Make the same as Angel Cake, using one teaspoonful of orange extract instead of vanilla, and adding the well-beaten yolks of six eggs to the beaten whites and sugar before adding the flour. Sponge Cake for Cream Pies, or Berwick Sponge Cake. 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar and 3^ teaspoonful soda, or 2 level teasp. baking-powder. Whites of 3 eggs. 3 eggs, yolks. \}4 cup sugar. 3^ cup water. 1 teaspoonful lemon extract. 2 cups pastry flour. Beat the yolks of the eggs ; add the sugar, lemon juice, and water ; then the flour, mixed with the soda and cream of tartar, and, lastly, the whites of the eggs. Bake in round shallow pans. When cool, split and fill with cream. When each part of the process of beating is done just two minutes by the clock, and baked in a loaf, it is called Berwick Sponge Cake. Cream. Boil one pint of milk. Beat two eggs ; add half a cup of sugar and one saltspoonful of salt. Melt one table-spoonful of butter in a granite saucepan, and add two tablespoonfuls of flour. When well mixed, add the boiling milk gradually, pour it on the eggs and sugar, and cook in a double boiler five minutes, or till smooth. When cool, flavor with lemon, vanilla, or almond. /Sponge Cake with Fruit. Make a Sponge Cake, bake in shallow pans, and put crushed and sweetened straw- berries between the layers. Cover with whipped cream. Or put one cup of candied fruit, cut fine, in a cream pre- pared as above, and use in the same way. Sponge Cake for Children. (Miss M. L. Clarke.} Mix in a bowl one cup and a half of pastry flour, one teaspoonful of cream of tartar and half a teaspoonful of *vda. or two level teaspoons of baking-powder, sifted with the flour, one cup of sugar, and one teaspoonful of extract of lemon or orange; two eggs, broken in a cup and the cup filled with milk or cream. Mix all in the order given, and beat very hard till light. Bake from twenty to thirty minutes in a moderate oven. 376 The Boston Cook Book. Roll JeUy Cake. This is the simplest form of a butter cake. It is like a sponge cake, with the addition of a small amount of short- ening. Three eggs, beaten separately till very light, then beaten together ; add one cup of sugar, three tablespoon* fuls of cream, or one of melted butter, one cup pastry flour mixed with one teaspoonful of cream of tartar and half a teaspoonful of soda, or two level teaspoons of baking-powder. Spread very thin on long shallow tins, and bake in a moderate oven. Spread with jelly while warm, trim the edges with a sharp knife, and roll up. One Egg Cake. teaspoonful soda and 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar, or 2 level teasp. baking-powder. 1 teaspoonful vanilla. % cup butter, creamed. 1 cup sugar. 1 egg, beaten light. 1 cup milk. 2 cups flour. Mix in the order given, and bake in a shallow pan, in a moderate oven, thirty minutes. Park Street Cake. % cup butter. 1 cup milk. 2 cups sugar. 3 cups pastry flour. 4 eggs. % teaspoonful soda. 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar. 1 1 teaspoonful vanilla or lemon extract. 1 saltspoonful mace. Contrary to our usual practice, this receipt is not given in the order in which the materials are to be put together, but in numerical order, as an aid in remembering the pro- portions. Rub the butter in a warm bowl, with a wooden spoon, until like cream, and add one cup of the sugar gradually ; add the remaining cup of sugar to the beaten yolks of the eggs, beat until very light, and add to the butter. Add the flavoring. Then beat the whites stiff and dr} r , and let them stand while you add a little milk and flour alternately to the mixture. Add the last. This makes two loaves. Bake in a mod- 1 Or 3 level teaspoons baking-powder. Orange Cake. 377 erate oven until the loaf shrinks from the pan. Halve this receipt, and you have Feather Cake ; or bake it in Around shallow pans for Jelly Cake or for Cream Pies Orange Cake. 2 eggs. 1 cup sugar. 1 tablesp. melted butter. % cup milk. 1 )< cup flour. Y z teaspoonful soda and 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar, or .3 level teasp. baking-powder. 1 tablespoouf ul orange juice and a little of the grated rind. Mix in the order given. Bake in a round shallow pan, split, and fill with orange cream. Orange Cream for Cake. Put in a cup the rind of half and the juice of one orange, one tablespoon/id of lemon juice, and fill with cold water. Strain, and put on to boil. Add one tablespoonful of cornstarch, wet in cold water. Stir till thick, then cook over hot water ten minutes. Beat the yolk of one egg, add two heaping tdblespoonfuls of sugar , stir into the starch, cook one minute, add one teaspoonful of butter, and cool. Fill the cake with the cream, and frost with ornamental frosting. Mark the frosting like a pie, in eight pieces, and decorate each with a section of orange and ornamental frosting. Orange Cake, No. 2. Double the preceding receipt for cake, and bake in two long shallow pans. Prepare the pulp of the oranges, sweeten to taste, and spread between the cakes. Frost with orange frosting. Cut into oblong pieces. Or fill with the following cream : Orange and Cocoanut Cream for Cake. One egg, beaten well ; add one cup of whipped cream, half a cup of sugar, one cup of grated cocoanut, the grated rind of half and the juice of one orange. Put this between and on the top of the cakes, and sprinkle fresh cocoanut over the whole. 378 The Boston Cook Book. Mother's Cake. (Mrs. R. M. Walcott.) This receipt is the foundation for countless varieties of cake, which are often giren in cook books under different names, but which when analyzed are found to be identical in proportions. 1 scant cup butter. \% cup sugar. 3 eggs, beaten separately 1 teaspoonf ul lemon or * nilla. 1 saltspoonful mace. yi cup milk. 3 cups pastry flour. 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar and )< teaspoonful soda, or 3 level teasp. baking-powder. Cream the butter 5 add the sugar gradually, then the yolks of the eggs, then the flavoring. Reserve a quarter of a cup of flour, lest the cake be too stiff if all be used ; less flour will be required for a thin than for a thick loaf. Put the soda and cream of tartar into the remainder of the flour. Add the milk and flour alternately, a little at a time, and lastly the whites, which have been beaten stiff and dry. Bake from forty to fifty minutes in a moderate oven. Add one cup of currants, and it makes a nice Currant Cake ; or half a cup of dates, cut fine and floured, and you have Date Cake. Color one cupful of the dough with spices, cinnamon, allspice, and mace, or with grated chocolate, put it in the pan in spots, and you have Leopard Cake. By using a full cup of butter, it is the same as White Mountain Cake. For Nut Cake add one cup of fine chopped walnuts, or other nuts, to the dough, and put a laj'er of unbroken halves of English walnuts over the top. Or bake in shallow round pans, split and spread with a thin layer of currant jelly, and then fill with Cocoa- nut and Raisin Cream made as follows : One cup of raisins, stoned and chopped fine, half a cup of chopped almonds, half a cup of grated cocoanut, and the white of one egg, beaten stiff. Rich Cake. 379 Macdonald Cake. (Mrs. A. A. Lincoln.) I cup butter, creamed. \% cup sugar. 4 eggs (yolks) 1 teaspoonful lemon or vanilla. ^ cup milk. ^2 cup cornstarch. Mix in the order given, and bake in two shallow pans in a moderate oven. 1) cup pastry flour. 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar and j^ teaspoonful soda, or 2 level teasp. baking-powder. Whites of the eggs. Cider Cake. 1 cup butter. 2 cups sugar. 3 eggs, beaten separately. % cup cider. 4 cups flour. 1 teaspoonful soda, scant. 1 teaspoonful spice. Mix soda and spice with flour, then mix in the order given, and bake in two shallow pans. Dominoes. Bake sponge or feather cake in shallow pans ; frost, cut in oblong pieces, and mark like dominoes. Madelines. Bake any rich butter cake mixture quarter of an inch thick. Cut in squares or rounds ; ornament with frosting and nuts, or candied fruits . Gold Cake. % cup butter. \% cup fine granulated sugar. Yolks of 4 eggs. 1 whole egg. }o cup milk. Yz teaspoonful mace. 34 teaspoonful soda and % teaspoonful cream of tartar. 1 2) cups flour. Silver Cake. > cup butter. \% cup sugar. jjjl teaspoonful almond. ^ cup milk. 24 teaspoonful soda and % teaspoonful cream of tartar, or 2 level teasp. baking-powder. 2*4 cups flour. Whites of 5 eggs. Mix in the order given, putting soda and cream of tar- tar in the flour, and adding milk and flour alternately. 1 Or 2J level teaspoons baking-powder- 380 The Boston Cook Book. Bake in a moderate oven, until the loaf shrinks from the pan. Watermelon Cake may be made from this receipt by using red sugar in the gold cake, and adding one cup of raisins, seeded, quartered, and rolled in flour. Put the red cake in the centre of a round pan, and the white around the edge. Or put the red at the bottom, and the white on top. Bake in a large round pan, or two brickloaf pans. Marble Cake. Color one cupful of the yellow cake dough brown with one tablespoonful of melted chocolate, and mix the white, yellow, and brown in spots, or drop the brown in rings between the layers of white and yellow. Cornstarch Cake. % cup butter, creamed. 1) cup sugar. % cup milk. % teaspoonful almond. \% cup pastry flour. 3^2 teaspoonful soda. 1 j^j teaspoonful cream of tartar Whites of 6 eggs. 3<2 cup cornstarch. Mix in the order given, and bake in a moderate oven. Snow Cake. (Miss Alice Walcott.} % cup butter. 2 cups sugar. % cup milk. 2% cups pastry flour. % teaspoonful soda. 1 j^ teaspoonful cream of tartar. Whites of 8 eggs. 1 teaspoonful almond extract. Mix the soda and cream of tartar with the flour. Be sure to use one teaspoonful and a half of cream of tartar, as the extra amount is intended to stiffen the whites of the eggs. Rub the butter to a cream, add the sugar, and beat again ; add the milk and flour alternately, a little at a time, and beat well. Lastly, add the beaten whites and the al- mond. Bake in two small pans in a moderate oven. Dream Cake. Bake the Snow Cake in three shallow pans. Make the Ornamental Frosting, and flavor one part with lemon, another with vanilla, and the third with rose. Frost each cake, put together, and sprinkle grated fresh cocoanut over the top. Rich Cake. Buttercup Cake. (A. W.) % teaspoonful soda And 1 3^ teaspoonful cream of tartar, or 2 level teasp. baking-powder. 1 saltspoonful mace, or 1 teaspoonful lemon. % cup butter. 1 % cup sugar. Yolks of 8 eggs. 1 whole egg. % cup milk. 2 cups flour. Mix in the order given, and bake in two pans in a moderate oven till the loaf shrinks from the pan. Or bake in small round tins, and frost with yellow frosting > and decorate with candied fruit. (Mrs. Williams.) 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar and % teaspoonful soda, or 3 teasp. baking-powder. Whites of 3 eggs. Harlequin Cake. 1 cup butter, creamed. 2 cups sugar 3 eggs (yolks). 1 cup milk. 3 cups pastry flour- Mix in the order given, then divide the dough into four equal parts. Have two parts the color of the dough. Color the third with two squares of unsweetened choco- late, melted. Color the fourth part with pink coloring, and bake each part in a Washington pie plate. When all are done, la}' first a light cake, then the chocolate, then another light, then the pink. Between the layers spread lemon jelly, and frost with white frosting. Lemon Jelly for Cake. Beat one egg, add one cup of water, the grated rind and juice of one lemon. Pour this slowly on one cup of sugar, mixed with two tablespoonfuls of flour. Cook in the double boiler till smooth, like cream. ounce salts of tartar, pint boiling water, pound sugar. Pink Coloring for Cake and Creams. ^ ounce cochineal. 1*2 ounce alum. 3^ ounce cream of tartar. To the first three ingredients add the boiling water, and put in a porcelain stewpan. Let it stand on the stove without boiling for twent3'-five minutes. Add the salts of tartar very gradually, stirring all the time. Add the 382 The Boston Cook Booh sugar. Strain and bottle it. Use one or two teaspoonfuls, according to the shade desired. Pokeberry Syrup for Coloring Pink. Put the fruit in a porcelain kettle, and cover with water. Boil slowly till the skins break, then strain. Add a pound of sugar to a quart of 'juice; boil a few moments, bottle and seal. Bibbon Cake. 3> cups pastry flour. y z teaspoonful soda and 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar, or 3j^ level teasp. baking-powder. 1 cup' butter. 2 cups sugar. 4 eggs, yolks and whites beaten separately. 1 cup milk. Have three long, shallow pans, of equal size. Divide the dough into three parts. Bake two parts as plain cake ; add to the remaining dough, 2 teaspoonfuls molasses. 2 teaspoonfuls brandy or wine. 1 teaspoonful mixed mace and cinnamon. J*2 cup raisins, stoned and chopped. 1 cup currants. % pound sliced citron (the fruit all floured). Bake, and put the fruit cake between the two plain cakes, wtih jelly between. Press it lightly with the hand in putting together ; trim the edges even, and frost. Coffee Cake. Use one cup of strong, clear coffee instead of milk, and make as in the preceding rule. Add the fruit and spices to the whole mixture. Bake it in one loaf. legg. % cup molasses. % cup sugar. % cup melted butter. 1 cup milk. Spice Cakes. 2jx cups flour. 1 heaping teaspoonful soda. 1 even teasp. cream of tartar. 1 tablespoonful mixed spice. 1 tablespoonful vinegar. Mix in the order given, and bake in small tins. One tablespoonful of lemon juice and one tablespoonful of ginger may be substituted for the vinegar and spice. Pound Cake. 383 Plum Cakes. teaspoonful cream of tartar, impound raisins, stoned and chopped. pound currants. 2 tablespoonfuls any fruit syrup 4 cups flour. 2 teaspoonfuls mixed spices. If not dark enough, add a little melted chocolate. Bake in small tins, and frost part of them with the remaining white of egg. Pound Cake. (Miss Ward.) 1 cup butter. 2 cups brown sugar. Yolks of 3 eggs. Whites of 2 eggs. % cup milk. % cup dark molasses. ) teaspoonful soda. 1 pound butter. 1 pound sugar. 10 eggs. 1 pound flour. j*2 wineglass wine. % wineglass brandy. Cream the butter ; add the sugar, yolks of the eggs,, wine, brandy, whites of the eggs, and the flour. Put cur- rants into one fourth of the dough, and almonds, blanched and pounded in rose water, into another part ; leave the remainder plain. Fill very small round tins three quarters full. . Into half of those containing the plain dough put small pieces of citron, three in each, inserting the citron upright a little way into the dough. Sift sugar over the tops of those containing the citron and almond before put- ting them into the oven. Bake twent} r minutes. Frost the plain and currant cakes. Pound cake is lighter when baked in small cakes than in loaves. 1 pound butter. 1 pound sugar. 12 eggs. 1 pound flour. 2 teaspoonfuls each of cinnamon and mace. 1 teaspoonful each of nutmeg and allspice. Wedding Cake. ) teaspoonful clovee. 2 pounds raisins. 2 pounds currants. 1 pound citron. 1 pound almonds. 1 wineglass brandy. 1 lemon. }4 teaspoon salt. Line the pans with three thicknesses of paper; buttei the top layer. Seed and chop the raisins ; wash and dry 384 The Boston Cook Book. the currants (see page 435) ; cut the citron in uniform slices, about one eighth of an inch thick ; blanch the almonds and chop fine. Mix all the fruit but the citron with enough of the flour to coat it thoroughly. Mix the spices with the sugar. Cream the butter ; add the sugar, beaten yolks, beaten whites, lemon rind and juice, brand}^, flour, and fruit, except the citron. Put a layer of dough half an inch deep in the pan, then spread evenly with the citron, then another la}'er of dough and citron ; repeat till the materials are all used. Have dough for the top Ia3 7 er. As this cake does not rise much in baking, the pans may be at least two thirds full. Bake in two large, deep, oblong pans three hours, in a moderate oven. Frosting. Plain Frosting. White of one egg, one teaspoonful of lemon juice, and one scant cup of powdered sugar. Put the egg and lemon juice in a bowl, and stir the sugar in gradually. Then beat, not stir, all together five minutes. JSoiled Icing. One cup of granulated sugar, one third of a cup of boiling water, white of one egg, and one salt- spoonful of cream of tartar. Boil the sugar and water without stirring, until the s}Tup taken up on a skewer will "thread" or "rope." When it is nearly at that point, beat the egg stiff, add the cream of tartar, and pour the boiling syrup over the egg in a fine stream, beating well. When it thickens and is perfectly smooth, pour it over the cake. It hardens quickly, and should be put on the cake before it stiffens enough to drop. Golden Frosting. Beat the yolks of eggs and stir in powdered sugar till stiff enough to spread, not to run. Flavor with vanilla or wine. Ornamental Frosting. Whites of three eggs, three cups of confectioners sugar, sifted, and three teaspoon* fuls of lemon juice. Put the eggs in a large bowl ; sprinkle with three teaspoonfuls of the sugar. Beat with a perforated wooden spoon, adding three teaspoonfuls of Frosting. 385 sugar every five minutes. When it begins to thicken add the lemon juice and beat as before. It should thicken by the beating of the egg, and not by the addition of too much sugar. Do not use all the measure of sugar unless needed. Beat with a long flop, over and over, and never stir. When stiff enough to leave a " clean cut," or not to run together when cut with a knife, spread a thin layer of frosting on the cake, and when this is hard put on another layer a quarter of an inch thick. When this is firm, mark it for cutting. To the remainder of the frosting add sugar more rapidl}', until it begins to harden on the spoon and bowl. Put a confectioner's tube into the end of a pastry bag, fill the bag with frosting, twist the end tightly, and press the frosting through the tube on the cake in any design you wish. Pink Frosting. Color a portion of the Ornamental Frosting with cochineal, adding it slowly till of the desired ?hade. Chocolate Frosting. Melt a square of chocolate in a saucepan, and add to the Ornamental Frosting, using enough to color light or dark as 3^011 prefer. Orange Frosting. Grate the thin rind of an orange, and soak it half an hour in three or four teaspoonfuls of the orange juice. Then squeeze the juice through a fine cloth, and use the same as lemon juice in Ornamental Frosting. Cookies. Plain Cookies. % cup butter. 1 cup sugar. % cup milk. 1 egg. 3 level teasp. baking-powder. Flour to roll out thin. Richer Cookie*, v }^ cup butter. 1 cup sugar. 1 tablespoonful milk. 2 eggs. 2 level teasp. baking-powder. Flour to roll out. Cream the butter ; add the sugar, milk, egg, beaten lightly, and the baking-powder mixed with two cups of flour, then enough more flour to roll out. Roll a little at R time. Cut out. Bake about ten minutes, 25 386 The Boston Cook Book. Cocoanut Cookies. Add one cup of grated cocoanut, or half a cup of cocoanut cakes, crumbled, to either of these receipts before adding the flour. Jumbles. Roll either of these mixtures thicker, and cut with a doughnut cutter ; sprinkle sugar over, and bake a delicate brown. Hermits. Add half a cup of stoned and chopped rai- sins to the receipt for Richer Cookies, and roll about & quarter of an inch thick. Cut into rounds. New Year's Cookies. Rub three fourths of a cup of butter into six cups of flour. Pour half a cup of boiling water over one cup and a half of sugar, add a scant half- teaspoonful of soda, and when the sugar is melted stir all into the flour. Roll out thin. One-Two-Three-Four Cookies. (Mrs. Whitney.) 1 cup butter. 2 cups sugar. 3 cups flour. 4 eggs. > teaspoonful soda and 1 teaspoonful cream of tartar, or 2 level teasp. baking-powder. % teaspoonful salt. 1 teaspoonful spice, or 2 tablesp. carraway seed, or 2 teaspoonfuls yellow ginger. Cream the butter, and add half the sugar. Beat the yolks, add the remaining half of the sugar, and beat them with the butter, then add the beaten whites. Mix the soda, cream of tartar, spice, and salt with the flour, and stir into the butter mixture. Take a teaspoonful ofthe dough, make it into a ball with floured hands, place the balls in the pan some distance apart, then press or flatten into a round cake, and bake about ten minutes. Thin /Sugar Gingerbread. Add to the preceding re- ceipt two teaspoonfuls of yellow ginger, instead of spice, and spread the mixture thin on a tin sheet. Mark in squares or oblongs, and bake. Gingerbread. 387 Superior Gingerbread. (Mrs. Towne.} 1*4 pound butter. ljx pound sugar. 9 eggs, yolks and whites beaten separately. . 1 wineglass wine. 1 wineglass brandy. 2 tablespoonfuls ginger and 1 nutmeg, grated, mixed with 2 pounds flour. Mix as for cake in the order given, and spread very thin with a knife on tin sheets. Bake, and cut in squares while warm. This will keep six months. Hard Gingerbread. (Mrs. Dewey.) % pound butter. 1/4 P un( l sugar. 6 eggs. 1 teaspoonf ul soda, dissolved in 3 tablespoonfuls milk. 1 tablespoonful ginger. 2 pounds flour. Cre,am the butter ; add the sugar and beaten eggs, and beat well. Sift in the ginger, strain the soda, and add the flour. Roll half an inch thick, or thin as a wafer. Hard Gingerbread. (Miss A. M. Towne.) 2 cups N. O. molasses. 1 cup butter. 1 tablespoonful ginger. 1 teaspoonful soda. St. Louis flour to mix very stiff. Heat (not boil) the molasses and butter ; when the but- ter is melted, add the ginger, sifted, the soda dissolved in a little boiling water, and the flour. Roll very thin, and bake in a quick oven. Soft Gingerbread. 1 cup molasses. 1 teaspoonful soda. 1 tablespoonful ginger. ^ teaspoonful salt. %to% cup butter or drippings, softened. 1 cup milk. 3 cups pastry flour. Bake in shallow pans or gem pans in a moderate oven about thirty minutes. 388 The Boston Cook Book. Sugar Gingerbread. % cup butter. 2 teaspoonfuls ginger. % cup cream. 1 teaspoonf ul soda, scant, \% cup sugar. Mix stiff with flour. Roll thick or thin. 1 cup molasses. 1 teaspoonf ul soda. 1 tablespoonful ginger. 1 tablespoonful butter, melted. Hot Water Gingerbread. ^ teaspoonful salt. % cup boiling water. 2 cups flour. Mix in the order given, and beat well. Bake in a deep cake pan. Sour Milk Gingerbread. 1 tablespoonful butter, softened. 1 cup sour milk. 2)4 cups pastry flour, with an- other ) teaspoonful soda mixed with it. Omit the butter when sour cream is used. Bake in muffin pans. Ginger Snaps. (Mrs. H. B. May.) 1 cup molasses. % cup sugar. 1 tablespoonful ginger. % cup molasses. % teaspoonful soda. 3^ teaspoonful salt. 1 tablespoonful ginger. % cup sugar. 1 teaspoonful soda. % cup softened butter. Flour to roll out very thin. Heat the molasses, pour it over the sugar; add the ginger, soda, butter, and flour. Cut, and bake quickly. Ginger Drops (without Butter). 2 eggs, well beaten. 1 cup brown sugar. 2 teaspoonfuls ginger. 1 cup N. O. molasses, boiled. 1 teaspoonfut soda. Flour to roll out. Mix in the order given. Roll thin, cut with a very small cutter, and bake in a quick oven. If you like, add one tablespoonful of vinegar before adding the flour, and use a heaping teaspoonful of soda. Cream Cakes. 389 Soft Molasses Cookies. (A. W.) 1 cup molasses. 1 tablespoonf ul ginger. 1 teaspoonf ul soda. 2 tablesp. warm water or milk. % cup butter, softened Flour to mix soft. Mix in the order given, dissolving the soda in the milk. Roll out one third of an inch thick. Cut in small rounds. Cream Cakes. 1 cup hot water. Y z teaspoonful salt. i< cup butter. 1^2 cup pastry flour. 5 eggs, yolks and whites beaten separately. Boil the water, salt, and butter. When boiling, add the dry flour, stir well for five minutes, and when cool add the eggs. This is such a stiff mixture, many find it easier to mix with the hand, and some prefer to add the eggs whole, one at a time. When well mixed, drop, in table- spoonfuls, on a buttered baking-pan, some distance apart. Bake twenty to thirty minutes, or till brown and well puffed. Split when cool, and fill with cream. Eclairs. Bake the Cream Cake mixture in pieces four inches long and one and a half wide. When cool, split and fill with cream. Ice with chocolate or vanilla frosting. Cream for Cream Cakes and Eclairs. 1 pint milk, boiled. 2 tablespoonfuls cornstarch. 3 eggs, well beaten. cup sugar. 1 saltspoonful salt, or 1 teaspoonful butter. Wet the cornstarch in cold milk, and cook in the boiling milk ten minutes. Beat the eggs ; add the sugar and the thickened milk. Cook in the double boiler five minutes. Add the salt or butter, and when cool, flavor with lemon, vanilla, or almond. Kisses, or Cream Meringues. Beat the whites of three eggs stiff and flaky ; add three quarters of a cup of powdered sugar, sifting and cutting 3QO The Boston Cook Book. it in lightly. Drop by spoonfuls on paper placed on boards. Put in the hot closet or oven, with the door open for half an hour. Then brown slightly. Put two together ; or put them on the paper in oblong shape, dry one hour, brown, remove the soft part, and fill with whipped cream. To make these successfully, the steady, moderate heat of a confectioner's brick oven is essential. It is a waste ot time and material to attempt them in an ordinary stove oven. Macaroons. Half a pound of almonds, blanched, dried, and pounded to a paste, with one teaspoonfid of rose water. Beat to- gether the whites of three eggs, and half a cup of powdered sugar, adding the sugar by the teaspoonful. Add half a teaspoonful of almond essence, then add the pounded almonds and, if too soft to be shaped, add one tablespoon- ful of flour. Roll with wet hands into balls the size of walnuts, flatten them slightly, and place some distance apart on buttered paper. Bake slowty. Almond paste, ready for use, may be obtained at a con- fectioner's. Break it up with a fork, add the beaten whites and sugar, using four or five eggs for half a pound of paste. Drop by teaspoonfuls on paper, and bake as above. Cocoanut Cakes. (Mrs. Richard Ward.) The grated meat of two cocoanuts, their weight in loaf sugar, one cup of flour, and whites of two eggs. Shape into balls, and bake twenty minutes. Chocolate Caramels. One cup of molasses, half a cup of sugar, one quarter of a pound of chocolate, cut fine, half a cup of milk, and one heaping tablespoonful of butter. Boil all together, stirring all the time. When it hardens in cold water, pour it into shallow pans, and as if cools cut in small squares. Fresh Fruit. 391 FRUIT. IT would be a great saving of time and work, give a pleasing variety to bills of fare, and be above all a great promoter of health, if people would use ripe fruit abun- dantly in its season at their tables (not between meals) . With the markets bountifully supplied with many varieties of fruit, it is to be regretted that it cannot be found at every table at least once a day. Much of the money spent for some kinds of meat would be better expended for fruit. A simple course of fruit is all that is needed after a dinner, and is much more wholesome than pies. But it is so hard for some people to break away from old customs that it will be long before housekeepers generally will be content to serve the queen of all fruits, the apple, in its natural state instead of making it into the " persistent pie," over the preparation of which many women toil, for naught save the fear that they may be considered shiftless if they have n't a pie in the house. Ripe fruit is especially appropriate at the breakfast- table, and may be taken before or after the principal dishes, according to individual needs and taste. Some peo- ple require the acid of oranges or grapes before they can eat anything substantial ; others might be made ill by their use at that time, but be benefited b} r them afterwards. All fruit should be served as fresh and cold as possible. A dish of fruit which has been kept from day to day in a warm room may answer for an ornament, but it is not tempting to the palate. Only sound, fresh fruit should appear at the table. Apples for table use should have a pleasant spicy flavor, not too acid, and should be wiped clean, or polished if yon prefer the street-vender's style. 392 The Boston Cook Book. Oranges may be served whole or cut. Many slice them across the sections ; but the presence of the seeds and tough inner skin is objectionable. A better way is to remove all the rind and white skin, divide into sections, then with the point of a silver fruit-knife cut off the inner skin in the middle, slip out the seeds, and cut each section into three pieces. Never serve with the seeds left in, nor sweeten until just before serving. A neat way to peel an orange is to cut the rind from the ends and leave a strip round the middle, then open, leaving the sections on the strip of peel. Or cut the oranges in halves crosswise without peeling, sprinkle with sugar, and eat with a spoon. Grapes, Malagas especially, should be carefully rinsed in cold water, then drained. Fruit scissors should be used to divide the clusters. Bananas may be served whole, or sliced and slightly sweetened or salted. Peaches should have the wool wiped off, or if pared and quartered should be sprinkled with fine granulated sugar, and served at once. Strawberries, if gritty, should be rinsed and drained, then hulled, and not sweetened till served. Large selected berries may be served with the stems on. Pass sugar with them, that those who prefer may roll them in it. Currants should be sweetened, and large whole clusters maybe served on the stem. Currants and raspberries are delicious when served together. Watermelons should be served very cold. Cut off a slice at each end, that each half may stand upright. Serve the core only, taking it out with a tablespoon in cone- shaped pieces. Other melons should have the seeds re- moved before serving, be cut in halves, a lump of ice in each, and served with sugar or salt. Pineapples. Pare, remove the eyes, and cut in thin slices ; then remove the fibrous centre, and serve in slices, or cut the tender parts into small pieces and sweeten to taste. Or pare and pull off the tender part with a fork, as directed for preserved pineapple. Stewed and Baked Fruits. 393 Iced Fruits. Dip selected fruit into the white of egg slightly beaten, then roll in fine granulated sugar. Dry, and serve very cold. Whole fruit should be served in a high dish, garnished with green leaves, flowers, or vines, and, with a tasteful combination of colors, arranged in a convenient way for serving. Nuts should be cracked, and served with salt. Almonds and other nuts having a tough inner skin should be blanched. Raisins. Use only choice varieties, and serve with nuts. Tropical Snow. 8 sweet oranges. 1 cocoanut, grated. 6 red bananas. 1 glass sherry wine, or ^ cup lemon juice. Powdered sugar to taste. Peel the oranges, divide into sections, and remove the seeds and tough membrane. Put a layer of orange in the bottom of a glass dish, pour over it a little wine or lemon juice, and strew with powdered sugar ; add cocoanut, and then the banana cut in thin slices ; repeat the process, using orange, cocoanut, banana, etc., as before. The top layer is to be heaped high in the centre, and sprinkled thickly with cocoanut and powdered sugar, and garnished around the base with slices of banana. Other combinations of fruit may be arranged to suit the taste ; and cocoanut cakes or macaroons, crumbled, or a meringue of white of egg and sugar, may take the place of the grated cocoanut. Stewed and Baked Fruits. The simplest forms of cooking fruit are stewing and baking. Only a small amount of sugar is needed, and it is not well to prepare a large quantity at a time, as stewed fruits do not keep long. In cooking fruit always use porce- lain or granite kettles, earthen dishes, wooden spoons, and 394 The Boston Cook Book. silver knives, and pare just before cooking, that the deli- cate flavor of the fruit may be preserved, and its attractive appearance not impaired by discoloration. /Stewed Apple /Sauce. Pare, core, and quarter six or eight tart apples. Make a syrup with one cup of sugar, two thirds of a cup of water, and a little lemon peel. When boiling, add the apples, and cook carefully two or three minutes, till they are just tender, but not broken. Remove them carefully, boil the syrup down a little, and strain it over the apples. Cook them in granite or porcelain pans, and use a wooden spoon. Compote of Apples. Make a syrup with one cup of sugar, one cup of water, and a square-inch of stick cin- namon. Boil slowly for ten minutes, skimming well. Core and pare eight or ten tart apples; cook till .nearly done in the syrup. Drain, and cook them a few minutes in the oven. Boil the syrup till almost like a jelly. Ar- range the apples on a dish for serving. Fill the core cavities with jelly or marmalade. Pour the syrup over them. Put whipped cream around the base, and garnish the cream with jelly. Baked Apples. Core and pare sour apples. Put them in a shallow earthen dish, fill the cavities with sugar, mixed with grated lemon rind / add water to cover the bottom of the dish. Bake in a very quick oven till soft, basting often with the syrup. Quinces may be baked in the same way, adding a little more water, as they require a longer time for baking. When eaten hot with butter and sugar, they are delicious. No. 2. Fill a deep pudding-dish with apples, pared, cored, and quartered. For two quarts add one cup of sugar and one cup of water. Bake, closely covered, in a very moderate oven several hours, or till dark red. Baked Pears. Hard pears, or "windfalls," are deli- cious pared and baked as in the preceding receipt. When done, and still hot, they may be sealed in Mason's jars, and will keep indefinitely. By preparing one large dishful every day during the pear season, a supply of wholesome Jellies. 395 sauce may be easily obtained from fruit that is often left to waste on the ground. Steamed Rhubarb. Wash and cut the rhubarb into inch pieces without peeling. Put it into a granite double boiler, add one cup of sugar for a pint of fruit, and cook till the rhubarb is soft. Do not stir it. When the rhu- barb is very sour, steam it without sugar until the juice flows, then drain it, add the sugar, and steam again till the sugar is dissolved. Or pour boiling water over it and let it stand five minutes, then drain and steam. Stewed Prunes. Wash carefully, and if hard and dry soak an hour before cooking. Put them into a porcelain kettle, with boiling water to cover them. Boil, closely covered, from five to ten minutes, or until swollen and tender. Then add one tablespoonful of sugar for one pint of prunes, and boil a few moments longer, but not enough to break them. Use onty the best selected prunes. If they lack flavor, add a little lemon juice. Cranberries. Put three pints of washed cranberries in a granite stewpan. On top of them put three cups of gran- ulated sugar and three gills of water. After they begin to boil cook them ten minutes, closely covered, and do not stir them. Remove the scum. The}' will jelly when cool, and the skins will be soft and tender. No. 2. ( Miss Ward.) Equal measure of cranberries and sugar. Wash, drain, put in a porcelain kettle with cold water to just show among the berries when they are pressed down. When the}' boil add a quarter of the sugar. Sprinkle it over the berries without stirring. Let it boil again a minute, add another quarter, etc., till all the sugar is in. Boil up once more, and turn out. Boil slowly, and do not stir. This method is preferred by those who like a very rich sweet sauce. Jellies. Jellies are made of equal parts of clear fruit juice and sugar. Apples, currants, quinces, grapes, and barberries are the fruits usuall}' used. Low blackberries and swamp 396 The Boston Cook Book. huckleberries make delicious jelly. Crab apples and quinces will form jelly easily ; but grapes are unreliable, and cur- rants, if not gathered at the proper time, will sometimes fail. Cherries and some other fruits require the addition of gelatine. Berries, currants, and grapes require no water. Simply mash them in their own juice. Apples, peaches, and quinces should be stewed in as little water as possible, then mashed, and the juice strained. The juices of fruits contain a gelatinous substance called pectose, or pectic acid, which is soluble in the fruit juice, but has the property of coagulation when mixed with sugar, exposed to a slight heat, and then cooled. Sometimes the heat of the sun is sufficient, but usually a short but more intense heat is neeessarj 7 . When the sugar has a bluish tinge, or when there is not enough sugar to absorb the water in the juice, or when the juice is unusualty water} 7 , as when the fruit is over-ripe, and the fruit is boiled a long time to evap- orate this water, the mixture loses its gelatinous properties and becomes gummy, or, as disconsolate housekeepers say, "will not jelly." Currant Jelly. Currants should not be over-ripe, nor gathered after a rain, as then they are too watery. In New England currants are in the best condition about the 10th of July. Equal parts of red and white currants, or currants and raspberries, make a delicately colored and flavored jelly. Pick over and remove the leaves and poor fruit, and if gritty wash and drain them, but do not stem them. Mash them in a porcelain kettle with a wooden pestle, without heating, as that makes the jelly darker. Let them drain in a flannel bag over night. Do not squeeze them, or the jelly will be cloudy. In the morning measure a bowl of sugar for each bowl of juice, and heat the sugar carefully in an earthen dish in the oven. Stir it often to prevent burning. Boil the juice twenty minutes, and skim thoroughly. Add the hot sugar, and boil from three to five minutes, or till it thickens on a spoon when exposed to the air. Turn at once into glasses, and let them remain in the sun several Marmalade. 397 days, then cover with paper dipped in brandy, and paste paper over the top of the glass. One who is authority on this subject recommends cov- ering with melted paraffine, or putting a lump of paraffine on the jelly while still hot ; then no paper is needed. If one can be sure of several sunny days, and a perfectly dry place in which to keep jellies, they may be made without* boiling. Mix the sugar with an equal weight of currant juice, and stir till dissolved. Fill the glasses and keep in the sun till dry. After draining the juice the currants may be squeezed, and a second quality of jelly made. It may not be clear, but answers for some purposes. Crab-,Apple, Wild-Apple, or Porter- Apple Jetty. (Miss Harriott T. Ward.) Wash the fruit ; cut into pieces, but do not pare, nor remove the seeds ; barely cover with cold water. Boil and mash them until soft. Then drain on a sieve. Use the juice only, and do not squeeze the fruit. Boil the juice with an equal quantity of sugar, until it jellies. Peach jelly is made in the same manner. Quince Jelly. Wipe the fruit carefully, and remove all the stems, and parts not fair and sound. Use the best parts of the fruit for canning or preserving, and the skin, cores, and hard parts for jelly. The seeds contain a large portion of gelatinous substance. Boil all together, in enough water to cover, till the pulp is soft. Mash, and drain. Use the juice only, and when boiling add an equal weight of hot sugar, and boil till it jellies in the spoon. Grape Jetty. Select the grapes when not fully ripe. Wash and drain, then put them in a preserving-kettle, mash well, and heat till all the skins are broken and the juice flows freely. Strain, and use the juice only with an equal weight of sugar, as for Currant Jelly. Marmalade. This is made of the pulp of fruits with the juice, unless that has been used for jelly. When fruit is not abundant, 398 The Boston Cook Book. it is well to make marmalade at the same time with jellies, especially from peaches, quinces, and grapes. After drain- ing, rub the fruit pulp through a sieve, add an equal weight of sugar, and boil very slowly half or three quarters of an hour. Stir often to prevent burning. Preserves. These are usually prepared with equal weights of sugar and fruit. Although too rich for daily use, there are many people who prefer them to the canned fruit, and there are some fruits which are better with the full weight of sugar. The fruit should be ripe, fresh, and perfectly sound. The following rules illustrate the best methods for the different varieties of fruit. Peaches. Pare the peaches ; or remove the skins by plunging the peaches into boiling lye (two gallons of water and one pijit of wood ashes) . When the skins will slip easily, take the peaches out with a skimmer and plunge them into cold water ; rinse in several waters, and there will be no taste of the lye. Weigh, and add three fourths of a pound of sugar to each pound of fruit. Halve them, and use some of the pits, or leave them whole as you please. The stones improve the flavor. Make a syrup by adding as little water as possible to the sugar, about one cupful to each pound of sugar. When it boils, skim till clear, then add the peaches, and cook until transparent. Brandy Peaches. Prepare the peaches as above, and use half a cup of the best brandy to every pound of fruit. Add the brandy just as the syrup is taken from the fire. Some people prefer the yellow peaches, but white-fleshed freestone peaches have a delicious flavor. Damsons and Greengages should be pricked in many places with a large needle, to prevent the skins from bursting. Or scald them and remove the skins, as some- times they harden in cooking. Prepare the syrup as for peaches. Cook only a few at a time, that they may not be broken. On three successive mornings pour off the Preserves. 399 syrup, and boil it gently for ten minutes. This will thoroughly cook the fruit, without destroying the shape. Preserved Quinces. Use the orange quinces. Wipe, pare, quarter, and remove all the core and the hard part under the core. Take an equal weight of sugar. Cover the quinces with cold water. Let them come slowly to a boil. Skim, and when nearly soft put one quarter of the sugar on the top, but do not stir. When this boils, add another part of the sugar, and continue until all the sugar is in the kettle. Let them boil slowly until the color you like, either light or dark. Another way is to cook the quinces in water till ten- der, drain, and put them in a stone jar in layers, with an equal weight of sugar. Cover closely. In a cold dry place they will keep perfectly. They are lighter-colored and more tender than when cooked in the syrup. Watch them during the first month, and if there be any signs of fermentation, set the jar in a kettle of hot water till the fruit is scalded. Reserve the broken or unshapely pieces of quince, cut them in small cubes, and use with Strawberry Tomatoes. Allow three quarters of a pound of sugar to a pound of fruit. Make the s}n:up, and cook the fruit in it till tender. Skim it out, and boil the syrup down for ten minutes. Fill the jars, and seal at once. Equal parts of sweet apple, cooked with the quince but with no extra sugar, can scarcely be distinguished from the quince. Preserved Pineapple. Remove the skin and all the eyes, take the pineapple in } T our left hand, and with a sil- ver fork begin at the stem end of the fruit and fork out small bits. This will leave the core, which is juiceless and tasteless, in your hand. Weigh the pineapple after it is thus prepared, and sprinkle over it three quarters of a pound of sugar to one pound of pineapple. When a syrup is formed, cook the apple slowly in it until trans- parent, then remove the fruit and boil the syrup a little longer. Or slice the pineapple in half-inch slices, and cut out the core. Cook in the syrup, being careful not U> break the slices. 4OO The Boston Cook Book. Preserved Strawberries, Raspberries, Currants, Black* berries, and Cherries. Measure a bowl of fruit and the same quantity of sugar. Put in a preserving-kettle, over night, a layer of fruit, and then one of sugar. In the morning cook slowly without stirring, until the liquid is clear and the fruit soft. Skim thoroughly before putting into the jars. Cherries should be stoned. The pits may be used if the flavor be desired. No. 2. Use only large and selected fruit, and allow one cup of sugar to a pint jar of fruit. Pick over the fruit, and put at once into the jars, with as little hand- ling as possible, and sprinkle each layer with sugar. Place the jars in a boiler of water, and let the water boil ten minutes. Have a little syrup boiling, and fill each jar to the brim with the boiling syrup, and seal at once. Jams. Jams are made with whole small fruits, or large fruit cut fine, and cooked in an equal weight of sugar. Grape Jam. Wash the grapes, and squeeze or pinch the pulp from the skins. Boil the pulp until it separates from the seeds, and rub it through a sieve. Then add the skins to the pulp, and boil with an equal weight of sugar fifteen minutes. Put into small jars or tumblers, and cover with paper. Currant, Raspberry, or Blackberry Jam. Pick over and mash the fruit ; allow one pound of sugar to a pound of fruit. Put the fruit and one quarter of the sugar into a granite or porcelain kettle ; when boiling, add another quarter of the sugar ; boil again, add more sugar, and when all is used, let it boil till it hardens on the spoon in the air. Apples, pears, peaches, and quinces should be pared, cut small, and treated in the same way. Cooking in only a little sugar at a time prevents the fruit from becoming hard. Canning. 401 Canning. Canning differs from preserving in that the fruit is kept, either with or without sugar, by sealing in air-tight jars or cans, and is not cooked long enough to destroy its natural flavor. Some authorities state that fruit may be kept by putting it in the jars, filling with cold water, and sealing immediately. But nearly all fruits are improved by the addition of more or less sugar. As a rule, all fruits that require sugar when fresh require it when canned. The important points in canning are to have the fruit perfect in shape and quality ; the syrup clear, rightly pro- portioned, and boiling hot ; the jars hot and filled to over- flowing, and sealed quickly and thoroughly, that no air may be left inside. Have all utensils in order and at hand, that there may be no needless delay. Large-mouthed glass jars with glass covers or porcelain-lined screw covers are the best. Pint jars are more convenient for a small family. They should be scalded, and the covers and rub- bers clean and perfectly fitted. Keep the jars in hot water until ready to fill, or roll each one in hot water just before filling, or place them in a folded towel wrung out of hot water, and put a silver spoon or fork in the jar while filling. A clamp is a great convenience, as the jar may be held in the clamp directly over the kettle and filled very quickly. If without this, have a broad shallow pan, half filled with hot water, on the stove or on a table near by, and place the jars in it while filling them. A wide-mouthed tunnel aids in filling the jars. When the fruit is to be boiled in the jars, place a perforated tin or some flat stones or muffin rings in the boiler, to keep the jars from resting on the bottom. Then the water will be under as well as around the jar, and there will be no danger of breaking. All ripe mellow fruit may be prepared and put at once into the jars. Place the jars in a boiler or kettle of warm water, with something underneath to avoid breaking. Make the sjTup, using sugar according to taste, or in the proportion of one cup of sugar and one cup of water for 4.02 The Boston Cook Book. each jar of small juicy berries, and one cup of sugar and two cups of water for pears and &m?e fruits. Pour the syrup boiling hot into the hot jars, boil five minutes, and seal at once. Strawberries, plums, and cherries will require more sugar. Cherries should be stoned, but the stones may be used if liked. Quinces, apples, hard peaches, pears, and fruits which require softening, should be cooked in water or in syrup until tender. Then fill the jars with boiling syrup, strain- ing it if not clear. Peaches may be canned whole, or if halved, a few of the pits removed and cooked in the syrup to give addi' tional flavor. Pears should be well ripened and of fine flavor. A taste less, insipid pear is only suitable for sweet pickle. Tomatoes should be peeled and cooked till well scalded, then salted and sealed at once. Always fill to overflowing, using boiling water when there is not enough syrup. Run the handle of a silver tablespoon down the inside of the jar, that the syrup may complete!} 7 surround the fruit. Fasten the covers on se- curely, and give the screw an extra turn every half-hour until the fruit is cold. If the jars be kept bottom up and in a dark place, there is hardly a chance of failure. The best quality of thick tin-foil may be used as a cover for an} 7 large-mouthed bottle or jar minus a cover. Fill the jar with the fruit and syrup, cover with a large piece of tin- foil, work it down over the rim until perfectly smooth and tight. If air-tight, there will be a depression in the cover as soon as the fruit is cold. Fruit thus covered should be kept away from mice, as they will eat the tin- foil. Canned fruit should be opened some time before using, that it may be aerated and the flavor improved. There has been a strong feeling against the use of fruit prepared in tin cans. Chemists have examined canned fruit as soon as opened, and found it harmless ; but if the fruit be left Sweet Pickles. 403 in the tin can, the action of the air causes the acid in the fruit to act upon the metal and form a poisonous compound. Care should be taken to remove the fruit from the can as soon as opened. Sweet Pickles. Eight pounds of fruit, four pounds of best brown sugar, *ne quart of vinegar, and one cup of mixed whole spices, - stick cinnamon, cassia buds, allspice, and cloves / less of the latter than of the former. Tie the spices in a bag, and boil with the vinegar and sugar. Skim well ; then add the fruit. Cook ten minutes, or till scalded and tender Skim out the fruit, and put into stone jars. Boil the syrup five minutes longer, and pour over the fruit. The next day pour off the syrup and boil down again, and do this for three mornings. Keep the bag of spices in the syrup. Tomatoes. Scald, remove the skins, and cook without breaking if possible. Peaches. Scald or wipe off the " wool," and leave them whole. Do not stick them with cloves. If very ripe, merely pour the hot syrup over them on three suc- cessive mornings. Pears. Select sound fruit, not too ripe. Pare, and leave them whole with the stems on. Cook till tender. Ripe Cucumber or Watermelon Hind. Cut the pared rind into thick slices. Boil one ounce of alum in one gal- lon of water, pour it on the rinds, and let them stand in it several hours on the back of the stove. Take out into cold water, and when cold boil them half an hour in the 3weet pickle. Ripe Muskmelon or Canteloupe. Pare, and cut into thick slices. Pour the boiling syrup over them. The next morning pour off the syrup, boil five minutes, and pour it boiling hot over the melon. Repeat this on three mornings. Pineapple. Slice it, or with a fork pick it off from the centre, in small pieces, and prepare as for melon. 404 The Boston Cook Book. Tomato Catchup. (Mrs. Campbell.) Boil one bushel of ripe tomatoes, skins and all, and when soft strain through a colander to remove the skins only. Mix one cup of salt, two pounds of brown sugar, half an ounce of cayenne pepper, three ounces each of ground all- spice, mace, and celery seed, two ounces of ground cinna- mon, and stir into the tomato. Add two quarts of best cider vinegar, and when thoroughly mixed strain through a sieve. Pour all that runs through into a large kettle, and boil slowly till reduced one half. It is an improvement Xo add a pint of brandy ten minutes before the catchup is done, but many think it unnecessary. Put it in small bottles, seal, and keep in a cool, dark place. Piccallili, or Chow Chow. 1 peck green tomatoes. 1 cup ^alt. 6 small onions. 1 large head celery. 2 cups brown sugar. 1 teaspoonful white pepper. 1 tablespoonf ul ground cinnamon. 1 tablespoonf ul ground allspice. 1 tablespoonful mustard. 2 quarts good, sharp vinegar. Chop the tomatoes, mix the salt with them thoroughly, and let them stand over night. In the morning pour off the water, and chop the onion and celery. Mix the sugar, pepper, cinnamon, and mustard. Put in a porcelain kettle a layer of tomatoes, onion, celery, and spices, and so on until all is used, and cover with the vinegar. Cook slowly all day, or until the tomatoes are soft. Cauliflower, or cabbage, or one quart of cucumbers may be used with the tomatoes. Sliced or grated horseradish gives a pleasant flavor. Pickled Cucumbers. (Miss Harriott Ward.) To one hundred and fifty small-sized cucumbers take one pint of salt, dissolved in boiling water to cover them. Let them remain in a covered vessel for forty-eight hours. Then drain, and wipe each one carefully. Put them in a pickle-pot or firkin with one large onion, peeled and Mixed Pickles. 405 stuck full of cloves, one green pepper, some scraped horse- radish, and a small bit of alum. Boil vinegar enough to cover them. Fill a muslin bag with one cup of mixed spices, whole cloves, whole allspice, peppercorns, stick cinnamon, white mustard seed, and a flake of mace, and boil ten minutes with the vinegar. Put this bag in the. firkin when you pour on the boiling vinegar. When cucumbers are gathered fresh from the vines ever}- day, they may be kept in brine till wanted. Make the brine strong enough to float an egg, a pint of coarse salt and six quarts of boiling water, boiled and skimmed clear. Pick the cucumbers as they ripen, wash carefully without removing the prickles, leave a bit of the stem on, and keep them covered with the brine. Soak, as required, in fresh cold water two days, and pour boiling spiced vinegar over them. Mixed Pickles. (Mrs. Poor.) 150 small cucumbers. 1 quart small martinoes. 1 quart small button onions. 1 medium cauliflower. Rind of } watermelon. 3 pints green string beans. 3 cups salt. 4 quarts cold water. % pound horseradish root. 1 tablespoonful white mustard seed. 1 tablespoonful stick cinnamon, broken into half-inch pieces. 1 tablespoonful whole cloves. % tablespoonful peppercorns. % tablespoonful allspice. % tablespoonful whole mace. 1 teaspoonful celery seed. 2 quarts white wine vinegar. 1 ounce alum. 2 quarts boiling water. 1 gill alcohol. Wipe the cucumbers and martinoes with a damp cloth. Cut the cucumbers lengthwise into quarters, and the mar- tinoes into halves. Scald and peel the onions ; wash the cauliflower, watermelon rind, and beans ; break the cauli- flower into small pieces, and cut the melon rind about the size of the pieces of cucumber. Dissolve the salt in the cold* water. Put the pickles in a large earthen or tight wooden vessel, and pour the brine over them ; if they are not covered, add more cold water. Put a large earthen plate over them, with a clean brick or stone to keep them 406 The Boston Cook Book. under the brine. Let them stand two days, remove them from the brine, and wash in cold water. Wash and scrape the horseradish root. Pack the pickles in a stone jar or firkin. Put all the spices into a bag made of strainer cloth. Boil the vinegar, spices, and alum in a porcelain kettle ten minutes, skim carefully, add the boiling water, and pour immediately over the pickles. If a stronger spice be desired, le&ve the bag on the top of the pickles. Set them in a cold place, with the plate and weight over them to keep them under the vinegar. In about two weeks add the alcohol, and in four weeks they will be ready to use. Mustard Pickles. (Mrs. John Sheldon.) Equal quantities of small cucumbers, the largest ones sliced, green tomatoes sliced, cauliflower picked into flow- erets, and small button onions. Keep them covered with strongly salted water twenty-four hours. In the morning scald the brine, and dissolve in it a bit of alum the size of a nutmeg. Pour the boiling brine over the pickles. When cold, drain thoroughly and prepare as much vinegar as there were quarts of brine. To one quart of vinegar use one cup of brown sugar, half a cup of flour, and one fourth of a pound of ground mustard. Boil the sugar and vinegar. Mix the flour and mustard, and stir the boiling vinegar into it, and when smooth pour it over the pickles. Canned Fruit. (Mrs. John Sheldon.) Put the prepared fruit in a jar, and cover with boiling syrup sweetened to taste. On three successive mornings drain off the syrup, boil again, and pour over the fruit. The last morning, let fruit and s} r rup come just to the boil- ing-point, but do not boil ; then seal immediately. Fruit prepared in this way has been tested by the author and found perfect. Strawberries preserve their shape and never ferment. Invalid Cookery. 407 GENERAL HINTS ON CARING AND COOKING FOR INVALIDS. Ventilation. The first condition of comfort and re- covery to the patient is that the room be perfectly ven- tilated, either directly or from fresh air in an adjoining room. ' A sunny exposure and an open fire, and in sum- mer an open fireplace, are essential aids. After all these points are secured, care must be taken that the air be not vitiated by anything in the room. Growing plants are more healthful than cut flowers ; unless the room be large and airy, the latter should not be allowed for any length of time, and even then should be removed as soon as their freshness is gone. If possible, avoid having a kerosene lamp in a sick-room. The odor is irritating to the mucous membrane, and in some conditions positively harmful. The wick should never be turned below the point of free combustion, either in the room of the sick or well. If 3^ou wish a dim light, place the lamp outside the door, or shade it by a screen. Never turn it down, as it will inevitably vitiate the atmosphere. Avoid noise in replenishing the fire, by bringing the coal in a paper bag, and putting bag and all upon the fire. Keep all medicines and everything suggestive of a sick-room out of sight. The Bed. Arrange the bed so that the patient may be shielded from any draught. Neither sun nor lamp light should shine directly in the eyes. Whenever it is possible, change the position of the bed, furniture, and pictures, that the eye ma}' have something new and inter- esting to dwell upon, if such changes interest instead of 408 The Boston Cook Book. distress the invalid. Two small beds, that the patient may find relief in change, are desirable ; or, if possible, procure an invalid's bed, which admits of many changes of position and the airing and changing of the bed with no accompanying fatigue. Cleanliness. It is of the first importance that the bed linen and clothing of the patient should be kept fresh by frequent changes, and thoroughly dried and aired. Be careful to supply the needed warmth by light but not over- abundant clothing. The patient should be bathed freely ; avoid a chill by giving a sponge bath with alcohol and warm water, exposing only a part of the body at a time to the air, and rub till perfectly dry. Wet a cotton-flannel bag, made with the nap side out, in cold water, wring it slightly, and tie it over the broom to use in sweeping. Be careful to wash it every time it is used. It is quite essential that the floor of a sick-room should be kept clean. Remove all dust with a damp cloth. The cleansing, drying, or airing of all objects should be done outside of the sick-room. Keep the room, the bed, the patient, and everything about yourself absolutely neat and clean. Conversation. In extreme sickness let no unnecessary word be spoken in a sick-room, and no needless, noisy, nor abrupt movements be made. Let the voice be calm and clear, neither loud nor whispering. In speaking to the patient do so in the way that requires the least effort in response, and never consult him about his food. Avoid all discussions of the disease, the medicine, and any excit- ing topic either with or before him. Do not excite the patient by needless conversation with the doctor outside of the. sick-room. Never whisper, even when the patient is asleep or in delirium, because a whisper is more penetrat- ing than a low full tone. During convalescence do not weary with conversation ; let it always be bright and cheer- ful, and, as far as possible, of things outside the sick-room. Cultivate the power of talking to, rather than with, a sick person. Care of Invalids. 409 Conveniences in a Sick- Room. "In severe sickness a glass tube is useful for feeding drinks and gruels ; and little white china boats with spouts are also good. A wooden tray with legs six or seven inches high, to stand upon the bed, is ver}' convenient for serving meals." To keep Ice for a Sick- Room. Tie a square of coarse white flannel over a pitcher, leaving a cup-shaped depres- sion of the flannel in the pitcher. Put broken ice in the flannel, and cover it tightly with a thicker flannel. The ice will keep all night, and the water may be poured off as wanted. In applying hot bandages dip the flannel in boiling water, place it in the centre of a coarse towel, and twist and wring the ends of the towel ; or place the flannels in a steamer over hot water until penetrated with the steam ; they will then need no wringing. Feeding the Patient. When feeding the patient, do it gently and neatly. Anticipate his wants, and let the food be a surprise as far as practicable. In severe sickness give nourishment in a small quantity often, and never fail to give it immediately after a long sleep. During convales- cence food should be given at longer, but regular intervals. If the patient be unable to use a toothbrush, wet a bit of soft cloth and wipe the teeth and gums, and give a little water or acid drink to soften the dry mucous membrane and destroy the bad taste in the mouth, before offering any food. Let everything prepared for the invalid be arranged to please the eye as well as the palate. Serve less than you think the patient requires, and give as much variety as possible, serving in different forms or in different dishes if the material must be the same. Hot liquids should be hot when they reach the patient, not merely when they leave the kitchen. Serve them in a hot pitcher, and pour only a little into the hot cup or bowl, and so avoid its run- ning over into the saucer or too rapid cooling. Never insult the patient by offering him a slice of dough covered with charcoal, under the name of toast. When the meal is 4i o The Boston Cook Book. over, remove immediate!}' even r trace of food from the room. Keep in the sick-room choice fruit or any delica- cies which have been sent to the patient only long enough to gratify the eye, then remove to a cool place, and serve as fresh and daintily as possible. Wines or liquors of any kind should never be given without the advice of a physician. Young persons do not need them, and, in an} 7 form of fever, stimulants are posi- tively harmful. In some extreme cases, among very old people, or where there is a great lack of recuperative power, they may be given. Visitors. Visitors should never be admitted to a sick- room, except with the consent of the physician. Never visit a sick-room when in a violent perspiration or with an empty stomach, as then the system more readily re- ceives contagion. If obliged to sit up all night with a patient, provide yourself with something to eat, if nothing more than a cake of chocolate, that there may be no needless exhaustion. Not the least of the many qualifications desirable in a good nurse is a thorough knowledge of the nature, use, and digestibility, as well as the best methods of preparing dif- ferent kinds of food, and of their adaptation to different forms of disease. Such knowledge is of still greater im- portance to every physician, and fully as essential as the study of drugs. Nurses, alas ! are often wholly unquali- fied, or not to be obtained at all ; and then that patient is fortunate, indeed, who has a physician who can in emergency fill the treble office of nurse, cook, and doctor. Diet for the Invalid. First Condition. Sometimes the system from over- taxation, either mental or physical, needs a period of complete rest or comparative inaction ; or, as in the com- mencement of many forms of sickness, the diet should be food which merely satisfies the hunger and which soothes and reduces inflammation and quenches thirst, but does G-ruels. not nourish nor stimulate. Foods proper at such times j come under the head of starchy gruels, gelatinous soups j and jellies, oranges, grapes, etc., and mucilaginous, acid, I and aromatic drinks. Flour or Arrowroot Gruel. 1 cup boiling water. j 2 teaspoonfuls flour, wet in cold 1 saltspoonful salt. water. Cornstarch and rice-flour gruels are made in a similar manner. Use a little more of wheat flour than of the others. Mix the flour and salt, and make into a smooth thin paste with cold water, then stir it into the boiling water. Cook five minutes, or until the desired consistency is ob- tained. Strain ; then add sugar , if preferred, and thin mth a little milk. If intended for a fever patient, a little lemon juice improves the flavor ; if for a patient with sum- mer complaint, boil with the gruel half an inch stick of cinnamon or a little nutmeg, the spice will help to re- >, duce the laxative condition. Sick people soon tire of sweets, and gruels should be sweetened only slightly, if at all. Flour and starchy gruels should not be given in typhoid fever, or when the disease is located in the intes- tines. Nor should they ever be used in excess, as, being rapidly swallowed, the}' are unaffected by the alkaline action of the saliva, and pass through the stomach un- changed and severely tax the intestines. They should be kept in the mouth and mingled with the saliva before swallowing. Milk Porridge. 2 dozen raisins, quartered. I 1 tablespoonful flour. 2 cups milk. Salt to taste. Boil the raisins in a little water twenty minutes. Let the water boil away, and add the milk. When boiling, add the flour rubbed to a thin paste with a little cold milk. Boil eight or ten minutes. Season with salt and 412 The Boston Cook Book. strain. Or omit the raisins, and add sugar to taste ; or add the beaten white of one egg after it comes from the stove. Barley Gruel. Boil one ounce of pearl barley a few minutes, to cleanse it. Pour off the water, add one quart of cold water and half a teaspoonful of salt, and simmer one hour, or until reduced one half. Strain it ; sweeten to taste, and add a little lemon or nutmeg, if desired. Barley contains muci- ' lage, and is soothing and refreshing in fevers and gastric inflammation. Indian Meal Gruel. 1 tablespoonf ul flour. 1 teaspoonful salt. 2 tablespoonfuls corn meal. 1 quart boiling water., Mix the flour, mealj and salt. Make into a thin paste With a little cold water, and stir into the boiling water. Boil thirty minutes, stirring often ; thin with milk 01 cream. Milk may be used instead of water by mak- ing the gruel in a double boiler. Indian meal gruel requires longer time for cooking than any purely starchj gruels. No. 2. Wet one heaping teaspoonful of meal and one saltspoonful of salt in a little cold water, and stir into one cup of boiling water. Boil slowly thirty minutes. Indian corn meal is heating in its nature, and should never be given where there is any inflammatory condition of the sj'stem. If given during convalescence after scarlet fever, it sometimes produces glandular swellings. When j there is a deficiency of natural warmth, and no inflamma- [ tion, it may be given without harm. Oatmeal Gruel. 2 tablespoonf uls oatmeal. 1 quart boiling water. % teaspoonful salt. Boil one hour. Strain, and serve with milk or cream. Grueh. 413 No. 2. Pound half a cup of coarse oatmeal until it is mealy. Put it in a tumbler, and fill the tumbler with cold water. Stir well ; let it settle ; then pour off the mealy water into a saucepan. Fill again, and pour off the water, and again repeat this, being careful each time not to dis- turb the sediment in the bottom of the tumbler. Then boil the water twenty minutes. Add one saltspoonful of salt. If very thick, add a little cream or milk. Strain and serve hot. Beef essence or beef tea may be used in place of cream. This is the most palatable and convenient way of making gruel from oatmeal. Farina Gruel. 1 tablespoonful Hecker's farina. I 1 cup boiling water. 1 saltspoonful salt. 1 cup milk. Put all but the milk in the double boiler, and cook fifteen minutes, or until it thickens, then add the milk and boil again. Sweeten to taste. Farina is a granulated preparation of the inner portion of the finest wheat, freed from bran and floury dust. It contains nitrogenous or flesh-forming material, is easily digested, and is a more nutritive food for invalids and children than cornstarch, sago, arrowroot, or tapioca, which contain only starch. Cracker Gruel. 4 tablesp. powdered cracker. 1 cup milk. 1 cup boiling water. % teaspoonful salt Boil up once and serve. Egg Gruel, 1 egg (yolk beaten well). I 1 cup hot milk. 1 teaspoonful sugar. | White of egg, beaten till foamy Flavor with nutmeg or lemon. Good for a violent cold if taken very hot after retiring. 414 The Boston Cook Book. Panada, No. 1. 1 cup stoned raisins. 1 quart water. 2 slices toasted bread, or 1 cup bread crumbs. 2 eggs. 1 tablespoonful sugar. Boil the raisins one hour. Skim out the raisins, and add the bread to the boiling water ; boil fifteen minutes, stirring well. Beat the eggs, add the sugar, and pour the panada over them, stirring all the time. N~o. 2. Split two Boston or Graham crackers. Put them into a bowl, sprinkle with sugar and salt, and cover with boiling water. Set the bowl in a pan of boiling water for half an hour, or until the crackers are clear. Slide them out into a hot saucer, and serve very hot with sugar and cream. No. 3. Boil one tablespoonful of cracker crumbs five minutes in one cup of boiling water, slightly sweetened* salted, and flavored with lemon. Oatmeal Mush for Children or Invalids. 1 cup granulated oatmeal. 1 scant quart boiling water. % teaspoonful salt. Put the meal and salt in the double boiler, pour on the boiling water, and cook two or three hours. Remove the cover just before serving, and stir with a fork to let the steam escape. If the water in the lower boiler be strongly salted, the meal will cook more quickly. Serve with sugar, or salt, and cream. Baked sour apples, apple sauce, and apple jelly are delicious eaten with the oatmeal. They should be served with the mush, and the cream and sugar poured over the whole. They give the acid flavor which so many crave in the morning. Coarse oatmeal is not suitable for any form of water brash, acidity, or bowel irritation. It often causes erup- tions on the skin in warm weather. Mushes. 415 Indian Meal Mush. 1 cup corn meal. 1 cup cold milk. % teaspoonf ul salt. 1 pint boiling water. Mix the meal and salt with the cold milk. Stir this gradually into the boiling water. Cook half an hour in a double boiler, stirring often. (rra.ha.TTi Mush. Mix half a cup of Graham flour and half a teaspoon- ful of salt. Make it into a thin smooth paste with a little cold water. Stir it into one pint of boiling water. Cook twenty minutes, stirring often. Serve with cream. Rye Mush is made in the same manner, and sometimes served with molasses. Gluten Mush. Use one cup of gluten to one pint of boiling water, and cook as above. Being destitute of starch, it will not thicken like Rye Mush. Brain Food. (Health Food Co.} Wet one cup of Brain Food in a little cold water, and stir it into one quart of salted boiling water. Cook over hot water one to two hours. Eat, hot or cold, with sugar and cream. Rice Water or Jelly. 2 tablespoonfuls rice. Salt and sugar to taste. 1 quart cold water. Pick over and wash the rice, and cook in water one hour, or till the rice is dissolved. Add salt and sugar to taste. If intended for jelly, add lemon juice and strain into a mould. When cold, serve with sugar and cream. If to be used as a drink, add more hot water, enough to make a thin liquid, and boil longer. Add half a square inch of stick cinnamon, and strain. Serve hot or cold. Rice is easily digested and almost wholly assimilated it is good in diarrhoea or dysentery. 416 The Boston Cook Book. Tapioca Jelly. % cup pearl tapioca. 1 pint cold water. 1 tablespoonful lemon juice. 1 heaping tablespoonful sugar. 1 saltspoonful salt. Pick over and wash the tapioca. Add the cold water, and cook in a double boiler until entirely dissolved. Then add the salt, lemon juice, and sugar. Turn into a mould. Serve with sugar and cream. Half a cup of strawberry, raspberry, or blackberry jam or currant jelly may be used in place of lemons. Irish Moss Jelly. % cup Irish moss. 1 pint boiling water. 1 lemon. ^3 cup sugar. Soak the moss in cold water until soft. Pick over and wash again. Then put it into the boiling water, and sim- mer until it is dissolved. Add the lemon juice and sugar. Strain into a mould. Use currant jelly in place of lemon, or steep four or five figs with the moss. Sea mosses contain bromine and iodine, and are useful in rheumatic affections. Iceland moss may be used in the same manner. This, when dried, contains more starch than potatoes, and more flesh food than oatmeal or corn. Restorative. Jelly. 3^ box gelatine. 1 cup port wine. 1 tablesp. powdered gum arabic. 2 tablespoonfuls lemon juice. 3 tablespoonfuls sugar. 2 cloves. Put all together in a glass jar, and cover closely. Place the jar on a trivet in a kettle of cold water. Heat it slowly, and when the mixture is dissolved, stir well and strain. Pour into a shallow dish, and when cool cut it into small squares. This is good for an old person or a very weak patient. Mutton Broth. To make it quickly for an invalid, chop one pound of lean juicy mutton very fine ; pour over it one pint of cold Invalid Cookery. 417 water. Let it stand until the water is very red, then heat it slowly. Let it simmer ten minutes. Strain, season, and add two tablespoonfuls of soft-boiled rice, or thicken it slightly with rice flour wet with cold water. Serve hot. When given to a person with a severe cold, or a consump- tive, the fat should not be removed, as it is soothing to the chest, and when absorbed by the rice or some starchy material is not uninviting to the eye. For a fever patient, tne fat should be removed. When } r ou have not time to cool the broth, a piece of soft tissue paper passed over the surface helps to take up any globules of fat which will not come off with a spoon. Barley Soup. Remove the fat and bones from one pound of the neck of mutton. Cut the meat into dice, and add to it one table- spoonful of well-was/ied barley and one pint of cold water. Heat slowly, and simmer two hours. Put the bones into one cup of cold water, and boil gently half an hour. Then strain into the meat and barley. Season with salt. Skim off the fat, and serve with whole-wheat or gluten wafers. Calves'-Foot Jelly or Broth. 4 calves' feet. 4 quarts cold water. 1 cup sugar. 2 lemons. 2 inch stick cinnamon. 1 inch blade mace. 3 eggs (whites and shells). 1 pint wine. Scald the feet, and clean thoroughly. Split, break the bones, and put them into the cold water. Heat slowl}', and simmer gently until reduced to three pints. Strain, and when cool remove the fat. Add the other ingredients except the wine. Put it over the fire, and stir until hot. Let it boil five minutes, or till a thick scum has formed. Set it back on the stove ; skim, and add the wine. Strain, through a fine napkin into a shallow dish. When ready to serve, cut it into blocks, or break it up lightly with a fork. If intended for broth, simply remove the fat, season to 9.7 4i 8 The Boston Cook Book. taste, and stir it into a beaten egg ; or add sago or tapi- oca, having first soaked and boiled it till soft. Veal broth is not very palatable in itself ; and as it does not contain the nutritive qualities of beef or mutton broth, it is not well to use it in the sick-room except for a variety. Chicken Jelly or Broth. Clean a small chicken. Disjoint and cut the meat into half-inch pieces. Remove all the fat. Break or pound the bones. Dip the feet into boiling water, and scald until the skin and nails will peel off. The feet contain gelatine, and when well cleaned maybe used for jelly. Cover the meat, feet, and bones with cold water ; heat very slowly, and sim- mer till the meat is tender. Strain, and when cool remove the fat. Season with salt, pepper, and lemon, and add the shell and white of one egg. Put it over the fire, and stir well until hot. Let it boil five minutes. Skim, and strain through a fine napkin. Pour it into small cups, and cool it if intended for jelly. When the patient can take it, small dice of the breast meat may be moulded in the jelly. Serve hot, without clearing, if intended for broth. Beef Jelly or Broth. Prepare the same as for Bouillon (page 131). If in- tended for jelly, clear it as directed for Clear Soup. Barley Water. 1 tablespoonful pearl barley. 3 blocks sugar. % lemon. 1 quart boiling water. Wash the barley in cold water, then pour off the water, and put the barlej', sugar, and lemon into the boiling water, and let it stand covered and warm for three hours ; then strain it. Currant jelly or orange juice may be used in- stead of lemon. This is a valuable demulcent in colds, affections of the chest, hectic fever, strangury and othef diseases of the bladder or urinary organs. Invalid Cookery. 419 Gum Water. 1 ounce clean gum arable, and 1 pint boiling water. )o ounce sugar, dissolved in 1 lemon (juice). When dissolved, add the lemon juice, and strain through a fine strainer. This is soothing in inflammation of the/ mucous membrane. Toast Water. Toast one pint of white or brown bread crusts very brown, but be careful not to burn them ; add one pint of cold water ; let it stand for one hour, then strain, and add cream and sugar to taste. The nourish- ment in the bread is easily absorbed when taken in this liquid form. Crust Coffee. Pour one pint of boiling water over two slices of brown toast. Steep ten minutes, and strain. Add sugar and cream to taste. Corn Tea and Rice Coffee. Brown one cup of dried sweet corn or rice. Pound or grind it fine. Add one pint of cold water, and steep it one hour. Strain, and serve with sugar and cream. These are pleasant and nourishing beverages. Slippery-Elm Tea. Pour one cup of boiling water upon one teaspoonful of slippery-elm powder or a piece of the bark. When cool, strain and flavor with lemon juice and sugar. This is soothing in any inflammation of the mucous membrane. Acid Fruit Drinks. Pour boiling water on mashed cranberries, barberries, or whortleberries. When cold, strain, and sweeten to taste. No. 2. Stir a tablespoonful of any acid jelly or fruit syrup into one tumbler of ice water. No. 3. Dissolve one tablespoonful of cream of tartar in one pint of water. Sweeten to taste. Apple Tea. Roast two large sour apples, cover with boiling water ; when cool, pour off the water and strain. Add sugar to taste. 42O The Boston Cook Book. Jelly and Ice. With a large needle or pin, chip half a cup of ice into bits as large as a pea. Mix with it about the same quantity of lemon, currant, blackberry, or bar- berry jelly. Very refreshing in fevers, j Tamarind Water. Boil two ounces of tamarinds with four ounces of stoned raisins in three pints of water for one hour. Strain and cool. Baked Lemon. Bake a lemon or sour orange twenty minutes in a moderate oven. When done, open at one end and take out the inside. Sweeten with sugar or mo- lasses. This is excellent for hoarseness and pressure on the lungs. Lemonade. Squeeze the juice from one lemon and add one tablespoonful of sugar. Pour on one cup of boiling water, and cool. Or take hot for a cold, after retiring. Flaxseed Lemonade. Pour one quart of boiling water over four tablespoonfuls of whole flaxseed, and steep three hours. Strain and sweeten to taste, and add the juice of two lemons. Add a little more water if the liquid seem too thick. This is soothing in colds. Irish-Moss Lemonade. Soak, pick over, and wash one quarter of a cup of Irish moss. Pour on one pint of boiling water. Heat to the boiling-point, but not boil and keep it at that temperature half an hour. Strain, and squeeze into it the juice of one lemon, or enough to give it an acid taste. Sweeten to taste. Add acid phosphate in place of the lemon, if preferred. Wine Whey. Boil one cup of new milk, and add one cup of wine. Let it stand on the back of the stove five minutes. Strain, and sweeten the whey. The whey, or water, of milk contains the sugar, salt, and other saline bodies necessary for digestion and the repair of the mineral part of the body. Herb Teas. Pour one cup of boiling water over one tablespoonful of the he.rbn. Cover the bowl, set it over the teakettle, and Feeding the Patient. 421 steep ten minutes. Sweeten if desired. Mullein tea is good for inflammation of the lungs ; Chamomile tea, for sleeplessness ; Calamus and Catnip tea, for colds and infants' colic ; Cinnamon tea, for hemorrhages ; Water- j melon-seed and Pumpkin- seed tea, for strangury and summer complaint. A few sprigs of sage, bumet, balm, and sorrel, half a lemon., sliced, and three pints of boiling water, sweetened to taste, and covered closely until cold, makes an agreeable drink for a fever patient. Another Condition in sickness occurs when, after long- continued, prostrating, or rapidly wasting disease', the sys- tem demands immediate nourishment to supply that waste, or when there is a lack of nutrition from any cause. Food that contains the most nourishment in the most easily as- similated form is now needed ; but the physician should always be consulted as to the food suitable during the dif- ferent diseases. Liquid food is most suitable, and should be food as well as drink. In nearly all cases of fever milk is given when the patient can take it. Two or three grains of pepsin in a cup of milk or broth facilitate its digestion. In typhoid fever milk has often proved of great value, and is now generall}' recommended by the medical faculty in all cases of scarlet fever, nervous disorder, and all diseases arising from imperfect nutrition. It keeps up the strength of the patient, acts well upon the stomach, soothes the in- testines, and promotes sleep. It should be taken slowly to prevent the curdling in a dense mass which may occur if too , much be taken at once. A pint of hot milk taken slowly, j every four hours, will often check the most violent diar- ! rhcea and d}*sentery. It should never be boiled, only \ scalded. Eggnog or broth, meat broth, farina and oatmeal gruel, and port wine jelly, are all suitable at such times ; but beef juice and tea are most generally used by physicians. They afford a fluid and easily assimilated form of food, and have a remarkable power of restoring the vigorous action of the heart, and dissipating the sense of exhaustion following 422 The Boston Cook Book. severe, prolonged exertion. When taken alone, they are stimulating rather than nutritive, and a patient would soon starve if he did not have the addition of the fibrine of the meat or of some farinaceous food, like bread crumbs or oatmeal. Beef Essence and Beef Tea. Beef essence is the pure juice of the meat. This is given where a patient needs much nourishment in a small com- pass. Beef tea is the juice of the meat diluted with water. It is a mistake to think that any beef because it is lean or cheap is good enough for beef tea. It will do for the soup-kettle, but not for those who are ill. Meat for beef tea should be lean, juicy, and of good flavor. Every par- ticle of fat, skin, and membrane must be removed. The top of the round and the back and middle of the rump con- tain the most and the best-flavored juice. It costs more per pound than some other pieces ; but as it yields nearly double the amount of juice, it is really cheaper. The ten- derloin is often recommended for sick persons. It should never be used for beef tea, as it contains very little juice and lacks flavor. When the tender fibre of the meat is desired, it may be broiled, and served with the juice from some tougher steak. Broiling is the quickest, and sometimes the most palatable, way of preparing both essence and tea in an emergency. Drawing and heating the meat and juice is best where a little nourishment is to be given often, and where all the elements of the meat are needed. Soaking in cold water, then straining, and heating the juice only, is the most economical way, as more than twice the usual amount of juice may be obtained by adding more water when the meat has not been heated. The albuminous juices of meat coagulate at 160 ; if the tea be allowed to boil, they become hard, and settle almost immediately when served. Many make the mistake of straining the tea, or leaving the sediment untouched. If Beef Essence. 423 the tea be heated just enough to make it palatable, it will hold the juices in solution, not separated, and will be thick, and of the color of chocolate, and much more palatable and nutritious than when boiled. Broiled Beef Essence. Broil half a pound of round steak one or two minutes, or until the juice will flow. Cut it into small pieces. Squeeze the juice into a bowl placed over warm water. Salt, and serve without reheating. Or pour it over a slice of hot dry toast Broiled Beef Tea. Add half a cup of boiling water to the meat after broiling as above. Bottled Beef Essence. Put two pounds of round steak, cut in small pieces, into a jar without water. Place the jar, covered closely, on a trivet in a kettle of cold water. Heat gradual!}-, and keep it not quite at the boiling-point for two hours, or till the meat is white. Strain, pressing the meat to obtain all the juice ; season with salt. Or place the jar in a moderate oven for three hours. The liquid thus obtained contains all the nutritive parts of the meat. It may be kept in the refrigerator, and a small portion heated (not boiled), as wanted. Or it may be made into beef tea b}~ diluting with boiling water. Beef essence given ice cold is sometimes more agreeable to a fever patient. Bottled Beef Tea. Add one cup of cold water to the meat in the jar, and make as above. When the patient can take a little solid food, add two tablespoonfuls of stale bread crumbs to the beef tea, or mix with it oat- meal gruel, or add one teaspoonful of finely chopped raw meat. Stewed Beef Essence. Cut half a pound of round steak into small pieces, season with one saltspoonful of salt, press it with a pestle or potato-masher, and let it stand in a covered bowl half an hour. Pour off the juice, and heat, but do not boil it. Serve immediately, without straining. As the salt without water will draw out only a small portion of the juice from the meat, a beef tea may be made 424 The Boston Cook Book. from the scraps of meat left by adding one cup of cold water to the meat, and letting it stand two hours. Then strain and heat the liquid ; or the scraps of meat may be put in the soup-kettle. Economical Beef Tea. Cut one pound of juicy rump steak into small pieces, and add one cup of cold water. Let it stand in a covered bowl several hours. When ready to serve, squeeze the meat and put it into another bowl. Strain the juice already obtained, add salt to taste, and heat it just enough to be palatable, but not enough to curdle it. Serve at once, while hot. If it be heated over the fire, stir constantly, and take it off the moment it looks thick and is hot ; or heat it carefully over hot water. Add another cup of cold water to the scraps of meat, and soak again. Often the third cup of tea may be obtained from the same meat. This is excellent for hard-working people to take, in times of great exhaustion, before a hearty meal. It is one of the best and most easily prepared forms of soup or meat tea. Dr. Mitchell's Beef Tea. One pound of lean beef, cut fine ; add one pint of cold water and five drops of muri- atic acid. Put into a glass jar. Place the jar in a pan of water at 110, and keep it at that temperature for two hours. Then strain through thick muslin until the meat is dry, or press the juice out by squeezing. The acid makes the tea agreeable to a patient with fever, and also aids in drawing out the juices of the meat. Haw Beef Sandwiches. Scrape fine a small piece of fresh, juicy, tender, raw beef. Season highly with salt and pepper.. Spread it on thin slices of bread, put them together like a sandwich, and cut into small squares or diamonds. This will often tempt a patient who could not otherwise take raw meat. The sandwiches are sometimes made more palatable by toasting them slightly. Eggnog. ~ Beat the yollc of one egg ; add one table- spoonful of sugar, and beat to a cream. Add one table- spoonful of wine or brandy, and half a cup of milk. Beat the white of the egg to a froth, and stir in lightly. Omit Beef Tea. 425 the milk when more condensed nourishment is required, or the wine, if not approved by the physician. It is more palatable when made with the milk. Whipped cream may be substituted for the milk. In many cases it is desirable not to have the white beaten to a froth, as it causes wind in the stomach. Portable Beef Tea. Two pounds of beef, cut fine, and half a box of gelatine. Soak together in one pint of cold water one hour, squeezing often. Heat to nearly the boiling-point. Strain, pressing all the juice from the meat, fill a glass jar with the juice, place the jar in water, and heat till the water outside the jar boils. Seal while hot. Dissolve two teaspoonfuls of the above prepara- tion in half a cup of boiling water, add a few grains of salt, and serve at once. A convenient form of food for travellers. Broiled Beef Pulp. Scrape raw beef to a pulp, make it into small cakes, and broil as steak. Season with salt and a few grains of cayenne pepper, and serve hot. Egg Tea and Coffee. Beat the yolk of one egg ; add one tablespoonful of sugar, and beat to a cream ; add one cup of tea or coffee, either hot or cold, and half a cup of cream. Stir in lighth* the beaten white of the egg, and serve at once. Egy and Beef Tea Add one cup of hot beef tea to the egg, beaten as above. Dishes for Convalescence. When the crisis of disease is past, the system needs gradual but complete nutrition, and the appetite is clamor- ous, fickle, or perhaps altogether wanting. Then is the time most critical for the patient, and most trying to the tact, skill, and patience of the nurse. Many a person has been carried safely through a long and distressing illness," only to succumb at last to injudicious feeding, because of the nurse's ignorance or his own indiscretion. When solid food can be safely given, the patient may take it in any of the forms given in the preceding rules. 426 Tlu Boston Cook Book. The following dishes may also be used : broiled squab, venison, chicken, chop, steak, salmon, chicken panada, boiled halibut, roast beef, mutton, cream toast, eggs, and oysters (except when especially forbidden by the physi- cian), sweetbreads, baked potatoes, asparagus, onions, macaroni, custards, Charlotte Russe, snow pudding, ice- cream, sherbet, blanc-mange, Bavarian cream, sponge cake, simple puddings, stewed fruits, and many others, receipts for which will be found as indicated in the table of lessons in the Nurse's Course. Broiling for the Invalid (Broiled Steak or Venison). Wipe with a clean wet cloth. Grease the gridiron with a bit of the fat. Broil over a clear fire, turning as often as you can count ten. Cook four minutes if the steak be about one inch thick ; not longer, as further cooking dries up the juices and destroys some of the nutritive qualities. Be careful to serve on a hot platter, and season with salt, and with pepper and butter if approved. Birds, chicken breasts, fish, and chops are better when seasoned, and wrapped in buttered paper, and then broiled, as this pre- vents them from burning or becoming too dry. Birds, fish, and chops are better, and more conveniently eaten, if boned before broiling. Broiled Steak, JVo. 2. Broil half a pound of round steak and one slice of tenderloin. With a meat or lemon squeezer squeeze the juice from the round over the tender- loin. Season, and serve hot. Chicken Panada. One cup of cold roasted or boiled chicken, pounded to a paste. Add half a cup of stale bread crumbs, and enough boiling chicken liquor to make it a thick gruel. Salt to taste. Boil one minute, and serve hot. When the chicken has been roasted, boil the bones to obtain the liquor. Chicken Custard. Scald together one cup of strong chicken stock and one cup of cream. Pour it over the well-beaten yolks of three eggs, and cook in a double boiler till slightly thickened. Salt to taste, and serve cool in custard cups. Invalid Cookery. 42 J Crackers and Orange Marmalade. Toast three crack- ers slightly. Dip them quickly into boiling salted water. Spread with a little butter, and put a layer of orange mar- malade, or any other jelly or preserve, between them. Set them in the oven a few minutes before serving. Racahout des Arabes. (Mrs. Devercux.) % pound best French chocolate. I % pound arrowroot. 1 pound rice flour. j*2 pound loaf sugar, sifted. These materials are to be thoroughly mixed and rubbed together. A dessert spoonful of this mixture should be slightty wet with milk or water, then stirred into one pint of boiling milk, and boiled five minutes. This is excellent food for invalids or convalescents. Serve hot, as a bever- age ; or make much thicker, to be eaten cold as a delicate pudding. Laban. (Miss Parloa. ) One quart of new milk, into which stir one tdblespoonful of yeast. Let it stand in a cool place to harden, which will take from three to twenty- four hours. When hard, take a tdblespoonful of the mix- ture, and stir it into a quart of new milk, and set away to harden. This is " Laban." It should be eaten with sugar and cream. If a constant supply be needed, reserve one tablespoonful each day for the next preparation. This re- ceipt is furnished by a lady who obtained it in Syria, and who advises a second or a third trial if the first attempt be unsuccessful. The dish is often palatable when the stomach is too weak for almost any other solid food. This is similar to Koumiss, or fermented mare's milk. Ash Cake. (Mrs. Henderson.) Wet corn meal, salted to taste, with enough cold water to make a soft dough. Let it stand half an hour, or longer. Mould into a cake one or two inches thick, as } T OU prefer. Place it on a clean spot on the hearth, and cover with wood ashes. Bake from half to three quarters of an hour. Wipe before eating. The alkaline properties left by the ashes in the crust render it especially good for dyspeptics with an acid stomach. 428 The Boston Cook Book. Gluten Gems. v i ^ 2 cups gluten. % teaspoonf ul salt. 2 teaspoonfuls baking-powder. 2 tablespoonfuls sugar. legg. 2 cups water or milk. Bake in very hot buttered gem pans, in a hot oven, half an hour. Diet for Infants and Young Children. Let very young children have mother's milk above every- thing else ; but if this be impossible, dissolve one ounce of sugar of milk or loaf sugar in three fourths of a pint of boiling water, and mix, as required for use, with an equal quantity of fresh cow's milk. Give it, slight!} 7 warm, from a sweet, clean bottle. Sugar of milk is quite ex- pensive, but it is very much better for an infant than cane sugar. Teething children should have the milk from but one cow ; the cow should not be fed on green corn nor sour apples, as these produce acidity in the milk. A little thin, well-boiled oatmeal, or farina gruel, may be added to the milk. For summer complaint, use scalded (not boiled) milk, prepared flour, roasted rice, boiled, mashed, and thinned with milk ; also rice jelly or barley gruel. Avoid all purely starchy gruels, like arrowroot, sago, and cornstarch, upon which many children are fed to death. For constipation, a little salt added to cow's milk is often beneficial ; also gruel made from prepared corn meal and wheat flour, and oatmeal gruel. For older children use oatmeal, hominy or farina mush, and ripe fruit. Prepared Flour (for Infants} . Tie one .pint of flour in a stout cloth, put it into boiling water, and let it boil three hours. Turn out the flour ball, and scrape off the gluten which will be found in a mass on the outside of the ball and is not desirable. The inside will prove a dry powder, which is very astringent. Grate a tablespoonful of this powder from the ball as wanted ; wet it in cold Diet for Children. 429 milk or water, "and stir it into one cup of boiling milk. Boil five minutes. Add a little salt. This is excellent for teething children. If they be troubled with constipation, use one quarter part corn meal and three quarters wheat flour, boil as above, and stir some of the grated lump into boiling cream and water, using one part cream to six parts water. For an infant the preparation should be thin enough to be taken from a bottle. Flour, after being cooked in this way and then reduced to a finely divided form, loses its adhesive quality ; and the particles are more easily separated and digested. Children and growing persons need the most nutritious food, and plent} 7 of it at regular intervals ; but nothing stimulating nor exciting. The}' should be given, and com- pelled to take, sufficient time for eating ; and should be taught to masticate everything slowly and thoroughly. They should eat milk ; whole-wheat and cornmeal bread ; oatmeal, farina, and hominy mush ; plenty of ripe fruit raw, and stewed fruit sweetened ; beef, mutton, veni- son, and poultry, either roasted, broiled, or boiled ; baked potatoes, and asparagus ; green peas, beans, and corn, if every hull be first broken or cut ; eggs, omelets, and cus- tards ; plain sponge cake ; ice-cream, if not too hard and cold, and eaten slowly ; simple fruit and bread puddings ; fruit, tapioca, and farina ; plain gingerbread and molasses cookies ; whole-wheat cookies and wafers. Children should avoid hot bread and griddle-cakes ; fried meats or cakes or doughnuts ; highly seasoned food ; rich gravies ; rich pastry and cake ; pickles, pre- serves, all stimulants such as tea or coffee ; raisins, un- less cooked three hours and stoned ; sago, arrowroot, and other purely starchy foods, except when combined with milk, eggs, or fruit, and eaten with sugar and cream ; and especiall}' veal and pork. Veal is an immature meat, lack- ing in nourishment ; and of the free use of pork, apart from the question of the trichinae, a majority of physi- cians believe that it is largely responsible for the forms of 43O The Boston Cook Book. scrofulous disease that have so undermined the health of civilized nations. What are termed the " fancies" of delicate persons, especially children, are often natural instincts, pointing out what is beneficial to the system, or the reverse. All children have a fondness for sugar, which should be grati- fied in moderation rather than repressed. Their desire for it is natural, else it would not have been placed in the milk which forms their only nourishment in infancy. But candy, rich preserves, and cake are not the best form of sweets for children. Pure block sugar or maple sugar is better than any form of candy. It should never be allowed be- tween meals, but may be given occasionally as a part of the dessert. The habit of munching candy between meals destroys the appetite, disturbs the digestion, and is the cause of much illness among children. Children troubled with worms should avoid sugar, preserves, and green vegetables. Milk should enter large!} 7 into the diet of children. It con- tains caseine, or flesh-forming material ; cream and sugar, which are heat producers ; mineral salts, for the bony structure ; and water, as a solvent for all the other materials necessary in nutrition. It should be used with discretion, however ; not drunk immoderately, but taken slowly as food after the pattern given by nature. Milk as taken is a fluid ; but as soon as it meets the acid of the gastric juice, it is changed to a soft, curdy, cheese-like substance, and then must be digested, and the stomach is overtasked if too much be taken at once. A large glass of milk swal- lowed suddenly will form in the stomach a lump of dense, cheesy curd, which may even prove fatal to a weak stomach. Under the action of the stomach this cheesy mass will turn over and over like a heavy weight ; and as the gastric juice can only attack its surface, it digests very slowly. But this same milk, taken slowly, or with dry toast, light rolls, or soft dry porridge, forms a porous lump through which the gastric juice can easily pass, and which breaks up every tuce the stomach turns it over. Milk should be slightly Diet for Invalids. 43 1 salted, and eaten with bread stuffs or sipped by the spoonful. Cow's milk produces less heat than human milk ; a child would grow thin upon it unless a little sugar were added. "NVheat flour has such an excess of heat-producing mate- rial as would fatten a child unduly, and should have cow's milk added to it to reduce its fattening power. Hints on Diet for Invalids. Vanilla should not be used as a flavoring in food for sick people. It is medicinal ; and all medicines are more or less poisonous, and are not to be taken as food. Pepper is allowable when a slight stimulant is needed. It should be white or cayenne pepper, as these are less irri- tating than black pepper. Boiled onions are soothing to the mucous membrane. \ In inflammation of the stomach they are often helpful when a piece of white bread could not be digested. Broiled or roasted squab, venison, chicken, mutton, and beef, in the order given, are the most easily assim- ilated meats. Game, being rich in phosphates, is valuable for invalids. I Broiled bacon, dusted with cayenne, is an easily digested form of fat. Tomatoes as an article of diet are considered by many physicians a remedy for dyspepsia and indigestion. Watery, green, or diseased potatoes should never be eaten. If there be only a small spot of decay, it taints / the whole potato. Young potatoes are very indigestible. Eggs for sick people should be taken raw. When beaten with cold milk, they are more quickly absorbed. If cooked, they should be either very soft, or hard enough to be easily crumbled to a powder, as in any intermediate stage the albumen is tough instead of brittle, and being tough is insoluble by the gastric juice ; these insoluble portions are often delayed in the stomach or intestines till they putrefy, and the sulphuretted hydrogen and ammonia evolved be- come poisonous to the intestinal crjial. 432 The Boston Cook Book. Soups which have in them cream or milk are better for invalids than those rich in gelatine. Cream of Celery and Potage a la Eeine are especially suitable. Strong Bouillon is adapted to those suffering from hemorrhoids or any disease of the rectum, as there is no solid waste. Dyspeptics should avoid anything which they (not others) cannot digest. There are so many causes for and forms of dyspepsia, that it is impossible to prescribe one and the same diet for all. Nothing is more disagreeable or useless than to be cautioned against eating this or that, because your neighbor "So-and-so" cannot eat such things. If we would all study the nature and digestion of food, and remember that air and exercise are as essential as food in promoting good health, we could easily decide upon the diet best suited to our individual needs. The diabetic should abstain from sugar and anything which is converted into sugar in digestion, such as all starchy foods, fine wheat flour, rice, macaroni, tapioca, liver, potatoes, beets, carrots, turnips, parsnips, peas, beans, very old cheese, sweet omelets, custards, jellies, starchy nuts, sweet sauces, wine> and liquors. He may eat oysters, all kinds of fish, meat, poultry, and game, soups without any starchy thickening, lettuce, cucumbers, watercresses, dandelions, young onions, cold slaw, olives, cauliflower, spinach, cabbage, string beans, ripe fruit of all kinds without sugar, cream, butter, milk sparingly, gluten, flour, oily nuts freely salted, eggs, coffee, and cocoa. The corpulent should abstain from fat as well as sugar and starch. A diet of whole- wheat, milk, vegetables, fruits, and lean meat will produce only a normal amount 01 fatness ; while an excess of sweets, acids, spices shortening keeps the system in an unhealthful condition. Those who can digest fine flour, pastry, sugar, and become loaded with fat, but are neither strong nor vigorous Thin people with weak digestion should also avoid suc\ food ; for thin people are often kept thin by the same food which makes others fat. If they cannot digest the starch, Diet for the Gouty , etc. 433 butter, and fine flour, the system is kept in a feverish, dys- peptic state ; the}' become nervous or go into consumption for no other reason than that life is burned out by a diet which only feeds the fire and does not renew the tissues. " Men dig their graves with their teeth; not only by drinking whiskey and using tobacco, but by eating food loaded down with inflammatory materials." The bilious and gouty should eat sparingly of brown -. meats, cheese, eggs, beans, peas, or food which is rich in albuminoids. A certain amount of albuminoid or nitro- genized food is requisite for tissue growth and qepair ; more being required for growing persons and the conva- lescent than for health}' adults. Most Americans are in- clined to eat more albuminoid food than is required. It gives a sensation of energ}', of being equal to work, which is ver}' pleasant. But when we have " too much of a good thing," more than is needed for repair of tissue, this sur- plus of albuminous material is imperfectly oxidized, the blood is laden with waste r and biliousness or gout is the result. Fish gives less albuminoid waste than meat. People who are inclined to constipation should eat x whole-wheat, rye, and corn bread and mushes, ripe fruit, berries, green corn, vegetables, beef, mutton, poultry, milk, cream, and butter ; and should avoid fried or greasy food, hot bread, rich cake, veal, pork, or anything whic'- has so much woody fibre or cellulose ohat it only irritates the digestive canal, such as the outer bran of wheat, coarse oatmeal, etc. Those with consumptive tendencies should eat whole some, easily digested and assimilated food, with plenty of fat, not in the indigestible form that it takes when mixed with starch, but as in cream, sweet butter, fat of roast or boiled meat, the fat, but not the lean, of ham and corned beef, oil, salads, corn-meal, oatmeal, etc. The diet of people who are well slnuld be governed largely by their age, occupation, and exercise. Adults should have a variety of wholesome food cooked in different ways. Aged people should have a diet more like that of 28 434 The Boston Cook Book. children. If the occupation tax the muscular strength, use muscle-making food ; not wholly meat, as many labor- ing people are inclined to think, but grains, peas, beans, cabbage, milk, cheese, eggs, whole- wheat bread, and chocolate, with a small amount of beef, mutton, and poultiy. Students and brain-workers need more of brain- producing and less of muscle-making food. Brain food must contain phosphorus, which is found largely in oysters, eggs, fish, lean meat, wheat, peas, beans, and fruit. Those who are engaged in sedentary occupations, who take little exercise and live in close, confined rooms, should eat only the most easily digested food. People who engage in regular active labor, who take plenty of exercise in the open air, cultivate a cheerful, happy disposition, live temperately in every way, and have naturally strong digestive organs, can eat any kind of wholesome food that has been properly cooked, and have no consciousness of a stomach or any visceral organs ; and appetite, unless previously impaired, is their best guide. If the digestive organs be not strong naturally, such u mode of life as the above will tend to make them so, more than any amount of drugs or quack medicines. How to Do It. 435 MISCELLANEOUS HINTS. To Chop Suet. Cut into small pieces and remove the membrane. Sprinkle with flour, and chop in a cold place to prevent its becoming soft and sticky. To Clean Currants. Put them in a squash strainer, and sprinkle thickly with flour. Rub them well until they are separated, and the flour, grit, and fine stems have passed through the strainer. Then place the strainer and currants in a pan of water, and wash thoroughly. Lift the strainer and currants together, and change the water till clear. Drain bet\v ^eh towels, and pick over carefully. Dry them in a sunny place or between towels, but do not harden them by putting them into the oven. To Stone Raisins. Pour boiling water over them, and let them stand in it five or ten minutes. Drain, and rub each raisin between the thumb and finger till the seeds come out clean, then cut or tear apart, or chop, if wanted very fine. Core Apples before paring, and there is less danger of their breaking. Egg Shells. Wash eggs as soon as they come from the market, and then the shells may be used in clearing coffee, soup, etc. To JBoil a Pudding in a Cloth. Wring strong cotton cloth out of boiling water, and spread over a bowl. Sprinkle with flour, fill with the pudding, draw the cloth together, and tie tightly, then flour near the opening. Plunge into boiling water, and keep the water boiling during the time for cooking. Add boiling water as needed, and replenish the fire often. Meringues should be put on puddings after they are slightly cool, as, if the pudding be hot, the egg will liquefy. 436 The Boston Cook Book. Moulds should be greased for any steamed mixture ; wet in cold water for jelly , creams, etc. ; and neither wet nor greased if to be lined with cake. A mould of jelly will cool quicker if placed in a pan of ice water or snow than in the ice-chest. Candied or Crystallized Fruit or Nuts. (Mrs. Camp- bell) Boil one cup of granulated sugar and one cup of boiling water together for half an hour. Then dip the point of a skewer into the syrup and then into cold water. If the thread formed break off brittle, the syrup is ready. The syrup must never be stirred, and must boil slowly, not furiously. When done, set the saucepan in boiling water, or pour the syrup into a bowl placed in hot water, to keep the syrup from candying. Take the prepared fruit or nuts on the point of a large needle or fine skewer, dip them into the syrup, and then lay them on a dish, which has been lightly buttered or oiled ; or string them on a thread, and after dipping in the s}Tup suspend them by the thread. When oranges are used, divide them into eighths, and wipe all moisture. Cherries should be stoned. English walnuts are especially nice prepared in this way. To Blanch Almonds and other Nuts. Remove the shells, cover with boiling water, and let them stand till the dark skin will rub off easily. Then put them in cold water, rub off the skins, and dry between towels. Corned Meat. Fresh meat may be kept some time by corning it slightly. Wipe carefully, and remove any parts that are not sweet and fresh, then rub all over thickly with salt. Or make a brine with rock salt and cold water ; use salt enough to float the meat, then cover, and put a heavy weight on the cover to keep the meat under the brine. Three days' time is sufficient for corned meat. To Make Paper Boxes. These can be obtained, in a variety of forms, from the confectioner ; but plain ones may be made in this way. Take a piece of stiff white paper, five inches square. Find the centre of the square by folding two opposite corners together and creasing lightly in the middle, then open and fold the other two in How to Do It. 437 the same way. Fold the two sides over till they meet in the centre, then fold the two ends. Open, and cut in the fold down to the line at each end, but not on the side. Fold the sides over on the outside about one quarter of an inch ; then fold the middle part of the end in the same way. Then turn the ends of the side pieces round behind the end, and let them meet in the middle, and fold the edge of the end over them. Fasten the ends with a few stitches or with paste. A border of fancy perforated paper may be pasted on the edge. A Pastry Bag. One third of a yard of yard-wide rubber sheeting will make three bags one foot square. Fold two opposite corners together, stitch along the edge, and make a triangular bag. Cut off at the point to make an opening large enough to insert the end of a tin tube. It is convenient to have three bags, with openings of different sizes, one for eclairs, one for lady fingers, and one for frosting. The tube for eclairs is three fourths of an inch wide at the small end ; that for lady fingers, three eighths of an inch ; and the frosting tubes, of various sizes, some of them quite small. Fit the tube into the opening, and fill the bag with the mixture. Draw the edges together, and twist the top tightly to keep out the air. Hold the bag in the left hand, with the tube close to the place where the mixture is to be spread ; press with the right, and guide the mixture into any shape desired. A slight pressure is sufficient. When no longer needed, wash the bags in cold (never in hot) water, and dry carefully. Vanilla Sugar. One pound of lump sugar and one ounce of Mexican vanilla beans. Cut the beans in small pieces, and pound in a mortar, with the sugar, till fine like flour. Sift through a fine strainer, pound the remain- der again, and sift till all is fine. Keep in a tightly corked bottle. Use a tablespoonful for a quart of ice- cream. Or cut the beans into small pieces, and split them that the seeds may be exposed. Put an ounce of the beans in a small jar with a pound of sugar. Sift the sugar as required, and use as above ; add more sugar, 438 The Boston Cook Book. keep closely covered, and use as long as there is any flavor in the sugar. Canned Fruit Juices. Fruit juices may be kept for a long time by canning the same as whole fruit. They are convenient for water ices and summer beverages. Mash the fruit, and rub the pulp through a fine sieve. Mix about three pounds of sugar with one quart of fruit juice and pulp. Fill Mason's jars with the s}TUp, cover, and place in a heater with cold water to come nearly tc the top of the jar. Let the water boil half an hour, then fill each jar to the brim, seal, and cool in the water. To Mould Ice Cream. Ice cream is more attractive, when served, if moulded, and if one has no fancy moulds, the freezer can will always give the round shape. If moulds are used, the cream should be packed into them closely, filling every crevice. The cover should always fit over and not into the mould. Bind a buttered cloth round the edge of the cover, or lay a buttered paper over the top of the cream, or coat the edge with butter or melted suet to fill all the crevices and keep out the salt water. Bury the moulds in ice and salt ; a little less salt than is used in freezing. Cover the ice with wet carpet- ing. The cream will keep hard several hours, but it is well to examine it occasionally, and when the mould floats, draw off the water and add more ice and salt. When ready to serve, wash off the butter and salt from the mould, lift off the cover and paper, and turn the mould over a platter. The warmth of the room will soon melt the cream sufficiently for the mould to be lifted ; if not, then lay a hot cloth on the mould, or dip the mould quickly in warm water. Salt water cannot get into the mould if full, but often when cream is left over and you replace it in the mould only partially filled, the water will get in. To keep Lettuce, Celery, Watercress, etc. Wash them and nip off any part that shows signs of decay. Rinse each leaf separately to be sure it is free from grit, lay the inner leaves, such as may be used for a salad in regular order in a wet napkin, and put them away in a cold place. Break up the tough outside leaves, and cook them until tender in boiling water, as you do any greens r The Dining-Room. 439 THE DINING-ROOM. . THE subjects of " The Arrangement of the Table/ " Dinner-Giving," and "Bills of Fare" have been fully treated in other cook books, and it would be difficult to add to what has already been said. Hints on garnishing, carving, and appropriate combinations of dishes have been given in connection with many of these receipts ; and want of space forbids anything more than some general rules. Above all things, attempt nothing in style or expense be}"ond what you can well afford. There is no more paltry ambition, nothing that contains more certainly the seeds of unhappiness and disaster, than such a desire for "empty show," which all sensible people must despise. Let your breakfasts be of wholesome and substantial food. The system needs nourishment in the morning after the long, unbroken fast of the night. The practice of tak- ing only a cup of tea or coffee with hot biscuit, and possi- bly pie or doughnuts, gives a very poor foundation for the morning's labor, which is and should be the hard labor of the day. Milk, coffee, or chocolate, mushes, fruits, pota- toes or bread, meat, fish, or eggs, in some of their simple and digestible combinations should form the basis of the breakfast. The morning meal should be taken as soon as possible after rising. Any prolonged bodily exertion or exposure to the early morning air, before the stomach is fortified by food, is now condemned by the majority of physicians. The midday and evening meal may vary with the occu- pations and habits of the family ; but a regular hour for eating should be observed, whether the more substantial meal come at noon or night ; and if at night sufficient time should be allowed for digestion to be completed before 44O The Boston Cook Book. sleeping. A supper of cold bread and cake or pie is neither appetizing nor satisfying for those who have been hard at work through the day. u Something warm or heart}", something for a relish," every man craves for supper. Toast, brewis, warm tea-cakes, cocoa, oatmeal, warmed-over potatoes, cold meat, made dishes, eggs, oysters, etc., are far better than the common supper of sweets. Every one may have clean, if not fine, table linen. An under covering of cotton flannel or felt made to fit the table is desirable, as it prevents noise, and a linen cloth may be laid over it more smoothly than over the bare table. Thin tablecloths remain fresh longer if stiffened slightly with very thin starch, but heav} r damask requires no stif- fening. Keep the cloths in a drawer large enough to hold them without much folding. Avoid making many folds in ironing, and in handling them fold always in the creases. In laying the cloth, place the centre of it in the centre of the table, and have the folds straight with the edges of the table. Crease the cloth round the edge of the table, that it may drape smoothly. Lay a plate, right side up, for each person. If the table be long, place one plate at each end, and those at the sides opposite each other. Place the napkin at the left of the plate, and at dinner place a piece of bread between the folds of the napkin. Place the knives, butter plate, and tumbler at the right of each plate, the forks at the left, and the soup and dessert spoons in front, the handles toward the right hand, the number of each depending upon the number of courses. The fruit dish or flowers should occupy the centre of the table ; the salt and pepper, butter, jelly, pickles, etc., at the corners. Place the various dishes on the table in regular order, straight with the table, or, if at an angle, let there be some uniformity, never helter-skelter. The cups, plates, and dishes for hot food should be heated in hot water or in a warming-oven. Use a spoon to place ice in delicate glasses or pitchers ; or put in the water first, and then the ice, to avoid breaking. Table Etiquette. 441 Do not let the table become disordered during the meal. The dishes, plates, etc., should be removed noiselessly, one by one ; and never piled one upon another, after the hasty fashion of second-class hotels. If the serving be done by the host and hostess, it is more convenient for them to sit at the sides of the table ; the host serving the substantial dishes, and the hostess the tea or coffee, vegetables or entrees, puddings, and the dessert Where there are servants to do the waiting, the host and hostess may sit at the ends of the table, as there they can command a better view of their guests, and see that they are properly served. The hostess should serve the soup, salad, dessert, and coffee ; the host, the fish and meat ; and the servants, the vegetables and entrees. At a dinner served a la Russe, the fruit and flowers only are placed upon the table, the several courses being served from the side. Many volumes have been written upon table etiquette. Some of the suggestions they contain are practical ; others useless. What is considered proper at one place or time is not approved under other circumstances ; and those desirous of observing the usages of good society are often sorely perplexed to keep pace with the variations of fashion. But if, instead of following mere arbitrary rules from the low standpoint of " style," we would take for our guidance the best definition of true politeness as given by Dr. Watts, " Love manifested in an easy and graceful manner," we need never be at a loss as to " what to do and what not to do." A moment's observation will show the strictness of etiquette maintained in the family in which you may be a guest, for instance, whether the servants are expected to take entire charge of serving everything, or whether the family reserve to themselves something of the happy privilege of courtesy and thought for each other ; and you may forget with them, in the mutual interchange of the proper attentions, that freezing formality which sometimes forbids that you should seem to know or care how your neighbor fares. " Think not of 442 The Boston Cook Book. yourself, but of what will contribute most to another's com- fort or convenience," remembering that for the time being utter deference should be paid to the evident arrangement of the house at which you are. This is tjie safest stand- ard for table etiquette, as well as for good manners every- where. No selfish person can ever be truly polite. Children should be carefully trained in table manners as soon as they are old enough to come to the table, and accustomed to perfect politeness ; then there will be no fear of mis- haps, nor special training needed for " compan} r ," nor any awkward habits to be overcome in later life. After a meal brush up any crumbs that may have fallen, lest they be trodden into the carpet. Collect the knives, forks, and spoons by themselves. Put any food that ma,y be used again on small dishes, never on the dishes used in serving. Scrape the dishes, empty and rinse the cups, and pack neatly near where they are to be washed. Brush the crumbs from the cloth, instead of shaking it, then fold and put it away carefully. Never pile nice china or any other dishes in the dishpan. Begin with a pan half filled with hot soapy water. Keep the soap in a shaker made for that purpose, or in a tin cup ; make a strong lather in the cup, and use as needed. Never leave the soap in the dishpan to waste and stick to the dishes. Wash glasses first. Slip them in sidewa} T s, so that the hot water will touch outside and inside at once, and then there will be no danger of breaking from unequal expansion. Wash one at a time, and wipe instantly with- out draining or rinsing. Wash the silver and wipe at once, as it keeps bright longer if wiped out of hot soapy water. Keep a cake of silver soap at hand, and rub each piece of silver as soon as discolored. Then wash the china, begin- ning with the cups, saucers, pitchers, and least greasy dishes, and changing the water as soon as cool or greasj 7 . Place these dishes in the rinsing-pan with the cups inside up and plates resting on the edges, that the3 r may be scalded inside as well as outside, and drain quickly. Scald and wipe immediately. Kitchen Utensils. 443 " Dave's " method of washing dishes, though not in general use, has been proved satisfactory. Place a pan of cold water between the washing and rinsing pans. After washing and wiping the glasses and silver, add more hot water, and wash the china first in the hot suds, then dip each dish instantly into the cold water, and stand it on the edge to drain in the rinsing-pan. The cold water rinses off the hot suds, and the sudden change of tempera- ture dries the dishes almost iustantty ; and they require little or no wiping. They will be neither " sticky nor I streaky." Where there is only one woman for " cook, waitress, hostess, and kitchen girl," it is well, after the table is \ cleared and the dishes neatly packed, to wash first the j kitchen dishes, and pots and kettles ; then with clean water and towels wash and wipe the table dishes. The hands will be left in much better condition than when the pots and kettles are washed last. The Care of Kitchen Utensils. A complete list of kitchen utensils is not given in this work, as the variety and number needed will be largely determined by circumstances. There are several utensils, which are not perhaps in general use, which lessen the labor of cooking, and add much to the attractiveness of food prepared by their aid. There is nothing that makes so much difference between ordinary and delicate cooking as a set of strainers. There should be one of very fine wire for sifting soda, spices, etc., and for straining custards and jellies ; others with meshes from one sixteenth to one eighth of an inch in diameter ; also a squash strainer and a colander. Ex- tension wire strainers are very convenient. Keep also a supply of strainer cloths, made from coarse crash or cheese cloth, zudjine napkin linen. A set of oval tin moulds, a melon mould, and one or two fancy moulds are convenient for entrees, puddings, and jellies. 444 The Boston Cook Book. Other useful articles are Dover egy-beaters, large and small ; ordinary small wooden spoons and the larger per- forated ones ; a whip churn ; granite saucepans and stew- pans, holding from half a pint to six quarts ; double boilers; & wire basket for frying ; & potato slicer ; & fine wire broiler for toast, and two coarser ones for steak and fish ; a set of pantry bags and frosting tubes ; fancy vegetable cutters; a glass rolling-pin; and, above all, a small sharp-pointed knife^ made from the best steel, for paring potatoes, turnips, etc., and a set of tin measuring-cups holding half a pint, and divided into quarters and thirds. It is a mistake to have many large, unwieldy dishes. Small saucepans and small bowls are more convenient, and granite or agate ware is much lighter to handle and more easily kept clean than ironware. Buckets are convenient for keeping sugar and small quantities of flour. Glass jars or wide-mouthed bottles are best for nearly all groceries, such as rice, tapioca, meal, raisins, etc. They are easily cleansed, and the contents are plainly seen. They may be kept air-tight, or, if that be unnecessary, old jars not suit- able for canning ma} T be utilized. A refrigerator should be examined daily and kept thor- oughly clean. If a suitable brush cannot be had, a long stiff wire with a bit of cloth on the end should be used to clean the drain pipe. Pour boiling washing-soda water through it every other day, and do not forget to wash off the slime that adheres to the water pan. Fish, onions, cheese, any strong vegetables, lemons, or meat not per- fectly sweet, should not be kept in the same ice-box with milk or butter. Do not become wedded to the idea that dishes can only be washed in a sink. If your pantry or cookroom be some distance from your sink, and have a broad shelf or table in it, take your dishpan to the pantry, wash and wipe your dishes there, and in this way save a few of the unneces- sary steps which soon amount to miles with many weary housekeepers. Never wash a bread-board in an iron sink. The iron Care of Utensils. 445 will leave a black mark on the board, which it is difficult to remove. Wash the board on the table where you have used it ; use cold water, and scrub occasionally with sand soap. In scraping dough from the board, scrape with the grain of the wood, and hold the knife in a slanting direc- tion, to prevent roughening the surface of the board. Wash, and wipe dr}', and never let dough accumulate in the cracks. Have one board for bread and pastry, and keep it smooth. Use a smaller board for rolling crumbs and pounding ana cleaning meat and fish. A Dover egg-beater should never be left to soak in water, as the oil will be washed out of the gears and the beater be hard to turn ; or, if used again before it be dry, the oil and water will spatter into the beaten mixture. Use it with clean hands, and then the handle will require no washing. Wipe the wires with a damp cloth immedi- ately after using, dry thoroughly, and keep it well oiled. All dishes should be scraped before washing. A small wooden knife is best for this purpose. Bread and cake j bowls, or any dishes in which flour or eggs have been | used, are more easity cleaned if placed in cold water after j using, or washed immediately. Clear up as you work : it takes but a moment then, and saves much time and fatigue afterward. Never put pans and kettles half filled with water on the stove to soak. It only hardens whatever may have ad- hered to the kettle, and makes it much more difficult to clean. Keep them full of cold water, and soak them away from the heat. Kitchen knives and forks should never be placed in the dish water. Many err in thinking it is only the handles which should not be wet. The practice of putting the blades into a pitcher of very hot water is wrong, as the sudden expansion of the steel by the heat causes the han- dles to crack. Keep the knives out of the water, but wash thorough!} 7 with the dishcloth, rub them with mineral soap or brick dust, and wipe them dry. Keep them bright, and sharpen often on a sandstone. The disadvantage and 446 The Boston Cook Book. vexation of dull tools would be avoided if every woman would learn to use a whetstone, and where and when to apply a little oil. Milk will sour quickly if put into dishes which have not been scalded. They should first be washed in clear cold water, then in hot soapy water, then rinsed in clear boil- ing water, and wiped with a dry fresh towel. Do not for- get to scrape the seams and grooves of a double boiler. Ironware should be washed, outside as well as inside, in hot soapy water, rinsed in clean hot water, and wiped dry, not with the dishcloth, but with a dry towel. Dripping- ' pans, Scotch bowls, and other greasy dishes should be I scraped, and wiped with soft paper, which will absorb the grease. The paper will be found useful in kindling the fire, and is a great saving of water, which is sometimes an object. A tablespoonful of soda added to the water will facilitate the cleaning. Kitchen mineral soap or pumice stone may be used freely on all dishes. It will remove the stains from white knife handles, the brown substance that adheres to earthen or tin baking-dishes, and the soot which collects on pans and kettles used over a wood or kerosene fire. Tins should be washed in clean, hot soapy water. Rub them frequently with mineral soap, and they may be kept s as bright as when new. Saucepans and other tin or granite dishes browned by use may be cleaned by letting them remain half an hour in boiling soda water, then rubbing with a wire dishcloth or stiff brush. A new tin coffee-pot, if never washed on the inside with soap, may be kept much sweeter. Wash the outside, and rinse the inside thorough!}' with clear water. Then put it on the stove to dry, and when dry rub the inside well with a clean, dry cloth. All the brown sediment may be wiped off in that way, but a soapy dishcloth should never be put inside. Keep a granite pan near the sink to use in washing vegetables, and use the hand basin only for its legitimate purpose. Pare vegetables into the pan, and not into the Dish Washing. 447 sink. A strainer or any old quart tin pan with small holes in the bottom is a great help in keeping a sink clean. Pour the coffee and tea grounds, the dish water, and everything that is turned into the sink through the strainer first, and then empty the contents of the strainer into the refuse pail. Never use a ragged or linty dishcloth. The lint collects round the sink spout, and often causes a serious obstruc- tion. A dish mop ts best for cups and cleanest dishes, but a strong linen cloth should be used for everything which requires hard rubbing. Wash the sink thoroughly, flush the drainpipe often with hot suds or soda water, wipe dry, and rub with a greased cloth or with kerosene, j Keep it greased if }*ou wish to prevent its rusting. Cremation is the most satisfactory way of disposing of / kitchen refuse, both as a, matter of convenience and for ' sanitary reasons. But if there must be other disposition made of it, keep two pails and use them alternately, cleansing each as soon as emptied. Wash dish towels in cold water, with plenty of soap, ! and rinse thoroughly in cold water, every time they are used. If left to dn' without washing, they will be sticky to handle and have a disagreeable odor. If the dishes be well washed, rinsed, and drained, the dish towels will require no rubbing. It is easier to take care of three or four which have never been left to become grimy than to wash one after it is stained and saturated with grease. Towels used in this way ma} T be kept sweet and clean without boiling or drying in the sun. This method has been proved by years of trial. With a little care in observing these hints, and always using clean, hot soapy water (and not a liquid fit only for the swill cart) , changing it as soon as greasy, dish- washing would be robbed of half its terrors. And after the work I is done, if the hands be carefully washed with Castile soap, ; not with strong washing-soap, and wiped dry, no un- pleasant effect upon the skin will be felt. Some use a little j vinegar to counteract the effect of the alkali in the soap. ; 448 The Boston Cook Book. A large -apron made like a child's tire, high in the neck, with long sleeves, and buttoned in the back, is the best pattern for a work apron. It protects the entire dress, and can be easily removed when one is called from the kitchen. Print or cambric with a white ground and small black figures wears better than colored print. New, white mosquito netting and cheese cloth are useful for draining lettuce and for putting around fish, chicken, or vegetables which require careful boiling ; also for bags for herbs and spices. Small squares of new cotton cloth are useful for wiping meat or fish. Keep them clean, and use for nothing else. Keep a good supply of small holders, large coarse towels to use about the oven, and fine crash towels for wiping dishes. Keep a damp towel on the table when cooking, for wiping the hands. Avoid the habit of work- ing with sticky or floury fingers, or using your apron for a hand towel or oven holder, or using the dish towels about the stove. These suggestions are given by one who has always liked to wash dishes, and who thinks it not beneath the dignity of any woman to learn to do such work in the very best manner, and that no apology is needed for acknowledging a taste for this much-abused portion of domestic work. To remove Iron Rust. Keep a bottle of strong solu- tion of oxalic acid, plainly labelled " Poison," in a handy place for use on washing day. Gather up the cloth round the spot of rust, and dip the spot in cold water, then in the acid, and then in rapidly boiling water, holding it in the steam a few minutes. If the spot does not quickly disappear, repeat the process. The steam seems to be necessary with the acid. Then rinse thoroughly. AN OUTLINE OF STUDY FOR TEACHERS. FOOD: ITS USES, CLASSIFICATION, AND PROPORTION. WEBSTER defines food as " anything that supports and nour- ishes life." The kingdom of nature is divided into organic and inorganic bodies. Organic bodies have life ; inorganic bodies are without life. Organic bodies are composed of several reciprocal parts, each of which is necessary to, and dependent upon, all the other parts. Organic bodies, therefore, include plants and animals, and inorganic bodies include earths, metals, and minerals. Organic bodies spring from some parent or immediate producing agent ; they are supported by means of nourishment, and die without it ; they increase in size by the addition of new particles of matter to all parts of their substances. Inorganic bodies are formed by some chemical law or union, and grow only by addition to their surfaces. Organic and inorganic bodies are continually wasting away or wearing out. Waste takes place in all objects, animate and in- animate. The minutest change in position in any plant, ani- mal, or rock cannot be effected without some loss of substance. It has always been beyond the power of man to make anything that would not wear out. But there is this important distinction between organic and inorganic bodies. Only organic bodies can repair their waste, and add to their substance; they alone have life, or vital force. When anything wears out in a stone or a steam-engine, there is no power in the stone or the engine to replace the lost matter ; and when a plant or an animal dies, the power of repairing waste is gone from it forever. Hence it is with animate bodies, or bodies endowed with life, that we have to do in considering the subject of food. 29 450 The Boston Cook Book. Life is that form of energy in creation that results in de- velopment from within the object. The energy may be purely physical, as in plants; or it may involve mental and moral considerations, as in animals. There are some essential distinctions between the various forms of organic life. Animals grow proportionally in all direc- tions, and, at a certain time of life, attain their average size. Plants grow upwards and dpwnwards from a collet only, and continue to grow through a term of existence. Animals feed upon organic matter, consume oxygen from the air, and throw off carbonic acid ; plants feed upon inorganic matter, consume carbonic acid, and restore oxygen to the air. Living plants or vegetables are, with few exceptions, fixed to the spot of earth from which they spring, and receive their nourishment from external sources. It is furnished them by the soil, air, light, and heat by which they are surrounded ; and they are every moment receiving all that is necessary for their sustenance. If one of these essential conditions be withdrawn, death follows. Living animals have the power of locomotion, and, being obliged to wander, they are not always directly in contact with their sources of nourishment. They have, there- fore, a storehouse in which they lay up at intervals a supply of material. The possession of this stomach, or storehouse, characterizes all animal beings. The changes that occur in animal life are more rapid and variable than those in vegetable life. Not being, like vegeta- bles, always in connection with their food, animals need some monitor to warn them when to seek it. This is provided them in the appetite, or the sensations of hunger and thirst. There is also a pleasure in the regulated indulgence of these sensations, which never fails to insure attention to their demands. The vegetable kingdom is the original source of all organic matter. All our food is derived directly from the vegetable world, or indirectly through animals which have been nourished on vegetable products. The ox and sheep, which are consumed in the form of beef and mutton, have not fed on flesh, but on grass, hay, oats, and other grains. It is only under exposure to the sun's rays that plants will grow. Hence to its influence we must refer the production of food in the first instance, and therefore the sustenance of all life. Life and growth in human beings are dependent upon two conditions, motion and warmth. Motion. Our bodies are constantly in motion. The heart Food. 45 1 and lungs move with every breath. Every thought causes some change in the brain. Whenever any part of the body loses its power of motion, it dies. All this motion, whether voluntary or involuntary, results in the gradual wasting away of the flesh, blood, and bones of which the body is composed. " We begin to die as soon as we begin to live." If the worn-out materials be not replaced, we die. One great object of food is to supply this waste. The demand for building material is greatest when the body is in a state of activity. Until the human body has attained its complete growth, there should be a constant supply of material for new growth, as well as for repair. In maturity, or when, from bodily inactivity, there is less waste, a smaller supply will suffice. Food taken at regular intervals supplies means of growth, and repairs the worn-out tissues. Warmth. The temperature of the living human body is about 98. In hot or cold climates, in summer or winter, though the temperature of the external parts may vary, the internal tempera- ture is the same; and if not maintained within a few degrees of this point, death invariably follows. The source of this animal heat, so independent of outside circumstances, must be from within. To keep up this internal heat or fire, a constant supply of fuel is necessary. This fuel is supplied by our food. To fur- nish material for growth and repair, and to provide fuel for the warmth of the body, is the twofold object of food. Animal Combustion. The process by which food maintains the motion and warmth of the body is a kind of combustion, and has often been compared to the combustion carried on in the steam-engine (see Youmans's Chemistry). We can have no combustion without oxygen ; therefore oxygen is the first impor- tant element of food. The air is our great source of supply of oxygen, and a volume might be written on the necessity for pure air and perfect ventilation. We breathe oxygen from the air into our lungs, and exhale carbonic acid. There must there- fore have been some internal union of carbon or hydrogen with oxygen, and such a union always produces heat. The carbon and hydrogen are obtained from our food, and are important elements. They are necessary for animal combustion. Food is taken in a natural or in a prepared state, and, after undergoing certain processes of digestion and assimilation, be- comes a part of our bodies for a time, and then is burned in the body, the process resembling somewhat the burning of wood and coal in our grates. But this union of carbon and oxygen, "in- stead of taking place in one spot and so rapidly as to be accom- 452 The Boston Cook Book. panied by light, as in the case of the grate fire, takes place in each drop of the blood, and so slowly and continuously as not to be noticed." The force and heat absorbed from the sun by the vegetable in growing, and stored in its starch and sugar, are set free, by the decomposition of the vegetable, into carbonic acid and water again. These are given out, partly as heat, keeping the body temperature at 98; and partly in other forms, in that of mechanical motion, etc. All the external or internal work of the body is done by the force and energy of the food which is burnt therein. The greater the amount of work to be done, the greater must be the supply of fuel. The fire is constantly burning. " The smoke passes out in exhalation, inhalation is the bellows to furnish more oxygen," and food supplies the fuel. The kidneys are the grates through which the ashes are removed. But if we are "a house on fire," why are we not consumed? Because, lest this internal fire burn too freely, the oxygen of the air is diluted with nitrogen, which is incombustible. The blood, bones, and muscles of the body are composed largely of nitro- gen, sixteen per cent of that element being present; and this prevents the complete burning up of the structure. " What the iron is to the stove, the nitrogenous tissues are to the body." But the stove wears out in time, and so our bodies are con- stantly wasting away; and these nitrogenous elements must be supplied by our food. Food, to accomplish its purpose fully, should consist of these four elements : oxygen, to support combustion, obtained from the air; carbon and hydrogen, to furnish fuel, obtained from water and carbonaceous food; nitrogen, to build up and repair the tissues of the body, obtained from nitrogenous food. Food, in the form in which it is eaten, cannot sustain life. It must be converted into a fluid that can pass through very small channels into the blood. Then it must be mixed with the air, and undergo certain changes, before it can replace the worn- out elements of the body. To prepare food so that it can most readily be assimilated, that is, made like our bodies, should be the chief purpose in cooking. To do this, three things are essential : 1st. The food selected should be of the right mate- rial, and properly proportioned; 2d. It should be cooked in the most digestible and attractive manner; 3d. It should be adapted to the various circumstances of age, occupation, climate, and state of health. Food, to be of the right material, should contain all the ele- Human Body. 453 meuts that our bodies contain. It is of primary importance, then, iii studying food, to understand first the composition of the human body. THE COMPOSITION OF THE HUMAN BODY. Our bodies are made up of different materials: skin, flesh, blood, bone, etc. These consist of a large number of substances, called compounds; the compounds contain two, three, or four elements, united chemically in definite proportion. Some of these compounds are : water, which forms more than two thirds of the whole body, and is the common carrier of food into and through the system; fibrine, which is the chief solid material of flesh, and forms one tenth of the body; fat, a mixture of three compounds, distributed all through the system; albumen, and other nitrogenous substances, of which osseine in bones, keratin iu the hair, nails, and skin, cartilagin in cartilage, and hemo- globin, which contains iron and gives the red color to the blood, are the most important. Chloride of sodium, or common salt, and other mineral salts of pofassa, lime, and magnesia, are found in all parts of the body. These compounds are made up of two or more separate and distinct elements. There are sixteen elements in the human body, oxygen, carbon, hydrogen, nitrogen, phosphorus, sulphur, chlorine, fluo- rine, silicon, calcium, potassium, sodium, magnesium, iron, manganese, and copper. Compounds only, not the separate ele- ments, are capable of nourishing the body. Oxygen only exists as an element. Its office is to support combustion. Combinations of two or more of these elements are found in the various articles used as food. It is quite important that our food should consist of various materials, containing elements similar to, or capable of being changed into, the elements of our bodies, of which the most important are: water, to help diges- tion and assimilation of food, and to help carry away refuse material ; salts, to renew the mineral parts and replenish certain tissues ; carbon, to furnish fuel for warmth ; nitrogen, to build up and repair the whole structure. For convenience the elements are classified chemically into Non- Combustibles, or inorganic compounds, including water and salts , CombustHdes, or organic compounds, including carbona- ceous and nitrogenous foods. Some foods contain no carbon, some contain no nitrogen, and some have all the elements ID 454 The Boston Cook Book. various proportions. Food has been classified into gaseous, 01 air; liquid, or water; and solid, including animal and vegetable foods. But the division into carbonaceous, or heat-producing, and nitrogenous, or flesh-forming foods, answers every purpose, KON-COMBUSTIBLE COMPOUNDS Water and Salts. Water forms more than two thirds of the whole body. It is especially abundant in the blood and secretions. It gives them the necessary fluidity, and enables them to dissolve the important materials they contain. It is contained in all kinds of solid food, as well as in the liquids drunk as beverages. It is most abundant in fruits and vegetables. Every pound of perfectly dry food should be accompanied with four pounds of water. Pure water is composed of oxygen and hydrogen, one ninth hydrogen and eight ninths oxygen by weight. The usual test for pure drinking water is that it be " free from color, smell, or taste, be soft, bright, and aerated, and free from all deposit." But it is very seldom found in that condition, as its power of dissolving other substances is so great that it nearly always holds animal, vegetable, or mineral matters in solution, obtained from the earth through which it flows. It also absorbs gases and odors from the air. The animal and vegetable substances found in it render it impure. But the mineral matters, unless- in excess, are not objectionable. When water contains more than a few grains to the gallon of carbonate of lime, it is termed hard water. When water is hard or impure, it should be boiled before being used for drinking, as this destroys the vegetable and animal impurities. Water evaporates at all temperatures, boils at 212, and freezes at 32 Fahrenheit. In freezing, the substances dissolved in water are expelled. Water, as it approaches the freezing-point, expands, and often bursts the vessels in which it is contained. In ponds or rivers it expands, becomes lighter, freezes, and floats on the surface in the form of ice. Water is perfectly neutral. It combines with acids and with bases. It becomes sweet, sour, salt, astringent, bitter, or poison- ous, according to the nature of the bodies it holds in solution. Salts. 455 Salts and other Mineral Matters. The chief purpose of min- eral ingrediepts is to replenish certain tissues, and aid in the transference and absorption of the combustible nutrients, as a scaffolding aids in the construction of a building. Chloride of sodium, or common salt, is essential to the life of the higher animals. It exists in all parts of the body. It is more abundant in the blood than any other inorganic ingredient except water ; but it is an active poisonous irritant if taken in excess, causing diseases of the mucous membranes, as in catarrh, and stiffening of the muscles, as in rheumatism. We take it as a natural ingredient in many kinds of food, and as a condiment to increase the relish of many others. The desire for salt is instinctive. There are people who do not use salt in food, but it is probable that they obtain sufficient sodium and chlorine in the brackish water they drink ; or it may be, their habits of life render less salt necessary. Salt must be added plentifully to all vegetable food. The bad effects of a salt-meat diet can be counteracted by the use of lemon juice and fresh green vegetables, which are rich in potash salts. Salt taken with our food supplies two substances. Its chlo- rine supplies the hydrochloric acid of the gastric juice, that helps digest our food; and soda, which is an element of the bile, a fluid which must be added to the dissolved or softened food before the nourishment can be extracted from it. People would very soon become ill if deprived of salt. A person requires from one fourth to half an ounce of salt daily. The attractive flavor which is developed by cooking and adding salt to our food .excites the secretion of saliva and gastric juice, and therefore helps digestion. The Dutch used to condemn criminals to a diet of unsalted food. They suffered great physical torture, which soon ended in death. Salt \8 one of the most abundant of all minerals. It is ob- tained from springs by evaporation, and from natural mines. It is readily soluble in hot or cold water. It is used for packing and preserving meats, as it prevents putrefaction by absorbing water from the flesh. The other mineral ingredients needed in the system are com- binations of lime, soda, potash, magnesia, sulphur, phosphorus, and iron. Phosphorus, lime, and magnesia are found hi meat, fish, the cereals, and potatoes. Potash is found in meat, fish, milk, vegetables, and the dry seeds and fleshy parts of fruits, iron, in flesh, vegetables, and nearly all food, in vwy minute quantities. 456 The Boston Cook Book. Sulphur is in fibrine, albumen, and caseine. There is sufficient saline matter, except common salt, in all the ordinary food we eat and the water we drink. t These mineral matters become rearranged and combined before becoming part of the body, but they do not undergo any chemical change or decomposition. They are absorbed with the food, and form for a time part of the animal tissues, after which they are discharged with the secretions, and replaced by a fresh supply. They are absolutely indispensable to the nour- ishment of the body. COMBUSTIBLE COMPOUNDS. CARBONACEOUS FOODS. The first division of combustible compounds is called carbon- aceous because they all contain carbon; or heat-producing, be- cause by their burning they generate heat. They consist of starch, sugar, fats and oils, gum, and the softer fibres of plants. They are found in vegetables, cereals, fruits, milk, eggs, and the fat of meat. Starch. Starch is one of the most important of vegetable foods; it is found in grains, seeds, and roots, and in the pith and bark of plants. When pure, it is a snow-white, glistening powder. It consists of exceedingly minute grains, varying in size and shape in the different kinds of starch. These grains are cov- ered with an outer skin which is insoluble and unchanged by cold water; but in boiling, this membrane bursts and the inte- rior of each grain dissolves in the water, forming a thick, gummy solution. When cool, it stiffens into a kind of pasty mass. Starchy food is very unwholesome unless properly cooked. It must be mixed with a sufficient amount of liquid, and sub- jected to a great degree of heat, that the grains may swell and burst. This liquid is sometimes supplied by the boiling water in which certain starchy foods are cooked ; and sometimes by fat which melts with the heat, as in pastry, or by boiling fat, as in anything fried. When flour or starchy food is mixed with fat, it should be finely and evenly mixed, that the fat may penetrate Starch. 457 every part of the flour, or else it will cake, and all the grains will not burst. Anything that helps to make pastry lighter and the fat more evenly distributed, causes the starch grains to burst equally, and makes such food more wholesome. W3 Vegetables should be put into boiling water to burst the starch cells, and set free the confined air, of which there is a great deal in many kinds. They should be taken up as soon as they are soft, as they absorb water after the grains are fully burst. Starch in its uncooked, insoluble state is not digested by the human stomach. Seeds and fruits which consist of starch, especially if it be combined with oil, as in many nuts, if eaten uncooked, are very difficult to digest. All starchy articles of food should be masticated thoroughly, and mixed with the saliva. It is more necessary to chew bread and potatoes well than meat. Starch is changed by various means into sugar. If an acid be added to it in a watery solu^ tion, and boiled, it becomes clear and transparent, and after a time all the starch disappears, and sugar takes its place. The same change is caused by the saliva, and during digestion the starch is all changed into sugar, so that none of it is found in the fluids and secretions of the body. This is easily seen by chewing pure starch ; after a while it will become sweet. Starch contains no albuminous substances, and therefore cannot supply any of the materials of which our bodies are formed. But it is the source of the warmth of our bodies, and the strength we exert. Taken alone, it would be useless as an article of food. It must have the addition of albuminoid and fatty substances, like milk or meat. Starch is prepared by grinding some vegetable matter that contains it in abundance, and mixing it with cold water. The water is strained and allowed to stand ; the starch settles at the bottom, and is then dried and powdered. Comstar -ch is ob- tained from Indian corn, by a chemical process. The gluti- nous, oily elements are freed from the seed by alkaline solutions, and the starchy parts are ground arid dried. Sago is starch from the pith of a species of palm-tree. Tapioca is from the root of a species of the cassava plant of South America. It is a coarsely granulated substance. Cassava, or mandioc, is a more finely granulated form of the same root. Arrowroot is from the rhizoma, or roots talk, of a West Indian plant. The natives use the roots of a species of the plant in extracting the poison of arrows; hence the name. 458 The Boston Cook Book. Sugar. Sugar is composed of oxygen, hydrogen, and carbon. There are three kinds, cane sugar, or sucrose; grape sugar, or glu- cose; milk sugar, or lactose. Cane sugar as an article of food closely resembles starch, but it is soluble and therefore more easily digested. It is readily distinguished by its sweet taste. It is found in many animal juices and also in fruits, but exists mainly in vegetable juices which have little or no acid in their sap, like sugar cane, rock maple, and beet-root. In its natural state it is dissolved in the vegetable fluids, mingled with many other substances. It is obtained by crushing the raw material ; the fluids thus obtained are heated with a solution of lime, which causes the impurities to separate and rise in scum. These are removed, and the purified juice boiled down until it solidifies as a brownish de- posit. This brown sugar is again dissolved, boiled, and filtered through charcoal, evaporated, and crystallized. Molasses is the drainage of the raw sugar. Brown sugar is the first product. Granulated sugar is brown sugar refined and re-crystallized. All brown and moist sugars are inferior in quality; they contain water and mineral matter, and are sometimes infested by a minute insect. Loaf sugar is the purest. Sucrose, or cane sugar, is changed, by the acids of the gastric juice and the nitrogenous matter of the food, into grape sugar, or glucose. One of the most remarkable properties of sugar is that it can be decomposed and converted into other substances by fermentation. In its chemical relations sugar ranks with acids, and combines with bases, as in sugar of lead. It melts at 320, and by cooling forms a transparent amber-colored solid known as barley sugar. If heated to 420, it forms a brown mass, called caramel. Sugar has great preservative powers, and is used in preserving fruits, hams, bacon, etc. Glucose, or grape sugar* is abundantly distributed throughout the vegetable kingdom. It is found in honey, figs, grapes, and other fruits which have acid juices. It is less sweet than cane sugar, and is immediately absorbed into the circulation when taken into the stomach. It is less soluble and less easily crystallized than sucrose. Lactose, or milk sugar, is obtained only from the milk of mam- malia. It has the composition of cane sugar, and is converted into grape sugar when taken as food. Fats. 459 Fats. Fats, or oleaginous substances, are composed of carbon, hydro- gen, and oxygen, the two former elements preponderating, and, having a very strong affinity for oxygen, are highly combustible. Fats are solid ; oils are liquid. Fats may be changed to oil by a slight accession of heat, and are obtained from both animal and vegetable tissues, suet and dripping, from beef fat; lard, from the fat of pigs; butter, from the cream of milk; olive oil, from the fleshy pulp of the fruit of the olive tree. Oil is also found in nuts, seeds, cereals, and fruits. Croton oil, used for medicinal purposes, is from a plant, a native of India; cod liver oil, from the liver of cod fish ; castor oil, from the seeds of the castor-oil plant. Fats and oils contain three different oleaginous substances, known as stearine, margarine, and oleine. Oleine is that portion of oil that causes its fluidity. It is more abundant in oils than fats, and in the fat of swine than in the harder fat of sheep or beef. Lard is better than mutton fat or suet for frying, because, having more oleine, it can be converted into a liquid sooner. Margarine is harder than oleine. It exists in human fat, in but- ter, and olive oil. Stearine is the most solid substance of. the three, and is most abundant in tallow and suet. The peculiar odor some fats and oils possess is from the pres- ence of an acid. In butter it is butyric acid. Glycerine is the base common to all the fats. In stearine, the hardest fat, it unites with stearic acid; in margarine, a less solid form, with margaric acid ; in oleine, or oil, with oleic acid. " Fat forms the chief material of adipose tissue. It serves to fill spaces and give rotundity and beauty to the form, to equalize external pressure, to diminish the friction of the parts* to give suppleness to the tissues, and, being a non-conductor of heat, to keep the body warm. An undue accumulation of fat is a species of disease." Oils and fats will not mix with water ; but if an alkaline sub- stance, like potash or soda, be added, the oil becomes separated into fine particles, and is held suspended in the watery fluid. This is called an emulsion, and this is what takes place in intes- tinal digestion. The gastric juice, being acid, does not digest fat, but only separates it from these substances, that it may digest the albuminous portions with which it is mingled. But 460 The Boston Cook Book. the pancreatic fluid, being alkaline, resolves the fat into an emulsion. This completes the digestion, then the fats are ab- sorbed and received into the general circulation. Having a strong affinity for oxygen, these fatty particles in the venous blood, when they come in contact with the oxygen of the air, burn, and heat is evolved. The power of. fat in maintaining heat and activity is two and a half times that of starch. Oils which are used as food are fixed oils. Volatile oils are found in many condiments and perfumes. Volatile oils can be distilled, or changed to vapor, and recondensed into their origi- nal form; they leave no permanent stain on paper. Fixed or greasy oils cannot be distilled ; before changing to vapor they recombine into new compounds. Gum, Mucilage, Pectose, and Cellulose. These are combustible compounds, but are neither starchy, saccharine, nor oily. Gum is found in apple and plum trees. Gum arabic is from a species of acacia, and is soluble. Muci- lage is found in onions, quinces, and flaxseed. It forms a jelly with water, but does not dissolve like gum arabic. Pectose is found in many roots, like the turnip; also in the pear and peach. When boiled with water it changes to a vegetable jelly, called pectine. Currants, pears, peaches, plums, contain pectine, and this is what gives firmness to the preserves made from them. Cellulose is the woody fibre of stalks of grain, the membrane which envelops the grains, husks, and skin of seeds, rinds, cores, and stones of fruits. It is the main and almost the sole constituent of linen, and of the paper which is made from linen, NITROGENOUS FOODS. The second division of the Combustible Compounds is called nitrogenous, or flesh-forming foods. Nitrogen is the flesh-form- ing element common to all foods. It enters largely into the composition of the body, forming sixteen per cent of the animal tissue. A liberal supply is necessary to form and repair tissue. Although the atmosphere is four fifths nitro- gen, we get no supply from that source. It must be sup- plied in a state of combination, not as an element, from such compounds as have been produced under the influence of life. We require organic nitrogenous matter, and not pure nitrogen. This is sometimes derived from vegetable sources, but is most Albuminous Food. 461 abundant in animal substances. Animal food is richer and more nutritious than vegetable food ; but the latter, if taken in large quantities, yields the same amount of flesh-forming mate- rial. Nitrogenous substances in plants and animals are identical in composition ; and, from whichever source they are taken, the most important consideration is, to digest them and make them into blood. Nitrogen is an essential part of some of our most powerful medicines, like quinine and morphine, and of our most dangerous poisons, such as strychnine and prussic acid. Nitrogenous foods are also called albuminous, because albumen is their common element, though it is called by different names in different things. Albumen is from albus, meaning white. The principal varieties of albuminous food are lean meat, fish, eggs, milk, cheese, peas, beans, oatmeal, flour, rye, and corn. These are treated more fully in other parts of the book, in chapters on Bread, Meats, Fish, Eggs, Milk, and Vegetables. The albuminous portion of meat is the juice, or albumen, and the fibre, or fibrin e. In eggs it is the white. In milk it is the caseine, or the curdy part that separates when milk has soured. In peas and beans it is called vegetable caseine. In flour it is gluten, the sticky, glutinous substance which is left after squeezing or washing out the starch. Albumen exists in two states, one soluble in water and one insoluble. The soluble may be changed to insoluble by heating to 120, or by adding nitric acid. It is the most easily digested of all flesh-forming foods. Albuminous substances have the property of coagulation ; but all albuminoids do not coagulate in the same way. The albumen of eggs and the juices of meat coagulate by heating to the boiling- point. The fibrine of the blood coagulates when exposed to the air. Milk coagulates by the addition of an acid. Albuminous substances also have the property of fermentation. This occurs principally in substances which are rich in sugar, starch, and gluten, like flour, milk, etc. The fermentation in flour and milk is explained in the chapter on Bread-Making. Fermentation will not take place without air or moisture, and a moderate degree of heat. Therefore, if albuminous substances be excluded from air and moisture, and kept very hot or very cold, they will not ferment. Fermentation is a change in the elements of a body composed of oxygen, carbon, and hydrogen. Sugar is composed of carbon, oxygen, and hydrogen in equal parts; when sugar ferments, it decomposes and then reunites in 462 The Boston Cook Book. different proportions, forming different compounds, alcohol, carbonic acid, and water. Albuminous substances are the only substances which putrefy. Putrefaction resembles fermentation, and is due to the presence, in large proportion, of the fickle element, nitrogen, and also to the large number of elements combined in all albuminous sub- stances. Complicated machinery is always more easily deranged than simple; and in all chemical combinations, the more com- plex they are, the more unstable. Nitrogen has a very weak affinity for other elements, and forms very unstable compounds. All substances rich in nitrogen, when exposed to the air, soon pass into a state of decomposition, or putrefaction. The oxygen of the air has a greater affinity than the nitrogen for the other elements, and unites with them very easily. In putrefaction the oxygen unites with the carbon to form carbonic acid, and with the hydrogen to form water. The hydrogen and nitrogen unite and form ammonia, and this occasions the peculiar, unpleasant odor of all putrefying bodies. In sub- stances rich in sulphur and phosphorus, the hydrogen unites with them and forms sulphuretted and phosphoretted gases which are very offensive. Therefore, if we exclude the air or oxygen from such substances, we can arrest decomposition. This is done by keeping them in air-tight vessels, thus remov- ing the oxygen from the outside ; and by boiling or drying, to remove that which is diffused within. Freezing will have the same effect ; also salting or preserving. The salt draws out the moisture, hardens the albumen, and prevents the access of oxygen. In preserving, by the use of a strong solution of sugar, the watery juices are drawn put and formed into a thick syrup which excludes the air. There are some albuminous substances, such as isinglass and gelatine, which are taken as food ; but, strictly speaking, they are not flesh- formers. Isinglass is obtained from the sound, or swimming bladder, of the sturgeon, and is imported from Russia. It is not actually gelatine, but is transformed into it by boiling water. Gelatine is obtained from bones. Ossein is that part of the bones to which their strength and elasticity are due. It is insoluble in cold water, but is slowly dissolved and changed into gelatine by being boiled gently under a pressure sufficient to prevent the escape of steam. Gelatine is also ob- tained from tendons, calves' feet, fish scales, stag's horns, etc. There are other varieties of nitrogenous food which are also carbonaceous. These are commonly included under the general Milk. 463 term Beverages; namely, tea, coffee, cocoa, and chocolate. The nitrogenous principle of tea is theine; of coffee, caffeine; and of chocolate, theobromme. Tea also contains iron and manganese. Drinks, Beverages, and Liquid Foods are elassified as follows : water, including rain, well, and mineral spring water ; mucilagi- nous, farinaceous, ^r saccharine drinks, including toast water, Irish moss, and barley water, sago, tapioca, arrowroot, and other gruels; aromatic or astringent drinks, including, tea, coffee, choco* late, cocoa, and herb teas ; acidulous drinks, including lemonade, raspberry vinegar, and other fruit syrups ; animal broths, or drinks containing gelatine, including soups, broths, and beef tea; emul- sive drinks, including milk ; alcoholic and intoxicating drinks, including wines, cider, beer, ale, porter, brandy, and whiskey. Water is discussed under Non-Combustible Foods. Receipts for mucilaginous and acidulous drinks, animal broths, and herb teas are given in the chapter on Cookery for the Sick. The aromatic drinks are included in a separate article under the head of Beverages. Alcoholic drinks will not be discussed for want of space. Milk is food as well as drink, and deserves especial consideration. Milk. Milk consists of three distinct substances, which separate from one another after standing awhile, the cream, curd, and whey. The cream is the carbonaceous part, and forms ten or twelve per cent of the whole. It consists of very small globules of fat, or butter, invisible to the naked eye, surrounded by a fine mem- brane of caseine or albuminous matter. These are dispersed in the milk at first ; but as they are lighter than the other parts, they rise to the top of the milk in the form of cream. When the cream is churned, the membrane of each globule is ruptured, causing the butter to cohere in a separate mass. If all this caseine, or albuminous matter, be not removed, the butter soon becomes rancid. The butter has more margarine than oleine, and is therefore hard and firm instead of fluid. It contains butyric acid, which gives it its peculiar flavor. The curd is the albuminous part of the milk, which separates in a solid form whenever milk sours or curdles. This separa- tion is occasioned by the action of the oxygen in the air upon the nitrogen in the caseine, causing a portion of the caseine to ferment. This ferment acts upon the sugar of the milk, and converts it into lactic acid ; and this acid acts as any other acid 464 The Boston Cook Book. would, and causes the sourness of the milk. The caseine is in- soluble in water, but in the milk it is combined with soda, and this compound is soluble. So, when the milk sours, and a suffi- cient quantity of acid is formed, it seizes upon the soda, takes it away from the caseine, and forms lactate of soda. The caseine, being thus set free, shrinks, and gathers into an insoluble curdy mass. This separation is spontaneous; but it is often caused artificially, by the use of an acid, usually rennet, which is the lining membrane of a calf's stomach. The curd thus separated is pressed and prepared in various forms of cheese. It contains the nutritious elements of the milk in a condensed, but somewhat indigestible form. Cheese is more digestible when made from fresh than from skimmed milk. The whey is the water of the milk that separates from the curd in souring, and contains dissolved in it the sugar of milk and the saline and mineral ingredients. It is much better to use milk in its natural state than to use the butter or cheese obtained from it. It is the cheapest form in which animal food can be obtained, and should be used freely, especially by the young or weak. Condensed milk, when well prepared, is convenient and valu- able as an article of diet, if fresh milk cannot be obtained. It can only be made from pure milk, and is therefore perfectly harmless. CONDIMENTS. There is another class of foods, called condiments, which should not pass unnoticed. Food that " tastes good " is digested more readily, and assimi- lated more perfectly, so that we really derive more nourishment from it. We use many articles with our food to make it taste better, which are not in themselves valuable as food. But by stimulating the flow of saliva and gastric juice, and enhancing the fine flavor of food, they increase the pleasure of eating, and render digestion more complete. These are called condiments. They are not necessary to persons of sound digestion, and, with the exception of salt, should not be used by children, nor by any one in large quantities. In perfect digestion there is the first taste in the mouth and the after-taste of the digestive organs which require satisfaction. " Any cook may gratify the first, but the second requires a skilled chemist." Condiments. 465 The principal condiments are salt, pepper, mustard, and some herbs, including mint, thyme, parsley, sage, marjoram, summer savory, and bay leaves; spices, including ginger, nutmeg, cinna- mon, clove, mace, and allspice; and flavorings or extracts of lemon, vanilla, orange, almond, pineapple, etc. Salt is the only condiment actually necessary to health (see page 455). Pepper is a stimulant when taken in small quantities, but irri- tating if taken in excess. It is the dried berry of a climbing plant of the piper family. The whole peppers are called pepper- corns. These peppercorns are ground, and we have black pepper. The outer shells are sometimes removed before grinding, and these kernels ground give us white pepper, which has a different flavor and is less pungent than black pepper. Red or Cayenne pepper consists of seed-vessels or pods of different species of capsicum ground to powder. It is stimulating, and far more wholesome than the black pepper, though not as much used. It is valuable as a medicine. Mustard is used as a condiment and medicine. It is made from seeds of black and white mustard, which are crushed be- tween rollers, and then pounded in mortars. In small quantities it is good for digestion. Both red pepper and mustard, if used sparingly with indigestible food, like lobster and baked beans, are very useful. The herbs are used dried or green, and when used judiciously, make meats, soups, and sauces more palatable. Spices are used in cakes and articles of food containing sugar, and sometimes with meats. They are used whole, ground, and in the extract. Ginger is the most healthful, and is often used in sickness. It is a valuable stimulating tonic in hot weather. The other spices are better when mixed in small quantities, less of clove and more of cinnamon being used. When combined so that no one spice predominates, they are pleasant to the taste. Care should be taken lest they hide the natural flavor of the food. Flavors are all good in small quantities. Almond, vanilla, lemon, and pineapple are often adulterated. They should never be added while the article is hot, as the heat wastes the strength of the flavor. Vanilla beans are better than the extract. It is always well, if possible, to use the fresh fruit juice. Lemon juice and vinegar, used in moderation, increase the sol- vent properties of the gastric juice, and are useful with meats and vegetables which are difficult of digestion. 30 466 The Boston Cook Book. PROPER PROPORTION OF FOOD. These different kinds of food, ivater, salts, sugar, starch, fat, and albumen, must be combined in our diet; for a simple sub- stance which fulfils only one of the purposes required in our food will not support life. A man cannot live on water or salt, yet he would soon die without them. A diet composed exclu- sively of fats, starch, or sugar is equally incapable of supporting life. The albuminous foods, though they are considered the most nutritious, must be combined with the others to produce the desired result. Milk is the only substance prepared by nature expressly as an article of food. Seeds grow, and produce plants and fruits after their kind; but milk is prepared as the natural food of the young of all mammalia. A baby fed on milk develops in every part; therefore milk must supply every requisite for the growth of the young body, and the proportions in woman's milk may be taken as the standard for human food. Milk analyzed is found to contain water, salt, fat, sugar, and caseine, the five ele- ments of food. It has enough of flesh -producing elements to restore the daily waste, and enough heat-giving elements to feed the oxygen in breathing. But when the teeth are formed, the child's system needs a greater proportion of some elements than are supplied by the milk, and other foods are gradually added to the diet. Eggs also contain all the necessary elements; a diet of seven eggs per day furnishes all the nutrition a person needs. But the elements in eggs are too highly condensed, and are not properly proportioned for a continuous diet. Many articles of food do not contain all these elements, and it is very important to proportion our food rightly, so that one kind will supply what another lacks. A certain bulk is also necessary in our food to stimulate a thorough action of the diges- tive fluids. If the quantity be not sufficient to distend the stomach, so that the churning motion of the muscular coats can affect every part of the food, the digestion is imperfect. Dys- pepsia is often caused by lack of sufficient quantity of food, and by weakness of the muscles of the stomach. If this requisite quantity be wholly nutritious or highly condensed food, capable of entire absorption, the effect is too stimulating, and serious disorders of the alimentary canal are the result. To remedy this, it is necessary to have a certain amount of innutritious Proportion of Food. 467 food, which furnishes the bulk required, and gives all parts of the digestive apparatus their proper amount of work to perform. Many persons argue in favor of a vegetable diet, as we can obtain from vegetables al) the necessary elements. There have been many cases known where people lived to an extreme age who used exclusively a vegetable diet, and others who lived equally as long upon animal food. But the general rule is, that we find the highest degree of bodily and mental vigor only among those who make use of a mixed diet. One of the strong- est physiological arguments in favor of this rule is found in the structure and conformation of the teeth and alimentary canal. Part of the teeth are of the carnivorous, or flesh-eating kind, and part of the herbivorous, or vegetable-eating kind. The alimentary canal is equally well adapted to the digestion of ani- mal or vegetable food, or an admixture of both. The proper proportion, by weight, is one third of animal, and two thirds of vegetable food. *' Nature has given us an unerring guide to a proper choice of diet. An unperverted appetite is the voice of the physical sys- tem making known its needs, and it may always be trusted to indicate the food necessary to the preservation of health. But as the voice of nature is often unheeded, it is necessary to exer- cise intelligence in selecting our food and adapting it to the circumstances of life. By a proper choice we can often coun- teract the effects of a violation of nature's laws." ADAPTATION OF FOOD TO CLIMATE, AGE, OCCU- PATION, AND STATE OF HEALTH. In examining the foods adopted by different nations and classes of people, we find that many choose instinctively the kind best adapted to their individual needs. The climate, occu- pation, and water influence their choice. Climate. Animal food is better for cold than for hot cli- mates. We breathe more rapidly, take in more oxygen in cold weather, and the internal fire burns up more of the food. We exercise more, and this causes more rapid wearing out of muscle and flesh. Fat meat is not digested easily unless exercise be taken freely; more oxygen must be mixed with it to produce heat than is required for sugar and starch. In summer, when we exercise less, the vaste is less, and we need less warmth' 468 The Boston Cook Book. giving food. The starch and sugar obtained from fruits and vegetables are easily digested, and furnish sufficient warmth. The Esquimaux or Greenlander consumes a large quantity of fat, or blubber oil, the most condensed form of carbonaceous food. This gives him the amount of heat necessary in an ex- tremely cold climate. With this blubber he mixes some indi- gestible substances to give the needed bulk for the perfect action of the stomach. The people of Norway, Sweden, and Russia use large quantities of oily fish. In China, India, and other extremely hot climates, rice is the universal food. Rice contains a very small amount of flesh-forming material, being mostly starch, which is changed into sugar by the action of the saliva. The natives of rice-eating countries owe much of their lack of spirit and energy to this defective diet. But when eaten with butter or olive oil, and made into curries, pilaf , and pilau, with a small amount of flesh or fish, it supplies all the elements necessary for life in such climates. The Spaniard in his olla podrida a stew of peas, bacon, or fowl, with red pepper finds all the necessary elements. The red pepper, used *so largely in the curries and other dishes common to hot climates, stimulates the liver, which is naturally weakened by the long-continued heat, and thus assists digestion. The Arab chooses dates , parched grains, mare's or camel's milk. The Turk adds to these melons and cucumbers. As we come northward again, we find more flesh-forming material in the polenta (a dish made of Indian corn) and the chestnuts, macaroni, and cheese used by the Italians. The pot-au-feu is the principal dish of every peasant in France. This furnishes the cheapest form of nutriment, and contains all the necessary elements of food. Tne waters of a country sometimes determine the national food. In Ireland, where the waters are strongly impregnated with lime, they furnish what the potato, which is richer in pot- ash and soda, lacks. When potatoes are combined with cabbage and pork, as in kolcannon, the flesh-forming element is supplied; and this, on account of the cost of meat, the laboring classes are unable to obtain in any other form. In England and Scotland, where the waters are soft, oats and wheat, which are rich in phosphates, are the staple diet. When combined with milk, eggs, rice, peas, beans, bacon, and cheese, their food is complete. To satisfy the natural instinct to obtain these five elements, we all prefer our bread with butter or cream, our meat with potatoes, our rice with butter, milk, or eggs; our fish we cook in fat; we eat liver with bacon and ham, or bacon with eggs; Choice of Food. 469 we eat cheese with crackers, butter with cauliflower or cabbage, salt with all vegetables, oil with salad, and fresh vegetables with salt meat. Fruits and foods intended to be eaten raw contain a large proportion of water. This is supplied, when lessened by evaporation, by cooking and soaking in water. In cooking meats, we endeavor to retain all the juices, which are largely water. In spring we crave fresh green vegetables and salads, that we may have the potash salts of which there has been a deficiency in the winter diet. Occupation affects our choice of diet. Persons engaged in sed- entary occupations cannot digest as much nor as easily as those who labor out of doors. They should have food that gives the greatest amount of nourishment in the smallest compass, and it should be served in the most digestible form. Those who tax their brains severely should have animal food and the most digestible forms of starchy and warmth-giving foods. Those who exercise freely in the open air may take a larger quantity, and it need not be the most digestible, as they require food that will stay by them. The laborer instinctively prefers potatoes underdone, or "with a bone in them;" and he chooses salt meat, not only because it is cheaper, but because it stands by him longer. The salt causes him to drink water freely, and this supplies the waste caused by excessive perspiration. A diet of vegetables, peas, beans, cheese, oatmeal, bacon, and the cheaper, more indigestible parts of meat properly cooked, is suitable for laboring people. State of Health. In selecting food with reference to health it must be remembered that there are certain general rules which have been established by the best authorities through many ages and in a great variety of circumstances; there are, however, some exceptions to these general rules. Milk is considered a wholesome food, yet there are some persons who cannot take it. Cheese is a cheap and nourishing food for laboring people, but there are some persons to whom it is an active poison. This is also true of oysters and strawberries. These exceptions are owing to some idiosyncrasy of the palate or weakness of the digestive organs, and should be regarded only as exceptions, which do not affect the general principle. The application of these general principles, given throughout this book in connection with the various articles used as food, must be left to each individual; but to those who have given the subject no serious study a few hints may be helpful. They will be found in the article treating of Cooking for the Invalid. 470 The Boston Cook Book. NOURISHING AND STIMULATING FOOD. There is another classification of food which it is well to con- sider briefly. In its effect upon the system food is nourishing and stimulating, or the reverse. Nourishing foods are those which serve to develop perfectly avery animal function, but do not increase the strength and speed of organic action beyond the point of full nutrition. Bread, vegetables, fruits, sugar, salt, and water are nourishing- foods. Nourishing and Stimulating Food. All food that nourishes the body is in one sense stimulating, as it gives renewed energy to the bodily functions. But there are foods which impart a speed and energy to the organs above that necessary to per- fect nutrition; these are termed stimulating foods. Animal food is of this class. Stimulants. Alcoholic drinks and condiments are classed as stimulants, because they impart no nourishment, but act simply as excitants to preternatural activity. Innutritious foods are those which are not assimilated ; which are by nature indigestible, or have been made so by improper combinations and modes of cooking. The bran of wheat, fried or greasy food, heavy bread, and rich soggy pastry are either entirely unassimilated, and therefore not nourishing, or they weaken the system by exciting particular organs to excessive action . Digestion. 47 1 DIGESTION. IN studying digestion, it is well to keep in mind the twofold division of food into nitrogenous, or flesh-forming, and carbona- ceous, or heat-producing, elements. The process of digestion differs with the character of the food. The purpose of diges- tion is to change and combine all the elements of food into a fluid which will mingle with the blood, become assimilated, and furnish nutriment for the body. Digestion is not confined to the stomach. It begins with in- salivation in the mouth, and, after deglutition, is carried on in the stomach and intestines, the process continuing through the entire length of the alimentary canal, a tube varying in diameter, and thirty-six feet in length. The first process in digestion, as in any chemical analysis, is to crush the materials. The teeth are the grinders for reducing the food. If we bolt our food or swallow it in lumps, the soft coats of the stomach are made to do the tearing and grinding work of the teeth. A solvent being necessary, the saliva is secreted from the blood, and is poured through three pairs of glands into the mouth, each pair supplying a different saliva. This softens the starch and tender cellulose. Animals, like the beaver, which feed chiefly on woody matters, have very large salivary .glands. In health the saliva is always alkaline, especially during and after meals. It lubricates the mouth, and moistens the food so that it may assume a pasty condition. It is also necessary to the sense of taste, everything being tasteless that the saliva can- not dissolve. For this reason we cook and season our food so that it will excite the flow of the saliva. " This saliva is poured into the mouth not to be cast out, but to do a specific work, then pass into the stomach and be again ab- sorbed. If the system be drained of the saliva by profuse spit- ting, as is the case with those who use tobacco freely, the order of bodily functions is reversed, and the mouth is made to do the work of the kidneys, which is to carry away a large amount of the superfluous water and all the waste salts." 472 The Boston Cook Book. The saliva consists mostly of water, with a very small amount of saline matter and about five parts in one thousand of ptyalin, an albuminous ingredient, or ferment, which has the power of con- verting the starchy portions of food into sugar, and sugar into lactic acid, but does not act upon nitrogenous food. The saliva froths easily, and aids in carrying air into the stomach. This is the first step in digestion, and the most important, as any error in the beginning leads to evil consequences which affect the whole process. It is also important, because it is wholly a voluntary process. While the food is in the mouth, we may masticate it thoroughly or imperfectly, and swallow or reject it. But when deglutition has carried it into the stomach, it is wholly beyond our control, and we are not responsible for the remainder of the process, only so far as it may be affected by error in the first stages. Bread, potatoes, and all starchy foods should be thoroughly masticated, and mingled with the saliva. Meat may be swallowed hastily, or knives may be made to do the work of the teeth in masticating animal food ; but no chemist can prepare an artificial saliva to be mixed with starchy food, to save the trouble of chewing it. If a piece of dry light bread be masticated thoroughly, it will crumble and be quickly mixed with the saliva, and become sweeter the longer it is kept in the mouth. The alkaline saliva changes the starch into sugar, and begins the digestion. Try to chew a piece of hot bread and it at once assumes a pasty condition, which neither teeth nor saliva can penetrate, and is swallowed involuntarily. A piece of putty would not be more indigestible. If this experiment be tried, no other argument would be needed against the use of hot bread. The stomach carries on the second part of digestion. The presence of food excites the flow of a fluid called the gastric juice, which is secreted in large quantities in the mucous mem- brane of the stomach. At the same time the muscular coats of the stomach contract, and produce a sort of churning motion, which carries the food round and round and over and over, ex- posing all parts of it to the action of the fluid. This gastric juice is always decidedly acid in its nature, containing hydro- chloric acid. The lactic acid formed from the sugar in the mouth is also present in the stomach. This acid arrests the work begun in the mouth on the starchy foods, renders the alkali neutral, and acts only on albuminous food. It contains an albuminous ingredient, or ferment, called pepsin, in about the same proportion as the ptyalin of the saliva. The pepsin Digestion. 473 mixed with the lactic acid is powerful enough to dissolve all the albumen and fibrine of flesh food into albuminose, and sets free the starch, sugar, and fat, melts the fat, but does not change either. When there is an excess or deficiency of acid in the stomach, the digestion is abnormal. Pepsin is sometimes used as a remedy for dyspepsia, and is obtained from the stomachs of young, healthy pigs which are kept hungry. As all food which is to nourish the system must be converted into a fluid form, any substances which are taken in fluid form and afterward solidified in the stomach, as blood or juice of flesh, milk, and raw eggs, must be changed again to a per- manent liquid form before they can be absorbed. All nitro- genous matters are not only dissolved by the gastric fluid, but are modified so as to remain dissolved. These changed albu- minous matters are called peptones. Oil plays an important part in these changes, so that, although oil is not digested, it serves a useful purpose in passing through the stomach. The stomach would digest itself were it not protected by a sheathing of mucus and by a continual forming of cells called epithelium, during the process of digestion. The liquid or watery portions of food enter at once into the circulation by absorption. If too much water be taken with food, it dilutes the gastric juice and retards the digestion; as all that is not needed must be absorbed before digestion can go on. Digestion is also retarded by the presence of very hot or very cold food, as everything taken into the stomach has to be changed to the normal temperature of 100 r . A large amount of food overloads the stomach, distends the muscular coats, and lessens the power of motion. Too little food is also a mistake, as the stomach needs a certain amount of bulk to work upon. Continual or irregular eating is wholly contrary to the intention of nature, since it does not allo>/ the stomach time to rest and to form new cells to secrete digestive fluids. Flesh food that is finely minced, like hash, croquettes, and many entrees, passes rapidly through the stomach without being dissolved by the gastric juice; but when taken in larger pieces it remains long enough to be all digested. The digestive power of the stomach is weakened when there is any undue action in any other part of the body, as in great muscular exertion or in powerful excitement of the brain. Therefore we should eat sparingly at first, when fatigued by exercise or study or when unduly excited, and should rest awhile after eating. 474 The Boston Cook Book. Lactic acid, small portions of sugar and digested nitrogenous substances, pass into the blood by absorption through the stomach veins. Thus the contents of the stomach leave it in two directions : a portion is absorbed through the coats of the stomach by the process of osmose, or the passage of fluids through animal membranes ; the remainder passes through the pyloric opening into the duodenum and intestines for the com- pletion of digestion. Food from the stomach enters the duode- num in an acid state, and in the intestines is mingled with three alkaline fluids, all containing soda. The pancreatic fluid, secreted from the pancreas, digests the fatty matters. It breaks the large granules of oil and fat into a great many minute particles, and converts them into a milky liquid called chyle, which mixes freely with water and passes through the tissues of the intestines into the lacteals. It also changes the starch into sugar, and the sugar into lactic acid, but has very little action on albuminous substances. The bile, secreted from the liver, plays an important part in intestinal digestion, the exact nature of which is unknown. Bile is a complex liquid, consisting of biliary acid in combina- tion with soda. It certainly aids in the absorption of fat, and many suppose its purpose is to lubricate the walls of the intes- tinal canal; from its soapy consistency it effects a smooth, non- irritating passage of the contents. If there be any lack or surplus of the bile, it soon produces an injurious result in the system. The bile is in the intestines, and not in the stomach except when the act. on of the stomach is inverted, in nausea and vomiting; then the bile is forced up into the stomach in- stead of down into the intestines. The intestinal juice, secreted in the mucous membrane the entire length of the intestine, combines the active and digestive powers of all the other secretions. The lactic acid is formed so rapidly from the digestion of sugar that the contents of the intestine quickly becomes acidu- lous, and this completes the digestion of any portions of nitro- genous food not fully digested in the stomach. The combined amount of the salivary, gastric, pancreatic, biliary, and intes- tinal fluids secreted daily is twenty-one pints, of which the gastric juice forms more than one half. There are mechanical aids to intestinal as well as stomach digestion. The writhing, worm-like motion, or peristaltic movement, of the muscular coats of the intestines forces the food downward, and exposes all portions of it to the digestive fluids. Absorption. 475 Notwithstanding all these powerful agents in digestion, a portion of useful matter passes through the intestines un- changed; and if there be a deficiency of either fluid, or a weakness of the muscular coats, or too great a quantity of irri- tating substance, like cellulose, woody fibre, bran, etc., the amount is increased. This is carried, with the innutritions portion, into the larger intestine, and forms a part of the excretions. ABSORPTION. The nutritive and perfectly digested portions of food are absorbed partly by the veins of the stomach, entering at once into the circulation, and partly by the intestines. The lining membrane of the intestines folds over and over upon itself, like a ruffle, along the entire edge; this is full of little tubes, or vilii, which absorb the chyle. The blood vessels absorb the nutritive elements from the villi and carry them to the veins in two ways: 1st. Through the portal vein into the liver, where it penetrates every part of the liver, then passes out through the hepatic vein into the veins near the heart; 2d. Through the lacteals, which are attached to the lining membrane of the intestines and empty into the thoracic duct, a tube extending along the spine, and then into the subclavian vein, which lies in the left side of the neck, under the collar bone. The veins also bring with them the lymph, a thin colorless fluid which comes from the absorbent vessels situated all over the body, and which contains the worn-out particles. Then the venous blood, supplied from the lacteals with new material, and from the lymphatic vessels with waste materials, enters the heart through the upper door, or right auricle, passes through the valves down into the right ventricle ; out through the pulmonary artery into the lungs, where, as purple venous blood, it penetrates to the most remote capillaries. If the lungs be full of pure fresh air, the oxygen changes the purple blood into red blood, and burns up the impurities. The waste products of the combustion of carbon and hydrogen are expelled from the lungs at every breath in the form of carbonic acid and watery vapor; and not until now can the new elements in the blood, obtained from the food, become in reality food, or perfect blood. 476 The Boston Cook Book. This oxygenized or vitalized blood now returns from the lungs, and enters the heart through the left upper door, or left auricle ; the valves open and allow it to pass into the left ventricle, then out through the aorta, or great artery, from which the arteries carry it to the capillaries all over the system. In the capillaries the new material is deposited wherever needed, and changed by cell growth into new tissue. The lymphatic vessels take up all that is not needed, with the worn-out portions ; and the veins then carry this impure blood back again to the lungs and heart. Thus a continuous circulation is established, the blood coursing over the whole body once in every three to five minutes, the time varying with the amount of exercise and the state of health. During this circulation the combustible compounds are burned by the oxygen received into the blood in the lungs, the carbona- ceous products of combustion are expelled through the lungs as carbonic acid gas and watery vapor, and the nitrogenous pro- ducts through the kidneys in the form of urates. " This process of digestion and absorption is really a kind of preliminary cooking process, going on from the mouth downwards all the way to the colon ; and from every part of the long canal tiny lacteals and absorbing veinlets carry off contributions of food either to the general store of chyle, or to the venous blood which is hurrying back to the heart." NUTRITION. ** Albumen is the basis of all animal nutrition. This is seen in the bird's egg during incubation. Under the influence of warmth and oxygen, all the tissues, membranes, and bones are developed from albumen." In the human body a nutritious fluid is prepared from the food, and supplies materials for growth and repair. This fluid is the blood, and when examined under the microscope is found to consist of a clear colorless fluid, of a saline, alkaline, and albuminous nature, and an immense number of infinitely minute blood globules, or corpuscles. These corpuscles consist of an albuminous membrane called globulin, filled with a red coloring matter, hematine, in which there is much iron. This liquid albuminous portion of the blood must be changed to fibrine before it can nourish the muscles of the body. The Nutrition. 477 change of the gluten, caseine, and all the varieties of albuminous food into fibrine is a gradual process, begun in the lacteals, con- tinued in the circulation of the blood, and completed in the lungs by the oxygen which they receive in breathing. This fibrine remains in the liquid state, owing to the alkaline nature of the blood, and is distributed by the circulation into all parts of the structure, where it gradually coagulates into a network of tough thread-like fibres, enclosing in its meshes the blood corpuscles, and is changed by cell growth into new tissue, solid flesh and bone. The nervous system is also built and repaired from albumen. Nervous matter is about seven per cent albumen, and is the material by which we are put into relation with tLe external world. By it we see, hear, feel, taste, smell, and are conscious of existence. Each elementary cell or particle of tissue, whether of bone, flesh, or nerves, seems to have a sort of gland-like power, not only of attracting materials from the blood, but of causing them to assume its structure and participate in its properties. The bones and teeth select and appropriate the phosphates of lime, and magnesia, also fluorine. The muscles and nerves take fibrine, phosphates of magnesia, and potash. The cartilages seek for soda; the hair, skin, and nails are made up of silica. Iron is needed in the coloring matter of the blood, the black pigment of the eye, and in the hair. Sulphur exists in the hair, and phosphorus in the brains. The glands of the mouth take the substances necessary to form saliva; those of the eye, the elements of tears; the coats of the stomach, gastric juice; and the liver, bile. Each part of the body has the power to select, from the common supply, the material which suits it best for building and growing. If the conversion of albumen into fibrine be incomplete, the tissues are imperfectly nourished. The formation of tubercles in the lungs is caused by half -formed cells and coagulated albu- men deposited in the lungs. This is caused by a deficiency of the oily matter, which is necessary for the perfect formation of cells and the growth of healthy tissue. Hence for these cases physicians prescribe cod-liver oil. Distilled spirits coagulate the albumen which ought to go into the blood; this prevents the proper digestion of food, and causes one of the great evils resulting from their use. The i?er- vous tissue is thus deprived of nourishment, which is one of the causes of delirium tremeiis. 478 The Boston Cook Booh Every twinge of pain in neuralgia is the nerves crying out for better blood. Imperfect digestion and assimilation of food are the chief causes of neuralgia. Nutrition, though seemingly complex, is really a simple pro- cess; albumen is changed to fibrine, and fibrine to flesh. The relation of each to the other has been aptly compared to that of the raw cotton, the spun yarn, and the woven fabric. The minute corpuscles in the blood are constantly building up the body, very much as the coral insect builds its structure. The work of each corpuscle is too small for our conception ; but, taken in the aggregate, the result is the wonderful growth and renova- tion of the human body. And what is still more wonderful, every organ of the body is on the alert to keep the whole system in natural health. The activity of the vessels which remove the waste particles from the blood is untiring. The kidneys are the scavengers of the body, and stand next to the lungs in renovating it. If too much water be drunk, the kidneys, lungs, and skin carry it off, for fear that the blood should become too watery. We may cease to convey food into the body for days with no evil consequences; but let the removing organs cease operations for a single day, and disease ensues. LIFE AND MOTION.* Circulation of Water. As a plant grows, water from the soil or air unites chemically with carbon, and forms the woody fibre of the stem, the sugar of the sap, and the starch of the seed. When the plant dies, the water is again set free from its struc- ture and passes into the air. The starch and sugar, also, which the plant yields having been consumed by some animal, the water which they contain passes into the air through the lungs and skin. Thus the same water is caused to revolve in a circle of life-sustaining combinations. Within a single hour it may be in some vegetable structure in the form of sugar; then it may pass into and circulate through some animal system and be discharged as vapor from the lungs, and afterwards become 1 This article is mainly an abstract of the chapters on the "Circulation of Matter," contained in "Johnston's Chemistry of Common Life." It is inserted here as bearing upon the general subject of food, and with the hope that all who read this will read the original. \ Life and Motion. 479 absorbed by thirsty leaves and aid in the growth of flowers and fruits. Circulation of Carbon. Vegetables, which are largely starch and carbon, absorb carbonic-acid gas from the atmosphere, which contains thirty- three grains of carbon in every square inch. If the world were all dry land, and covered with dense vegetation, all the carbon would be extracted from the atmosphere in twenty- three years. This carbonic acid is restored to the atmosphere by the waste and decay of vegetable matter^y the exhalations from animals, and by combustion. The leaf of a living plant draws in carbonic acid gas from the air, and gives off the oxygen contained in it, retaining only the carbon. The roots drink in moisture from the soil ; and out of the carbon and water contained in it the plant forms starch, sugar, fat, and other substances. The animal takes the starch, sugar, or fat into its stomach, and draws in oxygen through its lungs. New chemical combina- tions are thus formed, undoing the work of the plant, and send- ing back to the air, from the lungs and skin, both the starch and oxygen, in the form of carbonic-acid gas and water. The same material is constantly circulating, now floating in invisible air, now forming the substance of the growing plant, now of the moving animal, and now diffusing itself through the air ready to go its round again. It forms part of a vegetable to-day; to- morrow it is in a man's backbone; a week hence it may have passed through another plant and into another animal. In burning coal, we cause its carbon to unite with the oxygen of the air and to disappear as carbonic acid gas. The carbon returns^ to the atmosphere from which it may have been taken millions of years ago when it was appropriated by the growing plants, which, in the form of vegetable matter, were afterwards buried beneath the surface of the earth only to reappear ages subsequently in the form of fuel. The earth itself breathes out carbonic acid, sometimes with water, sometimes alone. It sparkles in the springs of Carlsbad and Seltzer; it kills man and beast in the terrible " Valley of Death " in the island of Java. In this way is supplied the loss of that which is daily buried by the shell fish and coral insects in the limestone formations and coral growths. These rocks contain, chained down in seem- ingly everlasting imprisonment, two fifths of their weight of carbonic acid. Circulation of Nitrogen. Gluten and fibrine are distinguished from starch and fat by containing nitrogen. The nitrogen forms 480 The Boston Cook Book. four fifths of the air. It exists also in ammonia, and in aqua fortis, or nitric acid. These two compound bodies exist and are found in the soil; and from the soil the nitrogen is taken up by the plants, and gluten is formed. When the animal consumes the gluten, it builds up and renews the waste of its several parts. The gluten of the plant is transformed into the flesh and tissues of the living animal. ' Thus the nitrogen of the soil through the plant has reached the dignity of being a part of breathing, intellectual man. Having reached this form, this restless element, nitrogen, grows weary of inactivity and moves on. Not only the living body as a whole is in constant motion, but even its minutest parts are continually active. " They are like the population of a great city moving to and fro, coming and going continually, weeded out and removed every hour by deaths and departures, yet as unceasingly kept up in numbers by new in-comers, chang- ing from day to day so insensibly as to escape observation, yet so evidently that after a few years scarcely a known face can be discovered among the congregated thousands." Scarcely has the gluten of the plant been fitted comfortably to its place in the muscle, the skin, or the hair of the animal, when it begins to be dissolved again and is removed. The living animal absorbs much oxygen from the air by its lungs. One part of it converts the carbon of the food into car- bonic acid; another portion is built into the substance of the body ; a large part is employed in dissolving and removing the waste in urea, uric acid, etc. This urea and uric acid return to the soil from which the nitrogen they contain originally came, and where they are reconverted into ammonia,, nitric acid, and other substances, and are now ready to enter into new roots and go the rounds again. The undigested gluten is rejected in the animal droppings, mingles with the soil, and is changed to ammonia and nitric acid. The vegetables which die undergo natural decay, and again enter the soil and air as elements. Animal bodies them- selves die at last, and the nitrogen they contain is made to assume the forms in which plants are able to take it up. The ammonia and volatile compounds of nitrogen, produced by animal and vegetable decay, rise in the form of gas or vapor, and escape into the air. The rains of heaven wash the ammonia out and bring it back to the earth. Part of it is, however, resolved into elementary nitrogen, and is thus lost to plants. To make up for this loss, nitric acid is formed in the air in small quantities. Circulation of Matter. 481 Through the agency of the electric currents the oxygen and nitrogen of the air unite to form nitric acid. Ammonia is given off by volcanoes, and is returned to the earth by the rains and snows. Circulation of Mineral Matter. Everything which the animal body contains is derived, directly or indirectly, from vegetable foods; and the mineral or ash it leaves, wlaen burned, must have come from the soil through the plant. When the animal dies, its body sooner or later returns to the soil. So we have another circle in which the earthy matter of animals and plants moves. It ascends from the soil to the plant, then to the animal, and back again to mother earth, so that it is really " dust to dust." The plant does not absorb all mineral matters, but selects the rarer and more precious materials from the soil, and such as are held in solution by water. Phosphoric acid, lime, magnesia, and saline matter, of which common salt is a representative, are the principal substances chosen. The animal eating the vegetable, these substances enter its stomach, and are dissolved and enter the blood. The vessels provided for the purpose select the re- quired material, and, like ships in commerce, sail away on the blood rivers to their destined havens. The saline portion is car- ried to the blood and tissues. The phosphate of lime goes to the bones, and phosphate of potash to the muscles. After a time the animal, partly as it wastes and finally when it dies, returns to the soil all that the plant took from it. New plants receive it, and it goes the rounds again. So, over and over again, as the modeller fashions his clay, plant and animal are formed out of the same material. Is all sense- less matter to be constantly working, and are we intelligent beings to idle away a precious but limited existence ? One should learn from this always to work for a definite purpose. How lovely is the plant in its position of bond-servant of man ! How willing and interesting! It serves till death, yet rises again rejoicing as ever, when spring returns, to renew its destined toil. The least alteration in the natural constitution of things would insure the extinction of animal and vegetable life. 482 The Boston Cook Book. RECAPITULATION. The Plant takes in, water, by its roots ; carbonic acid, by its leaves; nitrogen, in the form of ammonia and nitric acid; minerals, in the form of phos- phoric acid, lime, common and other salts, from the soil. The Animal takes in, water, starch, fat, gluten, and mineral matters, in the form of vege- table and animal food, into its stomach; and oxygen into its lungs. The Plant produces, oxygen, from its leaves ; sugar, starch, gluten, and mineral matters, in its sap and solid substances. The Animal produces, car" bonic acid and water, which are exhaled from the skin and lungs ; urea, phosphates, and other salts, in the excretions; the fat in the body, which is in time breathed away in the form of carbonic acid; water and perfect muscle, bone, blood, and tissues, to build and repair the body. The Soil produces, carbon in the form of wood and coal, and in spring water ; ammonia, ni- tric acid, and other nitrogenous compounds ; phosphoric acid, lime, common salt, and other mineral matters. So the movement is circular; the beginning is the end. A marvellous commerce appears; soil, plant, and animal commin- gling ; the elements of each being at different times the elements of all, and their interchange perpetual. The Soil takes in, urea and other animal excretions, dead animals and plants. Chocolate Reception. 483 ADDITIONAL RECIPES. Reception 2 qts. milk. Chocolate. 1 Ib. cocoa powder. 3 rounded tbsp. white sugar. 1 pt. cream. 2 eggs. 3 tsp. vanilla extract. Bring milk to boil, work the cocoa in a little of the cold milk, then stir into the boiling milk till smooth. Boil ten minutes, add the sugar and cream, and stir well while boiling. Turn into a double boiler and keep the water in lower boiler almost at boiling point for half an hour. Then beat the eggs very light, add them and re- move immediately from the fire. When cool add the flavoring. This can be made in the morning, and when ready to serve, put from one to two tablespoonfuls of the prepara- tion into the cup and fill with boiling water. By cooking the cocoa we have a much more delicious flavor than that obtained by pouring boiling water directly upon the raw cocoa in the cup. The eggs and cream give body and richness. It will serve from sixty to eighty people. Church Sociable Coffee. If we follow the proportion of one rounded tablespoon or one-half ounce of coffee, ground, for each half-pint cup water, we must allow one pound of coffee for eight quarts of water. This will make coffee of medium strength and will be sufficient for about thirty persons. Soak the coffee one hour in two quarts of cold water in a tightly covered jar and then turn it into a cloth bag. Have the requisite amount of water in a large boiler with a tight cover, and when just ready to boil, put in the bag of coffee and the water in which it soaked, and let it boil ten minutes. 484 The Boston Cook Book. Handy Coffee. Put six rounded tablespoonfuls of coffee in a hot coffee-pot or biggin, pour through it one quart boiling water. When all dripped through, pour the liquid through the grounds again, and after this second filtering let it come to the boiling point and then bottle tightly. When coffee is wanted, scald three-fourths cup of milk, heat two tablespoons of the bottled coffee and pour the two over the sugar in a hot cup. Quick Rolls. Dissolve three yeast calces in one cup of water, add one pint of milk scalded and cooled, one tea- spoonful of salt, one tablespoonful of butler, and two teaspoonfuls of sugar. Stir in flour enough to make a stiff dough, then knead it half an hour, being careful not to get it too stiff. Then without waiting for it to rise, divide it into equal portions for small rolls, and shape into balls and then into finger rolls, or press a small knife handle or roller through the middle, mak- ing cleft rolls, or it may be rolled with the hands into four long rolls. Put the rolls in a greased pan, cover with a cloth, let them rise about forty-five minutes. Then bake in a quick oven from twenty to forty minutes ac- cording to the size. Do not stop kneading until the time is up, or let the dough stand before shaping. If the dough is disturbed after it begins to rise, it will be diffi- cult to avoid having very large air holes. The idea is to make the dough light quickly by the large amount of yeast, rather than to exhaust the strength and elasticity of the flour by slow rising. Thus in less than two hours you will have bread or rolls that will surprise you by their lightness, fine texture, and rich nutty flavor. Not a trace of the yeast in the bread ; light, and yet unlike the extreme lightness of the usual yeast rolls, a rich crust that looks hard but proves to be soft and tender, and with none of the dry, chippy flavor common to bread raised over night. Zwieback. 485 Zwieback, No. 1. Scald one cup milk, add half a tea- spoon salt, and when cool, dissolve in it half a cake of comjiressed yeast. Stir in flour to make a batter that just drops from the spoon. Let the bowl stand in a pan of warm (not hot) water, and when the sponge is full of bubbles add the following mixture : Two rounded tablespoons butter creamed with quarter cup sugar, and two well beaten eggs. Add more flour, and when stiff knead it until smooth and light. Let it rise until double its bulk, then shape it into finger rolls and place them close together in a shallow pan. Let them rise again until very light ; then bake in a hot oven about half an hour. The next day, or when thoroughly cold, cut the loaf in half-inch slices and let them stand in a very slow oven until colored and dry all through. Zwieback, No. 2. Scald one cup milk; when luke- warm, dissolve in it two yeast cakes, half a teaspoon salt, and Jlour enough to make a soft dough. Let it rise until light, then stir in quarter cup melted butter, quarter cup sugar, and two eggs unbeaten. Mix thoroughly and add enough more flour to shape it into a loaf. Let it rise in the pan until very light; then bake in a quick oven, and when nearly done brush over with sugar dis- solved in milk. When cold cut in half-inch thick slices and let them color and dry in a moderate oven. cup yellow gran, corn Gold meal. Medal 1 cup flour. Corncake. % tsp. salt. 2 scant tsp. baking powder. 2 tbsp. sugar. 1 scant cup milk. 1 scant tbsp. butter melted. Mix the com meal, flour, salt, and baking powder thoroughly, beat the egg and add it to part of the milk, then add to the dry mixture, and add the butter last. Bake in a hot oven twenty-five or thirty minutes. 486 The Boston Cook Book. i heaped cup coffee- crushed sugar. cup butter. a nutmeg. Quick 1 pt. new milk. Raised 3 cakes Fleischman's Doughnuts. yeast. (E.E. Squire.) 1 level teasp. salt. 2 eggs. Make a sponge of the milk warmed, the yeast and salt. When very light, add the butter and sugar creamed to- gether with the thoroughly beaten eggs, also the nutmeg and sufficient bread flour to make a dough that will mould without added flour, but not too stiff. Mould one- half hour on a warm board, then roll out one-half inch thick, cut with a small biscuit cutter and arrange half an inch apart on the warm board and place near the range till light. Then fry slowly, roll in powdered sugar while hot if you prefer. This makes three dozen. If a plainer rule is desired, omit one egg and use one- third cup of butter, the remainder of the rule the same as above. Be careful that at any time before frying they do not get too warm. Doughnuts. Rub a teaspoon of butter into a generous cup of sugar, add two unbeaten eggs and stir thoroughly ; add one scant cup of milk. Mix four level teaspoons of baking powder in two cups of sifted- flour, and stir into the mixture. Then add more flour till soft as can be rolled out, one-third inch thick. Cut in rings and fry in clean hot fat. Test the fat by dropping in a piece of the dough, which should rise at once to the top with a good deal of ebullition and begin to brown at once. Turn only once. Buckwheat Cakes. Mix over night, two cups buck- wheat, one cup Graham flour, and one level teaspoon salt. Stir in warm water for thick batter, two tablespoons molasses, and one-half cake compressed yeast dissolved in water. In morning, stir the batter down ; if too thick, thin with warm water, or if any sour odor, add one-fourth teaspoon soda dissolved in water. Rise again and fry on greased griddle as wanted. Oyster Cocktails. 487 Hors-d'oeuvre. (M. L. Clarke.) Remove the crust from a loaf of rye bread, cut into slices nearly two inches thick, remove crusts and hollow out the centre sufficiently to enable a lemon to stand upright in it. Cut the ends of the bread block into thin slices, not quite to the bottom. Cut a lemon in halves and scoop out the pulp from the sections, being careful to leave the membranous wall of every other section so there will be five distinct places in the cup thus formed. In these cavities put minced olives, pickles, the bits of lemon, pounded sar- dines, caviare, finely minced ham, tongue, anchovies, capers, or any other relish or combination you prefer. Have at least three varieties. Put the filled half lemon in the hollow of the bread. Put a dainty doily or paper on the plate, the bread on that, and an oyster fork across the plate. They may be placed beside the guest's plate and the various relishes nibbled as one fancies. The bread is broken from the cut end as needed. Oyster Cocktail. Use very small oysters, and allow from four to eight for each glass. Keep them on ice until wanted, and have the glasses thoroughly chilled before filling. Use the common claret glass if you have not the regular cocktail glass. When ready to serve, put the oysters in the glass and add either of the follow- ing mixtures, using from one to two teaspoonfuls accord- ing to taste. Sauces for Oyster Cocktails. No. 1. 1 tsp. grated horse- radish. 1 tsp. tomato catsup. 1 saltsp. salt. Yz saltsp. cayenne. No. 2. 1 tbsp. lemon juice. 1 tbsp. Worcestershire sauce. 1 tbsp. tomato catsup. 3^ saltsp. paprika. % tsp. tabasco. 2 tbsp. lemon juice. Mix thoroughly. Enough for six cocktails. 1 saltsp. salt. 5 drops tabasco. Mix well and put one tsp. in each glass. 488 The Boston Cook Book. No. 3. 3 tsp. vinegar. 3 tsp. lemon juice. 3 tsp. tomato catsup. 3 tsp. horseradish. % tsp. wahiut catsup. 1 saltsp. salt. % saltsp. paprika. Clam Cocktail. (Lia Rand.) For every cocktail re- quired, take one teaspoonf til of lemon juice, one teaspoonf ul of vinegar, a quarter of a teaspoonful of walnut sauce, one-half teaspoonful of mushroom catsup, one-half tea- spoonful of grated horseradish, one-half teaspoonful of tomato catsup, a pinch of salt, a dash of tabasco sauce : pour this mixture over eight little neck clams and serve in an ice cup, or in a glass which was set on ice for hours previous to serving. This cocktail finds great favor for luncheon, high teas, or suppers. Caviare. This is the roe of the sturgeon preserved in salt alone or in salt, pepper, arid onions and left to fer- ment. The best caviare comes from the north of Europe ; that made on the Volga, called caviare of Astrachan is preferred by some. It is regarded as a heavy food, diffi- cult of digestion. The flavor is exceedingly disagreeable to an unaccustomed palate, and this has led to the expres- sion, " Caviare to the general," for anything that cannot be appreciated or understood by the people. Caviare is highly esteemed by the Russians, and the most delicate species of the sturgeon are reserved for the royal family. It is classed among the hors-d'oeuvres, or savouries, and is usually served on or with fried toast or croutons, or brown bread, after the soup or fish. It should not be long exposed to the air. If you buy it in the little barrels, divide it into small bottles and cork them tightly, then open only as wanted. If it should become too hard, break it up and work in a little olive oil and lemon juice. This is often the only preparation given it at gentlemen's suppers, where a skilful host, if he prefers, can prepare it for each guest. Sometimes it is served on a side dish with slices of lemon around it, and sometimes with finely chopped scallions or other raw onions. Cavaire. 489 Caviare Canapes, No. 1. Cut slices of bread quarter of an inch thick, then cut out with a two-inch cutter into rounds. Saute or fry in hot butter on each side without burning, and set away to cool. Cream quarter of a cup of fresh butter, add salt and paprika to taste, and mix with it as much finely minced water- cress as will give it a fine flavor. Chop the cress very fine, then squeeze dry in a napkin and chop again until very fine and dry. Make the butter into balls, and let it become hard. When ready to serve, spread the croutons with the butter, then spread a layer of caviare on top, and squeeze a little lemon juice over, and serve. Caviare, No. 2. Cut slices of bread one inch thick, then with a pattie cutter stamp them out into rounds. With a smaller cutter stamp the centre two-thirds of the way down. Fry them in hot deep fat until a delicate brown color, drain, and with a sharp knife remove the centre crust. Then fill the centres with a mixture made in the following proportions. Two tablespoonfuls of caviare, one teaspoonfid beef extract, one teaspoonful lemon juice, a saltspoonful curry powder, and also of paprika. Put all into a sauce pan and stir over the fire until quite hot, then put it into the croutons. This may be served hot or cold, one to each person on a plate with a paper doily. Caviare, No. 3. Prepare some croutons from quarter- inch slices of bread, about three and a half inches long and one and a half inches wide, fry, cool, and spread with the caviare. Pound together the yolks of two hard boiled eggs, six boned anchovies, a teaspoonful of chopped capers, a saltspoonful each of mustard and paprika, and two tablespoonfuls butter. Mix and pound until very fine, then press it through a puree strainer, and put it into a bag with a small frosting tube, and use as you would frosting. Use a paper cornucopia if you have no bag or tube. Chop some parsley or water-cress very fine 490 The Boston Cook Book. and put it on the corners of the crouton. Cut some hard boiled eggs into halves, lengthwise, and place them in the centre of the croutons, then with the tube fill the egg cavities with the puree. Or, the egg whites may be sifted, and then the croutons decorated according to your taste, with fancy lines of the puree, the white and the green salad. Cheese Canapes. Allow the beaten white of one egg to each cup of finely crumbled or grated cheese, a speck of salt and cayenne. Remove the crust from inch-thick slices of bread, hollow out centre making a box, fill with the cheese mixture heaped, bake about ten minutes, and serve on napkin. Thin Brown bread and Butter. Trim off the crusts from a loaf of brown bread, leaving it in rectangular shape. Slice it very thin and spread with a thin coating of butter. Put two slices together and cut each square into triangles. Arrange them neatly on a plate and serve them with raw oysters. Halibut a La Conant. In a baking pan put three thin slices of fat salt pork about two inches square, three slices of onion and a bit of bay leaf. On top of these lay a two-pound slice of halibut, spread over it one tablespoonful butter and one tablespoonful flour creamed together. Cover w r ith buttered cracker crumbs and small strips of salt pork and bake twenty minutes. Take out the fish with a fish spade or two long knives, and lay it on a hot platter. Garnish with lemon and parsley. Cooked in this way the halibut is delicious, moist inside with a crisp brown crust, and so nicely flavored that no sauce is required. Broiled Shad. Split the shad down the back, lay it open, clean, remove the back bone and as many of the fine bones as possible, and wipe dry. Brush all over with oil or melted butter. Lay it on a greased broiler Pish. 491 and cook over coals or under gas, flesh side first, until brown, then turn and cook the skin side until crisp. Meanwhile have prepared one large tablespoonful butter creamed with one level teaspoonful salt, one saltspoonful pepper or paprika, one tablespoon lemon juice or walnut catsup, and one tablespoon minced parsley, and when the fish is on the platter spread this over the surface and make several incisions that it may penetrate the fish. Garnish with lemon points and parsley, and serve very hot. Planked Fish. Shad or bluefish are nice cooked in this way ; indeed among camping parties along the shores of the Connecticut River planked shad is a favorite dish. Clean the fish, remove the head, and split entirely open. Nail it to a board, set in front of the fire and broil until the fish is browned and cooked through. Remove it from the plank, and spread with butter, salt, and cayenne pepper. If dishes are scarce, as they are very likely to be in camp, season the fish and serve upon the plank as a platter. Turbot. Select a turbot weighing from four to six pounds, and with yellowish-white flesh. Wash and soak it half an hour in one quart cold water with two table- spoons salt to remove the slime. Put again into fresh water, drain and wipe. Remove the skin, cut the fish away from the bone and divide through the centre lengthwise, making four fillets. Wipe, sprinkle with salt and pepper, brush over with oil or melted butter, and broil a delicate brown. Season with butter, salt, and pepper, garnish with water-cress, and serve with cucumber sauce. Pried Pickerel or Pike. This fish is especially nice for frying, as the flesh may be sliced into uniform pieces about one inch thick, giving round, shapely steaks. Of course, the fins, scales, and entrails are first removed, and the fish washed and wiped dry. Roll the slices lightly in flour or fine white cornmeal, and cook them 492 The Boston Cook Book. quickly in hot fat, half lard and half butter; or use salt pork fat. Do not let the fat burn. Turn the fish when brown, and when the other side is cooked, remove them to a pan lined with soft paper, to absorb the grease, while you make a cream gravy. Scrape out any burned crumbs left in the pan, but if they are only browned they will do no harm. If pork has been used, remove the scraps and fat. Turn in one- fourth. cup of hot water, and scrape off any brown glaze from the pan, then add one cup of thick cream, and let it boil a few minutes. Rub one tablespoon each of butter and Jlour together, stir it in, with chopped parsley and salt and pepper. Strain it on to a platter and lay the browned fish in the sauce. Serve the crisp pork as a relish for those who care for it. If the fish have been frozen, thaw them out in cold water. Swordfish. This valuable sea food has many friends among those who have eaten it at its best, and especially after the excitement of chasing it through the briny waves. But tastes differ, and some people dislike it ex- ceedingly, and never include it in their summer menus. It has quite a strong, distinctive flavor, and in grain and texture is not unlike some meats. Some parts of the flesh are dark and oily, for it belongs to the red-blooded division of the finny tribe, but the lighter-colored por- tions, when perfectly fresh, are very rich and delicious. It is usually sold in thin steaks or slices after the manner of halibut, which it somewhat resembles in size. Sword- fish steaks are cut about half an inch thick and are some- times broiled over the coals, but more often they are parboiled in a hot spider slightly greased. As they are rich in fat, they need but little, and will take on a rich brown color without the aid of flour or crumbs, and will cook through without becoming hard and dry. A little salt and pepper, with butter and lemon juice is all the dressing required, but fried or broiled tomatoes are an excellent accompaniment. Fish. 493 Stuffed Smelts. Chop six large oysters, add one cup of soft bread crumbs, one tablespoonful of melted butter, and salt and pepper to taste. Clean the smelts, fill with the mixture, sew the edges, roll in melted butter, then in soft bread crumbs, and bake in a moderate oven ten minutes. Serve with Maitre d'Hotel butter. Cream two tablespoonfuls butter, add juice of half a lemon or lime, and a teaspoonfal of chopped parsley. Haddock Rarebit. Have the haddock cut in slices or steaks about one inch thick and free from bone and skin. Lay them in a greased baking dish, and season with salt and pepper. Turn them over and spread on the top of each a cheese mixture prepared as for a rarebit. Have the cheese finely crumbled and seasoned with salt, cayenne, and a bit of mustard, and if you like you may bind the mixture with beaten egg or cream. Put into a very hot oven and cook until the cheese melts and browns, and the fish is firm. Take up carefully on a serving dish and pour over one tablespoon of sherry to each slice. New 1 cup raw salt fish. Fish 1 pint potatoes. Balls, 1 teasp. butter. i^ teasp. pepper. Salt if needed. Whites of 2 eggs. Wash the fish, pick in half-inch pieces, and free from bones. Pare the potatoes and cut in quarters, allowing a heaping pint measure to a level cup of fish. Put potatoes and fish in a stew pan and cover with boiling water. Boil twenty-five minutes, or till the potatoes are soft, but be careful not to let them boil long enough to become soggy. Drain off all the water ; mash and beat the fish and potatoes with a wire beater till very light ; add the butter and pepper, and when cooled add the stiffly beaten egg whites and more salt if needed. While the fish and potatoes are cooking, try out several slices of sweet fat salt pork, being very careful that it does not burn, and when crisp remove the slices and 494 r ^ ie Boston Cook Book. keep them warm. Drop a large tablespoonf ul of the mix- ture on a floured board and shape it into a round cake about one and one-half inches thick, and floured on each side. When all are shaped, put them into the hot pork fat and brown them delicately on each side, but not on the edges. The white mixture should seem to be burst- ing out from the browned surfaces. Drain them on paper and serve them with hard-boiled eggs cut lengtti- wise and laid on each cake. Boil the eggs eight minutes, or just enough to set the yolks. Garnish with the crisp pork and pickles cut in fancy shapes. Or you may omit the boiled egg garnish and make a sauce with the two yolks and pour it into the centre of the dish and lay the cakes around it. Or put the cakes in the centre, the yellow sauce at one end, and some sliced green tomato pickle at the other. Hulled Corn Soup. There is a distinctive flavor to hulled corn that is especially agreeable to many, particu- larly to those who have been accustomed to this dish in childhood. But often the corn is not quite tender, or one wishes to serve it in a more modern way, and a soup or puree will be found to be both novel and delicious. If the corn is tender, mash it until fine and sift it through a puree strainer; otherwise chop the corn fine before sifting. Then gradually stir in hot milk enough to make it the consistency of any cream vegetable soup. Put it on to boil and add salt and pepper to taste, and a generous tablespoonful of butter, for each quart of the mixture. Serve it with croutons. It will have a slightly granular texture, and if this is not liked, you may add the usual flour thickening. One tablespoonful of butter and one tablespoonful of flour cooked together, and stirred into the hot soup. If a corn puree is desired, simply mash and sift the corn, heat and season to taste with butter, salt, and pepper, and serve as a vegetable, or as a garnish for sausage or pork chops, Noodles. 495 Noodles. Beat two eggs slightly, add two tablespoon- fids of milk) and half a teaspoonful of salt. Stir in flour enough to make a very stiff dough. Knead it till stiff as possible. Roll it out into rectangular pieces and so thin you can see through it. Lay them on a napkin half an hour until they are dry, but not brittle. Rub over with a little flour so it will not, stick. Roll up tight and hard, and then slice off from the end about one-eighth of an inch thick. Shake them out till long and straight. Put them into boiling salted water, stir them at first to pre- vent sticking, and cook until they swell and come to the top of the water. Skim them out into a dish for serv- ing. Melt half a cup of butter in a frying pan, put half a slice of bread, crumbled finely, in the butter, stir until golden brown, then spoon up butter and bread and pour over the noodles. Pass sapsago cheese with the noodles. If any be left over, warm it in butter until a delicate brown, and stir in three or four beaten eggs ; serve as soon as firm. This makes a nice relish for supper. Lentil Soup. Lentils are rich in proteid material, and therefore are very suitable when a meat soup is not desired. Pick over and wash one cup of lentils, and put them on to cook in one quart of boiling water. Let them cook very slowly until soft and the water reduced one-half. Rub the pulp through a strainer, add one pint of milk, and, when boiling, thicken with one rounded tablespoon flour cooked in one rounded tablespoon butter. Season with paprika, salt, and a dash of sugar, and serve with wafers or croutons. Cream of Onions. Onions are usually used merely to flavor soups, but they may serve as the foundation or body of a soup the same as any other vegetable pulp. They are especially valuable in the spring, and by many are considered as almost a specific for some physical ills. 496 The Boston Cook Book. The large white Spanish and the Bermuda variety, having a mild flavor, are the best for soups. They should be peeled, sliced, and scalded for five minutes; then drain quite dry; this will remove much of the pungent oil. Then, for a pint of sliced onion put one rounded tablespoonful of butter in the stewpan, add the onions, and let them simmer very slowly for ten minutes. Put on boiling water to cover, and let them simmer until very soft about an hour. Then rub them through a strainer, add one, cup of hot milk, thickened with one level teaspoonful of flour cooked in one rounded tablespoonful of butter. Season with one-fourth of a teaspoonful of white pepper, one- half teaspoon salt. Beat yolks of two eggs, add one cup hot cream, and put into the tureen. Turn the hot soup over the egg, stirring constantly, and serve at once. Cream of 1 can peas. Canned 1 pint hot water. Peas. 1 qt. milk. 1 teasp. salt. 1 saltsp. pepper. % teasp. sugar. 1 tbsp. butter. 1 tbsp. flour. Turn the peas from the can into a colander and pour cold water over them to remove the taste of the tin. Drain and heat slightly in quarter of a cup of water. Rub them through a puree strainer, gradually adding the pint of hot water, which will help to separate the pulp from the skins. Put the pea pulp and milk on to boil ; add the seasoning ; then the butter and flour, which have first been cooked together. Stir as it thickens, and, as the pea pulp will vary in thickening quality, it may be necessary to add more milk or water if too thick, or to let it cook longer if too thin. Remember that all vege- table cream soups become thicker as they cool, and should be served very hot. Clam Bouillon. Select clams in the shell, wash and scrub thoroughly and change the water until clean. Put G-ombo Soup. 497 them iu a kettle with a pint of cold water for half a peck of clams. Cover tightly and let them cook until the shells open. Skim out the clams, pour off the liquor carefully into a pitcher, and let it stand until clear. Then pour off again from the sediment, and if too strong dilute it with water as desired, and to each quart of liquid, add the white and crumbled shell of one egg, and a little pepper. Place over the fire and let it boil five minutes, con- stantly stirring until the egg has thickened. Draw it back, and when it is clear, strain it carefully. Serve hot or cold, in cups with whipped cream and wafers. Gombo Soup. Cut up a chicken as for a fricassee, and dredge it thickly with flour. Fry a sliced onion in bacon fat, remove the onion and brown the chicken ; brown also one quart of sliced okra pods. Place the chicken, onion, and okra in a kettle, cover with boiling water, add one quart of sliced tomatoes. Simmer until the chicken is tender. Remove the larger bones and all the fat. Add salt, cayenne, and a very little sugar. Serve it without straining and with boiled rice. Beef a La Russegue. Select a piece of beef from the under part of the round, or the vein, weighing about three pounds. Put it on in boiling water to nearly cover, skim as it boils, and let it cook slowly three or four hours or until tender. When nearly done, add salt and pepper to taste. Remove it from the water and set away to cool. In the water left in the kettle cook one dozen small onions. When nearly done, add the same amount of small potatoes pared into round shape, or cut with a large potato marble cutter. Remove these from the water when tender, and set away to cool. Half an hour before serving time, cut the meat into quarter-inch slices and brown it quickly and delicately in hot butter. Use two spiders, so it may be done quickly. Put the onions and potatoes in the spider, adding more butter as needed, and let them color slightly. Then heat 498 The Boston Cook Book. the water in which the meat was boiled, which should be about a pint, add one cup of cream, and thicken it slightly with flour wet in cold water. Add more seasoning, if needed, and one cup of canned mushrooms, and simmer until the mushrooms are hot. Arrange the potato balls around the meat, then a row of the onions around the potatoes, and dot here and there with the mushrooms. Pour the gravy over the meat, enough to cover and show under the vegetable garnish. Put a sprig of parsley at the corners. This dish may seem to require considerable time in its preparation, but it is a very convenient dish for a six o'clock dinner, as the meat and vegetables may be boiled in the forenoon ; then it takes but little time to reheat them at night. Do not think it can be served as soon as the meat and vegetables are cooked and be the same, for the flavor of the meat when cooled and then reheated is quite unlike that of the freshly boiled meat. And we all know how the potato changes in texture and flavor when warmed over, and while it may not be as wholesome for a delicate stomach, it would not harm others. It is an economical and appetizing dish. Pepper Pot. Cover two pounds of tripe and four calves' feet, or a knuckle of veal, with cold water and heat slowly, remove the scum, add one red pepper, and cook till the feet are tender, then remove the meat, let the liquor cool, skim off the fat, heat the liquor again and add seasoning to taste, salt, cayenne, and sweet herbs. Cut the tripe and the meat in small pieces, and slice about an equal amount of potatoes, add them and cook until the potatoes are done. When nearly done, add either egg balls or very small flour dumplings, and cook ten minutes. Salisbury Steak. Select the middle cut from the top of the best round steak. Free it from fat, skin, and fibre. Run it three times through a meat chopper. Make into a mass about one and one-fourth inch thick, and shape the Braised Veal. 499 edges even. Put it into a wire broiler and lay an iron band round it, which will help to keep the meat in shape. If the broiler shuts together too closely, bend it out in the middle slightly. Put it over a Charcoal Broiler Stove and turn every ten seconds. Cook from four to six minutes. Lift the edge, and as soon as the meat is no longer raw, remove it to a hot plate. Sprinkle with salt. In serving, cut into thin strips, and let each person spread it with butter as desired. In this way you have the full, sweet flavor of the butter without the injurious effect of melted butter. Veal Chops. These are cut from the loin and ribs, and correspond to the sirloin and rib steaks in beef, and to the chops in mutton. They are generally more tender than the cutlets from the leg, just as sirloin steak is more tender than that from the round. Loin or kidney chops have quite a piece of fat with them which is very sweet and delicious, and sometimes the kidney is sold with the chop. Trim off the fat and cook it slowly until crisp. Slice the kidney, season with salt and pepper, and cook it in the fat. Trim the chops and remove the bone, if preferred. Press into compact shape and season slightly. Roll in fine cracker crumbs, then dip in beaten egg, then in seasoned crumbs, and cook carefully in the hot fat, adding more butter or salt pork fat, if needed. Do not let them become too brown. Drain and serve, garnished with the crisp fat and sliced kidney and a bit of parsley. Braised Veal. Chop half a pound of fat pork fine, and put half of it in the bottom of a broad pot ; sprinkle with, a tablespoon of chopped carrot, minced onion, a bay leaf, and a sprig of thyme. Lay a breast of veal on this bed, and cover with a similar layer. Pour in carefully a quart of stock, cover and set on back of the range ; let simmer 500 The Boston Cook Book. for two hours, remove the meat, rub over with butter, then dredge thickly with browned flour. Pour over the meat one cupful of the stock, then place in a hot oven and bake about half an hour, basting with the remaining gravy every few minutes. Serve the veal on a hot platter lined with buttered toast, and serve the gravy in a sauce boat. Plain boiled spaghetti, or home-made egg noodles should be served with it. Brown Fricassee of Sweetbreads. Parboil ten min- utes. Remove fat and membranes, dredge with flour, and fry, till quite brown, in butter, with a minced onion. Add to the butter, one cup of veal stock and two table" spoonfuls of mushroom ketchup, or half a cup of tomatoes and one tablespoonful of chopped parsley. Season to taste with salt and pepper, cover, and stew slowly for half an hour: Strain the gravy, and pour it over the sweetbreads. Shoulder of Mutton. Remove the shoulder blade, back, and leg bones, any fine crumbs of bone or stringy membranes. Wipe with a wet cloth and rub slightly with salt. Roll or fold into shape and tie securely. Put it into boiling salted water to cover, remove the scum as soon as the water boils again, then turn the meat over and skim again. Let it cook gently. When it is nearly tender, remove it from the water, drain it, and place it in a baking pan. Dredge with salt, pepper, and flour, and set it in the oven. Bake until brown and crisp on the surface. Baste occasionally with some of the top of the water from the kettle, and dredge with flour after basting. The whole process will take from two and a half to three hours. When the meat is sufficiently browned, remove it to a hot dish, put the pan on the stove, and let the water nearly boil out, leaving only fat in the pan. Stir into this fat about two tablespoonfuls of flour, and let them brown together. Scrape off all the glaze from the edges, and when well colored, add one pint of hot water from that used in boiling the lamb, or you may use half water Pork Chops. 501 and half strained tomato. Stir well as it thickens, and season to taste with salt and pepper. Serve in a gravy boat. Remove the strings from the meat, and in serving cut at right angles with the back edge. After putting the lamb in the oven, put the bones and trimmings in the kettle with the water used in the boiling, add one onion, and a few bits of carrot and turnip, if you happen to have them, and let the whole simmer until the bones are clear of all gristle or meat. Then strain the liquor and set it away to cool, and the next day you may remove the fat, heat it again, and have a delicious lamb broth with boiled rice or curry. Breaded Chops. Remove the bone and tough portion from six chops cut from the loin or ribs. Pat them into shape. Make a dressing of stale bread crumbled, highly seasoned with salt, pepper, cayenne, and a little powdered thyme, moistened with melted butter and one well beaten egg and enough hot water to make it soft enough to spread easily. Lay the chops in a dripping pan with some of the surplus fat under them. Spread the dress- ing smoothly all over the top of each, place them in a hot oven, and bake about twenty minutes, or until brown. Pork Chops. It will be impossible to cook some pork chops, and have them juicy and tender. There is no meat that varies so much in quality, or that is so decep- tive as fresh pork. The lean must be well marked with white lines of fat, or it will be dry and hard. It is often put into a very hot spider without any fat, and the sur- face quickly becomes very hard and brown. Put in a tablespoonful of lard, and when hot lay in the chops, and then keep them turning constantly ; reduce the heat as soon as they are browned on each side, and cook slowly until thoroughly done. Do not salt them until just before serving. They may be laid in a greased pan and baked quickly in a hot oven. $02 The Boston Cook Book. Bacon. Do not buy bacon by the pound, nor have it cut in thick slices, if cut at the market, but purchase it by the whole strip, freshly cured. It will keep well if the paper and burlap cover are replaced whenever opened, and is as much a necessity in the storeroom as is a supply of flour, sugar, or any other staple article of food. It has no equal as an appetizer for breakfast, or in helping out when there is but a limited supply of other meat. Served with omelets, or some other forms of eggs, crisp curly bacon is all the meat necessary for a summer breakfast. It is invaluable to boil with greens or other vegetables. The fat of bacon is one of the most easily digested forms of fat, as the curing and smoking seem to have given it some qualities which render it less objectionable than when fresh. Many physicians prescribe it in place of cod liver oil. Transparent Bacon. Shave off the hard, lean strip from bacon, also the smoked edges and rind as far back on the strip as you require for one meal. Then with a very sharp knife shave off in slices not more than an eighth of an inch thick. Lay them in a hot frying pan, and turn as soon as transparent ; cook a moment on the other side, tip the spider and let the fat drain away from the bacon. Then serve alone or with eggs, beefsteak, veal cutlets, liver, or oysters. The slices may be laid in a fine wire broiler and cooked over a clear hot fire, or the broiler laid in a pan and the whole placed in a hot oven until transparent. Keep the bacon in a cold place, that it may be hard and firm before slicing, and if not ready to fry immediately, put the slices in the refrigerator until wanted. Crisp Bacon. Prepare as directed for Transparent Bacon, then shave in the thinnest possible slices ; never mind if they are not entire slices so long as they are mere shavings. Take two or three tablespoonfuls of clear bacon fat from a previous frying, or use lard if you have Fowl 503 no bacon fat ; let it become quite hot in a small pan, then put the bacon in, stir it quickly with a fork for one minute, and skim it out as soon as it rattles. It should be only slightly colored, if dark brown, it has been over- cooked. Drain on paper. Should the bacon prove to be very salt, it may be soaked in milk over night after slicing, then drain, roll in very fine crumbs, or flour, and cook it quickly in hot fat. With a gas stove bacon is readily made crisp by broil- ing. Then no additional fat is required. Smothered Fowl. Clean a fowl suitable only for boil- ing; stuff and truss as for roasting. Put it in a large deep kettle or jar. Parboil some white beans, season the same as for baking, and put them in the kettle with the fowl, under, around, and over the fowl. Add water and a small piece of pork. Cover, and bake slowly about eight hours. Add water as it boils away, and treat the same as for beans alone. Pour the beans out, remove the fowl carefully, put it on a large platter, and garnish with the beans. If more convenient, the fowl may be cut as for a fricassee. Hungarian Chicken or Paprika Huhn. Put one heaped tablespoon/id butter or dripping in a tight stew pan, add two good-sized onions sliced thin and left in long strips. When slightly colored, add half teaspoonful of Hunga- rian pepper or paprika, and mix well and let them brown. Then add the chicken cut in pieces, and salted and pep- pered. Brown well, turning often. Then add stock or water till nearly covered. Stew until tender. Just be- fore serving, take out the meat, put on a hot platter, and add a full half cup or more of thick sour cream. Just let it scald, but do not boil it, pour it over the chicken and serve at once. Croustades of Chicken. Cover the outside of small moulds or tin corn-cake cups with thin puff paste. Prick 504 The Boston Cook Book. and bake, remove from the moulds and fill with mixture of mushrooms and chicken breasts chopped fine and moistened with highly-seasoned cream sauce. Roast Mallard or Teal Ducks. Singe, draw, and re- move all the tiny pinfeathers. Then wash very quickly, both inside and out, with cool water and wipe perfectly dry. For the stuffing, take equal parts of chopped tart apples, of bread crumbs which have been browned in the oven and sifted, and of boiled onions. Season highly with salt and pepper, and a little sage, and moisten with two or three tablespoonfuls of melted butter. Stuff the ducks, sew and truss. Put on a rack in a pan, sprinkle with salt, pepper, and a little flour. Cover with small slices of salt pork and put into a very hot oven. In about five minutes the ducks will be light brown. Now reduce the heat and pour into the pan a very little water. The dripping fat will burn unless a little hot water is added. Baste every four or five minutes. In forty minutes the ducks will be sufficiently cooked, if liked a trifle rare, but many prefer a longer cooking. When nearly done, the pork must be removed and the birds evenly browned on all sides. Serve with Olive Sauce. Skim off some of the fat in the dripping pan until only four tablespoonfuls remain. To this add four tablespoonfuls of browned flour, stir, then add slowly one and a half cups of boiling water. Let it boil until slightly thickened, stirring constantly, then add four tablespoonfuls of olive pulp cut in small pieces, one tea- spoonful of lemon juice and one teaspoonful of caramel. Roast Duck, No. 2. Prepare as directed in first recipe, and stuff with stale bread crumbs, seasoned with a little melted butter, salt, pepper, and three-fourths of a cup of chopped celery. Place the duck on the bottom of the pan and not on the rack, and put close around it a sweet potato, a carrot, and a parsnip, each of them pared and Rabbit Fricassee. 505 cut in halves. When the duck is basted, baste the vege- tables also, and when the duck has been taken from the pan, mash the vegetables in the drippings and press through the sieve. Add about one and a half cups of boiling water, season and serve in a gravy boat. The vegetables take the place of flour in thickening, help to flavor, and we think this is a very good everyday gravy for ducks. (Miss Souther.) A Missouri Dainty. Cut a carefully dressed young squirrel or rabbit into pieces for frying ; rub each piece with salt, pepper, and dust with a trifle of mace] dredge well with flour, and fry to a rich brown in half butter and half lard. Remove the meat from the pan, add a heaping tablespoonful of flour, and when it is brown, enough seasoned soup stock to make a gravy as thick as cream. Next place the meat in a porcelain-lined pot, or earthen- ware " cooking-crock," pour over it the gravy, and a generous cupful of tomatoes, which have been well stewed down and seasoned with salt, pepper, and a grated onion ; place a tight-fitting lid on the vessel, stand it on a muffin ring in a moderate oven, and let it cook for three hours. Rabbit Fricassee with Curry. Select a fat, young, wild rabbit, which, if fresh, will have no unpleasant odor. Skin and clean it, and remove the head and neck, which are not to be used. Split it down the back, then disjoint it, or cut into convenient pieces. Wipe off with a clean wet cloth, and if you prefer you may soak it half an hour in salted water. Season with salt and pepper, dredge with flour, and brown slightly in hot butter or salt pork fat. Put the meat into a stewpan. In the fat left in the saucepan, put one sliced onion and cook until slightly colored. Mix two teaspoonfuls of curry powder, one ^easpoonful of sugar, and one heaping tablespoonful of Hour, and brown them in the butter. Add slowly one pint of water, one cup of strained tomato, six raisins seeded, on* cup of chopped sour apple, a dash of cay* 506 The Boston Cook Book. enne, and salt to taste. Turn this sauce over the rabbit, and let it simmer until the flesh is very tender. When ready to serve, add one cup of hot milk and quarter of a cup of chopped olives. Have ready one cup of rice, cooked in boiling water until soft, turn the rabbit into a platter and pile the rice around the edge. Brown Fricassee of Partridge. Dress and clean a pair of partridges, split them through the back and breast as for broiling. Fry two slices of salt pork in a Scotch bowl or other deep iron kettle. Remove the scraps, lay the partridges in, and brown them carefully. Then add one cup of boiling water ; cover the kettle closely and let it cook very slowly. Keep that amount of water in the kettle, adding a little as it boils away. Cook until very tender, about two hours. Then take out the meat, remove the fat from the gravy and pour in half a cup of tomato ketchup ; thicken it with a little flour mixed with cold water. Add more salt if needed, put the meat in again, and when heated through, serve on a shallow dish with browned sweet potatoes. (Mrs. Webster.) Baked Quail. Pick, draw, and wipe the birds outside and inside with a wet cloth. Be careful to remove any shot in the flesh. Cut the wings and neck off close to the body, but leave the feet on. Take two oysters to each bird, dip them in melted butter, then in cracker crumbs seasoned with salt and pepper. Put them into the body, tie the feet and fasten them through the tail with a small wooden skewer so they will cover the open- ing. Rub the breasts with softened butter and dredge with flour. Pin a thin piece of fat salt pork on the breast, arrange them in a baking pan so they will keep breast up. Place them in a hot oven and bake twelve minutes. Baste with melted butter and water three times during the baking. They have a dry white meat, and should be well done and be basted frequently to make them delicious. Have ready a small slice of nicely toasted bread, no Chafing-dish. 507 crusts, and moisten it slightly with hot salt water. Dish the birds on the toast without spilling any of the juice from the inside, as this is needed on the toast. Remove the skewers and pork, and garnish with cauliflower. Broiled Squabs. Remove the feathers, split down the back, remove the entrails, and wipe clean. Rub all over with soft butter, and dredge with salt and pepper. Lay them in a piece of buttered letter-paper, inside down, cross the legs over the outside, and fold the edges under to shape it well. Fold the paper over and fold the edges together. Broil over a clear fire about eight minutes. Spread cur- rant-jelly on some hot buttered toast; lay a bird on each slice, with a little jelly on the breast. Pour over them the juice from the papers, and serve very hot. ON THE CHAFING-DISH. Scrambled Eggs. Spread four slices of hot toast with a thin layer of potted ham. Beat four eggs slightly with a fork, season with salt and pepper, add half & cupful of milk. Turn into a hot buttered chafing-pan, and stir with a fork until the egg is slightly thickened. Turn at once on the toast, and serve quickly. Tomato Omelet. Fry three slices of bacon crisp, re- move it, and in the same fat cook one sliced onion until light brown. Beat three eggs slightly, season with cay- enne, add three tablespoonfuls of thick stewed tomato, the fried onions and the crisp bacon, finely crumbled. Turn into a greased chafing-pan, and pick it up with a fork as the egg thickens, then let it color slightly, roll over and turn out onto a hot platter. Scotch "Woodcock. First toast and butter some bread on both sides, and spread on this some chopped anchovies. Beat the yolks of four eggs with half a pint of cream, and thicken this for a few moments in the chafing-dish without letting it come to a boil. Arrange the small pieces of toast into a little pyramid and pour the egg over it 508 The Boston Cook Book. Deviled Eggs and Anchovy Toast. Put a loalnut of butter in the chafing-dish, half & teaspoonful of dry mus- tard, two tablespoon/ills of tomato sauce, one tablespoonful of Worcestershire, and one of mushroom catsup. Put into this four hard-boiled eggs, sliced, salted, and peppered. When heated, place the eggs on toast previously spread with anchovy paste. Creamed Eggs. Put into the chafing-dish one tea- spoonful butter and place the pan over the bath. Beat three eggs slightly, add half a cup thin cream and a salt- spoonful pepper. Turn into the butter and stir constantly as it thickens. Sprinkle with salt, and turn out while moist and soft. Lobster Newberg. Remove the meat from a large lobster and cut it into half-inch pieces. Have ready the yolks of four eggs beaten with one pint of rich cream. Put two heaped tablespoons of butter into a hot chafing- dish, remove the pan containing the hot water, and cover it while you put the blazer over the flame. Add to the lobster, four tablespoons of sherry, one tablespoon of brandy, and a saltspoon of red pepper, and let them cook five minutes. Place the pan of boiling water underneath, and then stir the cream and egg mixture in, and stir thoroughly. Remove as soon as the egg has thickened, that it may not curdle. Lobster Newberg, No. 2. Prepare one pint lobster dice. Beat yolks of three eggs, add one pint of cream, and one glass of sherry. Cook them in a double boiler, or in a chafing-dish over boiling water, and stir constantly until thick and smooth. Add half a teaspoon of salt and a saltspoon of paprika. Add the diced lobster, and merely let them get hot, and serve at once. Lobster Newberg, No. 3. Cook one pint diced lobster in one rounded tablesj oon butter in a saucepan, add one level teaspoon salt, one-quarter teaspoon paprika, and Oysters. 509 four tablespoons of Madeira or sherry wine. Cook five minutes. Beat yolks of two eggs, add half a cup of cream, and stir in quickly and remove at once before the egg curdles. Panned Oysters with Celery. Put into the chafing-dish one tablespoonfnl of butter, and when melted add one heaped tablespoonful fine cut celery, half a tablespoonful of paprika, half a teaspoonful of salt, and the juice of 7m(/* a lemon. When very hot, add one pint of oysters, previously picked over and drained. Cook until the edges curl. Add one cup of cream, and when this is hot serve on toast. Oysters a la Demerara. Put one pint of prepared oysters in the chafing-dish and cook until the edges curl. Drain off the water, add to the oysters two tablespoonfuls of butter, half a teaspoonful of salt, and two tablespoon- fuls of mango chutney sauce and two of Al sauce. Serve on Marguerite wafers. Oysters a la Maitre d'Hdtel. Pick over one pint of large oysters, put them in the chafing-dish and heat quickly until the juice flows. Pour off the liquor. Then into the lower pan put one tablespoonful of butter, and, when hot and beginning to color, lay in the oysters and brown them slightly. Season with salt and pepper; turn, and, when brown, squeeze juice of half a lemon over and serve at once. Creighton Oysters. Put into the chafing-dish one table- spoonful butter, one tablespoonful jlour, one saltspoon- ful paprika, one saltspoonful salt, one tablespoonful mushroom catsup, one teaspoonful lemon juice, and one tablespoonful Al sauce. Cook five minutes, add one pint oysters picked over and drained, and cook until the edges curl. Serve on wafers or toast. Curry of Scallops. Put one teaspoonful of butter in the chafing-dish, and when melted add one tablespoonful 5io The Boston Cook Book. of minced onion. After this is browned, stir in one tea- spoonful of curry powder. Cook for five minutes, then add one pint of white stock and let it simmer until re- duced about one-half. Put in one pint of scallops, pre- viously parboiled fifteen minutes, and cook from five to ten minutes. Add salt to taste. Crab Terrapin. One pint of canned or fresh crab meat, chopped fine. Boil one and a half cups of cream. Blend two tablespoonfuls butter and two of flour together, add the sifted yolks of four hard boiled eggs. Thin this with a little of the hot milk, then stir it into the re- mainder. Season with salt and cayenne. Add the crab meat and quarter of a cup of sherry wine, and when hot serve in bouillon cups. Clams a la Newberg. One pint raw clams, take out the soft part, remove the black end, and chop the tough parts very fine. Put one tablespoon of butter in a stewpan with one-half teaspoon salt and a saltspoon of paprika, add the clams, and simmer ten minutes. Then add two tablespoons of sherry and the soft part. Beat yolks of two eggs, mix with half a cup of cream, and stir in quickly and remove as soon as the egg thickens. Sardines a la Sterneau. Drain off the oil from half a can of boneless sardines. Put them in the chafing-dish and mash with a silver fork. When hot, add one table- spoonful lemon juice, one tablespoonful walnut catsup, and one tablespoonful Al sauce. Mix thoroughly, spread on wafers, and serve very hot. Dried Beef and Celery. Cut small one cup celery, and boil until tender in water enough to cover, adding a little more as it boils away. When soft, add half a cup sliced dried beef cut up very fine, and one tablespoonful of flour, mixed with the same amount of butter, half a cup of milk, and a little salt and pepper. Rarebit. 511 Sausages Sauted. Cut large, thick sausages or the sausage cakes into thin slices. Brown them quickly in hot butter or bacon fat in the chafing-dish ; add a little chopped celery and paprika, and serve on toast. Welsh Rarebit, with Ale. Put into the blazer over hot-water pan, one tablespoon of butter, a little salt, a few grains of cayenne, and mustard, if liked, and one-half pound of rich cream cheese crumbled fine. Stir as it melts, and add ale gradually till thin and smooth. Welsh Rarebit, without Ale. Have ready one level tablespoon butter creamed with one level teaspoon corn- starch, one-fourth teaspoon salt, and few grains cayenne, also one-half pound cheese grated or crumbled fine, one-half teaspoon mushroom catsup, and some wafers, or squares of delicate toast. Heat one-half cup cream in the blazer, and blend with it the butter mixture. When thick, set it over the hot water, add the cheese and catsup, stir till melted, then pour it over the wafers. Roquefort Rarebit. Take about one-eighth pound of Roquefort cheese, mash it with a silver fork on a plate until soft, stir in half a teaspoonful salt and the same of mustard, and one inch cube of soft butter. Add ale suf- ficient to blend the whole into a creamy mass. Spread it on wafers, and serve at once. Mushrooms, Cream Saute. Wipe or wash if needed, peel, cut stems fine, and if tough stew in a little milk. Slice or quarter the tops, cook them five minutes in plenty of butter, then add cream sufficient to make a sauce, sprinkle with salt and pepper, add the stems and simmer a few minutes, or till tender, adding more cream if needed. There should be sauce enough to moisten the toast. This is one of the simplest and most delicious ways of cooking mushrooms, especially the late varieties. 512 The Boston Cook Book. Panocha. M. E. Johnston.] 4 cups browii sugar. 1 tsp. salt. 1 tbsp. butter. 2 tbsp. vanilla. 1 cup milk. 2 cups chopped walnuts. Boil the sugar, butter, salt, and milk until it drops hard in cold water. When done, pour in the vanilla and wal- nuts, and stir constantly until well mixed. Pour on a buttered plate and cut into squares. String 1 qt. butter beans. Beans, 1 hpd. tbsp. butter. German 1 saltsp. pepper. Style. 1 saltsp. nutmeg. 1 tsp. salt. Break off the ends and strings, and if the latter do not come off readily, take a thin sharp paring knife and pare off the thickest string on the inside edge of the pod, taking as thin a strip as possible. Hold the bean with this edge toward you, and cut in thin slanting pieces not more than an inch and a half long, holding the back edge of the pod against the left forefinger. I give this minute direction because many of my pupils have found it dif- ficult to get the knack of cutting them "on the bias," as we call it, and it does make a difference in the flavor if they are broken or snapped in the old way. It takes time to do this, but after you learn the art, it can be done as quickly as one shells peas. Beans prepared in this way require much less time for cooking, and house- keepers who often give up having a dinner of string beans because they could not get them on at nine o'clock, or do not want a hot fire all the morning, will do well to try this recipe. Do not be afraid to use the nutmeg. You will not recognize it, yet you will miss something if you omit it. If the beans are not fresh from the vines, it may be well to put them in cold water before cutting, to make them more crisp and firm. After slicing, put them again into cold water, but do not prepare them more than half an hour before needed. Put the butter, salt, pepper, and nutmeg into a broad granite stewpan having a tight cover, Puree of Green Beans. 5 1 3 and when the butter is melted, take the beans from the water in handfuls, with only the water that clings to them, and put them into the butter. Add no more water. Cover tightly, and as soon as they are hot set them where they will cook very slowly. The butter and .liquid that is drawn from the beans will make sufficient moisture to steam the beans, and they will be perfectly tender if cooked slowly and of finer flavor than when deluged with water. Stir them up from the bottom occasionally, and so long as there is barely liquid enough to cover the bottom of the pan they are safe. If they cook too rapidly, and become quite dry, you may add two or three tablespoon fuls of water. They should be quite " flry except for the coating of butter, when done, and being already seasoned they are simply turned into the ^ tbsp. baking powder. j^ tbsp. mace. 3 egg whites. Reserve two whites for the frosting. Mix baking- powder and spice with the flour, then cream, butter, and sugar, and add beaten yolks ; then milk and flour alter- nately, and whites last. Beat vigorously at th6 last, and bake in three round, shallow cake pans. Put boiled frosting between the layers, and caramel frosting on the top. Snow- }/2 cup butter. Flake \% cup sugar. Cake. ^ cup milk. 5 eggs (whites). \% cups flour. 1 tsp. baking-powder. % tsp. rosewater. 1 grated cocoanut. Bake in jelly-cake tins. Frost each cake, and sprinkle the cocoanut between each layer, and over the top and sides. 540 The Boston Cook Book. Caramel % cup butter. 3 cups pastry flour. Cake. 2 cups sugar. 3 tsps. baking-powder. 4 eggs. 1 saltsp. mace. 1 cup milk. 1 cup walnuts (chop'd). Cream the butter with one cup sugar. Beat yolks of eggs with the other cup. Combine the two, and add milk and flour (mixed with baking-powder, spice, and nuts), alternately. Measure baking-powder level. Bake half of it in a long cake pan and the remainder in two round pans. Frost the long loaf with caramel frosting and decorate with halved walnuts. Put caramel frosting on top of one of the round cakes, lay the other on this, press- ing it slightly, and pour the remainder of the frosting over the whole. Caramel 3 cups of C. C. sugar. | 1 cup cream. Frosting. 1 heaping tbsp. butter. Boil them in a granite saucepan without stirring, until when dropped in cold water it is hard enough to be waxy. Stir only on the bottom, to keep from burning. Then set the pan in cold water, as it hardens, spread it on the cake while it is still soft enough to spread. It will settle into a smooth surface almost instantly. Frosting. One, cup powdered sugar, one tablespoonful corn starch, slightly rounding, two tablespoonfals water or mi-He, flavor as desired. Spread with a wet knife. This is simply mixed and requires no cooking. Sponge Cream Cake. (E. E. Squire.) This recipe is desirable when one is limited for time. It may be made, baked, filled, and decorated in just twenty-five minutes. Two eggs and three-fourths of a cup of granulated sugar beaten together very light. Add five tablespoonfuls of boiling water (be sure the water is boiling) as quickly as possible, beat slightly, then add onecupfiour sifted twice with one teaspoonfal baking powder and a saltspoonful of salt. Flavor slightly with lemon or vanilla or nutmey. Cakes. 541 Beat until the flour is absorbed, no longer. Bake in two jelly-cake pans twelve minutes in a quick oven. The batter is so thin the whole process of mixing can be done with the egg-beater. Whip one cup of cream stiff, sweeten with pulverized sugar, adding it a spoonful at a time while you are beat- ing, until you have it sweet enough. Flavor to taste. Put part of it on the bottom of one cake, lay the other cake on with the top up, and put the remainder of the cream in a pastry bag containing a star tube in the end, and decorate the surface with dots of the cream. 3 level teaspoons bak- ing-powder. )^ teaspoon cream of tartar. Whites of 6 eggs. Marshmallow 3^ cup butter. Cake. % cup sugar. ^ cup milk. 1 teaspoon vanilla. % cup cornstarch. /^ cup pastry flour. Mix the starch, flour, baking powder, and cream of tartar. Cream the butter and sugar, add the flavoring, then a little of the flour mixture, then milk and flour alternately, and lastly the stiffly beaten whites of the eggs. If preferred, use two cups of flour and omit the cornstarch. Bake in two shallow pans, and when done, frost and mark in squares and ornament with marsh- mallows which have been slightly toasted, or kept in the oven until puffed. Or spread the cake with a Marshmallow Frosting. Cut half a pound of marsh- mallows in small pieces, put them in the double boiler with four tablespoons of hot water and stir till melted and smooth. Boil one cup of sugar and one-third of a cup of hot water, without stirring, till the syrup threads when drop- ped from the spoon. Have the white of one large egg beaten stiff, and pour the syrup gradually into the egg while beating, then add the melted marshmallows gradu- ally, flavor with one teaspoon of vanilla and a few drops of lemon juice, beat until cool and thick enough to spread. 542 The Boston Cook Book. Put it on back of cake, and if you like a thick loaf, lay one on top of the other. The peculiar flavor which is noticeable in many marshmallow cakes, especially those made by Germans, is obtained from the extract of anise seed. Add it in small portions to the frosting till flavored to your liking ; a half teaspoonful is usually sufficient. Marshmallow Cake, for Dessert. (Miss Kate E. Whit- taker.) Bake angel cake in a square pan, and when quite two days old, cut in slices and spread a marshmallow fill- ing between, a la layer cake. Ice the top and sides with a soft icing of a pale violet tint. Serve with whipped cream around and candied violets scattered on the cake. Marshmallow Filling. Put one ounce of granulated gum arabic with four tablespoons of cold water and soak it one hour. Then stir it over boiling water until melted. Strain it into a double boiler, add half a cup of sugar and cook thirty minutes. Then add the whites of three eggs beaten very stiff and one teaspoon of vanilla. Beat until the mixture is stiff and white. Pistachio % cup butter. Cream 2 cups sugar, scant. 2% cups flour. 2 tsps. baking-powder. 3^ tsp. almond. Cake. 1 cup milk. Whites of 3 eggs. Cream the butter, add the sugar, milk, eggs beaten till foamy, almond and flour mixed with the baking-powder. Bake in shallow pans, and fill with one cup rich cream, half cup powdered sugar, half cup pistachio-nuts, half cup almonds. Whip the cream stiff with a Dover beater ; add the sugar, and the nuts chopped and pounded fine. Cheese Cakes. Line little patty pans with pastry, puff paste, or that which is quite rich. Make a cake after the recipe for Park Street cake, put a dessert spoonful of the cake batter on the paste, and then a teaspoonful of any kind of jelly, jam, or marmalade, with another dessert spoon- ful of the cake batter on the top. Bake in a quick oven Catcei. 543 and frost when done. This is a convenient way to use up any remnants of paste, cake batter, and jelly, when one does not care to make a large quantity of the cakes. 1 tsp. baking-powder. % cup cornstarch. 6 eggs, whites. Fig I % cups sugar. Cake. % cup butter. )^ cup sweet milk. I 3^ cups flour. Bake in two layers, and fill with fig filling. Fig I lb figs. I 1 cup water. Filling. % cup sugar. Chop the figs, add the sugar and water, and stew until soft and smooth. Spread between the layers, and ice the whole cake with boiled icing. 1 scant tsp. soda. 1 cup rich sour cream. 3 cups flour. Sour- 3 eggs. Cream 2 cups sugar. Cake. % ts P- sak- 1 tsp. lemon. Beat the yolks until light and thick ; add the sugar, the whites beaten stiff, the salt and lemon. Dissolve the soda in the cream, add the flour, and bake in a shallow pan. 2 cups flour. % te P- soda. % tsp. salt. % tbsp. mixed spice Half \4. cup sugar, and 3lj CU P butter. Half 1 egg. Cake. % CU P molasses. ^*2 cup sour milk. Mix soda, salt, and spice with the flour, cream the butter and sugar, add the beaten egg, the molasses, and sour milk, and then stir in the flour. Bake in a shallow pan about half an hour. Black- Cap Cake. 1 cup butter creamed. 1^ cups sugar. 2 tbsp. molasses. 2 eggs. % cup sour milk. 2j^ cups flour. 1 tsp. soda. 3^ tsp. each cinnamon and cloves. 1 cup each raisins and walnuts. Mix in the order given, and bake in two shallow pans. Half lard and half butter may be used instead of all butter, in any cake with molasses. 544 The Boston Cook Book. Sponge 1 cup sour milk. 1 egg. Gingerbread. 1 cup dark rich mo- 1 tsp. soda. lasses. * 1 tbsp. ginger. % CU P butter. 2 cups bread flour. % cup sugar. Warm the butter, molasses, and ginger together, add the milk, flour, and egg and a pinch of salt, and last the soda dissolved in one tablespoon of warm water. Bake in shallow pans. Grandmother's ^ cup sugar. Hard % cup butter. Gingerbread. ^ CU P molasses. % cup milk. % tsp. ginger. i^ tsp. salt. 1 even tsp. soda. Flour for stiff dough. Mix in the order given, dissolving the soda in the milk and mixing the salt and ginger in a little of the flour. Mix quite stiff, then knead till smooth and light ; roll out one-third of an inch thick and to fit long shallow pans. Mark in half inch strips with a pastry jagger, and bake about fifteen minutes. Anise-Seed Wafers. Rub half a cup of butter till creamy, add one cup of fine granulated sugar, and when light beat in the yolks of three small egys, one at a time. Beat the whites stiff, and add them with two cups of flour in alternation. Stir in one teaspoon of anise seed and enough moi'Q flour to enable you to roll it very thin. Cut into rounds and bake quickly. Anise seeds are used by the Germans and the Chinese as a flavoring in cake and sweet dishes. They are the fruit of seed of a small an- nual of the parsley family. A cordial or liquor is also prepared from them. They have an aromatic, agreeable odor and a warm sweetish taste. Hermits. 1 } cups sugar. % cup butter. 2 eggs. 2 cups seedless raisins 3 tbsp. milk. 1 teasp. soda. 1 teasp. each of spices, cinnamon, nutmeg, and clove. Flour to roll. Cream the butter and sugar, add the eggs well beaten, then the milk. Mix the soda and spices (cinnamon. Sand Cakes. 545 nutmeg, and clove) with one cup of flour ; add the raisins, which must be washed, boiled until tender in water tx? cover, and drained, cut in halves or chopped, and floured. Then add flour to roll about a quarter of an inch thick, cut out in fancy shapes and bake quickly. Walnut "Wafers. Cream one-fourth of a cup (two ounces) of butter gradually, add half a cup of powdered sugar, and almost drop by drop four tablespoonfuls of milk. Next mix in a scant cupful of bread flour, a few drops of any flavoring extract preferred, and one-fourth of a cupful of chopped ivalnuts. Spread on the bottom of an inverted dripping pan as thin as possible. The pan should be buttered unless it is very smooth. Because it is difficult to spread unless the nut meats are very finely chopped, many prefer to sprinkle them over the top of the dough after it is spread on the pan. Almond paste ma}' be creamed in with the butter. Mark in squares, then sprinkle with the nuts, and bake in a moderate oven. In five minutes they should be ready to roll, and this must be done at the oven door before they have a chance to cool a particle. With a wafer iron the process is slower, but the shape can be made more uniform. Sand Cakes. Cream one scant cup of butter with one cup and a half of -light brown sugar. Beat two eggs, reserving part of one white, and beat them into the butter. Mix half a teaspoon of cinnamon, two level teaspoons ot baking- powder, with three and a half cups of flour, stir this into the butter ; add another half cup of flour if needed to roll thin as a wafer. Use fancy cutters, hearts, diamonds, etc. ; lay the cakes in a greased baking pan. Brush the top with the remaining egg white. Split blanched almonds and put three or four on each cake in corners or radiating from the centre. Mix one fourth of a teaspoon cinnamon with one-fourth of a cup coarse granulated sugar and sprinkle it over the cakes. Bake in a quick oven six or eight minutes. 35 546 The Boston Cook Book. Fancy Ice Creams. Fancy ice creams depend largely for their right to this name, upon the moulding. Any good recipe for a cream ice or water ice may be used, but it is not advisable to attempt much in this line unless you have two freezers and a variety of fancy moulds. Plain brick moulds, melon moulds, brown bread moulds, pails, baking-powder cans, or fruit cans, if they are water tight, may all be utilized. Individual fancy moulds are quite expensive, but if one can afford their first cost, and is likely to use them often, it is cheaper in the end than to depend upon the confectioner. Cafe* Parfait, No. 1. Mix half a cup of strong clear coffee with one pint of medium cream. Sweeten to taste and stir until the sugar is dissolved. Place the bowl of cream in a pan of ice. When the cream is chilled, whip it with a whip-churn and skim off the froth into a strainer placed over a granite pan, which should be in another pan of ice to keep the whipped portion cold. Pack a mould in ice and salt, and when the whipped cream is drained, pack it into the mould. The liquid cream which drains through may be whipped again. Be careful not to have any liquid cream in the mould. Cover the mould and let it stand in the ice from two to three hours. Cafe" Parfait, No. 2. Make half a cup clear strong coffee. Beat the yolks of three eggs, add half a saltspoon of salt and half a cup of sugar, and when well mixed stir it into the* coffee and cook in a double boiler till thick and smooth, stirring constantly. Strain, and when cold add one quart of cream, whipped. Beat until well blended, and add more sugar if needed. Turn into the freezer can, packed in ice and salt, and freeze without turning the crank. Line a melon mould with an inch-thick layer of vanilla or plain coffee ice cream, then fill the centre with the whipped cream as in No. 1, and cover with ice cream. Pack in ice and salt, and let it stand for three hours. Fruit Mousse. 547 Cafe* Pralines. Beat yolks of four eggs, add/ow table- spoonfuls of sugar and four tablespoonfuls of black coffee. Cook in double boiler until thick and creamy, stirring constantly. Then turn it out and beat until it is cold. Add four tablespoonfuls of praline powder, and fold in lightly the drained whip from one pint of cream. Turn into a mould, and pack in ice and salt, and let it stand four hours. Praline powder is made by powdering fine peanut, almond, or any nut candy which has been boiled in sugar until brown. Fruit Mousse. Sprinkle strawberries or raspberries with sugar, and let them stand until the sugar is dis- solved and the juice drawn out. Use enough berries to make a pint of juice. Mash them and strain through fine cheese-cloth. Or prepare a pint of pineapple or orange juice, and sweeten to taste. Soak a quarter of a box of Nelson's gelatine in a quarter of a cup of cold water twenty minutes. Pack the mould or freezer can, minus the beaters, in ice and salt. Chill a pint of cream; then whip and drain it, as directed in Cafe Parfait, No. 1. Dissolve the soaked gelatine in a quarter of a cup of boiling water, and strain it into the fruit juice. Set the pan in a pan of ice and stir constantly, and as it begins to thicken stir in the whipped cream. When well mixed, pour it into the mould. Cover, and let it stand three hours in broken ice and salt, that it may become icy cold. Whip the cream with a syllabub churn, skim off the froth and put it into the strainer. If any liquid part drain through into the pan, put it back into the bowl and whip again. When all is whipped, put it into the mould or can. Pack it in closely enough to fill all the spaces, but be careful not to break up the froth. Cover the mould and let it stand three or four hours. When a fluted or fancy mould is used, the mousse will turn out better if the mould is first lined with ice cream or sherbet frozen just stiff enough to pack in smoothly. 548 The Boston Cook Book. Frappe*. Frappe is a term given to water ices which have been only partly frozen ; that is, to the consistency of mush, rather than hard enough to mould. It is really an iced drink, therefore the name should not be given to a thick custard cream. These ices are served in glasses, and usually are more or less liquid as the mixture melts very quickly. They may be made of any fruit juice diluted with water and sweetened, or with a mixture of juices, or with tea, coffee, or clam juice. They are served at after- noon teas, evening entertainments, or before the game course at dinner. In freezing frappe we use equal parts of ice and salt, and freeze quickly, as we wish to have a granular texture, and we turn the crank only until the mixture is partly frozen ; or it may be left in the can without stirring and when partly frozen, by scraping the icy portions from the side of the can, and a slight mixing, the desired consist- ency may be obtained. Caf Frappe*. Make a quart of very strong black cof- fee, and mix it with a quart of cream, and sweeten to taste. Freeze as directed. Caf Frappe\ Make a quart of coffee by filtering one quart of boiling water through half a cup of fine coffee. Freeze as directed, and serve in glasses with a spoonful of sweetened whipped cream on each glass. Grape Juice Frappe'. One pint of grape juice, one pint of water, one and one half cups of sugar. Freeze as directed. Strawberry Frappe\ The juice from one quart of strawberries and twice the amount of water, one table- spoonful of lemon juice and sugar to make it very sweet, about half a cup for a pint of liquid. Clam Frappe*. Two quarts of clams in the shell. Wash and scrub the clams, rinse thoroughly. Put half a Sherbet. 549 cup of water in a kettle, add the clams, cover tightly, and cook until the shells open. Skim out the clams, and pour off the water; remove the shells and tough mem- brane. Put the clams into the water, and let them stand ten minutes. Then skim them out, let the water settle, Ihen strain through fine cheese-cloth, and freeze as Directed. Ceylon 1 pt. sugar boiled with Frappe*. 1 pt. water, add 2 cups orange juice. 1 can grated pineapple. 3^ cup lemon juice. 1 cup Ceylon tea. Pour the boiling syrup over the shaved rind of half an orange and half a lemon, add the fruit juice. Pour one cup of boiling water on one teaspoonful of choice tea. When cool, strain, mix, and freeze as directed. Cherry Frapp& The juice from one quart can of white cherries, a pint bottle of Apollinaris, and sugar to taste. Strain and freeze as directed. Orange Frappe'. Boil two cups of sugar and two cups of water twenty minutes, add the grated rind of one orange, and pour it over two cups of blood orange juice add the juice of one lemon; strain, cool, and freeze as directed. Roman 1 cup lemon juice. 1 I pint champagne. Punch. 4 cups water. 1 gill maraschino. 2 cups sugar. Put water, lemon juice, and sugar together, freeze to a mush; then add champagne and maraschino and finish freezing. Serve in frappe glasses. Banana Sherbet. Put three cups of water and one and one-half cups of sugar in a smooth saucepan, and boil five minutes. Add the juice of one lemon and two oranges, and a little of the grated rind of each, and one cup of sifted banana pulp. Scrape off all the stringy fibres 550 The Boston Cook Book. from the bananas before sifting. Beat the syrup and fruit mixture till cold, then stir in three cups of whipped cream, measured after whipping, or the whites of three ecjgs beaten stiff, if you have no cream. Add half a cup of sherry, if you approve, but it is delicious without it, as the banana has a distinctive flavor. Freeze till soft like mush, using equal parts of ice and salt. Serve in frappe glasses. 4 oz. candied ginger. 1 qt. sugar. Lemon 2 qts. boiling water. Ginger 8 lemons. Sherbet. 1 egg, white. Spread part of the sugar on a shallow plate or board, and after wiping the lemons with a clean, damp cloth, roll them in the sugar, to extract the oil. Then cut in halves, remove the seeds, and squeeze out the juice. Boil all the sugar, ginger, and water until clear. Remove the scum as it rises. Add the lemon juice to the syrup, strain it, and pour it gradually into the beaten egg. Then freeze as usual. "White Velvet Sherbet. The juice of six lemons and the thinly shaved peel of two soaked in the juice half an hour. Then strain .the juice, and add enough sugar to make a thick batter. It usually requires about a cupful to each lemon. Add three pints of milk, and turn at once into a freezer packed with three parts broken ice and one part rock salt. Turn slowly at first, and when it begins to thicken, turn rapidly until stiff. Add more ice and salt, and let it ripen for at least two hours before serving. Milk Sherbet. Pour one quart of milk into the freezer can, and pack it in the freezer with salt and ice. With the juice of three or four lemons mix a generous cupful of sugar or enough to make a thick batter. A more pro- nounced lemon flavor is gained by using a few drops of lemon extract, or rubbing the rind of the lemons with Sultana Roll. 551 lumps of loaf sugar which are afterward dissolved in the juice. Mix the lemon syrup with the ice-cold milk, and freeze as usual. When the milk is very cold, there is little danger that it will curdle. Ice Cream with Fruit Syrup. Fill punch glasses half full with vanilla ice cream. Crush strawberries and sweeten to taste with sugar dissolved in a little water boiled and cooled. Pour the fruit over the ice cream, nearly filling the glass. Banana Ice Cream. Select eight large nice bananas, ripe, but free from all blemish on the skin. Wipe them, and carefully peel off the flat strip of skin. Remove the pulp, scrape out the fibrous portion from the skins, and put them in the ice chest until the cream is ready. Mash the pulp of half of the bananas, mix with it two cups of sugar and one quart of cream of medium thickness, add one saltspoon of salt, and two of lemon juice. Press it through a fine sieve and freeze. Chop fine some French candied fruit, cherries, green plums, and angelica enough to make eight rounded tablespoon/ids. When the cream is nearly frozen, put a layer of it in the banana skins, sprinkle a tablespoonful of the fruit over the cream, add enough more cream to fill the skins, lay back the strip, and tie them with narrow green ribbons. Put them into a clean freezer, and let them stand surrounded with ice and salt, for an hour or two to ripen. Serve them on plates lined with lace paper. Sultana Roll. Wash and soak one-fourth of a cup of Sultanas in brandy or wine to cover. Mix one scant tablespoon of flour and a speck of salt with one cup of sugar ; add one egg, and beat well. Pour on slowly one pint of hot milk. Turn into the double boiler, and cook twenty minutes. Cool and stir in one quart of cream, a few drops of almond and a tablespoon of vanilla. Color a delicate green with green color paste. Freeze it, and 552 The Boston Cook Book. then use it to line baking-powder cans, pound size. Scat- ter the drained Sultanas through the cream, fill the centre with thick cream, sweetened, flavored with vanilla and whipped stiff. Cover, and let the cans stand in ice and salt one or two hours. Turn out, cut in slices, and serve with Claret Sauce. Boil one cup of sugar with one-fourth of a cup of water; when slightly thickened, cool and add one-half of a cup of claret. Frozen 1 quart milk. Pudding. 1 hpd. tbsp. arrowroot. (E. E. Squire.) 2 cups sugar. ^2 level tsp. salt. 3 cups cream. 4 eggs, whites. 1 tbsp. vanilla. Y z lb. Freuch fruit. 2 oz. pistachio nuts. Color and flavor to taste. Scald the milk in a double boiler. Mix the arrowroot, sugar, and salt thoroughly, turn them into the boiling milk and stir constantly until it thickens and is smooth. Cook for twenty minutes. Or if you prefer you may wet the arrowroot with a little cold milk and stir it, into the boil- ing milk and then add the sugar. Let this mixture become very cold, and when ready to freeze it, whip the cream to a light froth, beat the eggs until light, but not stiff, and stir them into the cold mix- ture. Should there be any doubt as to the sweetness of the cream, scald and cool it, before whipping. Add the vanilla, using enough to give a strong flavor. If you like, you may color it a delicate tint with yellow, pink, or green color paste. Turn it into the freezer and when partly frozen stir in the French fruit and nuts. The fruit should be cut into small bits. Candied cherries, apricots, and green plums make an agreeable combination. Blanch the nuts in boiling water until the skins loosen easily, remove them, and cut into thin slices. Frozen pudding as usually served at first-class hotels is flavored with a fine quality of Santa Cruz or Jamaica Green Apple Sauce. 553 Rum, about two tablespoonfuls put in with the fruit. Those who approve of and are accustomed to this flavor would doubtless consider a frozen pudding made without it, as not worthy of the name, but when made after this recipe it is delicious with only the vanilla flavoring, and although more expensive than the usual formula, it is well worth an occasional trial. Strawberry Ice Cream. Sprinkle two cups of sugar over two quarts of strawberries. Mash them, and let tliem stand half an hour, or until the sugar is dissolved ; and meanwhile prepare the ice, and pack the freezer. Turn the berries into a large square of cheese-cloth, placed over a bowl, and squeeze as long as any juice or pulp will come. Then empty the pulp and seeds left in the cloth into a pan, and pour on gradually about a pint of milk; mix it well with the pulp, until the pulp is sep- arated from the seeds. Squeeze again until perfectly dry. There should be nothing left in the cloth save a ball of seeds. Add to the juice as much cream as you may have, from one cup to three plnts^ and sugar to make it very sweet. Freeze as usual. After tasting this, you will never want any other strawberry ice cream. Stewed Green Apple Sauce. The first green apples that are found in the market usually awaken an appetite for apple sauce and apple pie. The former is seldom seen in perfection. Try this method. With a sharp silver knife cut the apples in quarters, remove the cores and skin and put them, as fast as pared, into a bowl of cold water. When all are ready, skim them out into a porcelain-lined or agate kettle with a large surface, so there will not be much depth to the apples. Add boiling water, just to show among the pieces, cover tightly to keep in the steam, and let them cook quickly. Shake the pan occasionally, and as soon as soft, mash them with a silver fork, sprinkle over sugar to taste, 554 The Boston Cook Book. cover again and cook until the sugar is dissolved, and serve hot or cold. It should be free from lumps, white or about the shade of the inside of a lemon, and not too sweet. When eaten hot for breakfast, sometimes a pat of butter is an improvement. When cooked in this care- ful way, it will be far more appetizing than if of a dingy- brown color, of half cooked, and there will be no occasion for sifting it. Bananas with Fruit Sauce. Pick over one quart of currants; wash, drain, and mash them. Sprinkle over them one cup of sugar, and let them stand until the sugar is dissolved. Stir occasionally, then squeeze through coarse cheese-cloth, or press through a strainer fine enough to keep back the seeds. Peel four bananas, re- move all the stringy membranes, cut them in halves lengthwise and crosswise. Arrange them in a shallow glass dish, and pour the currant juice over them. Keep it in a cold place until ready to serve. The flavor of the currant juice improves the bananas, and the color gives a pretty effect. Do not use the currants without sifting, for the seeds will be quite objectionable in the sauce. Blackberry juice may be used in the same way. A cool, simple dessert like this is more acceptable on a summer day than a hot starchy pudding served with meringue or whipped cream. Stewed Prunes. It would appear that so simple a thing as a dish of stewed prunes might always be accept- ably served, but they are usually too sweet or insuffici- ently cooked. All dried fruits that is, fruits that have been deprived of their natural juices by quick evapora- tion, or sun drying need to have this juice or water replaced by a long soaking in cool water before being subjected to heat. This softens the cellular tissues so that they can absorb the water, the fruit swells out to nearly its natural condition ; and then by the heat ap- plied in cooking, the softening process is continued until every particle of the skin is, or should be, perfectly soft. Preserved Strawberries. 555 Just enough water to cover them, so that all may be equally softened, is all that is necessary, and when the prunes are sufficiently cooked this should boil down to a thick syrup. Except in some of the most acid varieties, no sugar is needed. In fact, many prunes are so rich in sugar that a little lemon juice seems to be an improve- ment. It is understood, of course, that the prunes should be well washed in tepid water before they are soaked. Preserved Strawberries. Select the choicest berries and lay aside not necessarily very large ones, but per- fect, firm, and of even size they must be. Press the re- mainder of the fruit for juice, taking only what drips easily. These berries can be used later for a jam. To a pound of juice allow a pound of sugar, and make as one does any jelly. Boil fully twenty minutes until surely jellied. Meantime weigh the fruit selected and an equal amount of sugar. Add these then to the jelly and boil carefully a few minutes more. No exact time can be given. It would not keep with raw strawberries dropped in, neither must they be allowed to shrivel like preserved ones. Occasionally try it on a saucer, keeping the kettle at a simmer only. Do not do much at a time. It is bet- ter to repeat the operation. When it grows firm in the saucer, put in a cold place, remove it from the fire (and seal, as usual, when cold), dipping it with care into glasses soon after taking from the fire. It will not be a jelly that moulds like gooseberry or like quince and sustains its weight. It is apt to fall in lusci- ous masses, catching the light in its clear red depths and showing the imprisoned berries. A very little apple juice prepared as for jelly and carefully strained added at the beginning, with the same allowance of sugar, pound for pound or fractions thereof, would help it to form or "set" as old house- keepers say, and the flavor would not be detected. This is frequently done for making pear, cherry, and peach jellies, for the same reason that they do not form jelly 556 The Boston Cook Book well alone. A flannel jelly bag is very nice for a second straining, using the usual linen cheese-cloth for the first pressing, Cincinnati Recipe. Pot-Pourri. Put a pint of alcohol or ivhite preserving brandy into a large stone jar that has a tightly fitting- cover ; then, as the summer fruits come on, put them into the alcohol with an equal amount of sugar; thus a cup of sugar and a cup of fruit. Stir every day with a clean wooden spoon. Use strawberries, pineapples, rasp- berries, currants, blackberries, apricots, cherries, peaches, plums, and grapes. Plums and peaches should be peeled, stoned, and cut fine. Cherries should be stoned, and grapes should be seeded. The alcohol is enough for the jarful of fruit, and will cook and keep the fruit perfectly. About a month after putting in the last fruit, it will be ready to use. As the seeds of small fruits become hard by the brandy, it is better to mash them and use only the juice, particu- larly with currants, blackberries, and raspberries. Rhubarb Jelly. September, or not earlier than the middle of August, is the best time to make rhubarb jelly, as it is almost impossible for it to thicken when made of the spring rhubarb. "Wash the rhubarb, but do not peel it, simply cut it into small pieces and never mind if it be stringy. To every pound of rhubarb add half a cup of water and let it stew slowly in a granite or porcelain pan until it is all in shreds. Then strain through a fine cloth. Measure the juice and allow one pound of sugar to one pint of juice. Let the juice simmer ten minutes, or until it begins to thicken on the edge, then add the sugar and let it simmer till it jellies on the spoon or when dropped on a cool plate. Remove the scum carefully when done, turn into glasses which have been rolled in hot water and are still standing in it, and when cold and firm, pour melted par- affine over the top. Cover with paper and keep in a cool, dark closet. Preserved Citron. 557 Wild Unripe Grape Sauce. Wash the grapes and re- move the steins. Cut through the middle with a sharp knife and remove the seeds. Then weigh the fruit and allow an equal weight of sugar. Put the cut fruit in a kettle with cold water to show just to the top of the fruit. Let it boil, remove the scum, then sprinkle over it one quarter of the sugar. Boil again and press the grapes down, but do not stir to break them. Then add another quarter of the sugar, and when it has boiled five or eight minutes, repeat until all the sugar is used. Cook slowly until the syrup is thick or will jelly. Turn into small jars or glasses and seal with paper. When cold, the grapes should be quite distinct in the clear jelly. Grape Jelly. The wild grapes, gathered just as they begin to turn, are the best for jelly. Cultivated grapes, if fully ripe, are quite likely to disappoint one, if used for jelly ; the color is dark and unattractive, and the com- pound is often a syrup rather than a jelly, but they make delicious marmalade. Wash the grapes and free them from the stems. Put them in the kettle, and mash them until all broken. Heat slowly, and cook until the juice is well drawn out. Then place a square of cheese-cloth over a colander, and set the colander over a bowl. Turn in the grapes, and let it drip without any pressure. Measure the juice, and allow an equal measure of sugar. If wild grapes are used, allow a little more than an equal portion of sugar. Boil the juice fifteen minutes. Skim, and strain again, then add the sugar, and boil until the surface looks wrinkled, and the liquid jellies on the edge. Skim well, and turn into glasses. Preserved Citron. Cut the citron melon in halves each way, then cut each quarter in three -quarter-inch slices from the stem and blossom ends to the middle. In this way you cut across the seeds, and they can be more easily removed than if the melon be cut in the same direction that the seeds lie. 558 The Boston Cook Book. Pick out all the seeds, and cut the slices in squares, stars, triangles, or any shape preferred. Put the harder outside pieces by themselves. Weigh the fruit and allow an equal weight of sugar or a little less if you prefer. Cook the citron in clear water until tender and transpar- ent, the harder pieces first. As the fruit softens, take it out into another kettle or deep dish and sprinkle each layer with sugar. When it is all cooked, let it stand until the sugar is nearly dissolved and some of the citron juice is drawn out. Then put it over the fire again, and let it heat slowly until the fruit is heated through. Remove the fruit into the jars, which should be near at hand, in a pan of hot water. Boil the syrup down until it seems thick and rich, then pour it into the jars and seal quickly. If the fruit seems dry after standing in the sugar, you may add a little water when it is put on to boil. If you like, you may use the thinly shaved rind and juice of one. lemon to each jar of fruit. Be sure that the lemon is not bitter. One tablespoonful of crystallized ginger cut fine gives a flavor preferred by many. Strawberry Tomato Preserve. For one pound of strawberry tomatoes allow one-half pound of sugar and one lemon. Remove the husks. Make a syrup with the sugar and water enough to dissolve it, bring it to a boil and remove the scum. Add the tomatoes and let them stew until heated through, then skim them out and boil the syrup clown until quite thick. Cook the sliced lemon in boil- ing water until the rind is tender, then add it to the syrup. Tutti Fnitti for Tarts. Take equal parts of stoned cherries, currants, red raspberries, and large gooseberries. Mash the currants, squeeze out the juice, and use that to dissolve the sugar. Allow one pound of sugar to each pound of fruit. Mix and boil until thick like jam. De- licious for tarts Mangoes. 559 Lemon Butter. The juice and grated rind of three lemons, three eggs well beaten, one pound of sugar, one small cup of water, one level teaspoonful of butter. Beat well together and boil five minutes or until thick. Keep it in covered jelly-glasses. This is an English recipe. Mangoes. These are made from small, green water or muskmelons, green tomatoes, peppers, peaches, large cu- cumbers, or any fruit from which the seeds, stone, or inside portion can be removed, the cavity filled with a highly-seasoned mixture, and the opening closed again in such a way as to give the appearance of whole fruit. In using peppers and green tomatoes, cut a circular piece from the stem end, remove the seeds, and put the pieces in place again, or beside the one from which they were taken. If melons are used, cut out a piece one inch wide and three long, then scoop out the seeds and soft portion. When the fruit is prepared, let it soak over night in strongly-salted water. In the morning drain, and be careful to have the cut portions kept where they belong. Prepare the following mixture to use as stuffing : Chop enough firm, white cabbage to fill the cavities, it is im- possible to give the exact amount. You may use with it, if you prefer, one-fourth part of chopped celery, or green tomatoes, or cucumbers. Sprinkle well with salt and let it stand two hours. Allow one small onion, two or three nasturtium-seeds, and half a teaspoonful of whole mus- tard-seed to each pint of chopped vegetables. Season to taste with ground cloves, cinnamon, allspice, ginger, pep- per, and salt. Mix thoroughly, and then fill the cavities ; press it in well, fit in the pieces that were removed, and then tie them firmly with fine twine. Put the mangoes in a preserving kettle, cover with cold vinegar and let them remain over night. The next morning heat all together and simmer gently half an hour. Take them out care- fully and put in a stone jar and cover with cold vinegar. The next morning pour off the vinegar, add half a cup of sugar to each quart of vinegar, bring to a boil, and pour 560 The Boston Cook Book. it over the mangoes. Repeat this for three or four morn- ings, and after the last scalding, cover when cool, and put away in a dry place. The latter part of this process applies only to mangoes made from melons and cucum- bers. Pepper and tomato mangoes are simply covered with cold vinegar after stuffing, then put away, and in a month they will be ready for the table. Orange Marmalade. One dozen of large navel oranges. Cut in halves, and scoop out the juice. Boil the peels two or three hours in plenty of water until you can run a broom corn through them. Drain, and when cool enough to handle, scrape out all the white, leaving only the yellow outside. Cut into straws. Weigh the pulp free from membrane and add an equal weight of sugar. Boil pulp, sugar, and straws for two hours, and then turn into glasses. It makes six one-pint jelly tumblers. EXPLANATION OF TERMS USED IN COOKERY. Abatis. Giblets. Agncau. Lamb. Ala, au, aux. With ; as h nitres aux champignons^ oysters with mush- rooms. Dressed in a certain style; as Smelts a la Tartar?, with Tartare sauce. A VAurore. A white sauce colored pink with the spawn of lobsten A la bonne Femme. Of the good house- wife. A VEstragon. With tarragon. A la Neige. In the style of snow. A la Pouletle. Meat or fish warmed in a white sauce with yolks of egga. A la Heine. Of the queen. Allemande. A thick white sauce made with cream and the yolks of eggs, and seasoned with nutmeg and lemon juice. Almond. A nut grown in Southern Eu- rope. It consists of a stone fruit, the fleshy pericarp of which dries in ripen- ing, and forms a hard tough covering to the stone. Bitter almonds are ob- tained from Morocco. They contain prussic acid, and are poisonous. The sweet almonds include the Jordan and Valencia varieties. The Jordan al- monds, - imported from Malaga, are long and narrow, and are considered the best. Angelica. A plant, the stems of which are preserved in syrup, and used for decorating pastry, etc. Anguilles. Eels. Apricot. A stone fruit cultivated in temperate and tropical climates. The skin has a highly perfumed flavor. Asperges. Asparagus. Afpic Jelly. A transparent jelly made with stock, and used for garnishing. Au Beurre roux. With browned butter. Au vert Pie. With sweet herbs. Aux Cressons. With watercresges. Aux Rognons. With kidneys. Avena. Oats. Baba. A very light yeast cake soaked in rum. Bain Marie. A shallow open vessel filled with hot water, in which smaller dishes containing soups and sauces may be placed and kept warm without further cooking until serving-time. Bannock. Primitive cake without yeast, cooked on a griddle, in Scotland made of pease, barley, and oatmeal, in Amer- ica of cornmeal. Barbecue. To roast any annual whole, usually in the open air. Barm. The scum from fermented malt liquors, used as yeast. Baron o/ Beef. The two sirloins not cut down the back. Formerly a favorite dish in England. Baron of Lamb. The entire loin, not divided at the backbone, with the upper part of both legs. Basil. An herb having a perfume like that of cloves, used as seasoning. Bavaroise. Bavarian. Bay Leaves. The leaves of the cherry- laurel tree. Bearnaise. A rich egg sauce flavored with tarragon, named from Beam, birthplace of Henry IV. of France. Becasses. Woodcock. Bechamel. A white sauce made with stock and cream, named from a cele- brated cook. Beignet. A fritter. Beurre noir. Browned butter. Bisque. A shell-fish soup. Blanch. To parboil, to scald vegetables, nuts, etc., in order to remove their hulls or skins. Blanquette. Any white meat wanned in a white sauce thickened with eggs. Bouchees. Very small Patties. Baiuf. Beef. Bouillabasse. Several kinds of fish boiled quickly, and highly seasoned 36 562 The Boston Cook Book. with onion, orange peel, saffron, oil, etc. BouUle. Broth made from beef. Bouilli. Beef stewed, generally in one large piece, and served with a sauce. Bouquet, or Fagot of Herbs. A sprig of each of the herbs used in seasoning, rolled up in a spray of parsley and tied securely. Braising. Stewing in a covered pan, with heat applied both below and above. Brawm. Head cheese. Bretonne. A pure"e of red onions. Brioche Paste. Cakes made with yeast. Broche. A spit. Brochette. A skewer. Brunoise. A brown soup or sauce. Bubble and Squeak. A dish of vegeta- ble hash and meat. Buttock. A round of beef. Cafe au Lait. Coffee with hot milk. Cafe noir. Black coffee. Caille. Quail. Calipash. The glutinous meat of the upper shell of the turtle. Calipee. The glutinous meat of the under shell of the turtle. Canard. Duck. Canellons. . Puff paste baked round a form of cardboard, shaped like a cane. Cannelon of Meal. Minced and highly seasoned meat, baked in the form of a large roll. Capers. Unopened buds of a low trail- ing shrub grown in Southern Europe. Pickled and used in sauces. Capon. A chicken castrated for the purpose of improving the quality of the flesh. Caramel. A syrup of burnt sugar, named after Count Caramel, who dis- covered what is called the seventh degree of cooking sugar. Cardoon. A vegetable resembling the artichoke. Casserole. A mould formed of rice or potato, and filled with a re'chauffe^ Champignons. Mushrooms. Charlotte. A preparation of cream or fruit, formed in a mould, lined with cake or fruit. Chartreuse. A preparation of game, fillets, etc., moulded in jelly and sur- rounded by vegetables. Invented by the monks of the monastery of Char- treuse as a convenient way of disguis- ing meat. Chervil. The leaf of a European plant used as a salad. Chillies. Red peppers. Chine. A piece of the backbone of an animal, with the adjoining parts cut for cooking. Usually applied to pork. Chives. An herb allied to the onion family. Chou-fleur. Cauliflower. Chutney. A hot acid sauce made from apples, tomatoes, raisins, cayenne, gin- ger, garlic, shalots, salt, sugar, lemons, and vinegar. Citric Acid. The acid of the citron family, lemons, oranges, etc. Citron. The rind of a fruit of the lemon species preserved in sugar. Cochineal. Coloring matter made from the dried bodies of insects found in Mexico, where they feed on a species of the cactus. Cock-a-leekie. A soup used in Wales, made from fowls and leeks. To Collar. To cure meat in a spiced brine. Collops. Meat cut in small pieces. Compote. Fruit stewed in syrup. Confitures. Preserves. Consomme. Very rich stock. Coriander. A plant cultivated for its tender leaves, which are used in soups and salads and in making curry powder. Cornichons. Pickles. Cotelettes. Cutlets. Coulis. A rich brown gravy. Creme Brulee. Browned sugar or cara- mel with cream. Creole, A la. With tomatoes. Crevettes. Shrimp. Crimp. To cause to contract, or ren- der more crisp, as the flesh of a fish by gashing it, while living, with a knife. Croquettes. A preparation of mince with a bread-crumbed coating, and cooked till crisp. Croustade. A kind of patty of bread or prepared rice. Crouton. A sippet of fried or toasted bread. Crumpet. Raised muffins baked on a griddle. Cuen de Bceuf. Ox-tails. Terms Used in Cookery. 563 Currants. Dried currants are small black grapes, named from Corinth where they are grown. Curries. Stews of meat or fish, seasoned with curry powder and served with rice. Curry Powder. A mixture of turmeric, coriander seed, pepper, ginger, carda- moms, cumin seed, caraway, and cay- enne. De, d\ Of ; as, filet de bcntf, fillet of beef. Desosser. To bone. Devilled. Seasoned hotly. Dinde. Turkey. En Coquille. Served in shells. En Papillate. In papers. Endive. A plant of the Composite family, used as a salad. Entrees. Small made dishes served with the first course at an elaborate dinner. Entremets. Second-course side dishes, including vegetables, eggs, and sweets. Epigrammes. Small fillets of poultry, game, and lamb prepared as an entree. Espagnole. A rich brown sauce, the foundation of most brown sauces. Epinards. Spinach. Eperlans. Smelts. Faisan. Pheasant. Fanchonnettes and Florentines. Small pastries covered with a meringue. Farcie. A kind of force-meat or stuff- ing. Fausse Tortue. Mock Turtle. Fcuilletage. Puff paste. Fillets. Long thin pieces of meat or fish, generally rolled and tied. Financiere. A rich brown sauce, with wine and mushroom catchup. Finnan Haddock. Haddock smoked and dried, named from Findhorn in Scot- land, where they are obtained in per- fection. Flaus, Darioles, and Mirlitons. French cheese cakes. Foie. Liver. Fondant. Melting. Boiled sugar, basis of French candy. Fondue. A preparation of melted cheese. Fowl a la Marengo. A fowl browned in oil, and stewed in rich stock, seasoned with wine. Eaten and approved by Napoleon after the battle of Marengo. Praise. Strawberry. Fricandeau. A thick piece of meat larded and browned, and stewed in stock, or baked and covered with glaze. Fricassee. A stew in which the meat is first fried slightly. Fromage. Cheese. Galantine. Boned meat or poultry. Gateau. A cake. Gaufres. Waffles. Gelee. Jelly. Genevese Sauce. A white sauce made with white stock, highly seasoned with herbs, spices, mushrooms, lemon, and wine, and served with salmon or trout. Glace. Covered with icing. Glaze. Stock boiled down to a thin paste. Gnocchi. A light savory dough boiled, served with Parmesan. Goulasch. A Hungarian beef stew, highly seasoned. Gratins. Served in a rich sauce with browned crumbs. Grilled. Broiled. GroseUles. Currants. Gumbo. A dish of food made of young capsules of okra, with salt and pepper, stewed and served with melted butter. Gumbo Ffat Powder. Made from the tender young leaves of the sassafras, picked in the spring, and dried care- fully in the shade like any herb. Powdered fine and bottled tight. Used in New Orleans. Haggis. A preparation of the heart, tongue, and liver of sheep. Haricot. A small bean ; a bit. A stew in which the meat and vegetables are finely divided. Hodge-podge. A Scotch meat stew. Homard. Lobster. Hors-d> cream, etc. used for thickening. Lit. A layer. Articles in thin slices placed in layers, with seasoning or sauce between. Macedoine. A mixture of fruit moulded in jelly ; or of vegetables. Madeline. A kind of pound cake. Maigre. Dishes for fast days, made without flesh. Maitre d' Hotel. Master of the hotel. Malic Acid. The acid of apples, par- tially changed to sugar as apples ripen and into a bitter principle as they decay. Mango. A kidney-shaped, sub-tropical fruit of variable quality, used green for pickles, and ripe for dessert. Manna Kroup. A flour made from wheat and rice, sometimes mixed with saffron and yolk of egg. Maraschino. A kind of brandy. Marinade. A pickle for boiling meat or fish in. Marinate. To pickle or to sprinkle with a French dressing. Marrons. Chestnuts. Matelote. A rich stew, made of fish, and flavored with wine. Mayonnaise. Cold sauce, or salad dress- ing, of raw eggs and oil. Menu. A bill of fare. Meringue. A kind of icing made of white of egg and sugar well beaten. Mi-Careme. Dishes used in mid-Lent. Mignonnette Pepper. Peppercorns ground coarsely. Mirepote. A rich brown broth used in braising meat. Miroton. Pieces of meat cut larger than collops, for a stew or ragout. Morel. A species of mushroom. Morue. Codfish. Mouton. Mutton. Nectarine. A variety of the peach, hav- ing a smooth skin. Nougat. A mixture of almonds and sugar Nouilles. A kind of vermicelli. Noyau. A cordial. (Eu.fs. Eggs. Ognon. Onions. Okra. The green mucilaginous pods of an annual plant, used in the South for soups and pickles. Oxalic Acid. The acid in sorrel and rhubarb. Panais. Parsnips. Paner. To cover with bread crumbs. Panure. Any entree that is bread- crumbed. Pate aux Choux. Cream-cake paste, so called because when baked it resembles a head of cabbage. Pate de Foie gras. A pie of fat livers. Perdreux. Partridge. Persillade of Fish. With parsley. Petite Panis. Little bread. Petits Pois. Pease. Pigeonnaux. Squab. Pimento. Allspice or Jamaica pepper. Pistachio. A pale greenish nut re- sembling the almond. Poelee. Stock used instead of water for boiling poultry, sweetbreads, etc. Poisson. Fish. Pommes. Apples. Pommes de Terre. Potatoes. Pot-au-feu. The stock pot. Potage. A soup. Pot-Pourri. A mixture of minced cooked meat and vegetables. A mix- ture of fruits and sugar. Poulet. A chicken. Praline. Flavor with burnt almond. Printanier (a la). With young spring vegetables. Puree. A thick soup rubbed through a Quenelle. A delicate force-meat used in entries. Terms Used in Cookery. 565 Ragout. A highly seasoned stew flavored with wine. Ramakins. A preparation of cheese and puff paste or toast, baked or browned. Ratifias. Almond cakes. A kind of liquor flavored with nuts. Ravigote. A highly flavored green herb sauce. Rechauffe. Anything warmed over. Removes, or Releves, The roasts or prin- cipal dishes. Ris de Veau. Sweetbread. Rissoles. Small shapes of puff paste filled with some mixture, and fried or baked. Or balls of minced meat, egged and crumbed, and fried till crisp. Risotto. An Italian dish of rice and cheese. Rizotta. Italian rice and cheese. Rognons. Kidneys. Roux. Thickening made with butter and flour. Salmi. A stew or hash of game. Salpicon. A mince of poultry, ham, and other meats used for entries. Savoy Cakes, or Naples Biscuits. Lady Fingers. Sauce Piquante. An acid sauce. Saute. Fried and tossed over in a little fat. Scones. Scotch cakes of meal or flour. Semona, or Semolina. Same as Manna Kroup. Shalot. A variety of onion. Soubise Sauce. A pur6e of white onions named after Prince Soubise. Souffle. A very light pudding or omelet. The name means " puffed up." Soy. A Japanese sauce prepared from the seeds of Dolichos Soja. It has an agreeeble flavor and a clear brown color. Used to color soups and sauces. Stock. The essence extracted from meat. Sultanas. White or yellow grapes, grown in Corinth. Tamis. A sieve or fine strainer cloth. Tarragon. An herb, the leaves of which are used as seasoning and in flavoring vinegar. Tendrons de Veau. The gristles from the breast of veal stewed in stock, and served as an entree. Timbale. A drum-like shell of rice or macaroni filled with force-meat or ragout. Toad in the Hole. A dish of cold meat baked in a batter of milk, eggs, and flour. Tourte. ' A tart. Truffles. A species of fungi growing in clusters some inches below the soil, and having an agreeable perfume, which is easily scented by pigs, who are fond of them, and by dogs trained to find them. They are found abund- antly in France, but are not subject to cultivation. Used in seasoning and garniture. Truite. Trout. Turbans. Ornamental drum-shaped cases containing entrees made of force- meat and fillets of game, etc. Vanilla. The fruit of a Mexican plant. Pure vanilla beans are from seven to nine inches long, soft, oily, flexible, can easily be wound over the finger, and when cut have a frosted appear- ance. The seeds are so fine as to be hardly discernible. An ounce contains seven or eight beans, and costs $1.50. Veau. Veal. Veloule. A smooth white sauce. Vin (Au). With wine. Vinaigrette Sauce. With acid wine or vinegar. Vol-au-vent. A crust of very light puff paste, filled with oysters or chickens, warmed in a cream sauce, or filled with fruit. Zest of lemon. The grated or shaved yellow layer of oil cells. Zwieback. Bread toasted twice. ALPHABETICAL INDEX. ABSORPTION, 475. Banana Sherbet, 549. Beverages, 111, 463. Acetic Fermentation, 45. Bananas, 392. Birds, Broiled, 23. Acid, Lactic, 463, 471. " with Fruit Sauce, " Roast, 263. " Muriatic, 81. 554. " in Potato Cases, 26S. Air, 2. Bannock, 93. " Mock or Veal, 275. Aitchbone, 214. Barley, 109. Biscuit Glac6, 367. Albumen, 461, 210. " Gruel, 412. Biscuit, 68. Alcohol, 75. " Soup, 417. " Baking Powder, 83. Almonds, 393. " a la Strassburg, 516. " Beaten, 96. " To Blanch, 436. " Water, 418. " Cream, 84. Anchovy Toast, 508. Bass, 161, 165. Maryland, 96. Anise-seed Wafers, 544. Bavarian Cream, 355, 356. " Oatmeal, 88. Apple Cake, Dutch, 86. Bean Porridge, 287. " Raised, 68. " Charlotte, 348. " Soup, 148, 513. " Rye, 84. " Compote, 394. Beans, Baked, 249, 516. " To Shape, 68. " and Cornmeal Pud- " Shelled, 298, 513. " Soda, 83. ding, 288. " String, 298, 512. " Sour Milk, 83. Johnny Cake, 91. Bearnaise Sauce, 1%. " Twin, 83. Meringue, 333. Pie, 325, 529. Beating, 33. Bechamel Sauce, 189. " Wafer, 96. " Whole- Wheat, 84. Porcupine, 334. Beef, 214-220. Bisque of Lobster, 152. Pudding, 333. " Braised, 224. Blanc-Mange, 341. Salad, 520. " Broiled, 223, 426. Blanquette of Chicken, Sandwich, 331. 4 Broth, 418. 268. Sauce, Baked, 394. ' Corned, 228, 436. Bluefish, 159, 162, 166. " Stewed, 394, ' Dried, 510, 272. Boiled Dinner, 229. 553. ' Essence, 422-425. " Dressing, 310, 525. Scalloped, 331. * Fillet of, 222. " " for Cold Slaw, Snow, 345. " Flank, 227. 311. Snowballs, 334. " Frizzled, 272. Boiling, 8-10. Tapioca, 333. " Jelly, 418. Boinbe Glac6, 367. Apples, Baked, 394. " a la Mode, 224. Boning, 26. Compote of, 394. " Olives, 270. Bouillon, 131. To Core, 435. " Pot-Roast, 227. " Clam, 496. Ripe, ToSer.e, 391. " Pulp, 425. Bow Knots, 331. Apricot Pudding, 335. Rib, 221. Brain Food, 415. Apricots, Dried, 535. " Roast, 220-222. " Sauce, 242. " Frozen, 367. " Rolls, 270. Brains, Calf's, 242, 279. " a la Neige, 335. " Roulette, 271. Braised Beef, 224. Arrowroot, 411, 457. " Rump, 221 . " Fowl, 258. Artichokes, 303. " a la Russegue, 497. " Liver, 241. Ash Cake, 427. " Sandwiches, 424. " Mutton, 236. Asparagus, 297, 523. Aspic Jelly, 266. " Sausages, 271. * Sirloin, 220. " Pigeons, 262. " Sweetbreads, 244. " Smoked, 272. " Veal, 240. " Smothered, 227. Braising, 13, 224. BACON, 23, 246, 431, 502. " Soup, 130, 131. Bread, 36-79. Baked Beans, 249. " Spiced, 228. " Baking, 60. " " and Corn, 516. " Steak, 223, 426. " Brown, 67, 68. Baking, 13. " Stew, 225. " " Thin, 490. Baking Powder, 82. ' " Tea, 422-425. " Cake, 74. Banana Ice-Cream, 551. Beet Greens, 297. " Chemical Changes " Salad, 315. Beets, 306. j in,47. 568 The Boston Cook Book. Bread, Crumbs, 75. 'Cake, Black Cap, 543. CAKES, BKEAKFAST AND TEA " Entire Wheat, 79. ' Fermented, 44. " Boswell, 538. " Bread, 74. 44 Apple, 87. 44 44 Dutch 86. ' Fried, 136. ; Graham, GO. ' Importance of, 3G. ' Kneading, 54. " Buttercup, 381. 4 ' Butter Mixtures, 372. " Caramel, 540. " for Children, 375. 44 44 Johnny, 91. 44 Buckwheat, 101,486. 44 Cheese, 542. 44 Cocoanut, 390. ' Loaves, 58. " Cider, 379. 44 Corn 91-93. " Meaning of, 36. 4 Coffee, 382. 44 Cream, 389. " Milk, G4, 65. " Mixing, 52. 4 Coloring for, 381. 4 Cornstarch, 380. 44 Dutch Apple, 8G. 44 Flannel, 99. " Potatoes in, 53. " Puddings, 332, 337. 4 for Cream Pies, 374. ' Cream, Sour, 543. 44 Griddle, 99-102. ' 4 Hoe, 93. " Rye, 67. ' Currant, 378. 44 Hominy 92. " Salt Risings, 45. " Sauce, 193. " Sautecl, 76. 4 Date, 378. ' Dream, 380. 4 Feather, 376. 44 Huckleberry, 87. 44 a la Polonaise, 321. 44 Sand 545. " Shortening in, 53. " Squash, 66. 4 Fig, 543. ' Fruit, 375, 383. " Sally'Lmm, 88. 44 Short, 84. " Stale, 75. 4 Gold, 379. 44 Tea, 89. 44 Steamed, 76. 4 Grandmother's, 537. Calf's Head, 241. " Sugar in, 53. 4 Half and Half, 543. 44 44 Minced, 242 " Temperature for, 56. " Thirded, 67. Time for Raising, 56. " Unfermented, 48. " Water, 63, G5. " Whole- Wheat, 66. 4 Harlequin, 381. * Jelly, 376, 381. 4 44 Roll, 376. 4 Lady Fingers, 374. 4 Leopard, 378. ' Loaf, 74. 44 Heart, 241. 44 Liver, Braised, 241. 44 44 Ragout of, 277. 44 44 Terrapin, 209. Calves' Foot Broth or Jelly, " Yeast, 49. Brewis, 77, 283. Broiled Bacon, 23. ' Macdonald, 379. 4 Marble, 380. 4 Marshmallow, 541. Canapes, 283, 490. Candy, 390, 512. Candied Fruit, 436. " Birds, 23. " Chicken, 260. 4 Mother's, 378. 4 Nut, 378. Canning Fruit, 401, 406. 44 44 Juices, 438. " Chops, 23. 4 One-Egg, 376. Capers, 289. " Fish, 161. " Oysters, 179. 4 Orange, 377. 4 44 Cream, 377. Caper Sauce, 188. Capons 251 " Quail, 263. " Squabs, 507. 4 Park Street, 376. 4 Pistachio Cream, 542. Caramel, 134. 44 Cake, 540 " Sweetbreads, 243. " Tripe, 231. " Venison, 264, 426. 4 Plum, 383. 4 Pound, 383. 4 44 Grandmother's, 44 Custard, 343, 344. 44 Frosting, 540. Caramels, 390. Broiling, 21, 426. 537. Carbon, 3-5, 479. " Pan, 23. Broth, Beef, 418. 1 Raised, 74. 4 Ribbon, 382. Carrots, 305. 44 Heidelberg 514. " Calves' Foot, 417. 4 Savoy, 374. 44 Sweet 514 " Chicken, 142, 418. 44 Mutton, 141. 4 Silver, 379. 4 Snow, 380. Carving, Beef, 220, 221. 44 Fish 164. " Scotch, 140. Brunswick Stew, 264. 44 44 flake, 539. 44 Spice, 382. 44 Poultry, 255. Buckwheat, 109. Cakes,101,486. Bunns, 74. 44 Sponge, 373-375. " Cream, 540. 44 Drops, 374. Casserole of Fish, 170. 44 44 Rice and Meat, 274 " Hot Cross, 74. 44 4t with Fruit, u y ea i 074^ Butter, Lemon, 559. Butter Sauce, Drawn, 187. 375. 44 Sunshine, 375. Cauliflower, 301. Caviare, 488. 44 Tea, 89. Celery, 302, 312, 520. 44 Walnut, 378. 44 Sauce 189 CABBAGE, 302. 44 Watermelon, 380. Cellulose 460. " German, 515. " Salad, 311. 44 Wedding, 383. 44 White Mountain, 378, CHAFING-DISH COOKERY. Cafe" Frappe", 548. 538, 539. Beef, Dried, 510. au Lait, 116. Parfait, 3G5, 546. CAKE, FILLINGS FOB Clams a la Newberg, 510 Crab Terrapin, 51 (i. Pralines, 547. Cocoanut, 377, 378. Eggs, Creamed, 508. Cake, 369-383, 538^545. Cream, 375, 389, 540. 44 Devilled, 508. Angel, 374. Lemon, 381. " Scrambled, 507. Apple, 86. Marshmallow, 541. Lobster Newberg, 508. Baking, 370. Orange, 377. Mushrooms, 511. Berwick Sponge, 375. Raisin, 378. Oysters, 509. Alphabetical Index. 569 CHAFING-DISH COOKBKT. Chicken, Stuffing! or, Roast, Roquefort Rarebit, 511. 258. Convalescence, Dishes for, 425. Scallops, Curry of, 509. Scotch Woodcock, 507. Sardines, 510. " Terrapin, 269. Chocolate, 116-118. " des Arabes, 427. Cookery, 1, 2. Cookies, 385, 386, 389. Cooking, Object in, 452. Sausages, 511. " Caramels, 390. " Time Tables for, Tomato Omelet, 507. " German, 118. 24. Welsh Rarebit, 607. " Reception, 483. Corn, 108-110. Chantilly Basket, 360. " Sauce. Hot, 536 " and Beans, 269. Charcoal, 5- Chops, Lamb, 236, 501. " " Baked, Charlotte, Apple, 348. " Mutton, 236, 501. 516. " Banana, 355. " in Papers, 23, 236. Cora Cake, 90, 101. " Fruit, 348. 44 Pork, 246, 501. " " Ash, 427. " Orange, 348. " Veal, 499. " " Gold Medal, 485. " Russe, 354. Chow-chow, 404. * Strawberry, 355. Chowder, Clam, 156. " " Maryland, 92. " " Spider, 92. Chartreuse of Chicken, 269. " Corn, 157. " " Sponge, 91. " " Fish, 170. M Fish, 155. " " Thin, 91. Cheats, 106. 44 Lobster, 157. 44 Chowder, 157. Cheese Cakes, 542. Cinci, 106. " Fritters, 299. " Canapes, 490. Citron Preserve, 557. " HuUed, 286 " Cottage, 283. Clam Bake, 180. 44 Meal, 108, 109. " Dutch, 283. 44 Bouillon, 4%. 44 " Griddlecakes,100. " Head, 248. " Chowder, 156. " " Gruel, 412. " Sandwiches, 527. " Cocktail, 488. " " Mush, 109, 415. " Souffl^, 282. " Croquettes, 280. " " Puffs, 93. *' Sour-milk, 283. 44 Frapp<5, 548. " " Slappers, 101. 44 Straws, 322. 44 Fritters, 107. " " Waffles, 99. Cherries, Canned, 402. " Soup, 154. " Soup, 150. Cherry, Frapp<, 548. Clams, a la Newberg, 570. " Sweet, 299 * Pudding, 534. " Roly Poly, 531. " Pur^e of, 158. " Scalloped, 180. " " Fritters, 299. Cost of Fish, 174. " Sandwiches, 527. " Steamed, 179. " " Food, 35. " Soup, 158. Claret Dressing, 525. " " Meat, 213. " Tarts, 529. " Sauce, 552. Courbouillon, 158. Chestnut Salad, 520. Coagulation, 461. Crab Olio, 186. " Sauce, 192. Coal Fire, 3-8. '* Salad, 184. " Stuffing, 258. Cochineal Coloring, 381. " Terrapin, 510. Chestnuts, Italian, 515. Cocktail, Clam, 488. Crabs, 183. Chicken, 251. " Oyster, 487. " Boiled, 184. " Blanquctte of, 268. Cocoa, 117. " Devilled, 184. " To Bone, 27. Cocoanut Cakes, 390. " Scalloped, 184. " Boned, 265, 267. u Cookies, 386. * Soft-Shell, 184. " Broiled, 260. " Cream, 377, 378. Cracker Brewis, 283. " Broth, 142, 418. 44 Chartreuse, 209. Codfish, 159, 162, 165, 168. " Balls, 171, 493. " Gruel, 413. f Crackers a la Crgme, 283. 4 Croquettes, 279. " Hash, 172. 44 Crisped, 136. 4 C roustades of, 503. " Salt, 173. ** and Orange Mar- * Curry, 259. Coffee, 112. malade, 427. ' Custard, 426. ' Black, 116. Cranberries, 395. Devilled, 260. Church Sociable, 483 Cream, 463. " Forced with Oys- Common Pot, 115. 44 Andermat, 360. ters, 286. ' Cream, 535. 44 Bavarian, 356. " Fricassee, 258. ' Crust, 419. 44 Cakes, 389. " Fried, 260. ' Egg, 115, 425. 44 Canteloupe, Mock, " Hungarian, 503. " Filtered, 116. 357. " in Jelly, 267. " Handy, 483 44 Cocoanut and Or- u JeUy, 418. " Jelly, 535. ange, 377. " Panada, 426. " Rice, 419. 44 Cocoanut and Rais- " Pie, 268. " Roasting, 113, 114. in, 378. " Pilau, 268. " Serving, 116. 44 Coffee, 535. " Pressed, 267. " Steamed, 115. 44 for Cream Cakes, " Roast, 257. " Vienna, 116. 389. " Salad, 314. Coke, 5. 44 for Cream Pies, 375. " Scalloped, 268. Combustion, 3-5, 451. 44 Dressing, 524. 44 Smothered, 288. Composition of Human 44 Glace", 365. " Stew, 258. Body, 453. 44 Imperial, 352. ** Stuffing for Boned, 266. Compote, Apple, 394. Condiments, 464. ** Italian, 346. Norfolk, 357. 570 The Boston Cook Book. Cream, Prune, 534. " Sauce, 190. Custard, Cocoanut, 343. " Macaroon, 343. Egg Nog, 424. " Plant, 302. " " for Croquettes " Orange, 343. " " Fritters, 3( 3. 278. " Quaking, 346. " Salad, 209, 314. " " for Patties, 278 " Rice, 336. " Sauce, 188. " Spanish, 346. " Souffl6, 337. " ' SheUs, 435. " Tapioca, 345. Cutting and Folding, 34. " Timbales, 209. " Velvet, 349. " Toast, 76. " Whipped, 352. " Vermicelli, 206. " Whips, 353. DABS, 93. Eggs, 197-209. " of Tartar, 81. Crgme Diplomate, 358. Dandelion Greens, 297. * Date Cake, 378. " Baked, 203, 204. " foiled, 199. " Frgte, 282. Crescents, 71. Crisps, 95. " Sandwich, 528. Daubing, 25. Dessert, A Quick, 530. " en Coquille, 204. " a la Creme, 208, 508. " Curried, 203. Croquettes, 277. Diet for the Bilious, 432. " Devilled, 209, 508. " Calf's Brains " " Children, 429. " Dropped, 199. 279. " "the Constipated ' Ham and, 200. " Chicken, 279. 433. ' Hot, 209. " Clam, 280. " Fish, 280. " Hominy, 282. " " " Consumptive 433. " " " Corpulent, 432 ' for Invalids, 431. ' and Minced Meat,204. ' in a Nest, 209. " Lobster, 280. " " " Diabetic, 432. ' Poached, 199. " Macaroni, 281. " Oyster, 279. " " " Dyspeptic, 432 " " " Invalid, 410 ' "in Tomato, 200. " Oyster Plant 422, 431. " Scalloped, 207. 280. Diets, National, 468. " Scotch, 207. " Potato, 280. " Rice, 281. " Salsify, 280. Digester, Soup, 122. Digestion, 471. Dining-Room, 439. " Scrambled, 200, 507. " Spanish, 200. " Stuffed, 206. " Sauce for, 278. Dinner, Boiled, 229. Entries, 265. Shaping, 278. " Sweetbread, Dinner Table, 440. Dish- Washing, 442, 448. Espagnole Sauce, 193. Etiquette, 441. 279. Dodgers, 93. " Turkish, 281. Dominoes, 379. " Veal, 279. Croustades of Chicken, Dough, 52-60. Doughnuts, 104, 486, 74. FANCHONNETTES, 327. Farina, 413. 503. Crotitons, 136. Crullers, 105. Crumbs, Bread, 75. Drawn Butter, 187, 189. Dressing, Boiled, 310, 525. " Claret, 525. " Cream, 525. Fat, To Clarify, 18. ' for Frying, 16. " in Soup, 123. rats, 459. Crusts, Rice, 94. Cucumber Sandwich, 527. " French, 310, 524. " Mayonnaise, 311. Fermentation, 44, 461. Fibrine, 210 " Sauce, 514. Cucumbers, 313, 519. " Tartare, 312. )ried Crumbs, 75. Fig Cake. 543. " Pudding, 532. " Stewed, 514. Cumberland Sauce, 192. Cupid's Wells, 320. Drinks. See Beverages and Water. )rippings, 19. " Sandwich, 528. Fillet of Beef, 222. " of Fish, 161. Currant Jelly, 396. Drop Cakes, Fried, 102. Fire, 3, 5. " Sauce, 191. " Hominy, Fish, 159-174. Currants, 392. 94. " Baked, 162-165. " Dried to Clean, " " Huckleberry, " " in Crusts, 174. 435. 87. " Balls, 171, 493 " with Bananas, 554. Duck, Braised, 261. " Boiled, 166, 167. Curry, Chicken, 259. " Mallard, 504. " To Bone, 161. Egg, 203. " Mock, 234. " Broiled, 161. " Fish, 170. " Lobster, 183. " Roast, 261. " Teal, 504. " Casserole of, 170. " Chartreuse of, 170. " Mutton, 238. " Sauce, 190. Dumplings, Apple, 332. " for Stew, 227. " Chowder, 155. " To Clean, 160. Cusk, 168, 162, 166. Custards, 341. Custard Almond, 343. Dutch Apple Cake, 86. " Cost of, 174. " au Court Bouillon, 167. " Baked, 344. ECLAIRS, 389. " Creamed, 170. " Boiled, 342. Kgg Balls, 136. " a la CrSme, 168. " Candied Fruit, 343. " Baskets, 208. " Crimped, 170. " Caramel, 344. " Chicken, 426. " and Kread Crumbing, 19. " Croquettes, 280. " Curried 170. " Chocolate, 343. " Gruel, 413, " Fillets of, 161. Alphabetical Index. 571 Fish, Fried, 165. Fricassee, Rabbit, 505. Gingerbread, Thin, 386. " Hash, 172. " Pan, 159, 166. " Sweetbread, 500 " Veal, 240. Ginger Cookies, 389. " Drops, 388. " Planked, 491. Fricasseeing, 12. " Sandwich, 528. " in Potato Border, 1G9. Fritter, Batter, 106. " Sherbet, 550. " Potted, 171. " Roes, Fried, 173. Fritters, Apple, 107. " Clam, 107. " Snaps, 388. Glaze, 135. " " Scalloped, 173. " Italian, 77. Glucose, 458. " Salad, 314. " Oyster, 107. Gluten, 38, 97. " Salt, Creamed, 173. " Parmesan, 107. " Gems, 428. " " Dinner, 173. " Swedish, 107. " Mush, 415. " " ToPrepare,172. " " Scorched, 173. " Vegetable, 107. Frizzled Beef, 272. " Wafers, 97. Glycerine, 459. " Sauce for, 190. Frog's Legs, 185. Goose, Roast, 261, 251. " Sauces, 187-196. Frosting, 384. Graham Bread, 66. " Scalloped, 169. " Boiled, 384. " Flour, 39, 42. " Shell, 175-186. ' Caramel, 540. " Wafers, 96. " To Skin, 160. " Chocolate, 385. " Waffles, 99. " Souffl6, 172. " Golden, 384. Grape Jelly, 557. " Spiced, 170. " Stewed, 168. " Marshmallow, 541. " Orange, 385. " Juice Frappe, 548. " Sauce, 557. " Stuffing for, 163. " Ornamental, 384. Grapes, 392. " Warmed-over, 169. " Pink, 385. j Gravy, 221, 256. Flannel Cakes, 99. " Plain, 384. Greens, 297. Flemish Sauce, 192. Fruit, 391-406. Griddle-Cakes, 99-102. Floating Island, 343. " Baked, 393. " " Bread, 100. Flounder, 159, 165. " Candied, 436. " "To Cook, 99. Flour, 39-42. " Canned, 401. " " Corn Meal, ** Prepared, 428. " " Juice of, 438. 100. " Thickening, 135. " Drinks, 419. " " Graham, 101. " Wheat, 95. " Frozen, 367. " " Huckleberry, Flower Sandwiches, 526. " Iced, 393. 100. Flummery, 343. " Jams, 400. " " Pease, 101. Folding, Cutting and, 34. " Mousse, 547. " " Rice or Hom- Food, 449-482. " Preserved, 398. iny, 100. " Adaptation of, 467. " Punch, 118. " " Squash, 102. " Albuminous, 461. " Ripe, 391. Groats, 108. " Carbonaceous, 466. " Salad, 522. Grouse, 262. " Classification of, 454. " Serving of, 391. Gruel, Arrowroot, 411. " Liquid, 463. " Souffle, 535. ' Barley, 412. " Nitrogenous, 460. " Stewed, 393. ' Cornstarch, 411. " Nourishing, 470. Frying, 14, ' Cracker, 413 " Stimulating, 470. Fuel, 4. Egg, 413. " Tables of Cost of, 35, ' Farina. 413. 174, 213. * Flour, 411. " Uses of, 450. GALANTINB, 28. ' Indian Meal, 412. Force-Meat Balls, 137. Game, 251, 431, 504. ' Oatmeal, 412 Forefather's Dinner, 284. " To Choose, 251. * Rice Flour, 411. Fowl, Braised, 254, 258, " To Clean and Truss, Gum, 460. " Smothered, 503. 252. Gum Arabic Water, 419. F mis, 251-254. " Salmis of, 270. Gumbo Soup, 497. Frapp<5 Caf<5, 548 Gateau de Princess Louise,: ' Ceylon, 549. 360. Cherry, 549. " St. Honors', 359. 'HADDOCK, 159, 162, 166, 168, Clam, 548. Gelatine, 123, 345, 462. 493. ' Grape, 548. Gems, Gluten, 428. Halibut, 159, 162, 165, 490. Orange, 549. " Graham, 95. Chicken, 162. Strawberry, 548. " Rye, 94. " a la Conant, 490. Fr ezing, 361. " Wheat, 95. Ham and Eggs, 200. French Dressing, 310, 524. Giblets, 254. Ham, Boiled, 247. Pancakes, 102. Ginger, 465. " Broiled, 247. Terms in C ookery, 561 . Friar's Omelet, 334. Fricadilloes, 271. Gingerbread, 386-389, 544. Hard, 387, 544. Hot Water,388. " Fried, 247. " Sandwich, 273. " To Serve, 247. Fricassee, Chicken, 258. Soft, 387. Hamburg Steak, 224. " Frog's Legs, 185. " Lamb, 237. Sour milk, 388. Sponge, 544. Haricot, 12. Hash, 273. " Oyster, 177. Sugar, 388. " Lentil, 516. Partridge, 506. " Superior, 387. " Vegetable, 230, 572 The Boston Cook Book. Hasty Pudding, 110. Fried, 110. Ice-Cream, Sultana Roll, Kitchen Utensils, 443. 551. (Kneading Dough, 54. Head Cheese, 248. " Tutti Frutti, Kryolith, 80. Heart, Calf's, 241. 365. Heat, 1. " Vanilla, 364. Henriettee, 106. " Walnut, 365. LABAN, 427. Herb Tea, 420. Herbs, Mixed, 32. Ices, Water, 367. Ice, To Keep, 409. Lactic Acid, 463, 471-475. " Fermentation, 44. Hermits, 386, 544. Icing. See Frosting. Lactose, 458. Herring, 162. Indian Corn, 108, 110. Lamb, 232. Hoe Cake, 93. " " Recipes, 90- " Boiled, 234. Hollandaise Sauce, 194. 101,150,157, " Chops, 236. Hominy, 110. 286,288,338, " Fricassee, 237. " Cakes, 92. 412,415,427, " Loin of, 233. " Croquettes, 282. 494. " Roasted, 233. " Drop-Cakes, 94. Invalid, Care of the, 407. " Saddle of, 233. " Griddle-Cakes, 100. " Cookery for the, Lamb's Liver, Ragout of, Hors-d'oeuvre, 487. 407. 277. Horseradish Sauce, 195. " Diet for the, 410, " Tongues, 238. Hot Cross Bunns, 74. 422, 431. Lard, To Try out, 249. Huckleberry Cakes, 87, 100. Irish Moss, 291. Larding, 25. Huitres au Lit, 178. " " Blanc-Mange, Lemon, Baked, 420. Hulled Corn, 286. 341. " Butter, 559. " " Soup, 494. " " Jelly, 416. " Cups, 487. Hungarian Chicken, 503. " " Lemonade, 420. " Sauce for Fowl, Iron Rust, 448. 188. ICB-CREAM, 361-367, 543-553. " Almond, 265. " Baked Apple, 365. " Banana, 364, 551. Isinglass, 462. JAM, Apple, 400. " Blackberry, 400. " Currant, 400. " Grape, 400. " Sauce for Pudding, 328. " Syrup, 98. Lemonade, 420, 118. " Flaxseed, 420. " Irish Moss, 420. Lentil Hash, 516. " Bombe Glac6, 307. " Brown Bread, 364. " Caramel, 364. " Chestnut, 366. " Peach, 400. " Pear, 400. " Quince, 400. " Raspberry, 400. Jellies, Fruit, 395-397. " Gelatine, 349, 350, 416 " Soup, 495. Lettuce, 312, 525, 526. Life and Motion, 478. Liver, 231. " Calf's, Braised, 241. " Potted, 277. " Chocolate. 364. " Cocoanut,'365. " Coffee, 364. " Condensed Jelly, Apple, 397. " Calves' Feet, 417. " Chicken, 418. ** C*r\ff** F^P; " Ragout of, 277. Lobster, Bisque of, 152. " Chowder, 157. " Creamed, 183. Milk, 365. " Fancy, 546. " To Freeze, 361. " Frozen Pud- ding, 366. C'OUGGj DoO. " Crab-Apple, 397. " Currant, 396. " Grape, 397. " " Unripe Wild, PHW " Croquettes, 280. " Curried, 183. " Cutlets, 280. " Devilled, 183. " Newberg, 508. " Fruit, 365, 551. Obi . Plain, 182. " Glace, 365. " " Biscuit, 367. Lemon, 364. " Macaroon, 365. " and Ice, 420. " Irish Moss, 416. " Italian, 350. " Lemon, 350. " Orange, 350. i /~v orvr ' Salad, 315. ' Sauce, 188. ' Scalloped, 183. ' Soup, 152, 153. ' Stewed, 182. " To Mould, 362. " Mousse, 546. " Neapolitan. 363. " Nesselrode,366. Quince, 397. ' Restorative, 416. ' Rhubarb, 556. ' Rice, 415. Lobsters, 181-183. " To Choose, 181. " To Open, 182. " Parfait Cafe, Tapioca, 416. 546. " Philadelphia, QO ' Wine, 349. Johnny Cake, 91. Jumbles, 386. MACARONI, 308. " with Cheese, oAa Own " Pineapple, 364. " Pistachio, 365. Junket, Coffee, 535. " Fruit, 535. oUU. " Croquettes, 281. " with Tomato, " Plombiere, 366. 309. " Pralines, Caf6, KEDGEREE, 170. Macaroon Pudding, 530. 546. Kerosene, 5. Macaroons, 390. '' Strawberry, Kidney*, 234. Macedoine of Fruits, 350. 364, 553. Kisses, 389. Mackerel, 159, 105, 172. Alphabetical Index. 573 Madelines, 379. 'Mushes, 109, 415. Omelets, Ham, 201. Malt re d'Hfitel Butter, 195, Mushroom Sandwich, 528. 1%. Mushroom Sauce, 191. Jelly, 202. " Mushioom, 201. Mandioc, 457. Mushrooms, 291, 303, 511, " Onion, 201. Mangoes, 569. 517. " Orange, 202. Marmalade, 397, 5GO. Mustard, 465. " Oyster, '201. Marrow, 123. " Sauce, 188. " Parsley, uOl. Marshmallow Cake, 541. Mutton, 232. " Rolled, 202. " Filling, 542. " Boiled, 234, " Shrimp, 201. " Frosting, 541. " Boned, 26. " Souffle, 203. Maryland Biscuit, %. " Braised, 236. Sweet, 202. " Corn Cakes, 92. " Broth, 141. " Tomato, 201, 507. Mayonnaise Dressing, 311. " Tartare " 312. " Broth for Invalids, 416. " Veal, 201. Onion Sauce, 193. Measures, Weights and, 30. Chops, 236. " Curry of, 238. " Soup, 496. Onions, 301, 431. Measuring, 28. " Cutlets, Breaded, Baked, 301. Meat, 210-213. 236. ' Boiled, 301. " Balls, 271. " Duck, 235. ' Browned, 127. " Casserole of , 274. " Forequarter, 234. Creamed, SOL " Corned, 436. " Fricassee, 237. Fried, 224. " Cost of, 213. " Ragout of, 238. ' Scalloped, 301. " Extract, 211. Roasted, 233. Orange Baskets, 351. " in Jelly, 266. " Saddle or Loin of, " Cake, 377. " Juice, 211. 233. " Charlotte, 348. " Pie, m. " Scalloped, 274. " Fritters, 107. " Pompine, 272. " Shoulder of, 500. " Frappe, 549. " Ragout, 273. " Stew for Two, " Jelly, 350. " Rolls, 271. 237. " Marmalade, 427, " Sauces, 187. 528, 560. " Souffl<, 276. " Omelet, 202. Melons, 392. NARKOW DOCK, 297. " Sections, 362. Meringues, 389, 435. Natrona, 80. Oranges, 392. Milk, 463. Newport Whips, 353. Oyster Plant, 306. " for Children, 430. Nitrogen, 461, 480. " " Croquettes, " Hot, 118. Noodles, 495. 280. " Porridge, 411. " for Dessert, 530. " Cocktail, 487. Milkweed Greens, 297. Norfolk Cream, 357 ' Croquettes, 279. Mineral Matter, 481. Nutrition, 470. Fritters, 107. Mint Sauce, 1%. Nut Salad, 521. ' Salad, 314, 519. Miscellaneous Hints, 435. " Sandwich, 527. ' Sauce, 188. Mixed Herbs, 32. Nuts, 393. ' Soup, 153. " Spice Salt, 32. " To Blanch, 436. ' Stew, 154. " Spices, 32. Mixing, 33. " in Cake, 378, 545. " Candied, 430. * Stuffing, 163. Oysters, 175-179. Mock Bisque, 147. Nuts in Ice-Cream, 365. " with Bacon, 178. " Oyster Stew, 173. " Broiled, 179. " Terrapin, 269. " on Chafing-Dish, " Turtle Sdup, 137. OATJOCAL, 108. 509. Moulds, 43C. " Biscuit, 88. " en Coquille, 509. Mousse, 547. " for Children, 414. " Creamed, 177. Mucilage, 460. " Gruel, 413. " Creighton, 509. Muffins, 87-104. " Mush, 109. ' a la Demerara, " Corn, 90. Oil, Olive, 309. 609. " and Rice, 92. Oils, 459. " Fricasseed, 177. " Cream, 89. " Fixed, 460. " Fried, 178. " Flour, 87. " Volatile, 460. " on Ice, 176. " Fried, 103. Oleine, 459. " a la MSitre " Granulated Wheat, Olive Oil, 309. d'H6tel, 509. 89. " Sauce, 192, 504. " Mock, 299. " Rye, 90. Olives, Beef, 270. * with Mushrooms, Muriatic Acid, 81. Omelets, 20(M203. 178. Mush, Brain Food, 415. Cheese, 201. " Panned, 509. " Corn Meal, 415. " Chicken, 201. Parboiled, 176. " Fried, 110. " Clam, 201. " Pickled, 179. " Gluten, 415. " Corn, 201. " To Prepare, 176. " Graham, 415. " Creamy, 202. " Raw, 175. ' Oatmeal, 110, 414. Fancy, 201. " Roasted, 175. ' Rye, 415. Poamy, 201. " Bauted, 179. 574 The Boston Cook Book. Oysters, Scalloped, 177. Pie, Berry, 326. Potatoes on Half Shell, 295. " in Shells, 175. ' ' Chess, 324. " Lyonnaise, 294. " Smothered, 176. " Chicken, 268. " Macaroni, 296. Ozmazonie, 123. " Custard, 325. " a 1 Maitre " Eccles, 326. d'H6tel, 295. " Lemon, 324. *' Mashed, 294. PANADA, 414. ' Marlboro, 327. " a la Neige, 293. Chicken, 426. ' Meat, 272. " Parisienne, 296. Pan Broiling, 23. ' Mince, 326. " Rice, 293. Pancakes, French, 102. ' " Plain, 326. " Saratoga, 296. Panfish, 159, 166. ' Paste for one, 323. " in Stock, 578. Pannikins, 205. ' Pumpkin, 325, 327. " Stuffed, 296. Panocha, 512. " To Roll Paste for, " Sweet, 296. Paper Boxes, 436. 322. " " Baked, 296. Paprika Huhn, 503. " Rhubarb, 325. Pot-Pourri, 556. Parfait, Cafe', 546. Parker House RoUs, 70. " Squash, 325. Pies, 322-326. Potting, 277. Poultry, 251-264. Parsley, 119. Pig, Roast, 245. " To Carve, 255. " Sauce, 188. Pigeons, Braised, 262. " To Choose, 251. Parsnip Fritters, 305. " To Choose, 252. " To Clean, 252. " and Pork Stew, " Potted, 262. " To Dress for Broil- 250. " Stuffed with Pars- ing, 255. Parsnips, 305. ley, 262. " To Dress for Fric- Partridges, 506. Pigs in Blankets, 178. assee, 253. Paste Cream, 323. Pike, 491. " To Dress for Roast- ' for one Pie, 323. Pilaf, Turkish, 283. ing, 253. ' for Patties, 319. Pilau, Chicken, 268. " Gravy for, 256. ' Plain, 324. Pineapples, 392, 399. " To Stuff and Truss, ' Puff, 316-319. Pistachio Cream Cake, 254. ' for Tarts, 319. Pastry Bag, 437. 542. " Ice-Cream, 365. Pralines, Cafe", 547. Prawns, 184. " Tubes, 437. Patties, 320. Plaits, 322. Plombiere, 366. Preserves, 398. " Blackberry, 400. Peaches, 392. Plums, 398, 402'. " Cherry, 400. " Canned, 402. Pokeberry Syrup, 382. " Citron, 557. " Pickled, 403. Polonaise Cakes, 321. " Currants, 400. " Preserved, 398. Pop-overs, 94. " Damsons, 398. Peanut Sauce, 193. Porcupine of Meat, 272. " Peaches, 398. Pearlash, 80. Pork, 245-250. " Pineapples, 399. Pears, 394. " and Beans, 249. " Quinces, 399. " Canned, 402. " Chops, 240, 501. " Raspberries, 400. " Pickled, 403. " Roast, 246. " Strawberries, 400. Peas, Green, 298. " Salt, 246. " Strawberry " Puree of, 149, 150. " Steaks, 246. Tomatoes, 399, " Split, 149. Porridge, Bean, 287. 558. Pease Griddle-Cakes, 101. " Milk and Plum, Proportions, Table of, 31. Pectose, 396, 460. 411. Prune Cream, 534, 557. Pepper, 431, 465. Port Wine Jelly, 41G. Prunellas, 280. Pepperpot, 498. " " Sauce, 193. Prunes, 395, 554. Perch, 165. Pot Roast, 227. Ptyalliu, 472. Piccallili, 404. Potage a la Reine, 144, Pudding, Apple Meringue, Pickerel, 491. 145. 333. Pickles, 403-405. Potash, 80. " Apple Porcupine, " Cucumber, 404. Potato Balls, 294. 334. " Mango, 559. Border, 275. " Apple Snowballs, " Mixed, 405. Croquettes, 280. 335. " Mustard, 406. Puff, 294. " Apple Tapioca. " Sweet, 403. Salad, 313, 524. 333. " " Cucumber, Soup, 146. " Apricot, 335. 403. Yeast. 62. " " Dried, 533. " Melon, 403. Potatoes, Baked, 295. ' Bird's Nest, 333. " " Peach, 403. Boiled, 293. " Boiled in a Cloth, " " Pear, 403. " " Pineapple, in Bread, 53. Creamed, 294. 435. " Bread, 337. 403. Franconia, 295. " Bread and Fruit. " " Tomato, 403. French, 295. 332. " " Watermelon, Fried, 295. " Cabinet, 339. 403. " Raw, 296. * Carrot, 332. Pie, Apple. 325, 529. au Gratin, 517. " Cherry, 531. Alphabetical Index. 575 Pudding, Cherry, Iced, 534. Puree of Peas, Green, 150. Rye Bread, 67. " Chocolate, 341. j " " Split, 149. " Gems, 94. " Christmas, 340. " of Potatoes, 146. " Meal, 109. " Coburg, 532. " of Salmon, 152. " Muffins, 90 " Cottage, 331. " of Vegetables, 151. " " Fried, 104. " Custard Souffle. Putrefaction, 462. ' Mush, 415. 337. " Danish, 342.. " Delicate, 344. QUAIL, 263, 506. SAGO, 457. " Dorchester, 533. Quinces, 394, 397, 399. Salads, 309^315, 518-524. " Dutch Apple, 331. Salad, Apple and Celery, " Eddington, 532. 520. " Eve's, 333. " Fig, 532. RABBITS, 264, 505. Racahout des Arabes, 427. " Apple, Celery, and Chestnut, 520. " Friar's Omelet, Radishes, 518. " " and Onion, 334. Ragout of Cooked Meat, 521. " French Bread, 338. 273. " Asparagus, 523. " Frozen, 366, 552. Raisins, 290, 393. " Banana, 315. " Fruit, 342. " To Stone, 435. " Celery, 312, 520. " Fruit, Steamed, Rarebit, Haddock, 493. " Chicken, 314. 339. " Roquefort, 511. " Crab, 184. Fruit Tapioca, 342. " Gelatine, 346. " Welsh, 282, 511. Raspberries, 392, 400, 492. " Cucumber, 312, 519, 313. " Indian Corn Meal, Rattlerand, 219. " Dressing, 310, 311, 286, 288, 338. RechauffS, Meat, 265. 525. " Macaroon, 530. Reptiles, 185. " Egg, 209, 314. " Mist, 534. Rhubarb, 395. " Fish, 314. " Nesselrode, 366. Jelly, 556. " Fruit, 522. " Pandowdy, 332. " Pie, 325. " Lettuce, 312, 525. " Plain Plum, 337. Rice, 109. " Lincoln, 519. " Poor Man's, 335. " Boiled, 306. " Lobster, 315. " Prune, 357. " Casserole, 274. " Nut, 521. " Prune Cream, 534. " with Cheese, 307. " Oyster, 314, 519. " Queen of, 338. " Croquettes, 281. " Potato, 524, 313. " Rice, 335. " Crusts, 94. " Remnant, 523. " Rice Custard, 336. " Custard, 336. " Salmon, 315. " Rice and Fruit, 336. " Drop Cakes, 94. " Griddle Cakes, 100. " Sandwiches, 315. " Shrimp, 184. " Rice Souffl^ 336. " Jelly or Water, 415. " Spring, 518. " Roly Poly, 531. " for Luncheon, 517. " Strawberry, 315. " Royal Diplomatic, " Salmon, 307. " Tomato, 522, 313. 358. " Savory, 307. Saleratus, 80. " Sauces, 328. " Souffl6, 336. Salisbury Steak, 498. " Scalloped Apple, 331. " Steamed, 307. i Sally Lunn, 87, 88. Rissoles, 321. Salmis of Game, 270. " Snow, 347. Riz a I'lmp^ratrice, 356. Salmon, 159, 162, 165, 166. " Sponge, 337. Roasting, 20. " Puree of, 152. " " Cake, 533. Roll Sultana, 549. " Salad, 315. " " Creamy, 531. iRolls, 68. Sandwich, 526. " Steamed Apple, " Braided, 71. Salt, 455. 332. " Cleft, 70. " Mixed, 32. " Suet and Fruit, " Crescents, 71. " Mineral, 455. 339. " Cross, 70. " Rochelle, 48. * Thanksgiving Plum, 341. " Finger, 70. French, 71, Sand Cakes, 545. Sandwiches, 273. Tipsy, 343. " Imperial, 69. " Beef, corned, " Whole-Wheat, " Letter, 70. 273. 338. " Parker House, 70 " " raw, 424. " Yorkshire, 221. " Pocket-Book, 70. " Brown Bread, Puddings, 331-360. " Quick, 484. 525. Puffs, 94, 95. " Swedish, 72 " Cheese and Punch, 118. " Twin, 70. Nut, 527. " Roman, 549. " Vienna, 71. " Cherry, 527. Puree of Beans, 148, 513. " White Mountain, 72 " Crab-Apple, " of Celery, 147. Roman Punch, 549. 527. " of Clams, 158. Roquefort Rarebit, 511. " Cucumber. 527. " of Corn, Sweet, 150. Rusks, 73. " Date and Nut. " of Fish, 152. " Dried, 74. 528. * of Lobster, 152. Rye, 109. Fig, 528. 5/6 The Boston Cook Book. Sandwiches, Flower, 526. Sauce, Caramel, 330. Soup, Cherry, 158. " Ginger, 528. " Chocolate, Hot, 536. " Chicken, 144. " Ham, 273. " Creamy, 329. " Clam, 154. " Lettuce, 526. " Foamy, 329. " Clear, 131. " Marmalade, " Hard, 328. " Coloring for, 134. Orange, 528. " for Ice-Cream, 536. " Consomme", 131. " Mushroom, ' Lemon, 328. " Corn, 150. 528. ' Molasses, 330. " " Hulled, 494. " Salad, 315. ' Plain, 330. ' Crecy, 134. " Salmon, 526. Sardine, 273. ' Snowdrift, 328. ' Whipped Cream, ' Digester, 122. ' Fish, 152. " Sweetbread, 328 ' Gumbo, 497. 526. " Wine, 330. ' Julienne, 132. " Tongue, 273. " Yellow, 330. ' Left-over, 132. Sardine Canapes, 283. Sausages, 248. ' Lentil, 495 " Sandwiches, 273. Saute"ing, 17. " Lobster, 152, 153. Sardines a la Sterneau, 510. Scallops, 181. " Macaroni, 133. Sauces, Meat and Fish, 187- Scotch Broth, 140. ' Mock Bisque, 147. 196. " Eggs, 207. ' Mock Turtle, 137. Sauce, Acid, 188. Seasoning for Soup, 126. Mullagatawuy, 139. " Apple, 553. Shad, 162, 163, 490. ' Onion, 495. " Bearnaise, 196. Shell Fish, 175-186. ' Ox-Tail, 139. Bechamel, 189. Shells, 117. ' Oyster, 153. Brain, 242. " Rye, 94. ' Pea, Canned, 495. Bread, 193. Sherbet, Banana, 549. ' " Green, 150. Brown, 191. " Lemon, 368. ' " Split, 149. Caper, 188. " " Ginger, 550. ' PotagealaReine,144. Celery, 189. " Milk, 550. ' Potato, 146. Chestnut, 192, 258. " Orange, 368. ' Rice, 133. Claret, 552. " Pineapple, 368. ' Kago, 133. Cream, 190. " Raspberry, 368. ' Salmon, 152. Cucumber, 511. Cumberland, 192. ' " Strawberry, 3ciS. " White Velvet, 550. ' Tapioca, 133. " Thickening for, 135. Currant Jelly, 191. Short Cakes, 84-86. " Tomato, with Stock, Curry, 190. ' Apricot, 85. 133. Drawn Butter, 187. ' Orange, 86. " Tomato, without " " Rich- ' Peach, 85. Stock, 147. er, 189. ' Rye, 86. " Turkey, 142. Egg, 188. ' Strawberry, 85. " Turtle, Green, 186. Espagnole, 193. ' Whole-Wheat, " " Mock, 137. Fish, 190. 86. " Veal, 143. for Fishballs, 19C. Shrimps en Coquille, 184. " Vegetable,Mixed,134. Flemish, 192. " Salad, 184. " Vegetable, Winter, Hollandaise, 194. " Sauce, 188. 151. Horseradish, 195. " Scalloped, 184 " Vermicelli, 133. a la Italienne, 192. Sick-Room Cookery, 407, " White, 143, 144. Lemon, 188. 434. Souse, 248. Lobster, 188. Slappers, 101. Spaghetti, 309. Mattred'H6tel,195, Slippery Elm Tea, 419. Spanish Cream, 346. 196. Smelts, 160, 165, 493. " Eggs, 200. Mint, 196. Soda, 80. Spice, Mixed, 32. Mushroom, 190, 191. " Biscuit, 83. Spices, 465. Mustard, 188. " in Yeast Bread, 57. Spinach, 296. Olive, 192, 504. Soubise Sauce, 193. Squabs, 252, 507. Oyster, 188. Souffte Cheese, 282. Squash, Griddle Cakes, 162. Parsley, 188. " Custard, 337. " Pie, 325. Peanut, 193. " Fruit, 535. " Summer, 304, 575. Piquante, 189, 191. Meat, 276. " Winter, 304. Poivrade, 191. " Omelet, 203. Squirrels, 264, 505. Port Wine, 193. " Rice, 336. Stale Bread, 75. Robert, 191. Soup, 119-186. Starch, 456. . Shrimp, 188. " Amber, 131. " Corn, 456. Soubise, 193. " Barley, 133, 417. Steak, Beef, 223, 426. Tartar, 194, 195 " Bean, Black, 148. " Salisbury, 498. Tartare, 195, 312 " " ' Green, 513. Stearine, 459. Tomato, 193, 194. Bisque, Mock, 147. Stew, Beef, 225. White, 189. " Brown, 130. " Brunswick, 264. Sauces, Pudding, 328-330. 1 " Car rot j 134. " Chicken, 258. Sauce, Apricot, 32. | * Celery, 147. " Fish, 168. Alphabetical Index. 577 Stew, Mock Oyster, 173. Table of Cost of Meat, 213. Turbot, 491. " Mutton, 237. " " Proportions, 31. Turkey, Boiled, 266. " Oyster, 154. " Parsnip, 250. " " Time for Cook- ing, 24. " Boned, 27, 266. " Roast, 256. " Veal, 240. " " Weights and " Soup, 142. Stewing, 12. Sticks, 71. Stirring, 33. Measures, 30. Tamarind Water, 420. Tapioca, 457. Turnips, 305. Turtle, Green, 186. Tutti Frutti, 365, 558. Stock, 121-129 " Apple, 333. " To Clear, 129. " Cream, 345. " " Color, 127. " Fruit, 342. VANILLA, 431. " " Strain, 127. " Jelly, 416. Sugar, 437. " " Remove Fat Tartar Sauce, 194. Veal, 239. from, 128. Tartare Sauce, 195. Birds, 276. Stoves, 6-8. Tarts, 319, 529. Braised, 240, 499. Strawberries, 392., Tea, 111. Casserole, 274. Canned, 402, Apple, 419. Chops, 499. 406. Beef, 422-425. Croquettes, 279. Strawberry Charlotte, 348. " Cream, 355, 356. Corn, 419. Egg, 426. Cutlets, 240. Fricandean, 240. " Frapp<, 548. Herb, 420. Fricassee, 240. " Ice-Cream, 364, Iced, 112. Loaf, 276. 553. Russian, 112. Melton, 276. Preserve, 400, Slippery-Elm, 419. Pot-Pie, 240. 555. Tea Cakes, 89. * Roast, 239. " Salad, 315. Terrapin, 186. " Stew, 240. " Shortcake, 85. " Crab, 510. Vegetables, 289. " Tomato, 399, " Chicken or Mock, Food, 291. 558 269. " Hash 230. Stuffing for Fish," 163. * Chestnut, 258. Thirded Bread, 67. Timbale Cups, Swedish, Velvet Cream, 349. ' Sauce, 190. Chicken, 258. 107. Venison, 263, 426. ' Mutton, 234. Timbales, Egg, 209. Ventilation, 407. 1 Oyster, 163. Toast, 77. Vermicelli, 308. ' Turkey, 254, 258. " Anchovy, 508. Egg, 206. Succotash, 284, 299. " Cream, 79. Vol-au-vent, 321. Sucrose, 458. " Egg, 76. Suet, To Chop, 435. " French, 77. Suet Pudding, 339. " for Garnishing, 79. WAI-BE Biscuit, 96. Sugar, 458. " Milk, 78. Wafers, Anise-seed, 544. " in Bread, 53. " Water, 79. " Gluten, 97. Sultana Roll, 551. Sultanas, 290. Toast Water, 419. Tomato Catchup, 404. " Graham, 96. Waffle-iron, 98. Swedish Timbales, 107. Sweetbreads,' 243. " Jelly, 522. " Omelet, 307. Waffles, 97. " Corn Meal, 99. Braised, 244. " Salad, 313, 522. " Graham, 99. " Broiled, 243. " Sauce, 193, 194. " Raised, 99. " Creamed, 243. " Strawberry Pre- Walnut Salad, 521. " Croquettes, 279. serve, 399, 558. " Wafers, 545. " Fricasseed, 500. " Sweet Pickle, 403. Washing Dishes, 442-448. * Fried, -J43. Tomatoes, Canned, 402. Water, 1, 8-13, 454. " Fritters, 244. " Green, 404, 406, " Apple, 419. " Garnish for, 517. " Barberry, 419. 244. " ScaUoped, 300. " Barley, 418. " Larded, 243. " Stewed, 300. " Cranberry, 419. " with Mush- " Stuffed, 300. " CreamofTartar,419 rooms, 243. " Salad, 519. Tongue, Braised, 224. " in Jelly, 230. " Fruit Syrup, 419. " Gum, 419. " Sandwich, 526. " Sandwich, 273. " Rice, 415. Scalloped, 243. " Smoked, 230. " Tamarind, 420. Swordfish, 492. Syrup, Lemon, 98. TABLE ETIQUETTE, 441. Tongues, Lamb's, 238. " Sheep's, 238. Tongues and Sounds, 173. Tripe in Batter, 231. " Broiled, 231. " Toast, 419. " Whortleberry, 419. Watercress, 438. Water Ices, 367, 369. Water, Circulation of, 478. " Laying, 440. " of Cost of Fish, " Lyonnaise, 230. Tropical Snow, 393. Weights and Measures, 30. Welsh Rarebit, 282, 511. 174. Troat, 161 Wheat, 37. ** of Cost of Food, 35. TruffleB, 291. " Cracked, 110. 37 578 The Boston Cook Book. Wheat, Flour, 39. " Granulated, 95, 110. Whey, 464. White fish, 162. Whips, Cream, 353. " Newport, 353. Whole- Wheat Crisps, 95. " " Gems, 95. " " Muffins, 89. Wine Jelly, 349. Wine Whey, 464. Wonders, 106. Woodcock, 263. Scotch, 507. Wood, 5. YKAST, 46. " Compressed, 49. " Dry, 49. Yeast, Home-Made, 50. " Hop, 63. " Potato, Raw, 62. " " Boiled, 63. Yorkshire Pudding, 221. ZEST of Lemon, 565. Zwieback, 485. " Pudding, 530 JVLra Lincoln's Baking powder A scientific compound containing only the highest grade of CREAM OF TARTAR and BICARBONATE OF SODA, with the small- est percentage ofr cornstarch necessary for its perfect keeping. Food made with it is finer grained, sweeter, more healthful, and keeps moist longer than that raised by the more rapid action of powders containing other acids. SOLD BY ALL FIRST-CLASS GROCERS Mrs. Lincoln's Baking Powder Company No. 21 Commerce Street, Boston, Mass. F055' EXTRACTS : In any of the valuable receipts in this book where fruit flavoring is called for, the very best results will be obtained by using *. FOSS' PURE FLAVORING EXTRACTS. BECAUSE WHY? OF THEIR ABSOLUTE PURITY. OF THEIR DELICATE FLAVOR. OF THEIR UNUSUAJj STRENGTH, They are used by many of the leading teachers of cook- ery, and are also used at the BOSTON COOKING SCHOOL, where the aim is always to secure the Purest and Best articles of food. These extracts are preferred and used by MRS. MARY J. LINCOLN. Awarded the Gold Medal (Highest Award) by the Massachusetts Charitable Mechanic Association, 1892, for Purity and Superiority. PREPARED BY SCHLOTTERBECK & FOSS Co., Portland, Me. (Sold by all first class Grocers) DELICIOUS V IF you are not entirely satisfied with the qual- ity of the Hams and Bacon you have been selling, why not try the "FERRIS," which has been the leading Brand for half a century; so re- liable as to be used as the STANDARD OF COMPARISON "A Little Higher in Price BUT!" " A PURE COCOA OF UNDOUBTED QUALITY AND EXCELLENCE OF MANUFACTURE" =THAT IS= Walter Baker's Dr. Goodfellow, of the London (Eng.) Techni- cal College, in giving some hints concerning the proper preparation of cocoa, says: " Start with a pure cocoa of undoubted quality and excellence of manufacture, and which bears the name of a respectable firm. This point is important, for there are many cocoas on the market which have been doctored by the ad= dition of alkali, starch, malt, kola, hops, etc." TRADE-MARK Examine the package you receive and make sure that it bears our trade-mark. Under the decisions of the U. S. Courts no other Cocoa is entitled to be labeled or sold as "Baker's Cocoa." WALTER BAKER & CO., Ltd. ESTABLISHED 1780 DORCHESTER, MASS. 40 HIGHEST AWARDS IN EUROPE AND AMERICA MAKE YOUR OWN ICE CREAM AND A VARIETY OF DAINTY DESSERTS with CHR. HANSEN'S JUNKET TABLETS JO Tablets for JO Quarts JO Cents Book of rec- ipes, " Have Some Junket," free with every box CHR. HANSEN'S PURE FOOD COLORS Are indispensable for Ice Cream, Confectionery, or Junket < The Colors are liquid, in one-ounce bot- tles, sold at 10 cents each, and are: BERRY BLUE, GRAPE GREEN, PLUM PURPLE, RASPBERRY RED, LEMON YELLOW, AND ORANGE GOLD. Ask your Grocer for CHR. HANSEN'S PURE FOOD PREPARATIONS, or send us JO cents for JO JUNKET TABLETS, and write us for descriptive circulars & J* J* CHR. HANSEN'S LABORATORY P.O. Box LITTLE FALLS 1095 NEW YORK WHITE COTTOLENE The best cooks are those who know the difference in the values of materials used in cooking. And the best cooks of to-day know that WHITE COTTOLENE contains far more real value than any other cooking fat. MRS. LINCOLN uses and recommends WHITE COT- TOLENE because she finds it a valuable adjunct to good cookery. WHITE COTTOLENE is always uniform in quality, in- suring perfect results. The process of manufacture has been so perfected that COTTOLENE is practically odor- less, tasteless, and neutral, bringing out all the natural merits of foods with which it is combined, and as a result, producing foods that are wholesome, delicate, and healtKful. WHITE COTTOLENE is sold only in sealed tin pails, and all good grocers keep it in stock. Look for the steer's head in cotton plant wreath, and do not accept an inferior sub- stitute said to be "just as good." THE N. K. FAIRBANK COMPANY CHICAGO NEW YORK BOSTON PHILADELPHIA ST. Louis SAN FRANCISCO MONTREAL If you will send us a two-cent stamp, to pay postage, we will mail you free, our book, entitled " Home Helps," edited by Mrs. Rorer, and containing 600 val- uable recipes. Address Dept. Z. ESTABLISHED 1831. INCORPORATED 1894. S. S. PIERCE CO. dFlour. The highest possible grade of Flour for bread-making purposes. APPROVED BY ... .MRS. LINCOLN. S. S. PIERCE CO. ana TREMONT BUILDING, Cor. Tremont and Beacon Streets, \ COR. HUNTINGTON AVE. AND DARTMOUTH STREET, V 185-199 MILK STREET, Wholesale, COOLIDGE'S CORNER, BROOKLINE. SEND FOR PRICE-LIST. FINE -.CLEAN P U R E USED &T RECOMMENDED ty MRS. LINCOLN WI L L N OT HARDEN For every meal in the week a. different easy 'way of seizing Quaker Oats. And in every way a new interest to the palate* This is not true of any other food or even of any other form of Oats. True only of Quaker Oats. "American Cereal Foods and How to Cook Them." Edited by Mrs. Rorer. Mailed free, for your name. Don't send postage. THE AMERICAN CEREAL CO., Chicago, 111. Leading Cooking and Heating Goods in America HUB RANGES are made in every size and style, including the COMBINA- TION COAL & GAS RANGE THE PERFECT CONTROL that a Cook has The Hub Range MAK ES ft fS COOKING A PLEASURE HUB RANGES Used and recom- mended by all the leading Cooking Schools. Monarch Hub with Gas Attachment over Sold by leading dealers, and manufactured and warranted by SMITH 6? ANTHONY CO., 48 ' 54 UNION STREET BOSTON, MASS. fZ Send for descriptive circulars ESTABLISHED 1831 INCORPORATED 1894 S. S. PIERCE CO. SOLE AGENTS IN THE UNITED STATES FOR Veuve Chaffard JARDIN DE LAFRANCE PURE OLIVE OIL IN HONEST BOTTLES Receiving this high grade Pure Olive OH, as we do, directly from the grower, all intermediate profits are saved to the consumer. * USED BY MRS. LINCOLN SOLD BY PARK & TILFORD, NEW YORK S. S. PIERCE CO., Importers & Grocers TREMONT BUILDING, Cor. Tremont and Beacon Streets ^ Cor. HUNTINGTON AVE. and DARTMOUTH STREET I BOSTON 185-199 MILK STREET, Wholesale ) COOLIDGE'S CORNER : : : BROOKLINE 88 Years' Success. Stickney & Poor Spice Co. Founded 1815. Pure Mustard^, ^ Spice$, Cream Tartar, Herb$, Etc., Etc. The Largest Grinders of Pure Spices in the World. Highest Award Gold Medals, 1890=1892. Purity and Quality Unexcelled. Ask your Grocer for the above brand of Spices, packed in 1-4 Ib. cartons, or 1-4 Ib. full weight cans. Sold all around the World The Standard for over fifty Years. HIGHEST AWARDS: 1893j 1876, CH 1C AGO. PHILADELPHIA. 1851, LONDON. For Food . . f \ V% Corn ( forms, with milk S or beef tea, a most EXCELLENT FOOD FOR CHILDREN AND INVALIDS. It is a wholesome article of diet for all Send stamp for free copy of our dainty book of over 200 new recipes For the Laundry. . . IktUfffiif Otto's ">Utet (!i5lOfii0" J>tatC& will be found fai superior to all other starches in its wonderful strength and uniformity. !t imparts to fine laces, linens, and muslins, a delicacy and lustre simply incomparable. K.ilX(J0>f Ottl'fi " :|jlttt StartQ is well adapted to economical housekeepers. It is a genuine article, absolutely pure, never varies iu quality, and is free from odor. BEST QUALITY IS GOOD ECONOMY T. KINGSFORD & SOW, Manufacturers. OSWEGO, NEW YORK, EVERYBODY KNOWS THAT MAKES THE BEST BREAD PERHAPS YOU DON'T KNOW THAT IT ALSO MAKES THE FINEST FANCY CAKE OF NUMEROUS KINDS USED AND APPROVED ET MRS. MARY J. LINCOLN CEND postal card to us at 701 Washington Street^ New Tork City, mention MRS. LINCOLN'S BOSTON COOK BOOK, with your address, and we will send you a copy of our "CHOICE RECIPES" FREE OF COST IMPROVED WHITE MOUNTAIN FREEZER USED BY MRS. LINCOLN Endorsed and recommended by all leading cooking teachers THE WHITE MOUNTAIN FREEZER is the quickest- freezing, smoothest-working ice-cream freezer in existence. It makes the most delicious ice-cream. No other freezer can produce cream of the same fine texture. The goodness of White Mountain ice-cream is due to the triple motion, and the way it beats the cream. Just as you can more thoroughly beat an egg with an egg- beater than with a spoon, you can more thoroughly stir and freeze ice-cream with the triple motion of the WHITE MOUNTAIN. This triple motion is effected by the con- struction of the double dasher. The two parts moving in opposite directions inside the moving can produce three distinct motions of the cream. This can be shown in no other freezer manufactured to-day. THE MATERIALS used in the WHITE MOUNTAIN FREEZER are the best obtainable. THE CONSTRUCTION is as perfect as experience can make it, so that, with ordinary care, one WHITE MOUNTAIN FREEZER will outlast a generation of people. Your dealer will certify to the correctness of these statements. Let him show you the freezer and take your order. Then you '11 feel sure that you have the very best. WHITE MOUNTAIN FREEZER CO., Nashua, N. H. CffASE IMPORTED IN CANISTERS If you appreciate GOODTIA SAVES 40% OF GROUND COFFEE fhe "MARION HARLAND" Coffee Pot PROCESS OF COFFEE MAKING Is scientifically constructed, and is recom- mended by the highest medical authori- ties as the world's greatest and best Coffee-maker. So constructed as to aid digestion, as the coffee is not boiled. It will save 40 per cent of ground Coffee, and will prepare the beverage in a minute. It is so simple a child can use it. It condenses all vapor, and allows no aroma to escape. It makes the Coffee bright and clear without eggs or any- thing else. The Coffee Pots are all Nickel-plated, and they are the handsomest and best that can be purchased at any price. If your dealer cannot supply you, the manufacturers will send irry size you may select, delivered free by express to any address east of the Missis- sippi (and 50 cents additional elsewhere) at following special prices for full Nickel-plated Pots, satisfaction guaranteed : To make i quart, 4 cups $1.25 To make 2 quarts, 8 cups 1.55 To make 3 quarts, 12 cups 1.80 To make 4 quarts, 16 cups 2.00 MARION HARLAND writes : " In my opinion it has no equal" Address the Manufacturers SILVER & CO., 310 Hewes Street BROOKLYN, NEW YORK Ask Makers for Circular BOSTON C RYSTAL GELATINE COMPANY MANUFACTURERS OF THE CELEBRATED Boston Crystal Gelatine (Yellow Label) /CONTAINS no acid or coloring matter, ^^* is absolutely pure, perfectly clarified, sparkling and nutritious. For Jellies, Blanc Mange, Charlotte Russe, etc., it is unsurpassed USED AND APPROVED BY MRS. MARY J. LINCOLN SEND STAMP FOR NEW RECIPES BY MRS. LINCOLN Boston Crystal Gelatine Co. Box 5185 BOSTON, MASS. CARVING AND SERVING By Mrs. MARY J. LINCOLN, AUTHOR OF " THE BOSTON COOK BOOK." Square I2mo. Illuminated board covers. Price, 60 cents. "Carving and Serving," by Mrs. D. A. Lincoln, author of the "Boston Cooi Book," is a little manual by the aid of which any gentleman or lady can become ar. expert carver. What an advantage it must be to be able to place with the left hands fork in the breast of a turkey, and, without once removing it, with the right hand to carve and dissect, or disjoint, the entire fowl ready to be helped to admiring guests ! This is done by skilful carvers. The book also contains directions for serving, with** list of utensils for carving and serving. " The student of this attractive little book has no excuse for inefficiency and bun- gling, as the directions, both general and specific, are so clear that no room is left fat uncertainty. The scope of the book broadens somewhat beyond its expressed range in giving a word of needful advice to the guest, who is conjured to bear in mind that he is invited to dine, not to take a lesson in carving ; adding that there ' seems to be an irresistible fascination about carving which silences all tongues, and draws all eyes to the head of the table.' However, if the process is performed a la Mrs. Lincoln, scrutiny need not be feared. The directions in serving are no less timely and valuable, being founded upon a combination of experience and good taste that may safely be regarded as oracular." Commonwealth. "'Carving and Serving,' by Mrs. D. A. Lincoln, is a capital book for housekeepers. It gives minute and clear directions how to carve everything that goes on to the table in the way of beef, poultry, and game. It also gives instructions how to prepare all these edibles, and appetizing dishes like sweetbreads, chops, cutlets, meat pies, salads, soups, and many others. And what is greatly essential, it gives detailed information how to serve the different edibles and drinks, to cut bread, and, last but not least, \ gives some very much-needed advice how to offer all these things at the table. . . . \ The book is full of such pretty suggestions, as well as solid information, and there if such a wide-spread interest to-day among educated women regarding cooking, serving, i and managing dishes on the table, they will find this little book a valuable assistant b 'r ail such matters." Hartford Times. Sold by all booksellers. Mailed, post-paid, on receipt of prict by the publishers. LITTLE, BROWN, AND COMPANY, BoSTOaf THE PEERLESS COOK BOOK By MARY J. LINCOLN Contains the CREAM OF RECIPES A NEW EDITION with additional matter of interest to every housekeeper Illuminated Paper Cover only 25 Cents The Peerless Cook Book is an authority. It contains 132 pages of valuable cooking recipes, including over one hundred additional recipes FOR THE CHAFING DISH The name of Mrs. D. A. Lincoln on a book of household advice is sure to stamp it with success. Thousands of women all over the land owe her a debt of gratitude for her " Boston Cook Book ;" and now thousands more, whose lack of means have prevented them from owning that unequalled volume, may rejoice in the possession of the Peerless Cook Book. This little collection contains over four hun- dred valuable recipes. A few of these are taken from her " Boston Cook Book;" but most of them are new, and all are of the most useful and practical description, bearing the mark of the positive genius which Mrs. Lincoln possesses for culinary composition. The Beacon. Mrs. D. A. Lincoln's " Boston Cook Book " has been widely recog- nized as one of the very best manuals of its class, and her new venture in the same field, the Peerless Cook Book, which is issued in paper at a low price, will find a host of friends because of its eminently prac- tical character. Christian Union. Sold by all Booksellers. Mailed, post-paid, on receipt of price fy the Publishers, LITTLE, BROWN, AND COMPANY, BOSTON. Boston School Kitchen Cext-Booh Lessons in Cooking, for the use of Classes in Pub- lic and Industrial Schools By MRS. MARY J. LINCOLN AUTHOR OF "THE BOSTON COOK BOOK" One Volume. i2mo. Price, $1.00 I regard the book as a very practical one for a text-book. It will be especially valuable to the teacher as a guide to the lessons she gives. The physiological information and chemical analysis of foods, together with the tables of cost at the end of the book, add to the usefulness of the work. It is an undoubted success for the school-room. WILLIAM T. HARRIS, Concord, Mass. Your " Boston School Kitchen Text-Book " appears to be based on cor- rect principles and admirably executed as regards details. I hope that my girls will have a chance to practically study its interesting lessons. Your quiet assumption (which runs through the whole book) that there is a good and satisfactory reason behind every process which is endorsed by good usage, is a wholesome one which it is well that children should early learn. C. M. WOODWARD, Manual Training School, Washington University, St. Louis, Mo. Allow me to say that you have made our whole country your debtor by the composition of a book so much needed, and so simple, sensible, and thorough. I am sure the book is its own best plea for a place in our public schools. I believe it will greatly aid in making instruction in the theory and practice of cookery a part of our school courses. GEORGE C. CHASE, Professor of English Literature, Bates College, Lewiston, Me. Twenty Lessons in Cookery Compiled from the Boston School Kitchen Text Book. Printed on tinted cardfe, convenient for reference in the school room or for children to use at home. The set includes about one hundred and fifty cooking recipes and one card of rules for general housework, all clearly indexed on a separate card. They are used in the public and industrial school cooking classes in many of our principal cities. Price per set, 40 cents. Special reduction to schools or parties purchasing over fifty sets. Sold only in sets. To be obtained only of Little, Brown, & Co., or of Mrs. Lincoln, 204 Huntington Avenue, Boston. The HOME SCIENCE MAGAZINE # # " THE LEADING HOUSEHOLD MONTHLY " Edited by MRS. MARY J. LINCOLN and MISS ANNA BARROWS To make each number better than the last is the aim of its editors. No woman in America has been more helpful to thf housewife than Mrs. Mary J. Lincoln, the culinary editor, whose department "From Day to Day" is filled with choice recipes, answers to questions and valuable suggestions, and needs no recommendation to those who use her Boston Cook Book. Miss Anna Barrows, the literary editor, well known as a worker for a simpler, healthier home life, furnishes valuable papers monthly. The Motherhood Department and Doctors' Talks with mothers give just the help needed by young mothers in facing the many physical and spiritual problems to be met in infancy and early childhood. No teacher of domestic science can afford to be without the hints for the conduct for classes in domestic science, which are given in every issue. SAMPLE COPIES FREE & & PRICE, $1.00 PER YEAR HOME SCIENCE PUBLISHING COMPANY BOSTON, MASSACHUSETTS READ WHAT THE PRESS & SUBSCRIBERS SAY OF The HOME SCIENCE MAGAZINE <# What has heretofore been known as the American Kitchen Magazine, now about ten years old, has been consolidated with the magazine known as Motherhood, and is published under the title of the HOME SCIENCE MAGAZINE. This magazine should be in every home, and contains much that is of interest and value to people directly and indirectly connected with culinary matters. It is profusely illustrated and the articles are all thoroughly practical and to the point. It does a great deal to stimulate the love of domestic science and the proper conduct of the home. The Hotel World. I find the HOME SCIENCE MAGAZINE very helpful and inspiring. C. E. S., Virginia. Have received much benefit from the magazine in these years that I have taken it, and wish you success in your work of bringing better conditions into the home. A Subscriber. I am very glad to see the new department in your magazine. It is what I need in my class on the care of children. A Teacher in the South. Let me congratulate you on the improved magazine. It was good before, but you are surely making it indispensable now. A Subscriber, Ne